Joshua Lim’s Story: A Westminster Seminary California Student becomes Catholic

May 27th, 2012 | By | Category: Featured Articles

This a guest post by Joshua Lim. Joshua graduated this Spring from Westminster Seminary California, where he earned his MA in historical theology. He was born and raised in the PCUSA. He spent a few years in college as a Baptist before moving back to a confessional Reformed denomination (URCNA) prior to entering seminary. He was received into full communion with the Catholic Church this year on April 21st, the feast day of St. Anselm. He plans on continuing his studies in systematic theology.


Joshua Lim

It is hard to pinpoint any single factor that led to my conversion. Before coming to an actual decision point, I had never considered Catholicism to be an option for anyone in search of truth; even when I was most open to it, I would have sooner turned to agnosticism than to Rome. And yet, here I am, a Roman Catholic — and a happy one, at that.

In order to understand why I converted to Catholicism, it is perhaps best to begin with my move from broad evangelicalism to a more traditional expression of Protestantism. I was born and raised in the Presbyterian church. During high school, thanks to one devoted pastor, I began to study the Bible seriously and ended up leaving the Presbyterianism of my youth and becoming a Baptist. The Baptist church I subsequently joined was generally Calvinist and was composed of college students and young adults who were very fervent in their devotion to the Lord. The pastor and elders highly emphasized sola scriptura, community, holy living, revival, and missions. Doctrinally, there was no commitment to any traditional symbol of the Protestant faith, simply a brief ‘statement of faith’ as found on most conservative evangelical church websites. While theology was prized, there was, in my opinion, an anti-intellectual ethos, and the study of too much theology, which was often held in contrast to the Bible, was sometimes frowned upon. This stemmed, in part, from an identification between one’s interpretation of scripture (in this case, the pastor’s) with scripture’s ‘plain meaning.’ The sacraments, which were called ‘ordinances’ — the former term being far too Catholic — were celebrated three times a year and most of the sermons were typically centered around individual piety. Despite the relatively small size of the church, or perhaps because of it, there was a sense that, in many ways, we were the only truly biblical church. Every other church erred in some way or another, and even those who were seemingly close in  terms of doctrine and practice were never fully embraced — and this unspoken suspicion tended to be mutual.

Over time, I began to grow uncomfortable with the arbitrariness of such a small and isolated church structure (the pastor seemed to have as much authority as the pope); this, combined with my own Luther-like angst caused by the almost solely sanctification-driven sermons (as well as a youthful zeal on my part) ultimately pushed me toward the more traditional Reformed expression of Protestantism. By the end of my junior year in college, I had read through books like Calvin’s Institutes, Zacharius Ursinus’s Commentary on the Heidelberg Catechism, Louis Berkhof’s Systematic Theology, and even Herman Bavinck’s four-volume Reformed Dogmatics; I was also beginning to delve more deeply into Reformed covenant theology. Eventually, through the writings of Geerhardus Vos and Meredith Kline, I ended up rejecting Dispensationalism; further study led me to the writings of Michael Horton, who emphasized the centrality of the preached Word as well as the regular administration of the Sacraments (which were, in good Protestant form, two: baptism and communion). I came to greatly appreciate the sacraments as well as the liturgical form of worship in contrast to the often inconsistent and subjectivistic tendencies of the majority of evangelicalism. Moreover, my law-induced angst was alleviated by the gospel of free justification sola gratia et sola fide. Rather than being moved from fear of the law (proving that I truly was ‘truly elect,’ as it were), I was, at least conceptually, moved by gratitude out of my free justification to obey the Law with joy and freedom; I found a greater sense of the objectivity of Christ’s historical accomplishment on my behalf–something that I had not appreciated until I encountered the doctrine of justification in the Reformed confessions.

Yet, it was not very long until my Nietzschean drive for truth was left desiring something more. During my senior year of college, I somehow decided to read through Karl Barth’s Church Dogmatics. I was aware of Van Til’s severe criticisms of the innovative Swiss theologian, yet I found myself drawn to him as he was and in many ways continues to be the Reformed theologian of modernity. Barth’s version of Reformed Protestantism differed substantially from what I was accustomed to in the Reformed symbols. Though Barth vehemently denounced Catholicism, I still found a certain Catholic tendency, an ecumenical spirit, if you will, throughout his work. It was his writing that gradually opened me up to actually listen to opposing views; not in such a way that made me invulnerable to criticism–reading opposing views through my own lenses–but rather attempting to understand each view according to its own perspective and presuppositions. I also began to read the Bible in this way; rather than interpret the text in such a way so as to accommodate a certain notion of justification sola fide, I tried to understand how other traditions understood Scripture; and I often found these competing interpretations to be, in their own right, very compelling.

This, no doubt, left me highly dissatisfied with the Reformed confessionalism that I had come to love. The appeal to Protestant ‘tradition’ on the one hand, against the broad evangelicals, and to sola scriptura on the other, against Catholics, seemed to place confessional Reformed theology in a highly precarious position. In seminary, I would often hear invectives against the anabaptist impulse in much of Evangelicalism–what the anabaptists allegedly lacked was the tradition that Calvin and Luther as well as the many other Protestant Scholastics had never intended to let go of; what’s more, almost every problem with contemporary evangelicalism as well as modernity was genealogically traced back, never to the magisterial reformers, but those all-too-easy-to-blame, anabaptists. While I initially believed these narratives to be true, it became harder for me to see such distinctions as anything but an arbitrary defense mechanism. It seems almost impossible to deny that certain impulses within anabaptism sprang up from ideas latent in Luther’s own magisterial reformation.

Against this anabaptist problem, the proposed ‘Reformed’ solution was quite simple: the Reformed confessions had to be restored to their proper place. Yet, it was unclear how such a recovery could not immediately devolve into the in-fighting typical of Reformed denominations (indeed, it seems impossible to even get to the point where such a devolution could occur). At least on this point, it seems that Charles Finney had a degree of truth on his side: the confessions do seem to function, at least in practice, as something like a ‘paper pope.’ It is either this, or the confessions hold no authority at all. The via media, that Reformed churches and their confessions only have a ‘ministerial’ authority does not solve anything since it is unclear what this even means, as is only more evident in controversies in P&R denominations that ceaselessly result in more and more denomination splits. If the confessions do not have, at least in practice, the same authority as the Magisterium, it does not seem that they have any authority at all. The moment someone disagrees with the confession or a given interpretation of the confession on biblical grounds, they no longer need to submit themselves to that governing body. In other words, one can consistently use Luther’s “Here I stand” speech in order to avoid church discipline–and it would be hypocritical for any Protestant denomination to condemn one who appeals to his own conscience and Scripture. And that this has actually happened throughout history is not difficult to substantiate.

These irresolvable doubts led me to the slough of despond. On the one hand, I could not return to broad Evangelicalism because of its naive biblicism (condemned both by confessional Protestants as much as by Rome), but on the other hand, I could not remain a confessional Reformed Christian. Barth was of little help here. His constant criticism of all human knowledge, a consistent overflow of the Protestant notion of total depravity mixed with Kantian skepticism, led to a point where no one church or person could be trusted–for God is ever the Subject and can never be made into an ‘object’ that is controlled by man. Though Barth was undoubtedly reacting to the Protestant Liberalism of his time, his own christocentric solution only held things in abeyance without giving a permanent solution. Ultimately, by insisting so heavily on the event character of revelation, the focus on the actual content of revelation itself could only be blurred. As one Catholic theologian put it, Barth’s  “insistent cry of ‘Not I! Rather God!’ actually directs all eyes on itself instead of on God. Its cry for distance gives no room for distance.”1

Rather than turn to that dreaded Catholicism, the epitome, it seemed to me, of all that I had grown tired of in Protestantism, I was gradually led down a deeper path of agnosticism. Ludwig Feuerbach’s critique of religion, that it was simply man speaking in a loud voice seemed unavoidably true. It is not simply that Reformed Christianity is wrong and some other denomination is right, or even that all denominations are right; rather, if one small group of Christians could claim to have the truth to the exclusion of some or many others, and if this boiled down to an arbitrary construct of a man’s or a group of men’s imaginings (i.e., their interpretation of Scripture), then I could no longer believe that any Christian denomination had the truth. Moreover, I could only believe that this sort of arbitrary selection of dogma could only be what has occurred throughout the history of Christianity. In other words, the truth of Christ’s deity, of the Triune nature of God, the two natures of Christ, etc. were all only a matter of human debate (all of which were ultimately determined by different men vying for political and social power). In other words, the Liberal protestants were at least right about something, ‘orthodoxy’ has been and will forever be hopelessly arbitrary. To disagree with this and remain a ‘confessional’ Protestant is the greatest hypocrisy.

Needless to say, by the time I entered seminary, I was somewhat disillusioned by Protestantism as well as Christianity. I was hanging on by a thread and found myself constantly searching for reasons to pray or even believe that this version of Christianity was the version of Christianity. Though I was initially convinced that the Protestant Scholastics held the answer to modern Protestantism’s ails, I gradually realized that even with the revered Protestant Scholastics, a sense of arbitrary human invention, as much as it was despised, was still conspicuously present–simply saying that one holds God’s word over and against human invention doesn’t get rid of the very human aspect of asserting such a human belief and statement. Martin Luther and John Calvin went from looking like heroic men of God to men who were victims of their own delusion; though they believed themselves to be sent by God, it seemed that they were just two more men who were ‘reforming’ a church according to their own interpretations of Scripture formed by the philosophies and culture of their time. If all men are, as Luther and Calvin interpret Scripture to say, helplessly corrupt and depraved, how can I trust anyone? Why should I trust what Martin Luther says that the Bible teaches, or what John Calvin says the Bible teaches or any of the Reformed confessions, for that matter? Is it not the height of naiveté, even hypocrisy, to believe that everyone is totally depraved and yet continue to trust that any human interpretation of Scripture is somehow guaranteed by the Holy Spirit? Is it not more honest to say, with Nietzsche and Foucault, that all men are simply driven by a will to power? And if this is true, no human institution including the allegedly ‘ministerial’ denominations of Protestantism can be trusted because they are simply structures through which those having power can manipulate and control those who do not–indeed, this remains one of Protestantism’s perennial assaults on Rome.

The feeling of regret that many claim accompany those who decide to enter the Catholic Church (how Newman allegedly felt) is what I experienced after I had become Reformed. What is somewhat ironic is that with the disappointment following one’s journey into any Protestant denomination, one encounters those who appeal to the fact that the church is always in via, on the way, and therefore no matter what disappointments one encounters, one should remain faithful to Christ’s church. Yet, along with this admonition there is also the Protestant conviction that one should not remain in any church that does not have the marks of the true church: the preaching of the gospel and the proper administration of the sacraments. It was during this time, while I sought to remain faithful to my local Reformed church, that I encountered a measure of difficulty attempting to convince some close friends, who did not feel that they were receiving what they should have from this particular church, to remain in it. My Reformed belief in the relative importance of the visible church was in conflict with the Reformed emphasis on the importance of one’s individual conscience. Thus, while I wholeheartedly agree with the sense of importance attached to remaining accountable to a visible body, to feel this way as a Protestant seems to be entirely contradictory. Luther felt that it was necessary to separate from the Catholic Church, Zwingli from Luther, the Anabaptists from the Magisterial Reformed, the Calvinists from Arminians, and on and on–all on the conviction that I have the correct interpretation of Scripture: “Here I stand, so help me God.” In other words, I am able to understand and deal with imperfect Christians and an imperfect local body only from a Catholic perspective–where the objectivity of the Church is not dependent on the pastor’s ability to preach a sermon, but on the real presence of the Lord, Jesus Christ. Any sort of corruption one finds in the Catholic Church is found outside the Catholic Church as well. The question is whether the Church remains who she is no matter how those who constitute her visible body fail and err.

It is impossible to live in any sane manner with such suspicions and doubt as I had; and, admittedly, I have found few, save perhaps Luther, who suffered from such intense suspicion as I did. Yet, I did not have either Luther or Calvin’s confidence to trust my own interpretation of Scripture above that of the myriad of opposing interpretations. I knew as a matter of fact that if I had somehow encountered Methodism or Pentecostalism in a notable way prior to being ‘convinced’ of Reformed theology, I would have read the biblical text in a significantly different way, and would most certainly have been convinced of the veracity of that interpretation over the Reformed one. Simply attributing my ‘correct’ view to God’s grace seemed far too simple and easy, not to mention the fact that most groups, Calvinist or not, make this same appeal – “Lord, I thank Thee that I am not like them.”

So what could I do? My foot had almost slipped, I was on the brink of giving up on Christianity altogether. Even though I wanted to believe that it was all true, I simply could not bring myself to do so. Every time I attempted to pray to God, I could not help but feel somewhat embarrassed and ashamed for thinking that I would be heard. I tried to appreciate the gospel of justification; the fact that my salvation was not based on any of my own effort or works, but over time it became harder and harder to delineate between God declaring me righteous through the ministry of the Word each Sunday, versus me simply trying to convince myself psychologically that things were OK. When my professors or the minister would point to the benefit of the Lord’s Supper, it was hard to convince myself that it had any value since it was the visible Word, but nothing more or less than that. Yes, one is strengthened in faith by partaking of the Lord’s Supper–but it is not literally Christ’s body and blood, only sacramentally so, which is only further explained through vague terms such as ‘sacramental union,’ which no one actually seems to know the meaning of, only that it is neither Catholic nor Zwinglian. Issues such as this caused me to question the notion that confessional Reformed Protestantism was somehow more ‘traditional’ than broader evangelicals. If there was historical continuity with the early Church, for instance, it seemed to be purely superficial. Yes, the sacraments were celebrated, baptism was administered to children, but the reasons why they were celebrated or administered differed substantially from that of the early Church. In other words, even if there was seeming continuity with tradition, the reasons behind such a continuity were just as innovative and arbitrary as the rest of evangelicalism.

It was during this time of doubt that I came across a few Catholic theologians at a conference on Protestant and Catholic theology. These were not the first Catholics that I had met; prior to this encounter, I had dialogued with a rather intelligent Catholic (though he knew very little about Reformed Protestantism–which, at the time, enabled me to ignore his arguments) at a nearby coffee shop over a span of about two years. Moreover, there were constant online debates with Catholics on different blogs that I participated in. Yet, perhaps because of my realization of the shortcomings of Reformed theology, it was at this point that I tried to really understand Catholic theology from a Catholic perspective — as much as this was possible for someone who was raised to distrust Catholicism. Through something of a providential meeting, I was able to sit down and talk to Dominican friars; I posed questions regarding nature and grace, the ascension, the Creator-creature distinction, as well as historical questions (e.g., the Avignon papacy)–I basically brought up the key problems with Catholicism that I had learned about in seminary; much to my surprise, the Dominican friars answered my questions in a more than satisfactory manner and, as it became evident through the duration of the conference, presented a very compelling understanding of nature and grace and, concomitantly, theology and philosophy.

During the several months following this conversation, I kept in touch with these theologians and they provided answers to my numerous questions. For the next five months or so, I buried myself in books, Catholic and Protestant. I carefully read Peter Martyr Vermigli’s work on predestination and justification; Vermigli was an Augustinian friar prior to his conversion to the Protestant movement, and so his book represented something of a final vestige of hope. To my surprise, I came away from the book even more convinced of the truth of Catholicism. I read Heiko Oberman’s work on the medieval nominalism of Gabriel Biel and its immense influence on Luther’s theology. Through my study, I realized that much of my doubt and skepticism stemmed from certain philosophical assumptions that I had unwittingly adopted regarding knowledge of God and reality through Luther’s theologia crucis–and much of the philosophical issues that I had stemmed from my understanding of theology’s relation to philosophy. The inextricable link between philosophy and theology became evident to me. One cannot have a ‘pure theology,’ just as one cannot simply believe the Bible without simultaneously interpreting it; philosophy will always be there whether one acknowledges it or not–and those who claim to have no philosophy in distinction from their theology must necessarily elicit a certain sense of suspicion, much like the suspicion aroused by fundamentalists who claim simply to be reading the Bible.

It was during this time that I found a source of intellectual solace in the work of St. Thomas Aquinas. I had already been introduced to him a year before and had taken a class on him in seminary; at this point, I had already read through a quarter of his Summa Theologiae (through which I was disabused of the notion that Aquinas was doing ontotheology), but I was still somewhat suspicious of his view of grace and the Law. Nevertheless, I decided to give it another go and read the Summa Theologiae straight through. In St. Thomas I discovered a much more compelling reason to believe in God, and the Angelic Doctor’s careful delineation between what could be known by nature (e.g., God’s existence) and what could only be known through grace helped me to re-assess my now receding skepticism (which, going farther back than Kant, was ultimately grounded in Luther’s allergy to the deus nudus that all the Scholastics were allegedly trying to get an illicit glimpse of via philosophy). Along with Luther’s distinction between a theologia gloriae and a theologia crucis, went the notion of justification sola fide as well as the doctrine of sola scriptura. Only through nominalist philosophical lenses, it seemed to me, could justification be conceived of as something purely extrinsic (resulting in a view that the Christian was simul iustus et peccator). In other words, in the same way that Reformed theologians typically accuse the Church Fathers of being unduly influenced by Greek philosophy, I found that the Reformers were guilty of adopting, in an even more uncritical fashion, the philosophy of their time without any sense of open acknowledgement; on the contrary, they ignored their assumptions and identified their interpretation of the Bible with the Bible–against the ‘speculations’ of the medieval theologians.

Moreover, I realized that many of the positive impulses that I had discovered in Reformed theology were found in exceeding measure in the Catholic Church. Contrary to the claim that the Catholic Church (or Eastern Orthodoxy) represents something of an extreme to which people merely seeking unwarranted certainty go to (painting the Reformed church as something of a via media— a claim made by Anglicans and Methodists as well), I found that the Catholic Church tended to provide a much more balanced and consistent approach to Scripture as well as Tradition. Moreover, the problem of individualism pervasive in evangelical theology, or the vague community-centered ecclesiology of more emergent churches, there seemed to be the proper balance, not in Reformed theology which only seemed to combine the two resulting in a conglomeration of people who each considered themselves to be experts in theology in contrast to ‘broad evangelicals,’ but in the Catholic Church: plurality in unity. Far from the One sublimating the many, I found that the confession of One, Holy, Catholic, and Apostolic Church entailed a true sense of unity as well as a true sense of distinction between each member of the Church.

Moreover, I was surprised to find very little, if any, signal of that pride stemming from works-righteousness that Luther and the Reformers had warned against. Yes, these people believed that they had to cooperate with God’s grace, but this did not mean that Christ was somehow less necessary or that their works were somehow the cause of God’s grace. These were Christians who confessed at every celebration of the Mass: “Lord, I am not worthy that you should enter under my roof, but only say the word and my soul shall be healed.” Any sign of that Judaizing tendency of boasting before God was absent.

After spending several months meeting privately with a Norbertine Father, I was recently received into the Catholic Church. Throughout this journey I have come to appreciate and love the Catholic Church. As many Protestants warn, there are certain difficulties that the Catholic convert must necessarily face. The contemporary Catholic Church in America is far from perfect. Liturgically, there are, at least in Southern California, very few parishes that celebrate Mass the way Catholics should; there are numerous liberal Catholics who don’t submit to the Magisterium (to the delight of Protestants), the list seems endless. But none of this is actually new for the Church; things have always been so. These issues have not moved me from the conviction that the Catholic Church is the true Church; on the contrary, they have only increased my faith that this must be the true Church. If Christ could continue to work to build his Church with such a history of failings on the part of the laity, various priests, bishops, and even popes, surely this Church must be sustained by God himself; despite the passage of over two millennia, the Church continues to hold and to teach in substance what it has always held and taught. Unlike much of Protestantism which no longer believes what even the magisterial Reformers once held to be fundamental tenets of the faith (Trinity, inerrancy, etc.), the Catholic Church remains unmoved, not by virtue of her own strength, but by virtue of the grace of the Holy Spirit preserving the Church. Though I was initially turned off by the fact that most Catholics don’t know as much as I would like them to (ultimately, due to my own pride), yet I am constantly humbled by the devotion of seemingly simple Catholics whose love for the Lord and faith in his presence in the Eucharist manifest true child-like faith. On more than one occasion I have been moved by the idea that were Christ here today, these would be the people who would follow him without food or drink in order to hear his teaching and receive his flesh and blood without question or doubt. Though I once criticized these foolish sheep from a distance, I am glad finally to be considered one of them.

  1. Balthasar, The Theology of Karl Barth, p. 84. []

593 comments
Leave a comment »

  1. Thank you, Joshua.

    About thirty years ago, after long discussions with some wonderful Dominicans and some also wonderful Evangelicals, in a time of great spiritual tumult, I arrived at the intuition that I could either be a Catholic or a nihilist and could be nothing in between — either everything mattered or nothing did.

    It was a very different path than you took, and given your vast reading of primary sources was a path that the Lord knew I was ill equipped for, but we both seem to have arrived in the same place and substantially for the same reasons.

    Welcome!

    Steve

  2. Dear Joshua,

    Thank you for your story! I am a baby Catholic revert (as of Easter this year!) and really connected with your journey- the appeal of the solid, intellectual Reformed tradition, the growing doubts and the flirtation with liberal Protestantism. But praise God for bringing so many of us Home!

    My favourite bit is when you said that, “I am able to understand and deal with imperfect Christians and an imperfect local body only from a Catholic perspective–where the objectivity of the Church is not dependent on the pastor’s ability to preach a sermon, but on the real presence of the Lord, Jesus Christ.”

    That’s something I needed to remember today when I want to despair over Catholic sermons – whether practically incomprehensible due to a thick accent or seriously impractical because we are neither taught nor exhorted to do *anything*. But I think I need to be praying for a less pridefully intellectual faith (which I totally have!) and a more child-like faith in my Good Shepherd, the Lamb of God, truly present in the Eucharist.

    Incidentally, does anyone have any good tips or links for dealing with the “post-conversion” stage?

    Thank you again Joshua for this reminder. May God bless you and keep you,

    Laura

  3. Dear Laura,

    That’s an interesting idea, to discuss ‘post-conversion.’ I suspect it would be a more subjective narrative than the description of the conversion [or reversion] itself. Still, it could be a worthwhile endeavor!

    Peace in Christ,
    Tom B.

  4. Joshua, I really enjoyed your story. I too could identify with much of it, especially what you said here: “If one small group of Christians could claim to have the truth to the exclusion of some or many others, and if this boiled down to an arbitrary construct of a man’s or a group of men’s imaginings (i.e., their interpretation of Scripture), then I could no longer believe that any Christian denomination had the truth.”

    My conversion process took years and finally reached full communion with the Church this past spring. For me, the issue of sola scriptura was what drove me home. In short: I came to reject it. This left me in serious despair and most certainly on the brink of agnosticism. It was very disorienting. Praise God for reeling us both back in!

  5. Dear Joshua,

    Thank you for this excellent retelling of your story, and welcome Home.

    Fred

  6. Steven, Laura, Christina, and Fred,

    Thank you all so much for of your encouraging words. It is so good to be home!

    Joshua

  7. What a journey you have already travelled! I hope you’ll keep us apprised of your future plans. Your ‘mustard seed’ faith makes mine seem like an underachieving speck in the wind. God is so good, when we are simply willing to accept truth.

  8. Joshua,

    I am so thankful God brought you to the Catholic Church. Great testimony.

    Ad gloriam ecclesiae!

  9. “Liturgically, there are, at least in Southern California, very few parishes that celebrate Mass the way Catholics should;”

    This really resonated with me. Even in my (at least by heritage) very Catholic city, where one is seldom more than a five-minute drive from a Catholic church, this is an issue. I’m profoundly grateful, of course, that I’m able to receive the Eucharist no matter where I receive It, but the liturgy really does matter. Have you ever assisted in the Extraordinary Form (ie, Latin) Mass or an Anglican-Use Mass? Both are very beautiful and reverent. Convent Masses and seminary Masses are sometimes open to the public too. Those might be worth a try. I guess as far as assisting in local parish Masses, all we can do is be as prayerful and reverent as we can be, and keep praying that every Catholic liturgy comes to reflect the awesome event that is happening therein!

    Well, welcome home, Joshua, and God bless you!

  10. Josh,
    Thanks for telling your story. Welcome home!

    Br. Raymond, OP

  11. Joshua, It is to bad your church experience (lousy) caused you to seek those things you felt missing in your life. My testimoney is the same but opposite. This or the catholic church is not your home. I am glad the Lord brought you to Christ first, other wise you would still be lost.

  12. Joanne, Joshua, et. al.

    I’m a convert as well (2009) and just moved from a great and faithful parish to a new community across the country where there are some serious problems: inviting lay people to say the words of consecration, confusing the Persons of the Holy Trinity with some modalist/functional/genderless/”progressive” replacements (ex. “Creator, Redeemer, Sanctifier”), and various strange dictated hand gestures. While I share in your appreciation of the Mass as distinct from the personalities and shortcomings of any particular priests, I’m curious what the responsibility and the protocol is for the lay person in this circumstance. How can I help? I hesitate to bring my ecclesial consumerist past into the Catholic Church and just find a neighboring parish with priests faithful to the Church. I’d appreciate if someone could point me in the right direction. Thanks.

  13. Mr. Lim,

    I enjoyed your story and welcome to the Catholic Church! Could you explain the concept of simul iustus et peccator and how it is different from what Catholics believe? (or provide a resource?)

    Thanks

    RV

  14. Joshua,

    On another note, Joshua, can you share what role the Eastern Orthodox Church played in your journey, if at all? I see a common theme here for converts (of which I am one)…

    1) Growing dissatisfaction with the Protestant paradigm from philosophical, historical, and theological grounds.
    2) Seeing theological nihilism/liberalism/agnosticism or a historical (EO or RC) Church as the only consistent answers
    3) Choosing between RC or EO
    4) Writing your testimony for an RC or EO blog, depending on #3. ;)

    I understand this isn’t the focus on CTC, but it’s probably the most common question I get from my Reformed and Evangelical friends. Roughly, how did you work through #3?

  15. Thank you, everyone!

    Mike (re: #11),

    I’m actually quite thankful for my experiences within various Protestant communities precisely because they caused me to pursue the truth, ultimately leading me to the Catholic Church, which is Christ’s Church.

    Rodolfo (re: #13),

    I do think there is a way to understand simul iustus et peccator that is more consistent with Roman Catholic theology. The simul, in this case, would not be referring to the Christian’s being altogether righteous and sinner in one and the same way, I think this would be contradictory. Rather, the Christian often stumbles and falls and must continue to grow in grace and faith throughout this Christian life. In this sense, we are justified, but we also continue to wrestle and struggle with sin, gradually overcoming it through the grace of our Lord received through the sacraments. Does this answer your question? Hans Urs von Balthasar does discuss this at some length in his book on Barth, and I’m sure Johannes Adam Mohler discusses this somewhere in his monumental book, Symbolism. I imagine the Joint Declaration would also provide some insight, in this regard:

    Joint Declaration on the Doctrine of Justification

    Eva Marie (re: #14),

    One of my former pastors converted to Eastern Orthodoxy and was excommunicated for it. I have an immense respect for the Eastern Orthodox tradition and have found, on my way to Rome, that the two traditions share a great deal (this is often overlooked by Protestants who seek an ally in the East). Due to this fact, I do not like to engage in polemics against the East. I would say that it is ultimately the Petrine office that did it for me. As St. Ambrose remarked: “Where Peter is, there is the Church.” Having said that, however, I do hope and pray for reconciliation between East and West.

    With regard to your troubles at your local parish, I would try contacting your bishop and letting him know of what’s going on. The great thing about the internet is that it’s not very difficult to find out what is and is not licit within the Liturgy. I have found Fr. Z’s blog to be a great practical help with these questions. It seems that your experience is, unfortunately, not uncommon. Others here will likely have better advice…

    Here’s a link to his blog:
    https://wdtprs.com/blog/

  16. Thank you for this, Mr. Lim. I identify with just about everything you have written here (though for me, not at the seminary level–just junior year of college) except for having come to rest my feet in the Catholic Church. I still have a monstrous doubt that Catholicism could actually be true, although there are beginning to be fewer and fewer things outside it and Nietzsche for me. Mostly, I fall into the radically skeptical division, but Thomas Aquinas does keep me attracted…and I still follow this site.

    Thanks again.
    Sarah

  17. Welcome home, Joshua. It seems that you had to dodge some hungry sharks while swimming the Tiber. Grace has brought you thus far. Rejoice!

    Best,
    Mike

  18. Sarah (re: #16):

    Have you read Ed Feser’s book on St. Thomas? That and The Last Superstition were quite helpful for me. They did not convince me of the verity of the Catholic faith (that’s not the stated intention of either of the books), but they provided a more or less stable philosophical ground upon which to think through my radical skepticism. If you haven’t already, I would strongly recommend both books.

    Michael (re: #17):

    Thank you! I’m looking forward to wading in calmer waters very soon…

  19. (re: #18):

    No, I haven’t read either of those books, but will look them up.

  20. I enjoyed your story Joshua. I am a new Catholic myself, baptized and confirmed this Easter. I come from a Mormon background, but I like to read about conversions from other religious traditions as well. I also enjoyed Feser’s The Last Superstition. Have you read anything by David Bentley Hart (Eastern Orthodox)? His book The Doors of the Sea on the problem of evil has some rather harsh words for Calvinism.

  21. “I hesitate to bring my ecclesial consumerist past into the Catholic Church and just find a neighboring parish with priests faithful to the Church”

    Joshua gave some good suggestions as to how to address this problem. Having said that, I’m a lifelong Catholic and I haven’t been in my territorial parish in years. Among other problems, the kneelers in the church were removed in the 1980s. While I understand your inclination to stay and try to improve things, I think it’s okay to go where the Mass is offered reverently. It’s also important (for me at least) to go where the church interior is as it should be, eg, tabernacle in the center of the altar.

    I’m wondering too, Eva Marie, do you wear a chapel veil? I started a few years ago. I was the only woman in the parish I was going to at the time who wore one. (And I would imagine in a parish such as the one you describe, YOU would be the only one wearing one!) Now a few women at that parish do. I felt extremely self-conscious at first, but I love wearing a chapel veil (I feel that it’s just more reverent in the presence of the Eucharist) and I think that when women do wear a veil, it reminds people that the Mass is an awesome mystery and the sanctuary of the church is a sacred place.

  22. Jason,

    So your skeptical and inquiring spirit has led you from Baptist to Reformed and now to Roman Catholic. But what is to stop you now from using the same methodology on Roman Catholicism itself and being forced to move onto something else? As I read the liberal and ultra-conservative types of Catholics I find that they have done just this. Have they not just taken the same sort of tactic that you took to get to your brand of Roman Catholicism and used it to get to a different version of Roman Catholicism, or to EO, or to something entirely different? What is the difference between your brand of skepticism and that of someone to the left or right of you along the what seems to me to be the very broad spectrum of Roman Catholic thought?

    I understand that for the time being you have found peace where you are at right now, but what would you say to someone else who let’s say has read the ECF’s and found that their skeptical and inquiring spirit has lead them away from what the current Magisterium holds to?

    If the confessions do not have, at least in practice, the same authority as the Magisterium, it does not seem that they have any authority at all. The moment someone disagrees with the confession or a given interpretation of the confession on biblical grounds, they no longer need to submit themselves to that governing body.

    OK, so the moment a Roman Catholic decides that he/she does not believe in papal infallibility or whatever other doctrine, they do something similar, don’t they? They declare that the current pope and cardinals are in error and outside of historic Christian teaching on the matter. So how has Trent, or any other specifically Roman Catholic statement of the faith, bound them if they feel free to reject it if they disagree, other than the fact that they in most cases don’t formally leave the RCC?

  23. Phil (re: #20):

    I have not read that book, but I have read The Beauty of the Infinite, as well as Atheist Delusions. He’s probably not the most tame critic of Calvinism… He is an interesting thinker.

  24. Phil (re: #20):

    By the way, congrats and welcome to the Church! From one new convert to another! :)

  25. I am so sad to hear this. My heart is truly grieved. Come quickly, Lord Jesus.

  26. Andrew (re: #22):

    You write:

    OK, so the moment a Roman Catholic decides that he/she does not believe in papal infallibility or whatever other doctrine, they do something similar, don’t they? They declare that the current pope and cardinals are in error and outside of historic Christian teaching on the matter. So how has Trent, or any other specifically Roman Catholic statement of the faith, bound them if they feel free to reject it if they disagree, other than the fact that they in most cases don’t formally leave the RCC?

    A Roman Catholic has submitted to an external authority (i.e., the Church) as established by Christ. A Protestant, on the other hand, has submitted to his/her own interpretation of Scripture. The moment a Catholic disagrees with the Church, he goes against Christ’s own authority. Is he free to do this? Of course, but he will be going against his own identity as a Christian. The moment a Protestant decides that he doesn’t want to submit to a given church, he simply goes to a different church that agrees with his own interpretation of Scripture. He does not cease being a Protestant, because Protestantism is founded upon private judgment. In other words, a Protestant who refuses to submit to any external authority other than himself is a consistent Protestant. A Catholic who refuses to submit to the Church is not a Catholic, but a Protestant.

    If I decide that the Catholic Church is ‘not for me,’ and go elsewhere, I suppose that will simply reveal that I never actually stopped being a Protestant…

  27. Dear Eva Marie (#12),

    I agree with Josh’s response to your concern about liturgical abuses at your parish. You should inform your bishop, as he very likely does not know this is occurring. They have a lot on their plate, so would be blessed by receiving this information.

    You are not being a consumerist. I’ve spoken with a few priests about the issue of attending the parish in which your house is located. The advice I received was that my obligation was to my bishop, not to the nearest parish priest. (However, that parish priest has an obligation for the souls within his parish.) It is not a consumerist approach to pick a parish within your diocese that is healthy for your soul. Your obedience is to the bishop in any case.

    Peace in Christ,
    Tom B.

  28. @ 15

    Thanks for sources and yes that does help answer my question.

  29. Andrew (#22)

    So your skeptical and inquiring spirit has led you from Baptist to Reformed and now to Roman Catholic. But what is to stop you now from using the same methodology on Roman Catholicism itself and being forced to move onto something else?

    Andrew – I wonder if, on reflexion, you mightn’t consider this a little unfair. I don’t see anything sceptical in Joshua’s story – enquiring may either be seeking to find out what is wrong with something, or to find out what is right and whether that led to something else.

    Eighteen and a half years ago, when I told my Reformed pastor that I had decided I must become a Catholic, he had the same reaction. I had, indeed, come from nothing at all, through Baptist beliefs, evangelical beliefs, Reformed (in his sense) beliefs, Reformed (in what would eventually become the Federal Vision sort of belief), and was now Catholic. In a few years, he said, he expected me to be a Muslim.

    It hasn’t happened and won’t. I am home now. You can tell when you are. I share many of the complaints about sloppy Catholicism that some of the traditionalists have. If there were an Extraordinary Form Mass in my community, I might attend it. There is not, in our small town. There is only the parish.

    But looking for the truth is the opposite of scepticism. The sceptic thinks he is looking for the truth; he is actually wanting to possess the truth – rather like Adam and Eve in the Garden.

    And I don’t think it is fair to accuse Joshua of scepticism.

    jj

  30. Honest question: How does a RC Christian reconcile the several places where RC teaching clearly contradicts Scripture? While I abhor the lack of unity between Rome and Protestantism (and within Protestantism between denominations), my conscience simply won’t permit me to submit to teaching that clearly contradicts Scripture. I feel forced to choose between the lesser of the two evils.

    Also, I don’t think the dichotomy referenced by Joshua L. above is legitimate. As a Protestant, I have not submitted merely to my own interpretation of Scripture and not to an external authority. I perceive myself as submitted to both, and certainly to the external authority of the church as it exercises its authority under the authority of Scripture. Sola Scriptura does not mean that we Protestants believe that Scripture is the only authority, but that it is the final authority. We all, Protestant and RC alike, appeal to Scripture, tradition and experience in the formation and practice of our theology.

    Thanks in advance for the help with my initial question.

  31. [Justin]

    Does your church teach we are justified by faith alone in clear contradiction to the New Testament?

    “You see that a man is justified by works and not by faith alone.”

    Everyone interprets Scripture so as to resolve any apparent tensions between various Bible verses. That’s why we have a teaching Church. Every heretic throughout the ages has appealed to Scripture and has argued that their version of the gospel was the only one consistent with it. I’m a former Mormon missionary and as crazy as it may seem, they truly believe that the Mormon gospel is the only one that can make sense of the Bible and that traditional Christianity contradicts scripture.

  32. Justin (re: #30):

    Is there a specific example you have in mind? I’m not aware of any RC teaching that contradicts Scripture.

    You write:

    As a Protestant, I have not submitted merely to my own interpretation of Scripture and not to an external authority. I perceive myself as submitted to both, and certainly to the external authority of the church as it exercises its authority under the authority of Scripture. Sola Scriptura does not mean that we Protestants believe that Scripture is the only authority, but that it is the final authority. We all, Protestant and RC alike, appeal to Scripture, tradition and experience in the formation and practice of our theology.

    The question is not what one perceives to be the case. Of course, from a Protestant’s perspective submission to one’s own interpretation of Scripture is submission to the Word of God. My main point is that the distinction between ‘only authority’ and ‘final authority’ is, in practice, purely nominal. If you disagree with your elders on a given interpretation of Scripture, and you are convinced that you are correct, you would not submit to that body. In this sense, for the Protestant, the church only has as authority if the individual is already in agreement with that particular body. It’s hard to see how this is real authority. If you’re ‘excommunicated’ from one church for ‘heresy’ you can simply go to another protestant body that doesn’t regard that teaching as heretical and remain a consistent, bible-believing Protestant.

    If I, as a Catholic, disagree with the Magisterium of the Church in interpreting a given passage of Scripture, I must submit to the Church since she was established on the foundation of the Apostles by Christ himself. In other words, there is here an authority that is not contingent upon my agreement, but is objectively Christ’s authority–whether I agree with it or not.

    I hope this is helpful…

  33. Justin (#30):

    Honest question: How does a RC Christian reconcile the several places where RC teaching clearly contradicts Scripture?

    As Catholics, we believed that the Bible is the inspired, inerrant Word of God. So of course we’re not about to believe anything we see as contradicting Scripture. The difference between you and us is one of interpretation: As you interpret Scripture, Catholicism contradicts Scripture; as we interpret Scripture, Catholicism does not contradict Scripture. So the questions which should really be asked is: How would one tell whose interpretation is correct?

    As you survey the landscape of Protestantism, I’m sure you see countless denominations distinguishable from each other partly or wholly in terms of how differently they interpret Scripture. And in Protestantism, there is no overarching authority to determine which among those divergent interpretations is correct. So if you want to be a Protestant of some sort, you have to say either that your favored interpretation of Scripture is the most rational on scholarly grounds, or that the Holy Spirit has enlightened your and your church’s hearts more than others about the interpretation of Scripture. Either way, you will find plenty of Protestants, not just Catholics, who will disagree with you. Are you prepared to say that you and your set are smarter and/or holier than everybody who disagrees with you? I sure hope not.

    Catholics don’t have that problem. We believe that the Catholic Church is the Church Christ founded, and that she teaches with his authority. Thus when teaching with her full authority, she is divinely preserved from error. We don’t have to imagine that we, or the bishops for that matter, are smarter or holier than others in order to justify our interpretation of Scripture. We just submit to the Church Christ founded.

    Best,
    Mike

  34. Justin,

    Thanks for posting. You wrote:

    How does a RC Christian reconcile the several places where RC teaching clearly contradicts Scripture?

    Of course, we Catholics deny that Catholic teaching contradicts scripture when scripture is rightly handled. But that returns us to the problem of interpretive authority. Still, could you spell out what perceived contradictions you have in mind?

    You also wrote:

    I perceive myself as submitted to both, and certainly to the external authority of the church as it exercises its authority under the authority of Scripture. Sola Scriptura does not mean that we Protestants believe that Scripture is the only authority, but that it is the final authority.

    Scripture is a text and does nothing all by itself. Its function as an authority of any sort, is always and everywhere carried out within the context of human reader(s)/interpreter(s). Hence, your statement imports a crucial hidden clause and can be recast as follows for the sake of clarity:

    I perceive myself as submitted to both, and certainly to the external authority of the church as it exercises its authority under the authority of Scripture [as interpreted by myself or some other person or set of persons]. Sola Scriptura does not mean that we Protestants believe that Scripture [as interpreted by myself or some other person or set of persons] is the only authority, but that it is the final authority.

    Now if the ultimate interpretive source is yourself, then it is clear that whatever “other” authority is recognized, it is subordinate to, and can be cast off, if you become sincerely convinced that your personal interpretation of scripture is in conflict with any secondary/subordinate authority source(s).

    This would seem to be the default Protestant position, wherein personal scriptural interpretation is enshrined as the ultimate arbiter of doctrinal truth or falsity, in keeping with Martin Luther’s famous:

    “Unless I am convinced by proofs from Scriptures or by plain and clear reasons and arguments, I can and will not retract, for it is neither safe nor wise to do anything against conscience. Here I stand. I can do no other. God help me. Amen.”

    If, on the other hand, the ultimate interpretive source is some other person or persons such that you would always submit your personal interpretive notions to the correction and discipline of said person or persons; then you are behaving in a very Catholic sort of way, and the question becomes this: “on what grounds do you accept the authority of said person or persons to override/correct your personal interpretive convictions”? Catholics are clear about those grounds.

    Pax Christi,

    Ray

  35. Justin (#30),

    I relate to your questions. I asked the exact ones a couple years ago before my conversion. You said:

    my conscience simply won’t permit me to submit to teaching that clearly contradicts Scripture.

    Good. You should never go against your conscience. And Catholic teaching does not require you to. However, it does ask you to make a distinction. It asks you to distinguish between a rightly formed concsience and a malformed one, or at least to admit the possibility of the two. I am sure you can think of examples of people whose conscience won’t permit them to do something you know to be the right thing.
    I think in fairness you must admit the possibility that your conscience is not properly formed when it comes to Catholicism.

    Honest question: How does a RC Christian reconcile the several places where RC teaching clearly contradicts Scripture?

    Let me reverse the question:

    “Honest question: How does a sola scriptura believing Christian reconcile the several places where his teaching clearly contradicts Scripture?”

    My guess is that you would answer something like “my teaching doesnt contradict scripture so I dont need to reconcile it.”

    And that is the answer of the Catholic as well. It is nearly self evident that the authority of who is doing the interpreting is the real issue. The Catholic sees you as doingthe interpreting. So what you simply see as “scripture” we see as “your interpretation of scripture”.

    So perhaps you would need to take your issues one by one and find the answer. This site is good for that. Lots of smart guys with what is most likely the best Catholic answer for any contradictions your conscience currently sees. Believe me, there are answers. And in fairness, you should hear the answer from a good source, and give the source the benefit of the doubt you would want for yourself, before you come to the broad conclusion that there are contradictions between scripture and Catholic teaching. I was a very anti-Catholic Reformed PCA Christian. Some of my concerns with Catholicism were valid, some were not. In the end, the valid ones ended up not disproving that the Catholic Church is what she says she is. A lady with a torn dress is still a lady.
    The key is attempting an understanding Catholic doctrine in the way that Catholics understand it, and avoiding straw men. As an example, when I was a Presbyterian I had been told dozens of times that the Catholics re-sacrificed Christ in the mass (RC Sproul says this constantly). But when I heard Catholics explain- in their own words- what they believed was happening in the mass, I felt more than a little cheated by the charachterization I had been led to accept. Whether the mass is true or false, I had been led to believe a straw man argument, which is not good for me or for RC.

    So I suggest you bring your concerns up one at a time on this site (perhaps in appropriate articles) and perhaps at least some of them could be cleared up.

    As for only/final authority, I totally get the distinction that is seen withing Reformed theology. But this article
    https://www.calledtocommunion.com/2009/11/solo-scriptura-sola-scriptura-and-the-question-of-interpretive-authority/
    showed that it is not a principled distinction.

    P.S. I just saw the other responses from Joshua, Mike, and Ray, who beat me to the punch. Feel free to ignore my comment and respond to them. (they are the the guys that can give you the straight dope, authenticly Catholic answers).

    David Meyer

  36. Mara’ (re #25),

    You wrote:

    I am so sad to hear this. My heart is truly grieved.

    That can be a natural reaction to news like this. I don’t want to speak out of turn, but your comment reminded me of some things in my own experience, which I want to share.

    Philosopher (and fellow Catholic) Frank Beckwith once wrote about how certain views, although known and to some degree understood, for one reason or another are not a “live option” for a person. When someone we know adopts a view that is simply not a “live option” for us, we often experience pain, beyond the pain of a mere disagreement. Protestants sometimes feel this way when someone close to them, or somehow influential in their lives, converts to Catholicism. Not only do we not agree with their decision, the thing decided upon is reckoned to be fundamentally and even obviously contrary to the true and the good, such that it does not merit serious consideration, and we are pained that someone close to us could not only consider it, but “fall” for it.

    Nevertheless, the Catholic faith is peculiarly apt to appear on the Protestant’s horizon as a thing worth considering. Usually, though, it doesn’t appear all at once as a fully-wired, live option. What often happens is that Catholicism is somehow brought into orbit with one’s Protestant world; we become consciously aware of it, this awareness sometimes waxing, sometimes waning; annoying, infuriating, intriguing, disturbing. There are many ways to live with this awareness, and some fewer ways to account for the juxtaposition of Protestantism and the Catholic Church. But the relation is undeniable.

    When I told my family and friends about my decision to become Catholic, some of them expressed feelings similar to yours. In some cases, this was because the Catholic Church was beyond what they were willing to consider, in itself and on its own terms. I can only hope that my own witness, in the manifold senses of that term, can in some way help Catholicism to become a “live option” for them–something worth considering. There are so many factors at play in this transition, that I do not for a moment suppose that simply bringing the subject up often enough, or arguing for the conclusion eloquently and forcefully enough will suffice.

    Still, one of the purposes of this website, which now happily features Joshua’s article, is to serve as an open invitation to consider the claims of Catholicism, which involves, for much of our audience, sifting through those claims relative to the doctrinal position(s) of Protestantism, particularly Reformed Protestantism. This invitation extends to you, Mara’. We don’t want you to remain grieved over Joshua’s story. Even if the Catholic Church is not now a live option for you, she makes claims that are relevant to everyone who confesses that Jesus is Lord, and it would be well to reckon with those claims, and the arguments made in support of them.

    Andrew

  37. @Andrew Preslar

    I appreciate your words immensely. It resonates much with my experience over the last 6 months, especially the influx of differing emotions. Comments like yours and posts like Joshua’s are very encouraging to someone crossing the Tiber.

    I will also say (and have wanted to say many times) that arrogant, condescending remarks from the reformed crowd do themselves no favors to those considering Catholicism (not referring to any comments here in particular). Unfortunately, I have friends that are included in that group that now have no words for me at all because I didn’t heed their warning.

    Thanks again for your testimony.

  38. Joshua (re: 26),

    A Roman Catholic has submitted to an external authority (i.e., the Church) as established by Christ. A Protestant, on the other hand, has submitted to his/her own interpretation of Scripture.

    I just don’t see how that this is a fair assessment at all. From the Protestant standpoint you are begging the question. When you submit to your external authority you are submitting to your interpretation of what this authority ought to be.. But you are assuming your interpretation to be true, are you not? I look at the same historical data that you do and I come to a different conclusion. For instance, I don’t find anything either in the Scriptures nor in the early centuries of the Church that sounds anything like RCC ecclesiological beliefs at the time of the Reformation. And as I pointed out, many intelligent Catholics to the left and right of your look at the same historical data and come to very different conclusions than you have concerning the authority of Rome. Who is to say that you are right and they are wrong? It would seem that the same spirit of skepticism that got you to where you are now might serve you well again. Given your spirit of doubt and skepticism that caused you concern with conflicting Protestant interpretations of Scripture, why would you have no concerns with conflicting Catholic (and EO and other non-RCC) interpretations of the history of the Church?

    I don’t want to want to dismiss the testimony of your spiritual journey as insignificant. These stories are always valuable. But I just don’t see that you have given us anything substantively different in terms of how you arrived at Roman Catholicism when compared with stories from those of have left Roman Catholicism. It’s all boils down to personal interpretation. The only real question for me is the appropriate data that is to be interpreted and the methodology by which we do the interpreting.

  39. Welcome to the faith, Joshua. I know some of the Norbertines down in Southern Cal. What a great order.

  40. Andrew McCallum (re: #38)

    See “The Tu Quoque,” which addresses that objection in some detail.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  41. John (re: 29),

    Joshua talked about doubt and skepticism as leading to his crisis in faith before coming to Catholicism. I hope I’m not reading anything unnecessarily humanistic into what he is saying, I’m sure he will let me know if I am. And I don’t think some degree of skepticism as Joshua describes it is bad. There is an appropriate sort of skepticism towards our respective traditions. But as you allude to, it has to stop somewhere or we end up in paganism or atheism or goodness knows what else. My point concerns the appropriateness of such skepticism by the Roman Catholic when confronted by those within the Catholic tradition that have come to different interpretations of the same data.

  42. Andrew M, (re: #38)

    You wrote:

    And as I pointed out, many intelligent Catholics to the left and right of your look at the same historical data and come to very different conclusions than you have concerning the authority of Rome.

    Many “intelligent” people come to the conclusion that God does not exist, that Jesus was merely a good man, etc. And yet we (and you) believe that God does exist, that Jesus is God, etc. So, the fact that many intelligent people come to a different conclusion is in itself insufficient to justify skepticism about the existence of God, the deity of Christ, and likewise, about the Catholic Church being the Church Christ founded. Furthermore, many “intelligent” people become Catholic. But we do not determine truth on this question simply by counting noses; the question depends on other evidence.

    Who is to say that you are right and they are wrong?

    Those given the divine authority to speak for Christ and His Church, with His authority. Namely, the Magisterium of the Church Christ founded. What you’ve done here is ask a question that Catholics can answer, and that you cannot answer. And that only further supports the Catholic position. Protestants must never ask the “Who is to say” question, on pain of immediate self-refutation, by demonstrating the internal inadequacy of the Protestant paradigm vis-a-vis the Catholic paradigm.

    It would seem that the same spirit of skepticism that got you to where you are now might serve you well again.

    You didn’t want him to be skeptical when he agreed with you concerning Reformed theology prior to his conversion, but now that he disagrees with you, you want him to be skeptical. That seems to me to be not very subtle manipulation, of the Nietzchean sort. People who have evidence sufficient to justify skepticism concerning some matter do not need to exhort others with whom they disagree to skepticism about that matter; they need only present the evidence demonstrating that skepticism is due concerning the matter. Resorting to exhortation is typically a sign that the interlocutor lacks such evidence. And again, that only strengthens Joshua’s case.

    One reason to be skeptical of your position can be shown by your refusal to answer certain crucial questions that anyone considering the Catholic-Protestant question needs to answer. See my dialogue with you in comments #100-#158 of Jeremy Tate’s post “Reflections – Graduating Catholic from a Reformed Seminary.”

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  43. Andrew (re: #38):

    The skepticism that led me from the Protestant tradition arose from that Protestantism itself. In other words, I didn’t convert because I compared the two traditions and thought that Catholicism was relatively better than Protestantism. I didn’t leave Protestantism because of Catholic arguments or because I was attracted to the Catholic Church–I just found no way to know, as a Protestant, what the truth actually and authoritatively was.

    As a Catholic, and as someone who values philosophy as a preambula fidei, I value man’s ability to know general truths about God naturally. But this notion of philosophy and theology are, in my opinion, neither consistent with a Calvinist view of human depravity, nor Luther’s suspicions of a theologia gloriae per his Heidelberg Disputations. Obviously, a mere natural knowledge of God is insufficient in itself to save man, but I do think it enables one to more properly conceive of faith as a trust in that which is supernatural (which includes articles of faith such as the Trinity, or even the confession of one, holy, catholic, and apostolic Church)–this demarcation is important to avoid skepticism.

    Now in terms of the interpretive dilemma that you pose, I would only say this: the Catholic must make the same decision as Jesus’s disciples when they were called to follow him. Did the disciples use their own private judgment in deciding to follow Christ? Of course they did. But once they submitted to Christ they let go of their own private judgment. When he told them that they had to eat his flesh and drink his blood, they did not leave him because of this hard teaching. So even if I grant that there is an element of private judgment involved in becoming Catholic, it’s still qualitatively different from the way in which private judgment is viewed in Protestantism, since any ‘hard teaching’ can be avoided by re-interpretation rather than submission.

  44. @Phil, the justification passages are pretty neatly reconciled by Protestants by appealing to the differing pastoral concerns of Paul and James, respectively. Paul, addressing those who thought that justification was by works, emphasized that justification was in fact by faith alone; James, addressing those who thought that since one was justified by faith alone that good works were superfluous emphasized that one would not be (finally) justified w/o good works. Personally, I think that some of the Protestant-RC rancor over justification is semantics. I affirm that justification is by faith alone; I also affirm that w/o good works one cannot be saved – not b/c the good works are meritorious, but b/c the lack of good works confirms that the person wasn’t justified to begin with.

    @Joshua, some of the contradictions that come to mind would be clerical celibacy in light of 1 Timothy 4:1ff, 1 Cor. 9:5; the assertion that the Virgin Mary was sinless and should be worshiped/venerated, prayed to, etc.; praying to saints; purgatory; indulgences; Protestants (myself included) see no biblical substantiation for any of these. You wrote: “If you disagree with your elders on a given interpretation of Scripture, and you are convinced that you are correct, you would not submit to that body.” This is untrue depending on what we’re talking about – if it’s some non-essential matter, e.g., the supra-/infra-lapsarian debate, we can kindly disagree without parting ways. If it were over some essential matter, e.g., the deity of Christ, the Virgin Birth, or virtually anything stated in the Apostles’ Creed or Nicene Creed or Athanasian Creed, then, yes, I would leave. And no, you can’t just “jump ship” for another body of Protestant believers if you’re excommunicated. Even if another body admits you to its membership, the prior excommunication would stand whether recognized by the individual (or his new church) or not. Finally, just for the sake of my own understanding, it sounds like you’re saying that as a RC you have to agree with every last jot and tittle of RC dogma. Do I understand you correctly? If so, is Tom Brown (above) out of line to advise his sister to seek out a parish that is healthy for her soul, to the exclusion of those she deems “out of line” with what she thinks they should be doing at Mass?

    @Mike, I agree that within Protestantism there are widespread interpretations of Scripture. However, I think there’s sanity in the statement, “In the essentials, unity. In the non-essentials, liberty. In all things, charity.” While I differ with brothers and sisters from other denominations over non-essential matters, I still consider them brothers and sisters due to our agreement on the essentials (again, I’d define essentials as the truths spelled out in the historic creeds of the Church). I am not at all prepared to say that I’m smarter or holier than any of them. In fact, I’m certain that’s completely false. That said, for the sake of my own conscience I must align with the denomination whose teaching as a whole most closely corresponds to Scripture.

    @Ray, the grounds upon which I accept the authority of the elders in our denomination to override/correct my personal interpretive convictions is our common consent to the Confessional Standards to which we subscribe. I’ve also vowed to submit to the government and oversight of the Church. That said, I again get the impression that from your perspective any dissent on any issue (however peripheral) signifies either rebellion on my part or deficiency in the theological formulation of our denomination. Do I understand that correctly?

    @David, I gladly admit the possibility of a malformed conscience; given my affirmation of total depravity I try always to look at myself with suspicion. I have no interest in erecting straw men and am very interested in getting good answers from thoughtful RCs. I agree – a lady with a torn dress is still a lady. I just happen to see most Protestant churches as a part of the lady rather than as anathematized or, at best, estranged from the lady. Thank you for your advice about seeking answers to my questions individually as they arise. As time permits, I have interest in doing just that.

  45. If you were on the brink of agnosticism, and you joined the Catholic Church because it did a better job of convincing you, I wonder if your faith in Christ is purely on an intellectual level, and you are only looking for faith in religion itself. If you are looking to be convinced of God, I wonder if you have a saving faith that is based on the conviction of sin and a supernatural changing of the heart. If you became dissatisfied in the reformed church and you identified the congregation as The Church, then you have a wrong definition of what the Church is. The Church is comprised of individual born again believers of Jesus Christ. If Christ is in you and Christ is in me, then we are both a part of the Church, no matter our congregation or denomination. The “american church system” I believe is not what Jesus called the Church to be. The scriptures only referenced city Churches, meaning, everyone who is a born again follower of Jesus living in one city, would be called as the Church of that city, ie, the Church of Laodicea, the Church of Ephesus, etc. Jesus’ last prayer was that we would be one as He and the Father are one, so I don’t believe the denominations and the different congregations are the ideal Church system of the scriptures, shown in the book of Acts. But does that mean we should throw out the baby with the bathwater and reject one faulty religious system for another? From what I read, it seemed like you were searching for answers from man rather from God, and all you did was trade in one religion with another and are looking for an identity in man’s religion rather Jesus Christ alone.

  46. Hello Joshua,

    Do you remember me from the IustitiaAliena chats about a year and a half ago? With Peter, Inwoo, etc, all had a good time, even though we didn’t see eye to eye. You’ve made quite the turn around since then. Glad to see your story!

    (I’m not sure if my last comment went through, so I’ll try again with this.)

  47. Joshua L.
    You say:
    I just found no way to know, as a Protestant, what the truth actually and authoritatively was.

    Could you say that you don’t know as a liberal who reject the foundation as scripture, or as one who hold scripture as the foundation of doctrine?

    Would human depravity be a matter of morals rather than that depraved humans can’t get anything right? Could Barth be wrong on that?

    Would equating the following of Jesus with following Rome could be likewise reason by Mormons of the following of Jesus and the LDS church? Leave your mind at the door?

  48. James (re: #45):

    I joined the Catholic Church because I became convinced that if Christianity is true, then there must be a way to know and submit to its truth in a more than intellectual manner. In other words, there must be a historical and visible Church that is in substantial continuity with the Church from her inception at Pentecost, through the Early Church Fathers, through the Medieval and Reformation era, until today. Christ, after all, promised that the gates of hell would not prevail against the Church. Therefore, it was incumbent upon me to submit myself to that Church, just as the disciples, once they found the messiah, submitted to him.

    You write:

    If you are looking to be convinced of God, I wonder if you have a saving faith that is based on the conviction of sin and a supernatural changing of the heart. If you became dissatisfied in the reformed church and you identified the congregation as The Church, then you have a wrong definition of what the Church is. The Church is comprised of individual born again believers of Jesus Christ. If Christ is in you and Christ is in me, then we are both a part of the Church, no matter our congregation or denomination.

    First, I know of other Protestants who are vehemently anti-Catholic who would disagree with what you write about the Church. Second, I believe that in order to be saved, I must have faith in Christ, not simply a conviction of sin or a ‘supernatural’ changing of the heart (indeed, I would not know how to be certain that my heart has really ‘changed’). I love Christ and so I joined the Catholic Church because it seems that being Catholic is the only consistent way to be a Christian. Moreover, I find it interesting that you question whether I am truly saved, and then proceed to say that the Church is comprised of those in whom Christ dwells. But here’s my problem: on what grounds should I accept your interpretation of the Bible? If even Protestants disagree with you, Protestants who I regard as committed to the gospel, why should I trust that your definition and understanding of the Church is right and everyone else is wrong?

    Jesus’ last prayer was that we would be one as He and the Father are one, so I don’t believe the denominations and the different congregations are the ideal Church system of the scriptures, shown in the book of Acts.

    Jesus prays for visible unity, and this is a unity based upon truth, “so that the world may believe that you have sent me.” A purely invisible unity renders our Lord’s prayer senseless.

    Finally, you write:

    From what I read, it seemed like you were searching for answers from man rather from God, and all you did was trade in one religion with another and are looking for an identity in man’s religion rather Jesus Christ alone.

    You would have me betray Christ himself and entrust myself to your interpretation of Scripture. In this sense, what you demand that I do is no different from what you’re accusing the Catholic Church of doing. As I see it, it’s not the Catholic Church vs. the Bible, it’s your individual interpretation of the Bible vs. the Church that Christ has instituted.

  49. Peter (re: #47):

    You write:

    Could you say that you don’t know as a liberal who reject the foundation as scripture, or as one who hold scripture as the foundation of doctrine?

    If I understand your question correctly, I would say that as a Protestant who believed in inerrancy and infallibility, I could not know in any absolute manner what Scripture taught. Because a text always needs an interpretor and when biblical scholars are disagreeing about just about every single passage, especially the important ones, I did not know who to trust. Sure, I know Greek and Hebrew, but it takes more than an elementary knowledge of the languages to know who is right or wrong.

    Would human depravity be a matter of morals rather than that depraved humans can’t get anything right? Could Barth be wrong on that?

    Morality cannot be separated from the intellect, “they suppress the truth in unrighteousness.” Leaving Barth out of the picture and just taking Calvin and Luther, I still don’t know how you can trust anyone especially them. Why are they exempt? Because they interpret Scripture correctly? According to whom? In other words, who gets to judge who is right and wrong when we are all fallen (both morally and intellectually).

    Would equating the following of Jesus with following Rome could be likewise reason by Mormons of the following of Jesus and the LDS church? Leave your mind at the door?

    It’s possible. I wouldn’t call it leaving one’s mind at the door, but if that’s what you want to call ‘leaving everything and following Christ,’ you’re free to do so. Mormons and the LDS, like Protestantism, arose much too late to make any legitimate claim to being the Church Christ instituted…

  50. Nick (re: #46):

    Thank you. I remember our discussions; things have certainly changed since then.

  51. “Therefore, it was incumbent upon me to submit myself to that Church, just as the disciples, once they found the messiah, submitted to him.”

    Why not do what the disciples did and submit directly to Jesus Christ himself? (i agree accountability and fellowship is important…BUT…) Jesus alone is the model Christian. He lived a life of the full gospel ministry and gave us power and authority to do the same and even greater works. Let’s fix our eyes on Jesus and not the traditions or the doctrines of men.

    “But here’s my problem: on what grounds should I accept your interpretation of the Bible? If even Protestants disagree with you, Protestants who I regard as committed to the gospel, why should I trust that your definition and understanding of the Church is right and everyone else is wrong?”

    I agree, herein lies the problem. Without looking to man and whether or not someone agrees or disagrees with me (because there will always be groups who agree and groups who disagree), lets just read the scriptures by itself and see what it says clearly.

    1 Cor 12-31. We as individuals make up the body of Christ.

    “He is before all things, and in him all things hold together. And he is the head of the body, the church.” Col 1, 17. Jesus Christ is the head of the body, the Church, which we are individual members of.

    “After all, no one ever hated their own body, but they feed and care for their body, just as Christ does the church— for we are members of his body.” Eph 5, 30. The Church is the body of Christ consisting of members.

    “Don’t you know that you yourselves are God’s temple and that God’s Spirit dwells in your midst?” 1 Cor 3, 16. We are God’s temple and the holy spirit dwells in us.

    “For where two or three are gathered in my name, there am I among them.” Matthew 18, 20. Even the gathering of 2 or 3 is Christ among us, his Church.

    etc, etc. Men interprets the scriptures. But just reading it without the opinion of men, even myself, what do you take out of this?

    “Jesus prays for visible unity, and this is a unity based upon truth, “so that the world may believe that you have sent me.” A purely invisible unity renders our Lord’s prayer senseless.”

    The truth is Jesus Christ. The truth is He came in the flesh, lived a perfect, sinless, obedient life, voluntarily went to the cross in our place, took upon himself the full wrath of God, died, was raised again in the flesh forever defeating death and Hades, and ascended to the right hand of God the father. Whosoever believes in him will not perish but have everlasting life. If you genuinely believe in this and have put your faith in Jesus Christ, and I as well, no matter our stance in the secondary issues, you are my brother and we are of the same body. The same Church under the head of Jesus Christ.

    “You would have me betray Christ himself and entrust myself to your interpretation of Scripture. In this sense, what you demand that I do is no different from what you’re accusing the Catholic Church of doing. As I see it, it’s not the Catholic Church vs. the Bible, it’s your individual interpretation of the Bible vs. the Church that Christ has instituted.”

    No, absolutely not. All I want is for you to seek Jesus Christ through the scriptures and not seek above this the interpretations of men, myself or any man’s religion.

  52. James,

    I don’t mean to horn in on your conversation with Joshua (he says as he goes ahead and horns in), but your remarks remind me a great deal of myself when I was an evangelical. Specifically, I remember the consternation — even exasperation — with people who didn’t see things the way I did, and the way you do, because it all seemed so clear. The reason, I want to suggest to you, that it seems so clear is because you take the framework in which you think for granted to such a degree that it is virtually invisible as a framework. The components of this framework would include, based on what you’ve written thus far, (1) the truth of scripture, (2) the canon of scripture, (3) the “religion”-“relationship” dichotomy, (4) the insinuation that Jesus Christ being Truth somehow makes doctrine unimportant, (5) the logical order Christ–>believer–>church rather than Christ–>Church–>believer, (6) the identity of “essentials” vs. “non-essentials.” The list could go on and on — those are only examples that spring to mind. For now, I simply want to encourage you to spend some time examining — I mean really examining — the reasons and/or assumptions that lie behind each of those. I don’t tell you immediately to abandon your framework, but only to begin to identify it as a framework, and thence to interrogate its soundness.

    best,
    John

  53. James (re: #51):

    You write:

    All I want is for you to seek Jesus Christ through the scriptures and not seek above this the interpretations of men, myself or any man’s religion.

    I appreciate that you desire this and I have no doubt that you are being sincere. I also desire this for you and for everyone else–this is precisely why I joined the Catholic Church.

    God bless you.

  54. Justin,

    You ask, “How does a RC Christian reconcile the several places where RC teaching clearly contradicts Scripture? ”

    Let me propose some distinctions between four ideas:

    (1) What the Bible actually says
    (2) What some people think the Bible says
    (3) What the RCC actually teaches
    (4) What some people think the RCC teaches.

    Catholics would say that you are operating under #’s 2 and 4, while Joshua is operating under #1 and 3.

    Distinguishing between these four things makes all the difference in furthering these discussions.

  55. Justin (#44):

    You write:

    I agree that within Protestantism there are widespread interpretations of Scripture. However, I think there’s sanity in the statement, “In the essentials, unity. In the non-essentials, liberty. In all things, charity.” While I differ with brothers and sisters from other denominations over non-essential matters, I still consider them brothers and sisters due to our agreement on the essentials (again, I’d define essentials as the truths spelled out in the historic creeds of the Church). I am not at all prepared to say that I’m smarter or holier than any of them. In fact, I’m certain that’s completely false. That said, for the sake of my own conscience I must align with the denomination whose teaching as a whole most closely corresponds to Scripture.

    You deny that you’re any smarter or holier than any of your “brothers and sisters from other denominations.” You say you consider them brothers and sisters “due to our agreement on the essentials.” You then say: “I’d define essentials as the truths spelled out in the historic creeds of the Church.” Very well then: why should we accept that definition? Because it’s yours? What authority do you have? Lots of Protestants disagree with you about what “the essentials” are. If you’re no smarter or holier than they, why should we believe you instead of some of them?

    Perhaps you’re just appealing to the authority of “the Church” If so, I would ask: Which church? Yours? Why should we accept its authority? And if something more than yours, what is that “more”? And why should we accept your account of it, as distinct from, say, mine?

    You insist that you “must align with the denomination whose teaching as a whole most closely corresponds to Scripture.” But how would you know which teaching most closely corresponds to Scripture? By your own judgment? But if you deny you’re any smarter or holier than other Christians who disagree with, what makes your judgment more reliable than anybody else’s? It’s no good saying you submit your judgment to that of “the Church,” because you’ve already decided to identify the Church” as that body of people “whose teaching”–in your judgment–“most closely corresponds to Scripture.”

    Don’t you see the vicious circularity of your position?

    Best,
    Mike

  56. Dear Joshua,

    My favorite part was the end:

    yet I am constantly humbled by the devotion of seemingly simple Catholics whose love for the Lord and faith in his presence in the Eucharist manifest true child-like faith. On more than one occasion I have been moved by the idea that were Christ here today, these would be the people who would follow him without food or drink in order to hear his teaching and receive his flesh and blood without question or doubt. Though I once criticized these foolish sheep from a distance, I am glad finally to be considered one of them.

    It was simple Catholics who made me consider the claims of the Church in the first place. Blessed Mother Teresa did more to sustain me through doubt than any intellectual did, and I say that as someone who is grateful for receiving years of much undeserved help from intellectual Christians.

    Brothers, think of what you were when you were called. Not many of you were wise by human standards; not many were influential; not many were of noble birth.

    Sometimes our confidence in our own human wisdom is precisely what is keeping us from God. What is weird is that in accepting Christ and his Church, we then turn around and grow in true wisdom, in a way that subsumes everything that was good and true about our old imperfect human arguments, without contradicting them, but perfecting what was missing in them. I have consistently found that if I want to think clearly, I need to pray and receive the sacraments and believe and trust in God. Apart from Him, there is no clear thought; one can scarcely call what remains thought at all. But with Him I can even be wise by human standards, and yet transcend them still.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  57. Andrew M (#38):

    Addressing Joshua, you wrote:

    …many intelligent Catholics to the left and right of your look at the same historical data and come to very different conclusions than you have concerning the authority of Rome. Who is to say that you are right and they are wrong?

    The answers that Joshua and Bryan have given you ought to suffice. But as I’m pretty sure that neither you nor the other Protestants here will see it that way, I want to augment them here.

    “Intelligent Catholics” who come to reject Rome’s claims to authority are materially heretical and thus, objectively speaking, no longer in full communion with the Church. That bishops or popes rarely rule formally to that effect in the case of particular individuals is unnecessary and, in many cases, would actually be counterproductive. But such Catholics have put themselves in the same position as Protestants, intellectually speaking, because the logic of their position is the same as that of Protestantism. They can no longer answer the question you’ve posed to Joshua, because they have rejected the one authority that could answer the question if they would but have it so.

    On the other hand, Catholics like Joshua, me, and the authors of this site needn’t be troubled by the question. For whether or not any particular individual’s reading of history suffices to convince him of the Catholic Magisterium’s claims for itself, the fact is that his acceptance of those claims gives him a principled way to distinguish his own opinions from divine revelation–and that fact is itself a good reason to accept those claims. Rejecting that way of making the distinction leaves one with only ad hoc and provisional ways of making it. In short, it leaves one only with human opinions, not divine authority. So IF there is a principled way of making the distinction in question, it’s the way that Catholics who are loyal to the Magisterium make it. And while that by itself does not prove the Magisterium’s claims for itself, it does indicate that some such claims are necessary if we are to transcend mere opinion.

    I doubt, of course, that such an argument would weigh any more with you now than it’s done in the past. It’s long been evident to me that you don’t think we can, as believers, transcend mere opinion. Progress will only have been made when you see why that is a fatal problem with your position.

    Best,
    Mike

  58. Justin (#30)

    How does a RC Christian reconcile the several places where RC teaching clearly contradicts Scripture?

    Justin, clearly the RC Christian doesn’t think there are any places where RC teaching clearly contradicts Scripture.

    There are, to be sure, places where Protestants think they understand Scripture and think they understand RC teaching and think there is a clear contradiction. Those three ‘thinks’ are the problem.

    jj

  59. Andrew (#41)
    It is true that Joshua talked about doubt and scepticism – but he understood those attitudes to be the Protestant attitudes he had acquired. I took your comment as rooting those attitudes in Joshua himself. I apologise if that was not what you meant. I took Joshua as having approached Catholicism precisely because he had rejected doubt and scepticism.

    I have often been accused of credulousness by my Protestant friends; never of doubt and scepticism :-)

    jj

  60. Justin,

    You wrote:

    That said, I again get the impression that from your perspective any dissent on any issue (however peripheral) signifies either rebellion on my part or deficiency in the theological formulation of our denomination. Do I understand that correctly?

    Nothing I wrote had anything to do with assessing whether you are rebellious or not, or whether your denomination’s theological formulation(s) are deficient. Further, whether or not a doctrine is “peripheral” is, itself, a fundamental doctrinal question. Nevertheless, to save time, simply restrict the consideration to some doctrine which you consider to be non-negotiable (perhaps the Reformed understanding of Justification??).

    Either your private interpretation of Scripture regarding the nature of such a doctrine trumps your commitment to your current ecclesial community – should they come to hold an incompatible view – or it does not. If so, then the gesture of respect or submission to your current ecclesial community (and/or its creedal formulation) is superficial and you remain the ultimate arbiter between orthodoxy and heterodoxy.

    If, OTOH, you would submit your own interpretive convictions regarding a central doctrinal matter to the correction of your ecclesial community, the question remains as to what grounds you have for investing them with such authority. Noting that the community itself appeals to a creedal symbol formulated in the past merely pushes the question back one step, but does not resolve it.

    Pax Christi,

    Ray

  61. Dear Fr. Bryan,

    Thank you! The Norbertines are quite wonderful.

    K. Doran,

    Amen! I used to think that Mother Teresa was going to hell because she believed in ‘work righteousness.’ This is actually what my bible study teachers told me growing up. But whenever I heard of her or saw her on TV, I could not believe it. Her life exudes true beauty and Christ-like love. It is truly humbling.

  62. Hi Justin.

    You wrote.,, Mike, I agree that within Protestantism there are widespread interpretations of Scripture. However, I think there’s sanity in the statement, “In the essentials, unity. In the non-essentials, liberty. In all things, charity.”

    Could you give me a list of what your denomination consider “essentials” and the “non – essentials”in the Christian faith. It should not be difficult for you if there is indeed a dividing line between essential and non-essential. Thank you.

    Blessings
    NHU

  63. […] https://www.calledtocommunion.com/2012/05/joshua-lims-story-a-westminary-seminary-california-student-… […]

  64. @NHU, Here are the questions for admission to membership:
    1. Do you acknowledge yourselves to be sinners in the sight of
    God, justly deserving His displeasure, and without hope save
    in His sovereign mercy?
    2. Do you believe in the Lord Jesus Christ as the Son of God,
    and Savior of sinners, and do you receive and rest upon Him
    alone for salvation as He is offered in the Gospel?
    3. Do you now resolve and promise, in humble reliance upon
    the grace of the Holy Spirit, that you will endeavor to live as
    becomes the followers of Christ?
    4. Do you promise to support the Church in its worship and
    work to the best of your ability?
    5. Do you submit yourselves to the government and discipline
    of the Church, and promise to study its purity and peace?
    Affirmative answers to those questions would cover the barest essentials.

    @Mike, I disagree that there are Protestant Christians who would disagree on the essentials laid out, e.g., in the Apostles’ Creed. If they deny those basics they are not Christians. “The Supreme Judge, by which all controversies of religion are to be determined, and all decrees of councils, opinions of ancient writers, doctrines of men, and private spirits, are to be examined, and in whose sentence we are to rest, can be no other but the Holy Spirit speaking in the Scripture” (WCF I.X). This is why I can affirm the early creeds of the Church – they were patently in keeping with Scripture. Subsequently, the church added doctrines and decrees that were so contrary to Scripture that they drove not one or two, but whole hordes of Christians to protest and plead for reform in the face of the Church’s abuses. In a very real sense, I am submitted to the authority of the Church of which Christ is King and Head. I simply perceive the Protestant Church to be at least as much the Church as the RCC is.

  65. Joshua,

    Very well communicated piece. Thank you.
    You said: “If all men are, as Luther and Calvin interpret Scripture to say, helplessly corrupt and depraved, how can I trust anyone? Why should I trust what Martin Luther says that the Bible teaches, or what John Calvin says the Bible teaches or any of the Reformed confessions, for that matter? Is it not the height of naiveté, even hypocrisy, to believe that everyone is totally depraved and yet continue to trust that any human interpretation of Scripture is somehow guaranteed by the Holy Spirit? Is it not more honest to say, with Nietzsche and Foucault, that all men are simply driven by a will to power? And if this is true, no human institution including the allegedly ‘ministerial’ denominations of Protestantism can be trusted because they are simply structures through which those having power can manipulate and control those who do not.”
    This does leave a person despairing, doesn’t it? Ironically you had no other place to go yet it was the place where all the others had come from.

    I read Richard Neuhaus’s conversion story and he said that he woke up the day after being received into full communion with the Church and that he no longer wondered where he was supposed to be; he was home. He said that the language of “coming home” wasn’t really supposed to be used in order to convey a more eccumenical spirit, but that he couldn’t help feeling that he was finally, home.

    Blessings!

  66. Mike (re: 57)

    ….whether or not any particular individual’s reading of history suffices to convince him of the Catholic Magisterium’s claims for itself, the fact is that his acceptance of those claims gives him a principled way to distinguish his own opinions from divine revelation–and that fact is itself a good reason to accept those claims.

    I won’t argue that Catholicism has a sort of “ready-made answers in the back of the book” solution to theological debates. Judaism in Jesus’ time had the same sort of solution. The Pharisees could trace their spiritual succession to Abraham and since God was faithful to His covenant people it was argued the authority of the Sanhedrin was not to be questioned. There was a “principled distinction” that could be drawn based on the human authority that God had ordained. And in modern times I cannot argue with the Jehovah’s Witnesses that they have a sort of “principled distinction” as well. They have a human court of authority that they can appeal to in order to definitely determine truth from error. Would you say that the system of the Pharisees and the JW’s has an advantage because of this ability to appeal to a human court that can render definitive judgment for the faithful? I’m not try to equate Catholicism with the Pharisees or the JW’s, only to point out that your yearning for the principled distinction is only good if it’s a principled distinction that God has ordained.

    It seems to me that either God did ordain the kind of human certitude that you long for or He did not. If He did not then the fact that you feel that there is insufficient epistemological certainty is immaterial. I’ve pointed out in the past that the lack of the kind of certitude that you posit in the Magisterium does not make Christianity unworkable. It just means that you need to accept that God can and does work through a fallible Church. I would argue that God can and does work through the Scriptures to extend His Kingdom without any appeals to a infallible Magisterium. When Athanasius challenged the Arians of perverting God’s truth he told them that they had twisted the plain meaning of Scripture. Of course the Arians laughed at that statement. You might argue that Athanasius’ contention left no clear answer on the Trinity until Roman ecclesiology had developed to an extent to define the matter de fide. But this would ignore the fact that the Scriptures (mediated by the Church as this institution is defined in Scripture) has been used to convince countless millions of the truth of this doctrine. God is perfectly capable of converting the whole world to the truth of this and any other doctrine without any infallible human standard. You may feel on shaky epistemological ground without such an authority but it seems to me that this is a reflection of your expectations rather than any argument for a human authority as such is conceived by Rome. Either God intended for a system that you propose or He did not. And If God has used His Word to convince millions of people as to a given truth, these people’s God-given knowledge is not “opinion” just because there are some or many others who God has not revealed Himself to. You are constantly trying to look at the matter as if we humans must have tools at our disposal to make binding judgments on the beliefs of every human being on the planet, at least on de fide issues. But what if God never intended us to make such judgments (I would like to suggest that since there is not even a hint of an infallible Roman Magisterium in Scripture nor one practiced in the early centuries of Christianity that it’s at least a reasonable supposition). Athanasius was content to proclaim God’s Word and let God do His work without appealing to an infallible bishop or Church. And God did do His work. But what of the fact that many others read the same Scriptures and rejected the doctrine of the Trinity? Why should this lack of consensus necessarily cause us alarm if God’s truth is being proclaimed? Your “solution” is to propose an infallible human court to judge the world, right? But when and where did God ask His Church to do this?

    Joshua (re: 43),

    As a Catholic, and as someone who values philosophy as a preambula fidei, I value man’s ability to know general truths about God naturally. But this notion of philosophy and theology are, in my opinion, neither consistent with a Calvinist view of human depravity, nor Luther’s suspicions of a theologia gloriae per his Heidelberg Disputations. Obviously, a mere natural knowledge of God is insufficient in itself to save man, but I do think it enables one to more properly conceive of faith as a trust in that which is supernatural (which includes articles of faith such as the Trinity, or even the confession of one, holy, catholic, and apostolic Church)–this demarcation is important to avoid skepticism.

    Philosophy has a necessary role I fully agree. I don’t think there is any problem with stating this and affirming a Calvinistic understanding of human nature. Not sure about your point on Luther. And I’m not sure what this natural knowledge of God will do more than what will be done in a human to whom God has revealed supernatural things. But I think that crass humanistic skepticism can be avoided in non-Christians via common grace and an understanding of natural verities.

    On hard sayings, we all of those to deal with – you are dealing with a Calvinist here!

  67. Joshua,

    Welcome home!

    The statement that struck me most was, “My Reformed belief in the relative importance of the visible church was in conflict with the Reformed emphasis on the importance of one’s individual conscience.” My mind quickly flashed to the moment in history you eluded to, Luther’s famous words at the Diet of Worms, “I am bound by the Scriptures I have quoted, and my conscience is captive to the Word of God. I cannot and I will not retract anything, since it is neither safe nor right to go against conscience.” I couldn’t help but wonder how often Sacred Scriptures tell us our consciences are an authority in knowing the teachings of Christ? I don’t recall any…

    Though I am a cradle Catholic, I have had much reason to dwell on the division between Catholics and other Christians, and in that process I had to learn why it was I remained Catholic. Your thought process describes much of my own, and eloquently so. Thank you for sharing with us.

    God Bless!
    – Adrienne

  68. Joshua L.

    Thanks for making your points more clear. I think I understand your points better.

    Wouldn’t you say the same about your knowledge of the RCC teach as well. Even though you learned latin. How are you to know all the teaching of the RCC with “absolute manner”? I am to learn with the best of my ability the Bible, and you are to do so with the Bible and now you added all the decrees of the RCC.

    I think I was trying to say that the fallen state is true of everyone under sin, so I effects all of humanity. I would have to say that morally and intellectually are included under sin. So I would have to agree with you there. However, does that mean that human can’t get anything right? Does that mean that they can’t read? It seams to me that people are able to know the meaning of words, even though they may suppress it. On the other side. The Pope and all his people are humans too, are they not? As you put it, “Why are they exempt?” You may say that God granted them exemption, but how are you to know that that is true that they are exempt? You as an individual is casting your faith, without “absolute manner” of knowledge that they are exempt.

    You said ‘leaving everything and following Christ,’ as if that is following RCC. Do you really think that the RCC is the same as Jesus? Maybe you are confusing the RCC with Jesus just a little. That is offensive to anyone who is a worshiper of Jesus. Yes, I am saying that if you are a follower of Jesus, that should offend you.

    I don’t know if you know the LDS all that well, but I think they hold that Jesus came back to reinstitute their church thus Latter Day Saints. Protestantism, by terms is NEW, but it is the group that holds to the gospel. Considering it another way, the gospel was in eclipse fro hundreds of years, and when there where lights that shown, the RCC killed them, lastly God raised a Luther under the conviction of the Law, and searched scripture for peace with God, and RCC was not able to kill him, though they wanted to. At Trent the RCC broke off from the gospel of grace for a system of earning merits by the means of her. If we follow the gospel teaching from the Bible, and which church has it, then you are only left with the fact that RCC is a late comer as Trent was a response to the Reformation.

  69. Peter, I’m new here and may not be entirely caught up, but can you share any evidence of your claim that Christians with the true gospel were killed off by the Catholics, until Luther? When was the gospel lost? You seem to argue this is distinct from LDS, but it sounds a little too similar. Do you have more historical evidence to back your claims than the LDS?

  70. Peter (re: #68):

    After long arguments on Facebook, it seems we are arguing here as well… Hopefully communication will fare a little better than before.

    You write:

    I think I was trying to say that the fallen state is true of everyone under sin, so I effects all of humanity. I would have to say that morally and intellectually are included under sin. So I would have to agree with you there. However, does that mean that human can’t get anything right? Does that mean that they can’t read? It seams to me that people are able to know the meaning of words, even though they may suppress it. On the other side. The Pope and all his people are humans too, are they not? As you put it, “Why are they exempt?” You may say that God granted them exemption, but how are you to know that that is true that they are exempt? You as an individual is casting your faith, without “absolute manner” of knowledge that they are exempt.

    My point is that it is impossible to know the truth from a Calvinist perspective, since everyone is totally depraved. And yes, this includes the popes ‘and all his people,’ from a Calvinist’s perspective. I am not a Calvinist and so I don’t follow the manner of thinking that you describe. I think you fundamentally misunderstand my point. This is a problem that the Calvinist, who believes in total depravity, has, not the Catholic.

    You write:

    You said ‘leaving everything and following Christ,’ as if that is following RCC. Do you really think that the RCC is the same as Jesus? Maybe you are confusing the RCC with Jesus just a little. That is offensive to anyone who is a worshiper of Jesus. Yes, I am saying that if you are a follower of Jesus, that should offend you.

    I never said that the Catholic Church was identical to Jesus; only that following Christ entails following the Church he established, which is the Catholic Church. It would certainly offend me if someone told me to follow a church that was not founded upon Christ and the apostles under the guise of obeying Christ–this is what I was doing as a Protestant.

    You write:

    I don’t know if you know the LDS all that well, but I think they hold that Jesus came back to reinstitute their church thus Latter Day Saints. Protestantism, by terms is NEW, but it is the group that holds to the gospel. Considering it another way, the gospel was in eclipse fro hundreds of years, and when there where lights that shown, the RCC killed them, lastly God raised a Luther under the conviction of the Law, and searched scripture for peace with God, and RCC was not able to kill him, though they wanted to. At Trent the RCC broke off from the gospel of grace for a system of earning merits by the means of her. If we follow the gospel teaching from the Bible, and which church has it, then you are only left with the fact that RCC is a late comer as Trent was a response to the Reformation.

    How do you know Luther was raised by God himself? And on what grounds do you say that this or that is the gospel when so many others disagree with you? This narrative is extremely distorted and on your grounds, the rest of the Church Fathers were equally ‘late comers,’ even though the Reformers did not exist until 1500 years after the Church. I don’t grant that the Protestant notion of justification sola fide comes from the Bible, so your narrative simply does not convince me at all. I think a more historically compelling narrative is one in which the Church held to one thing (namely, not justification by faith alone), and when that teaching arose in Protestantism, it was rightfully condemned by the Church according to what she had taught since her inception. This is what happened at Nicaea and at Chalcedon, and this is what happened at Trent.

  71. Alicia,

    Thank you! Hopefully you’ll be on this side of the Tiber soon. :)

    Adrienne,

    Thank you for your kind words!

  72. […] overdue in calling to your attention Joshua Lim’s article at Called to Communion, in which he describes his conversion to the Catholic Church. I commend it […]

  73. Peter,

    Josh’s question is simple, yet important: “How do you know Luther was raised by God himself?” I would add, how do you know that Luther isn’t a false teacher? How do you distinguish between true and false teachers without recourse to yor own personal interpretation of scripture?

  74. #66 Andrew,
    You said:”It seems to me that either God did ordain the kind of human certitude that you long for or He did not. If He did not then the fact that you feel that there is insufficient epistemological certainty is immaterial. I’ve pointed out in the past that the lack of the kind of certitude that you posit in the Magisterium does not make Christianity unworkable. It just means that you need to accept that God can and does work through a fallible Church. I would argue that God can and does work through the Scriptures to extend His Kingdom without any appeals to a infallible Magisterium.”
    I do not agree that it is immaterial that a person should have epistemological certainty. I would ask if you have you followed this thought through? If you are a person who has come to hold( for whatever reason you have certainty in this regard) that it is important to receive the word and the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, how do you choose which of the Protestant and Reformed denominations utilize these two means of grace most biblically? Is the body and blood “more real” in Lutheranism than in Calvinism? It may not make Christianity unworkable, but it would open the possibility that there was not even a need for distinctions among the Protestant denominations, and therefore, every disagreement that you might have with an opponent who holds an equally plausible opinion would become of no practical value. This would escalate the epistemological uncertainty, pushing one to the bounds of ecclesial agnosticism. I believe that Protestants cannot decry, “Big bad Institutional church at Rome”, and then inconstantly start their own institutions that constrain congregants into submission under their own formularies. I have no substantive way to discern whether or not I might be sitting in a Mormon church, if I didn’t attend a church that was positively catholic(in some apostolic way) in its doctrine and creeds.
    On the other hand, wouldn’t it be marvelous that God really did mean to institute a visible and continuing church on earth, so that we have another place to lay our faith? If you think this might be equivalent to putting our trust in a Jim Jones type of scenario, I admit the possibility does hang, but this would be the same for any organized religion, and so one would be forced again to either take their bible and read it for themselves without any community, which we know is not biblical, or to start their own sect which has been done and will continue to be done over and over again.

  75. Hi Justin,

    Your # 64. As a Catholic I could answer in the affirmative to all 5 questions you asked but it still would not tell me what the essential and the non essential beliefs of Christianity are. What you have stated is only part of the truth as stated in the Catholic Church.

    1) I acknowledge myself a sinner and have no hope of salvation save through God’s mercy.

    2) I rely on Jesus Christ as my saviour

    3) I rely on the Holy Spirit to affect a change in my life to become more Christ like.

    4) I promise to be a support to the Church in Her worship and work with Her to the best of my God given ability.

    5) I promise to submit myself to the AUTHORITY of government of the Church and Her discipline

    As you can see these are the precepts of the Catholic Church and taken from Her own teachings. ( see the Catechism of the Catholic Church) but you still have not given me a list of what you believe is essential or non- essential. If you truly believe the 5 points that you have given me, why are you not a Catholic? If the so called “reformers” had submitted themselves to the AUTHORITY of the Church in the first place there would be no Protestants and we would not be having this discussion. The truths of Protestantism are the truths they kept from the Church at the time of the so called reformation.

    Why would I submit to part of the truth when I can have it all?

    Blessings

    NHU

  76. […] the Church on the Feast of Pentecost. He presents his story anonymously here. The other is of a Joshua Lim, who graduated this Spring with an MA in historical theology from Westminster Theological Seminary […]

  77. Eva Marie

    I thought it was common knowledge that was martyrdom of John Huss, before Luther. The Lollards, and Waldensians suffered under the hands of Rome. There are numbers as hight as 150 million people killed by Rome. They where trying to kill Luther as well, but he was protected by Fredric the Wise. W. E. H. Lecky says:

    “That the Church of Rome has shed more innocent blood than any other institution that has ever existed among mankind, will be questioned by no Protestant who has a competent knowledge of history. The memorials, indeed, of many of her persecutions are now so scanty, that it is impossible to form a complete conception of the multitude of her victims, and it is quite certain that no power of imagination can adequately realize their sufferings.” — “History of the Rise and Influence of the Spirit of Rationalism in Europe,” Vol. II, p. 32. London: Longmans, Green, and Co., 1910.

  78. Congratulations Joshua and welcome home. I thank God for the way he continues to bring men of good will into communion with the One Holy Catholic and Apostolic Church instituted by Christ.

    Let me share a few thoughts here.

    “Liberalism in religion is the doctrine that there is no positive truth in religion, but that one creed is as good as another. . . . [it holds that] Revealed religion is not a truth, but a sentiment and a taste; not an objective fact, not miraculous; and it is the right of each individual to make it say just what strikes his fancy.” Blessed John Henry Newman 1879. (Convert to the Catholic faith from Anglicanism)

    The reformation gave every individual the right to make “it” (the bible) say whatever struck their fancy. Evidence for this is found in the fact that the Lord’s Supper was always considered the actual body and blood of Christ from the Last Supper onwards, yet the reformers said that this long held truth was not Truth. How can a 1500 year old belief suddenly be discovered to be wrong? If protestants believe this then they believe that the Church was mistaken right out of the gate, which bodes poorly for the belief that Christ would give us his Holy Spirit to lead us into all Truth.

  79. Joshua,

    Welcome home!

    Peter #77,

    Besides resting upon a secondary and shaky history of the Spanish Inquisition, Lecky’s work (you can follow the link to his actual book online) (A) presumes to ascribe a “murder toll” approaching almost half of the world’s population in the 15th century and (B) equates the Church for civil governments because of the obvious influence of the Church in Western society at large. (To use a contrary example: Just because Protestantism influenced American government does not mean that Protestantism is responsible for American foreign policy). That being the case, (A) represents a gross exaggeration, and (B) represents a gross misunderstanding.

    For anyone interested, you can find a Catholic response to this canard and a list of resources here. Since this list does not include anything by the late, great, Warren Carroll, I would be remiss to exclude his The Glory of Christendom, 1100-1517: A History of Christendom (vol. 3).

    To somehow tie this into the thread at hand, I will say that it was the smoke screen of canards, misnomers, and half-truths about the Church that became for me a “motive of credibility” for entering Her. As I read Blessed Newman, I remember being arrested with the thought of how the early Church (first 5 centuries), in a similar fashion, struggled with the canards, misnomers, and half-truths about her beliefs, practices and history that littered society.

    The similarities are more than just coincidence.

  80. Peter,

    I am a protestant and not Catholic, BUT you either have to believe all Catholics are going to hell or some are going to wind up in heaven. If they are all going to hell, blast away brother, but if there is a chance that any are going to Heaven than we have an obligation to consider that maybe they are part of the Bride of Christ whcih Jesus died for and longs to see pure and spotless. We should consider that Jesus is longing to return for a pure spotless Bride and should ask what we can do to bring that about. Is pure and spotless the splintered mess we see? If not, how can we work to bring about reunification?

    We can not have a pure spotless Bride without reunification.
    We can not get to reunification without forgiveness.
    For that matter, you can’t get to heaven without forgiving anyway.
    Dredging up how many of who killed who 3 centuries ago isn’t going to get us anywhere.

  81. Alicia said in #74: I do not agree that it is immaterial that a person should have epistemological certainty.

    Alicia,

    I may not have stated it very well, but what I was trying to say is that sometimes we want more certainty than what God has granted us. I remember a friend of mine joking once that it would be nice if God would just leave a message on her answering machine telling her what to do with her life. That would be great, I would have to admit. But then we human beings just don’t get that kind of certainty, at least not in this lifetime. So how much certainty are we supposed to have in God’s plan? That’s a question that Catholics and Protestants and EO answer somewhat differently. I was suggesting to Michael that it may be the case that Catholics are expecting more certainty in terms of some questions than what God has promised. I’m firstly making the case that a human authority that binds all Christian congregations together and speaks finally and decisively on de fide matters was unknown in the teaching of the Scriptures and the writings of the earliest centuries of Christianity. And yet Christians still managed to work in God’s kingdom without such notions. One EO scholar once said that in the first few centuries of Christianity biblical exegesis was probably the only theological method in use, and the authority of Scriptures reigned supreme. There was no appeal to an infallible Magisterium and yet nobody worried about insufficient certainty. And then secondly related to this first point, I am arguing that the lack of the kind of de fide and equivalent levels of certainty that were defined by the Scholastics does not relegate theological debate to matters of mere opinion. To pull that previously mentioned example, the lack of an appeal to an infallible Magisterium did not reduce the Trinitarian and the Arian positions to irresolvable opinions, although I suppose someone witnessing these debates might have incorrectly come to that conclusion.

    I understand that this problem of a perceived shaky epistemological foundation is part of why a good many Protestants begin to look to Catholicism. The vast majority of Reformed folks who think through these issues of authority, revelation, etc don’t experience such intellectual crises, but there are those minority like Joshua who do. The reason why they do when so many don’t really intrigues me.

  82. Josh

    You write:
    After long arguments on Facebook, it seems we are arguing here as well… Hopefully communication will fare a little better than before.

    I thought this forum maybe more useful for you, and the kind of place you rather talk in. But as you know, I rather talk in person. People get a little abusive on the keyboard. Though, I will sound a little strong in my comment here, because I am not talking about some impersonal subject, but the confusion that is resulting in apostasy and I am concern from the heart. I really mean that. I would just not waist my time, if I don’t care.

    You write:
    This is a problem that the Calvinist, who believes in total depravity, has, not the Catholic.

    Oh, so Catholics reject the depravity of humanity–that sin affects every aspect of a person? Doesn’t Rome hold to the sinfulness of humans and fallen in sin from birth? What does the Bible Teach on the matter? Romans 8:7-8 says, “For the mind that is set on the flesh is hostile to God; it does not submit to God’s law, indeed it cannot; and those who are in the flesh cannot please God.” You claim that sin, inhibits humans of being able to understand the Bible, but where is that in the Bible? If that was the case, How was Jesus able to hold the Jewish leaders accountable to the OT? They did not know the Bible as they SHOULD, but the point is Jesus expected them to know the scripture. Was Jesus wrong to expect them to know the scriptures?

    Jesus say, “have you not read… ” expecting that they should have known from the reading of the OT. Matthew 22:31; Mark 12:26

    If Jesus was right in saying that they should have known the teachings of the Bible, and should have known Jesus in searching scripture. Was Jesus wrong in expecting them do known scripture?

    The Bible is words on a page. If you are able to respond to my comment here, then you are able to read text, and are able to know what the author is saying to you. You ability to write back in response is proof that your claim that sin inhibits our ability to know the teachings of the Bible to be false.

    Maybe Barth was wrong?

    You write:
    I never said that the Catholic Church was identical to Jesus; only that following Christ entails following the Church he established, which is the Catholic Church. It would certainly offend me if someone told me to follow a church that was not founded upon Christ and the apostles under the guise of obeying Christ–this is what I was doing as a Protestant.

    I would submit to you that you are doing that by going into Rome that does not have the Gospel of the Lord Jesus Christ. Jesus did not die so as to make an institution in Rome where people can work for grace and still die without being perfected, but He died so as to save, redeem a people for himself, and make his save people into a church body. It was not a institution that the Lord died for, but His elect people. He died so as to save by his own blood, he secures their salvation. Jesus is able to give peace with God to repentant sinners. Which is not had by the meriting system of Rome; die impure and suffering in purgatory.

    A follower of the Roman system of merit can’t say with Paul in Romans 5:5 “Therefore, since we have been justified through faith, WE HAVE peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ, through whom we have gained access by faith into this grace IN WHICH WE NOW STAND.” Peace, true peace with God, that does not fluctuate in war, but to be justified through faith, we stand in this peace as a continued relationship in Jesus. The RCC’s system of merits is nowhere found in Romans, and the word of God says that we have peace with God, having been justified through faith. It is not meriting grace, by RCC’s sacraments. A person is said declare by God to be justified through faith alone, not by works of men, but by the work of Jesus.

    You write:
    How do you know Luther was raised by God himself? And on what grounds do you say that this or that is the gospel when so many others disagree with you? This narrative is extremely distorted and on your grounds, the rest of the Church Fathers were equally ‘late comers,’ even though the Reformers did not exist until 1500 years after the Church. I don’t grant that the Protestant notion of justification sola fide comes from the Bible, so your narrative simply does not convince me at all. I think a more historically compelling narrative is one in which the Church held to one thing (namely, not justification by faith alone), and when that teaching arose in Protestantism, it was rightfully condemned by the Church according to what she had taught since her inception. This is what happened at Nicaea and at Chalcedon, and this is what happened at Trent.

    You really think Rome taught Marian Dogmas since the time of Jesus? You really think that Rome has one set of universal Dogmas that is the same current all the way back to Peter? That is Roman myth, not history. Just look at the political infighting now. And all those years when the office of the papacy was bought and sold. Your view of history comes across a little simplistic. Had you questions on this, I am sure Scott Clark can help you out.

    Galatians 2:16 yet we know that a person is not justified by works of the law but through faith in Jesus Christ, so we also have believed in Christ Jesus, in order to be justified by faith in Christ and not by works of the law, because by works of the law no one will be justified.

    A person is justified through faith in Jesus, apart from human works. Rome condemned the Grace of God for not including works. Rome condemned the gospel because it reduced Rome’s power to manipulate the people with sales of indulgence.

    Well, Luther was not killed by Rome, and his recovery of the Gospel from the Scripture–the Gospel changed the world. But he was a tool in the Lord’s hand, I care not for the worship of men and to propped men up. As was Wycliffe, and Huss, in their days, thought the latter Rome killed, and the former they mutilate and scattered his bones. I don’t find many who disagree with me on the issue of the gospel, but for the cults and others false churches. The Gospel, Josh, the Gospel of salvation through faith in Jesus alone, not by means of popes and sacraments of men, but faith in Jesus alone gives the believing sinner peace with God. The baptist, reform or not agrees with that. The Protestants all agree with the Gospel. That is why they are Evangelicals. If the Gospel is preached in the church, that is a true church. Rome does not have the Gospel of Jesus Christ. It has a man made system of working for grace–what a distortion to the very word grace. It is an insult to the grace of God. You are mistaken to think in terms of “the Protestant notion”. I care not for Luther, or for Popes as you do. I care for the gospel of Jesus. I hold to the gospel because it is the only hope for humanity on the finish substitutionary atoning death of Jesus that does and will in fact save those Jesus died for. It is MY only hope. You are mistaken at the very heart of your study you are to find Jesus in the scriptures, if I maybe frank with you, I keep hearing you say according to this or that view. You maybe able to repeat their views, but even as you have said you have lost the text of the Bible. Wasn’t seminary education to teach you the text of scripture, rather than teach you paradigms of men’s opinion? Since you lost the scriptures themselves, you lost the heart of what you were studying. It is in scripture that you should find Jesus, and yet with all so many opinions of men, you lost the ability to know the Bible. That is so pitiful. If one can’t read the text of the Bible, how is one to see Jesus in the text? So pitiful in deed. All you are left with is the opinions of men. Even as Jesus said to the Pharisees: “You study the Scriptures diligently because you think that in them you have eternal life. These are the very Scriptures that testify about me, yet you refuse to come to me to have life.” Go to Jesus. Jesus alone is salvation for the guilty sinner. Jesus saves. Not foolish Roman systems of meriting grace–what an insult to Christ who saves perfectly by his blood. Not to popes, for we are not to have any earthly man as our spiritual father Matthew 23:9, People of God, your father is in Heaven.

  83. Jeremiah,

    Does Rome preach the gospel?

  84. Joshua:

    I enjoyed greatly your account and will pray for you on your journey to Christ (it is just beginning). The Lord has given you a great gift (I marveled at how deeply you’ve considered these mysteries and at the acuity of your reasoning — you would make a natural Dominican!) and I will pray for your continued growth in the spirit.

    May God bless you and may you be a great blessing to His Church.

  85. Andrew (#66):

    Addressing me, you wrote:

    Would you say that the system of the Pharisees and the JW’s has an advantage because of this ability to appeal to a human court that can render definitive judgment for the faithful? I’m not try to equate Catholicism with the Pharisees or the JW’s, only to point out that your yearning for the principled distinction is only good if it’s a principled distinction that God has ordained.

    Having and deploying a “principled distinction” between divine revelation and human opinion is a necessary condition, not a sufficient condition, for actually preserving and transmitting divine revelation as distinct from human opinion. So, while I don’t believe such a distinction was as clear in the Pharisees, or is as clear with the JWs, as you suggest, they do have something necessary which your church most assuredly does not. The question for the uncommitted rational inquirer is what else is necessary, so that all that’s necessary adds up to what’s sufficient. I have made that case elsewhere, and Joshua adumbrates some of it in his post. Your objections do not address it.

    It seems to me that either God did ordain the kind of human certitude that you long for or He did not. If He did not then the fact that you feel that there is insufficient epistemological certainty is immaterial. I’ve pointed out in the past that the lack of the kind of certitude that you posit in the Magisterium does not make Christianity unworkable. It just means that you need to accept that God can and does work through a fallible Church.

    That misstates the issue just as thoroughly as you have done for years. I do not “long for human certitude” in matters of faith; I do not expect or seek human certitude even in most matters of knowledge; for in this vale of tears, people can and do know many things about which they fail to experience a feeling of certitude. So it comes as no surprise to me that deploying Catholicism’s “principled distinction” between divine revelation and human opinion does not give one “human certitude” that everything the Church teaches is true; it merely affords us a principled way to distinguish the object of the unreserved assent of faith from the object of a provisional assent of opinion. Your theological epistemology so obscures that distinction as to render it inapplicable. But making the Catholic’s unreserved assent of faith is a choice that depends more on grace than on human reason, which latter only supplies arguments that are plausible without compelling assent. So the degree of subjective certitude one has about that object of faith will vary with one’s experience, understanding, and temptations.

    If God has used His Word to convince millions of people as to a given truth, these people’s God-given knowledge is not “opinion” just because there are some or many others who God has not revealed Himself to….Why should this lack of consensus necessarily cause us alarm if God’s truth is being proclaimed? Your “solution” is to propose an infallible human court to judge the world, right? But when and where did God ask His Church to do this?

    It utterly astounds me that, after several years, you have yet to appreciate the force of Newman’s elementary point: “No revelation is given, unless there be some authority to decide what it is that is given.” Thus, treating “Scripture” as “the Word of God” is at most a plausible opinion, unless the body of people who wrote, used, collected, and certified those writings as the Word of God had divine authority to do so. That latter question is the one needing to be answered first, which is why I proceed as I do, and precisely why it would be idle at best to seek proof in Scripture by itself that the Catholic Church is that church. On the Catholic account summarized in Dei Verbum §10, Scripture, Tradition, and the teaching authority of the Church stand or fall together; the first two give the third its rationale, and the last is the authentic interpreter of the first two. Accordingly, to make the kind of inferential move your question invites would totally beg the question.

    Come to think of it, that’s exactly what you’ve been doing pretty much since Day One….

    Best,
    Mike

  86. Peter,

    Sorry to butt in, but I just want to make one point. You wrote to Joshua in #82:

    The Bible is words on a page. If you are able to respond to my comment here, then you are able to read text, and are able to know what the author is saying to you. You ability to write back in response is proof that your claim that sin inhibits our ability to know the teachings of the Bible to be false.

    You are comparing a monologue to a dialog. They couldnt be more different. Just because we can read text does not mean we automatically know what the author is saying. Otherwise why the differences in interpretation of scripture? And the proof you give is actually proof against your argument. You describe Joshuas “writing back” in response as proof that he understands. Actually what is happening is the process of dialog, where he and you can write back and forth until both sides are 100% understood. The ability (and necessity) of “writing back” and forth in order to clarify positions and come to undestanding prove that more than a monologue is necessary between you two, and it also shows that more than just writing is necessary for the Church. A living interpreter will always be necessary. The sheer amount of differnet interpretations among Protestants should also be enough to convince us that more than the monologue of scripture is necessary for us to understand what it is saying.

    Acts 8:30-31
    Then Philip ran up to the chariot and heard the man reading Isaiah the prophet. “Do you understand what you are reading?” Philip asked. “How can I,” he said, “unless someone explains it to me?” So he invited Philip to come up and sit with him.

    Bryan Cross explains this quite well in another place on this site:

    if you ask me to clarify something I have said, and then you still need further clarification, you can ask for it, and, because I can hear you and understand you and have memory and communicative ability, I can provide it. And if you need still more clarification you can ask me for it, and I can provide it. So long as I remain alive and conscious and capable of communication, I can provide interpretive self-clarification. That’s what I mean when I say that persons have unlimited potency with respect to interpretive self-clarification. We can get to the point where you say, “Are you saying x?” And I can reply, “Yes”. And that point, with respect to that question, the hermeneutical spiral comes to an end.

    Books do not have unlimited potency with respect to interpretive self-clarification. And because books don’t have that, they cannot function as interpretive adjudicator when there are competing interpretations facing the Church: each side can appeal to the book to support its own position, and without a magisterium, the disagreement can be a perpetual deadlock or impasse. But a living magisterium can not only adjudicate an interpretive dispute, it can also provide clarification regarding previous statements or judgments it has made. That is why having a living magisterium does not leave us in the same epistemic quandary that we would be in if we had only a book and no interpretive authority.

    This is what has made it possible within the history of the Catholic Church for theological disputes to be resolved. The reason the Church is not still wrestling with Arianism and Nestorianism and Monophysitism, etc. is precisely because she could speak definitively and authoritatively in condemning them. But the Bible alone could not do that. Because the Bible does not explicitly address those questions, persons on both sides could and did appeal to the Bible to defend their interpretation. And so a living personal divinely authorized voice was necessary in order to provide the authoritative interpretive decision in those cases.

    Peace to you,

    David Meyer

  87. Justin (#64):

    You wrote:

    I disagree that there are Protestant Christians who would disagree on the essentials laid out, e.g., in the Apostles’ Creed. If they deny those basics they are not Christians. “The Supreme Judge, by which all controversies of religion are to be determined, and all decrees of councils, opinions of ancient writers, doctrines of men, and private spirits, are to be examined, and in whose sentence we are to rest, can be no other but the Holy Spirit speaking in the Scripture” (WCF I.X). This is why I can affirm the early creeds of the Church – they were patently in keeping with Scripture. Subsequently, the church added doctrines and decrees that were so contrary to Scripture that they drove not one or two, but whole hordes of Christians to protest and plead for reform in the face of the Church’s abuses. In a very real sense, I am submitted to the authority of the Church of which Christ is King and Head. I simply perceive the Protestant Church to be at least as much the Church as the RCC is.

    In that one paragraph, there are so many problems that I hardly know where to begin. So here I’ll just confine myself to an observation and a suggestion. The observation is that there is no such thing as “the Protestant Church.” There are countless Protestant churches, precisely because Protestants cannot agree among themselves about what is necessary and sufficient for “table fellowship.” You seem to identify “the Church of which Christ is King and Head” as the one “patently” adhering to Scripture. Hence my suggestion: please read an article I wrote last year for this site which address that very question, among others.

    Best,
    Mike

  88. Andrew (re: #81):

    You write:

    . . . sometimes we want more certainty than what God has granted us. I remember a friend of mine joking once that it would be nice if God would just leave a message on her answering machine telling her what to do with her life. That would be great, I would have to admit. But then we human beings just don’t get that kind of certainty, at least not in this lifetime. So how much certainty are we supposed to have in God’s plan?

    If we’re called to follow Christ, should we be in any doubt that it is Christ himself who calls us? I understand that you believe that Scripture is clear on issues necessary for faith and morals, but when Christian biblical scholars (conservative ones, mind you) are disagreeing about fundamental aspects of the gospel, how does one know who to trust? It seems to me that we, as Christians, were never meant to guess what Christ himself commanded us, even if we might doubt ourselves. The uncertainty or room for error, if present, should not come from the side of Christ’s calling; but when Scripture can be interpreted by Luther and Calvin, and then by folks like Leithart and Wilson (men who claim to be following Calvin), or by eminent scholars like N.T. Wright, it becomes very difficult for someone to know what Christ is saying (or what ‘St. Paul really said’).

  89. Andrew,

    To follow Joshua’s response to your #81, I will add, that surely there is a significant difference between what God is calling to a particular person to in order to live out the universal call to holiness, whether they should marry, enter religious life, seek holy orders, or consecrated virginity, and then what kind of work they should seek to help them live that vocation, and what is publicly revealed by Christ and His Church that is common to all the faithful. When you say that Catholics are expecting more certainty than what God has promised, if by that you mean “what is God calling me, Tom, to do with my life to serve Him?” then there is no disagreement between us. But you mean this, so it seems to me, to refer to the Church that Christ established. Has not Christ promised Peter that He will build His Church and the gates of hell would not prevail? Has He not promised that the Holy Spirit would guide Peter and all the Apostles into all truth? Did not that same Christ promise the Apostles that whose sins they retain are retained and whose sins they remit are remitted? Has not the Apostle Paul said that the Church is the pillar and ground of the truth? Those appear to me and to Catholics who think with the mind of the Church to be promises God has made to us and promises that God will keep.

  90. Peter,

    You said, “Well, Luther was not killed by Rome, and his recovery of the Gospel from the Scripture–the Gospel changed the world. But he was a tool in the Lord’s hand, I care not for the worship of men and to propped men up.”

    I’m dying to know: How do you judge Luther to be a tool in the Lord’s hand or just another heretic preaching a false gospel? What is your principled way to distinguish between orthodox preachers and heretical preachers? Is it to refer to your own personal interpretation of scripture?

  91. #81 Andrew

    Thank you for responding,
    “You said: I understand that this problem of a perceived shaky epistemological foundation is part of why a good many Protestants begin to look to Catholicism. The vast majority of Reformed folks who think through these issues of authority, revelation, etc don’t experience such intellectual crises, but there are those minority like Joshua who do. The reason why they do when so many don’t really intrigues me.”

    I mean no disrespect but the epistemological crisis experienced by Protestants who are now at Rome or heading that way, is not something that you are able to observe safely behind glass; you are in the same boat and it has a hole in it, only you don’t feel the water at your feet yet. Again, I would ask you to look around you and see the plethora of choices and then ask yourself why it is that you are in the denomination that you are in. You might be able to refuse broader evangelical “bible churches” though they say that they adhere solo scriptura( by the way, do you believe that they are only using the bible?) For one reason or another you might dismiss Baptists; maybe they are too fundamental. Now, try to choose among the Protestant and Reformed, and ask yourself how it is that you are making your choice. Calvinists’ and Lutherans may agree on parts of soteriology but not all. Maybe you are comfortable with the lack of certainty of whether or not we can lose our salvation or whether or not we can contribute to our final salvation (sanctification), but you really must ask yourself when the sun rises on Sunday morning, “which church should I go to today”, and if you don’t see yourself putting this question to yourself, maybe you should try it;) For, within your schema, you do have a choice, and if the church you are in begins to assert itself as your rightful authority when you decide that you like another better, ask yourself if this is acceptable to you, and on what grounds.
    To get this really driven home, see Michael Liccione’s article, that he linked you to.

    ~Alicia

  92. Joshua,

    I really like your article and your combox comments. Welcome home, brother!

    I was struck by this from your article:

    If all men are, as Luther and Calvin interpret Scripture to say, helplessly corrupt and depraved, how can I trust anyone? Why should I trust what Martin Luther says that the Bible teaches, or what John Calvin says the Bible teaches or any of the Reformed confessions, for that matter? Is it not the height of naiveté, even hypocrisy, to believe that everyone is totally depraved and yet continue to trust that any human interpretation of Scripture is somehow guaranteed by the Holy Spirit?

    It seems to me that you answered your own question in the above in your response to Peter in post # 70:

    My point is that it is impossible to know the truth from a Calvinist perspective, since everyone is totally depraved. And yes, this includes the popes ‘and all his people,’ from a Calvinist’s perspective.

    The way I see the difference in the Catholic perspective and the Calvinist perspective is not really about whether or not men are sinful, it is, rather, about whether or not sinful men can exercise the charismatic gifts of the Holy Spirit.

    The Catholic Church believes that there is a particular charismatic gift of the Holy Spirit that, when exercised, allows men to teach about what has been handed down in the deposit of faith in such a way that what is being taught has a guarantee from God of being without error. The man (or men) exercising this charism of the Spirit do not have to be sinless men before this particular charismatic gift can be exercised. Which makes perfect sense to me, since Christ explicitly teaches that sinful men can exercise charismatic gifts of the Holy Spirit (`Lord, Lord, did we not prophesy in your name, and cast out demons in your name, and do many mighty works in your name?’ Matt 7:22)

    It seems to me, that in contrast to the Catholic perspective, the Calvinist perspective denies that the charismatic gift of infallibility even exists. But if that charismatic gift does not exist, then this question that you ask needs an honest answer from the Calvinist:

    Is it not the height of naiveté, even hypocrisy, to believe that everyone is totally depraved and yet continue to trust that any human interpretation of Scripture is somehow guaranteed by the Holy Spirit?

  93. Peter,

    #83.

    The greek word for gospel is “kerygma”. While there are a lot of nuances to the word, the easy translation of this word is that it is a declaration made by a conquering king to his new subjects informing them of the change of jurisdiction etc. It generally was a requirement of total and immediate submission. As St. Paul noted to the Galatian heretics there are true as well as false gospels. I am assuming that your question is more appropriately stated as “Does Rome preach the True Gospel”?

    Since you are a Protestant, and I am a Protestant, we don’t have a standard to which we can appeal in regards to “what is the True Gospel?” except maybe to the original languages (as best as we understand them). I am going to go out on a limb and guess before this post you had no idea that when St. Paul and the other original Apostles co-opted the word Kerygma they were using a political/military word that had little to no prior use as a religious word. I’m also going to go out on a limb and guess that your use of the word gospel is limited to the idea that Jesus saved you from your sins and you didn’t have to do anything to get the salvation except believe.

    But here is the break down in our communication. Did you have to say a prayer? Did your prayer have to take a certain form? Did you have to raise your hand in at an altar call? Did you have to walk down the aisle to the altar? Your faith did certainly demand some action didn’t it?

    Now according to the original usage of the word Kerygma, faith doesn’t just require one action at the kick off, you are a conquered city. The King demands your faithful, daily, obedience.

    Now I know hosts of Christians, Roman and Protestant alike who have NO CONCEPT of this at all. The Protestant said the sinners prayer and the RCC was baptized as an infant and that was that. Generally for the Protestant it is because they were preached a “Gospel” that said “pray this prayer and you get to go to heaven in 50 or 60 years when you die….” The nominal RCC believer was generally very poorly catechized for a multitude of reasons.

    The long and the short of it, is that I don’t really know what “Gospel” you have received. As to whether or not Rome preaches the “Kerygma” that St. Paul preached…..I actually don’t know, but I think what I’ve seen so far seems more similar to that than what I generally hear in Protestant circles….

    I personally kind of think that if we were actually preaching the Kerygma of St. Paul, more of us would be winding up like St. Paul wound up.

  94. Hi Joshua,

    I think we exchanged here some time ago, or maybe not. You made a passing reference to Van Til against Barth. If you knew Van Til’s critique of roman catholicism, then how did you overcome it ?

    Thanks,
    Eric

  95. Hi Eric,

    I can’t recall any notable critique that Van Til made of Roman Catholicism. All that comes to mind right now is his accusation of classical forms of apologetics as being ‘Roman Catholic’ in their methodology. If you can provide a basic sketch of Van Til’s critique, I’d be happy to respond.

  96. Eric (re: #94):

    I would also add, if presuppositional apologetics is your sort of thing, you might be interested in Marc Ayers’s conversion story.

    Here.

  97. Thanks, Mateo!

  98. Joshua (#95)

    I can’t recall any notable critique that Van Til made of Roman Catholicism. All that comes to mind right now is his accusation of classical forms of apologetics as being ‘Roman Catholic’ in their methodology. If you can provide a basic sketch of Van Til’s critique, I’d be happy to respond.

    Somewhere at home I have my falling-to-bits copy of Van Til’s “Syllabus: Introduction to Systematic Theology” – which became my Bible (ironic, isn’t it?) when I was first becoming Reformed, from having been evangelical, from having been Baptist. In it he has a long section on Etienne Gilson, at least. At the time I was a new Christian and just learning my way around. I read it again during the year and a bit that I was struggling with whether to become a Catholic – which – thank God! – I did, 18 years ago. I’ll try to dig it out and have a look at it to summarise what he says for you, if you are interested.

    jj

  99. Mike (#85),

    It utterly astounds me that, after several years, you have yet to appreciate the force of Newman’s elementary point: “No revelation is given, unless there be some authority to decide what it is that is given.” Thus, treating “Scripture” as “the Word of God” is at most a plausible opinion, unless the body of people who wrote, used, collected, and certified those writings as the Word of God had divine authority to do so.

    Yes, well I’m not sure how many times I have tried to show you that I agree with this kind of statement. As I’ve have stated repeatedly, Scriptures are never interpreted outside of the authority that is explicitly stipulated in Scriptures and then subsequently practiced by those following the Apostolic era. But at this point in time there was no Pope or Roman Magisterium of College of Cardinals or anything that is part of RCC understanding of that body which ought to do the interpreting. Maybe there is something to the Catholic argument that the development/evolution of such a body has its roots in the history of early Christianity, but it’s hardly fair to assume this to be the case. As a number of recent Protestant works on the authority of Scripture point out, the genesis of the debate begins by examining the usage of Scripture by the earliest theologians of the Church. And this is long before there is anything close to a Roman Magisterium doing any interpreting. Anyway, when we talk about sola scriptura, the “sola” of the sola is not indicative of an absence of some group of people doing the interpreting.

    And this leads back to the part of my last answer in #66 to you which you did not address but I think you should. I asked you about a case where a group of theologians has been convinced by Scripture and the Holy of the truth of a given doctrine (I used the Trinity and Athanasius). The other side reads the same Scripture but is not convinced. If we say that both groups are just holding “opinions” then we are saying that the group who has been convinced by Scripture and the Holy Spirit holds to a mere “opinion.” Are you OK with saying that? Catholics often ask the sort of question that Joshua asks me in #88. They want to know how we resolve doctrinal disputes without the infallible human interpreter. And the answer is that we don’t believe that it is any ecclesiastical organization’s job to resolve the issue. The assumption of the Roman Catholic is that there must some sort of ecclesiastical body which resolves these global disputes. But this is just an assumption and as pointed out, not one that is shared by theologians of the early centuries of Christianity. My example here was Athanasius who appealed to the clear meaning of Scripture when refuting the Arians but left it at that. Athanasius was correct, the Arians were perverting the clear meaning of Scripture and his argument has convinced many millions of theologians, pastors, and lay people up to and through the present time. The point here is that Athanasius was not trying to use the ecclesiastical judgment of a hierarchical Roman Church to separate truth from error. Like so many theologians before him he pounded home what he knew to be the truths of Scripture and let God do the work of bringing people to the truth. So we Reformed are following suit in this regards.

    Probably the most important point that I have tried to make through all of our discussions is that your argument about distinguishing revelation from mere opinion is bound up in Roman Catholic presupposition about the role of the Church in resolving theological matters (again note my paragraph above). And it’s not an assumption we are willing to grant, so I don’t see that it’s helpful for you to carry on about revelation/opinion as if the assumption about the role of the Church underlying the contention is a proven fact. But, if you are correct about the all encompassing reach of the ecclesiastical judgment of the RCC then your point about separating revelation from opinion may have merit.

  100. Joshua (#88),

    I understand that you believe that Scripture is clear on issues necessary for faith and morals, but when Christian biblical scholars (conservative ones, mind you) are disagreeing about fundamental aspects of the gospel, how does one know who to trust?

    Joshua,

    I think I would start with Ignatius’ command to obey one’s bishop and go to him for counsel. A bishop at this point in time was truly an overseer in the biblical concept of the term – he was a pastor that had chief oversight over the congregants of one church. Now the question is what happens when two bishops disagree. In Ignatius’ time they would no doubt have met to try to resolve the matter. If the two could not resolved it they might have gone to a larger group of bishops for resolution. This kind of thing happened in the Reformation churches and still does today. The result is I think a system of thought which protects those truths fundamental to the gospel. A good case study is the unity of the Reformed confessions in the 17th century.

    But getting back to your specific question, like as Ignatius advised, if there is some question of who a layperson should trust he should start with his pastor for such counsel.

    Tom (#89),

    Yes, I agree that God has promised all those things. Where I think we disagree is the specifics of how these promises are kept, specifically in what kind of ecclesiastical structure God uses to keep His promise. To take one of your examples, when Paul speaks of the “pillar and ground of the truth” he has just finished a treatise on what the local church ought to look like. Paul is saying that the local congregation is where God keeps these promises. It is the local congregation where the Scriptures are read and preached so it is this local congregation which is the pillar and ground of truth.

    Alicia (91),

    I mean no disrespect but the epistemological crisis experienced by Protestants who are now at Rome or heading that way, is not something that you are able to observe safely behind glass; ..

    I see that my last statement to you sounded rather like I was viewing the debate with a certain abstraction. I agree with you that we cannot just view such debates from a safe distance, so as to speak. I agree with Bryan Cross that we Protestants need a good reason why we are not Catholic (I think I’m stating him correctly here). I grew up with certain assumptions about religion that, like all of us, I need to examine.

    On the other hand there is a certain intellectual interest I have with the reasons for why people convert to Catholicism. There are a number of reasons that people list for converting but there is often a shared list of intellectual struggles and traits with these converts. What can I say, it just intrigues me….

  101. Joshua, welcome home to the Catholic Church! I would have commented here much earlier but have been without a working computer for a while. There is a good bit in your story which resonates with my own experience, both as a (former) Protestant, and as a (in my case, returning) Catholic.

    As Alicia writes in #81, the epistemological difficulties within Protestantism, period, (to say nothing of the different branches *within* Protestantism) are very real. When these difficulties are faced, for some people, they play a role in leading to agnosticism or atheism. For others, they help to lead to the Catholic Church or to Eastern Orthodoxy.

    Obviously, many people do happily remain Protestants, even with the attendant epistemological difficulties. In any event, I wish that more of our Protestant brothers and sisters could see that the epistemological issues are only *one part* (an important part, to be sure) of an overall tapestry which leads many thoughtful non-Catholics to become Catholic.

    For myself, I certainly did not return to the Catholic Church *only* for a sense of certainty (on many important Biblical/theological matters) which finally eluded me in Protestantism. However, the question must be faced– for the Protestant, on what basis, other than the principle of the primacy of the individual conscience in interpreting Scripture, can he or she have certainty, as a Christian, on issues such as justification and salvation (and whether they can be lost or not), baptism (infants or believers only?), the existence and nature of Hell, the matter of gender in ordained ministry, and any number of other issues? Has God left us to our own interpretive skills (assuming that we are highly literate, which most people, worldwide, are not) to figure out all of these issues?

    Having been a serious, conservative Protestant, I know that many serious, conservative Protestants, in various denominations, claim to resolve the above questions via Bibical study according to “sound hermeneutical principles” with the “illumination of the Holy Spirit.” However, after 500 years, the disagreements on these very important issues simply continue, even among (though obviously not *only* among) serious, conservative Protestants. Is such a situation really what God intends for His followers? Within the “Sola Scriptura” framework of Protestantism, how can this situation truly be resolved?

  102. If I may add to the conversation regarding epistemic “certainty”. This question of certainty was germane to my own spiritual journey. Albeit, I did not dip my toe in the Tiber because of it, but I certainly did begin to question the basic framework of my ecclesial home which eventually led me to Rome.

    I want to only mention that in epistemology there are distinguishable features of “knowing”. For any type of knowledge we have, we can recognize and distinguish (1) the knower, (2) the thing known and (3) the method by which we know a thing. On 1 and 2, we agree with our Protestant friends. I make this point because often questions of epistemology in Catholic and Protestant dialog quickly devolve into conversations about “total depravity” or “the nature of revelation”. I’m willing to grant the one who holds to “total depravity” that, in fact, they know stuff despite their theological commitment to a position that seems to undermine the possibility of any kind of certainty with regards to the function of their fallen cognitive faculty. That is besides the point, because I can move that fact to the bottom and top of the fraction for both of us and redact it out.

    We also agree that the deposit of faith comes to us from God, and thus is a supernatural object of knowledge. Therefore, we agree fundamentally as to the nature of the knower and the nature of the thing known. However, we disagree fundamentally on the methodology by which we know the thing. This, I think, is the onus of Mike’s article linked above, and the reason the Protestant should click over to it, read it, and wrestle with it; keeping in mind the distinct epistemological contention he raises.

    In short, the distinction between opinion and dogma, which outside of theology just means opinion or fact, should shed light on what is at stake. In fact, as Joshua and others have indicated, the credibility of Christianity is at stake. Think about it. It would appear that for all species of knowledge accessible to the human faculty, there is a principled method by which humans can agree, if used, will result in certain knowledge (e.g., observation, historical study, abstraction, etc. — and in theology, dogma). “Certain” here meaning not the removal of all doubt (for we are irrationally prone to it), but rather meaning a certain trust in the credibility of a method that produces results worthy of assent. The ball drops. George Washing is the first president. A=A. Then comes theology.

    The Catholic position does not thrust upon theology something external to itself. It is not as Andrew M has alluded wanting for more than God would have us have. It is, in fact, simply asking of theology what is requisite itself for attaining something more than just opinion, and since theology is a supernatural object, it is fitting that it would require a supernatural methodology (of courses aided by natural processes). This just means we are being human as God has made us. If God did not want us to have certainty regarding theology, then he would have created us without rational minds. If we did not have rational minds, then we would be fine if the ball drops and doesn’t drop, that there is no rational principle in the world or in the mind of God, and that it doesn’t matter what baptism really does as long as you believe something (an approach to the world more resembling Islam than Christianity). To hold to this principle, the principle of what I will call “theological nihilism”, flavored with a positivism imbued by an evangelical vigor, is to act less than human. It is to look at the image of God in you and to reject it in favor, ironically, of your own opinion. This, of course, is the sin of Adam: to become less than human by becoming the autonomous man. The primacy of the individual conscience bit Adam in his soul, for between the fruit and his mouth was a decision that he knew better — that somehow his latest interpretation of the commandment was more enlightened than his previous interpretation.

    The Church, the ground and pillar of truth, is the principled method by which we can distinguish between opinion and fact. I can “tell it to the church” (Matthew 18:17), and get an answer that if I reject, I become as a tax collector or pagan. That is the “difference”.

  103. Andrew (re: #100):

    If Luther & co. had followed this advice, there would not have been a Reformation.

    Moreover, without the guarantee of infallibility, how would someone submitting to a bishop know that his or her bishop is right? Especially if bishops are in disagreement with one another. . . Personally, this is exactly the problem that drove me from Protestantism. To submit to my pastor rather than another pastor simply because he is my pastor is so Catholic, yet there is missing that justification for submitting to my pastor — namely, apostolic succession and the promise of the Holy Spirit.

    I’m wondering if you would give this same response to JWs or Mormons…

  104. @Joshua L.

    You said: “To submit to my pastor rather than another pastor simply because he is my pastor is so Catholic, yet there is missing that justification for submitting to my pastor — namely, apostolic succession and the promise of the Holy Spirit.”

    First of all, amen.

    Second of all, have you listened to Dr. James White’s recent critique of your story? I don’t usually pay him much mind as I find his demeanor towards Catholics to be too hostile for my liking (and this was even as a Protestant). However, I couldn’t resist tuning in to the Dividing Line to hear his thoughts on your story. It was the usual tirade: petty ridicule (“Called To Confusion, har har…!”) followed by rabbit-trail distractions every forty seconds and all culminating with this thesis: The Catholic Church is not the answer because it’s just another “group of men’s imaginings” (and a heretical one at that). Of course, White does not assent that the Catholic Church is the Church founded by Christ so the disconnect is understandable. Your further thoughts in post #103 answer White’s objection nicely.

    Earlier in the show, White made the comment that the folks at “Called to Confusion” (a gentleman and a scholar!) rarely win converts to the faith with Catholic doctrine. He’s certainly wrong about that! This site is a fantastic representation of Catholic teaching and played a large role in my return to the Church this past Easter. Keep on defending the faith.

  105. Alicia, re 91

    I think I am in a position to address at least a bit of what you were noting regarding Protestants who do become Catholic, and Protestants who don’t.

    If Luther tells us that we are like dung and that grace is like snow, then per Luther we are sinful dung wrapped in the snow of grace. That always sounded like the “whitewashed tombs” Jesus mentioned, clean on the outside but full of filth on the inside. However Jesus said, “Be perfect!” Perfect what? Perfect dung?

    Calvin tells us, using TULIP, that we are totally depraved. Fallen human reason is not to be trusted. (Then, as noted above, there are people who trust Calvin, who by his own words is totally depraved. That seems a conundrum of its own.) Yet Jesus is saying, “Be perfect!” How can one be perfect if one is bereft of reason?

    If one uses a checklist, comparing what Jesus said and what the various Protestant communions were saying, one would find oneself at odds with Jesus on a regular basis. For instance, I was saying (in common with virtually every Protestant I knew) that I could go directly to God for forgiveness. Jesus was telling the apostles, “Whose sins you forgive, they are forgiven them. Whose sins you retain, they are retained.” Seems like I was contradicting our Lord; or from another perspective, He was contradicting me and had even anticipated my position by answering it long before I came around.

    It finally occurred to me that if I was correcting Him, something was terribly wrong. He had given a job to His apostles involving the forgiveness or retention of sin, and I had denied Him the right to do so.

    After a while there were so many of these, that I had to wonder what was wrong with me. I was saying one thing, and Jesus or the apostles were saying something else. Those things were at loggerheads with each other. Who did I trust? Who was saving whom?

    Those are the questions that can be asked, or ignored, or paved over. Who do I trust? Who is saving whom? If it is Jesus Who is saving me, it seemed to me that He was giving me a free gift, that had conditions. Baptism seemed to me to be a condition. Confessing my sins where He indicated was a condition. Forgiving my enemies so that I might be forgiven seemed such a condition. Responding to grace with action (feed the hungry, clothe the naked, etc) seemed such a condition. Learning to love as He loves me seems such a condition. Eating His Body and drinking His Blood (cognizant of the new Passover) seemed to me to be such a condition.

    I wanted to be obedient to Him because I discovered that I trusted Him. I did not have to know why something was the way it was, I merely had to be obedient. Jesus noted that He only did the things He saw His Father doing. He noted that He had come to do His Father’s will. He was my example and I wanted to do, however poorly, what He wanted me to do.

    He founded a Church. He founded the Church on His apostles. He created the Church to last until His return. He gave the Church the authority to forgive sins. He gave the Church the authority to confect Him in the new Passover which must be eaten. He gave the Church the authority to determine which books would be included in a canon. He gave the Church the authority to make decisions, inspired by the Holy Spirit Who would lead the Church to all truth.

    I cannot speak for everyone who arrives at this junction, this crossroads. I don’t know if the questions occur for them. I don’t know how they would answer them. I have a keen appreciation for the cost that some people bear up under. There are marriage and family considerations. There is still the need to make a living. Marriage and family are very important. Making a living is very important. Count the cost it is written.

    How much is Jesus worth? Is He worthy of trust? Does that trust lead to obedience?

    Cordially,

    dt

  106. Andrew,

    #100 “Yes, I agree that God has promised all those things. Where I think we disagree is the specifics of how these promises are kept, specifically in what kind of ecclesiastical structure God uses to keep His promise.”

    Given that you agree that God has promised these things (of which I included the power and authority to forgive or retain the sins of people), in what ecclesiastical structure do we see this power and authority to forgive or retain sins manifested today? I can say with utter certainty that as a Presbyterian minister I was not giving faculties in my ordination to carry out this authority promised by God.

  107. this is exactly the problem that drove me from Protestantism. To submit to my pastor rather than another pastor simply because he is my pastor is so Catholic, yet there is missing that justification for submitting to my pastor — namely, apostolic succession and the promise of the Holy Spirit.

    Double amen. When I swam the Tiber, my co-religionists in the PCA brought this one out time and again. They would remind me of my membership vows and the authority of the elders. My simple response was “what if I were a Mormon right now? would you still want me to obey my elders?” The answer is of course that they would want me to disobey them. Shared agreement on interpretation of revelation was then revealed to me as the true the ground of their authority. Take away that shared agreement, and nothing is left that would make me submit to them. It just becomes a disagreement at that point. Paedocommunion or Federal Vision? Merely disagreements. If I dont like these elders I can submit to ones more to my liking who have my prefered interpretation. The thing that made me sweat was the thought:

    “what if I become a heretic?” or worse: “what if I am a heretic?”

    How would I even know if I were a heretic as long as my submission to my elders is based on a shared opinion and not an authority that transcends shared opinion? I could easily just be self-deceived into submitting to heretics then.

    What it comes down to is authority and who has the legit authority. I dont care what they believe or if I agree with them. I want them to make me conform to the true faith because they have the authority from Christ to do so. But that is something they never claimed nor could they prove if they tried. The Reformed session began to look more and more like a mirror of my own opinions at that point, rather than body speaking for Christ. Scary.

  108. Andrew (#99):

    You wrote:

    Yes, well I’m not sure how many times I have tried to show you that I agree with this kind of statement. As I’ve have stated repeatedly, Scriptures are never interpreted outside of the authority that is explicitly stipulated in Scriptures and then subsequently practiced by those following the Apostolic era. But at this point in time there was no Pope or Roman Magisterium of College of Cardinals or anything that is part of RCC understanding of that body which ought to do the interpreting. Maybe there is something to the Catholic argument that the development/evolution of such a body has its roots in the history of early Christianity, but it’s hardly fair to assume this to be the case.

    First of all, I’m not sure how many times I’ve tried to show you what it means to speak of “divine authority,” prescinding altogether from any specific eccesiology one might or might not extract from the early sources by study. If somebody were to say: “When I teach that P is divinely revealed, I speak with divine authority, but of course I could be wrong to say that P is divinely revealed,” they would be talking utter, indeed laughable nonsense. To claim to teach with divine authority is to claim, at the very least implicitly, to be divinely protected from error when one so teaches. So the fact that many don’t see the developed Catholic doctrine of the Magisterium (CDM) in the early sources is irrelevant. For that matter, if CDM is true, then that doctrine itself cannot simply be inferred from said sources independently of the Magisterium. So far in this dialogue, all I’ve done is unpack the very concept of divine authority, apart from the question which body of people happens to exercise it.

    Secondly, when you say that it’s “hardly fair to assume” that CDM’s development “has its roots in the history of early Christianity,” your criticism trades on an ambiguity. As a professing Catholic, of course I believe what you say is unfair for me to assume; after all, that’s part of what it means to be Catholic. But it would be unfair to accuse me of unfairness just for being a believing, professing Catholic. What you really want to say is that it’s unfair for me to treat said assumption as a given amidst a discussion with people who do not share it. Now that’s not so much being unfair as begging the question, and I agree it’s wrong to beg the question when there’s a question to be begged. Yet for the reason I just gave in the previous paragraph, I make no such move. And I’ve said as much repeatedly over the years. It’s sad how, after all these years, you still can’t seem to take that in.

    I asked you about a case where a group of theologians has been convinced by Scripture and the Holy of the truth of a given doctrine (I used the Trinity and Athanasius). The other side reads the same Scripture but is not convinced. If we say that both groups are just holding “opinions” then we are saying that the group who has been convinced by Scripture and the Holy Spirit holds to a mere “opinion.” Are you OK with saying that?

    Of course I’m not OK with saying that, which is why I didn’t say it. The churchmen who formulated and upheld Nicene orthodoxy in the 4th century were preserving, transmitting, and clarifying divine revelation, not human opinion. We agree on that. What disagree about is how to answer the question how they and others know that it’s divine revelation rather than human opinion.

    Here’s your answer:

    The assumption of the Roman Catholic is that there must some sort of ecclesiastical body which resolves these global disputes. But this is just an assumption and as pointed out, not one that is shared by theologians of the early centuries of Christianity. My example here was Athanasius who appealed to the clear meaning of Scripture when refuting the Arians but left it at that. Athanasius was correct, the Arians were perverting the clear meaning of Scripture and his argument has convinced many millions of theologians, pastors, and lay people up to and through the present time. The point here is that Athanasius was not trying to use the ecclesiastical judgment of a hierarchical Roman Church to separate truth from error. Like so many theologians before him he pounded home what he knew to be the truths of Scripture and let God do the work of bringing people to the truth. So we Reformed are following suit in this regards.

    Since I’ve already rebutted your claim that the Catholic position is “just an assumption,” I’ll leave that bit aside and attend to what you say on your own account. What you’re really arguing is that Nicene orthodoxy is the “clear meaning” of Scripture, so that coming to know it as divine revelation rather than human opinion does not require a referee to adjudicate among competing interpretations of Scripture. That in fact is what’s argued by every Reformed Christian I’ve ever discussed the matter with. And I have always replied that the characteristic premises of such an argument are not only false, but demonstrably false.

    For one thing, if Scripture were perspicuous in the way such an argument requires, then one could account for major interpretive disagreement only by ascribing illiteracy, ill will, or both to everybody who dissents after rational consideration. If that’s how St. Athanasius explained away the Arians, or if that’s how St. Gregory of Nazianzus explained away the Pneumatomachi–and I’m not convinced they did–then those fathers of the Church were simply wrong. And you know it—for I have more than once seen you deny that heresy can only be accounted for in such an uncharitable manner. If people of similar intelligence and virtue can sincerely disagree about how to interpret Scripture on a matter of central importance, then Scripture is not perspicuous in the way your argument requires–even granted that Scripture somehow contains what Nicene orthodoxy finds in it.

    For another, your argument premises a thesis needing defense in its own right: i.e., that the early Church treated Scripture not only as perspicuous but also as having epistemic authority independent of that of the hierarchy of the Church. Now that’s only an opinion, and thus it’s ill-suited to function as a premise in the sort of argument you need. What you need are facts, not just opinions. But your opinion is implausible as a matter of logic, not just as a matter of history or doctrine. If the early Church did not understand herself to have infallible authority on matters of faith and morals generally, then she allowed that she could have been wrong in how she selected and certified certain writing as divinely inspired. Accordingly, she would have understood the Bible to be only a provisional human anthology, not an absolutely trustworthy conveyor of divine revelation. But the evidence you yourself present clearly indicates otherwise.

    Probably the most important point that I have tried to make through all of our discussions is that your argument about distinguishing revelation from mere opinion is bound up in Roman Catholic presupposition about the role of the Church in resolving theological matters (again note my paragraph above). And it’s not an assumption we are willing to grant,

    If that’s your most important point, then what I’ve said in this comment alone is enough to rebut it. I’m disappointed that I’ve had to do that over and over again through the years. But others will see what you don’t.

    Best,
    Mike

  109. #107 David

    You said: “what if I become a heretic?” or worse: “what if I am a heretic?”

    How would I even know if I were a heretic as long as my submission to my elders is based on a shared opinion and not an authority that transcends shared opinion? I could easily just be self-deceived into submitting to heretics then.”

    This made me laugh, thanks. I feel that same insanity currently. I have posed that same question to my pastor and my family, “How can I be sure that we’re not all Mormons?”! They don’t get the question, and it is so frustrating!
    My laughter is refreshing, I have done so much crying. Actually I have laughed in hysterics when a vicious argument happened in my home over the idea of me becoming Catholic. I feel like I am in the Twilight Zone, and am the only one that can see the monster on the wing of the plane;)
    Another thing, that has arisen in my thoughts is why would God allow me to be deceived in Protestantism, and how can I be sure that the RCC is a safe step? I know I can’t remain where I am, though some don’t get this epistemic crisis. Hit it’s like a ton of bricks and then you feel like you need to run, not walk to the nearest parish!

  110. Christopher (#101)

    … I certainly did not return to the Catholic Church *only* for a sense of certainty …

    I actually wonder if this isn’t a red herring, in fact. In my case, at least, I became a Catholic because I became convinced that:

    1) Jesus Christ intended a single visibly unified body to be His Church;
    2) That the Catholic Church is that body;
    3) That all Christians ought to be in submission to that body.

    For me, the certainty that I have in the Church was not precisely a motivation; it was rather one of the benefits I was given.

    I think there is a subtle (or sometimes not so subtle) accusation of rationalisation on the part of those who think that we became Catholics – or returned to the Church – in order to have certainty. The sub-text is that we didn’t really think the claims of the Church were true, only that they were desirable.

    But such a purely psychological motivation could just as well make a person become a member of any group that promises certainty.

    And of course analogous comments apply to those who accuse us of becoming Catholics in order to have the undoubted beauty, the ‘bells and smells’ (how I wish our parish had a little more of that), or the logical consisitency – in short, that our motivation was to have the benefits of being Catholics rather than to do what we think we had to do in order to obey God and save our souls.

    I wonder whether there are any of us converts or reverts in this blog – posters or commentators – who could say that they became Catholics in order to have certainty, or any other of the Catholic benefits.

    To be sure, the promise of those benefits serves as a motivation to investigate the claims of the Church. If the Church claims infallibility, union with Christ, the Real Presence, are these not themselves indications that God may in fact have provided the Church precisely so that His faithful could have them? But one must still then examine the other arguments for the Church’s truth – and pray for the enlightenment of the Spirit to help one grasp this truth with theological faith.

    But I could not imagine becoming a Catholic to have a benefit which I was not, on other grounds, sure was real.

    jj

  111. Hey Alicia,

    Glad I could make you laugh. It is a bittersweet laugh though. Like laughing at the dentist’s joke as he comes toward you with the drill. I love your Twilight Zone example. And if it werent for so many other Reformed defectors, I may have let myself believe I was crazy. But there are just too many others with the same concerns as us. And particularly us laypeople. Perhaps you are like me without much training in theology. I have a wife and 5 kids and dont have time to learn Hebrew or Greek, so does that mean I must just listen to the elders? What if my wise and highly trained PCA elders disagree with the wise and highly trained CREC elders down the road? What do I do then? This question simply has no answer that does not put the descision in my own hands… exactly where I know it should NOT be!
    If you are like me, you will at this point look for “the claimants”. Make a list of those who claim successional apostolic authority over you. My list included Catholic, Orthodox, and of course a few like Mormons who are quickly dismissed. In discerning between the claims of Catholic and Orthtodox, I once again found that the “who decides” question came into play. Issues like contraception and early evidence of papal primacy led me towards Rome. But one thing I knew, was there was no going back to the mess that is Protestantism.

    Pray for wisdom. And pray some more. If you are Ok with it, pray to Mary. She will not let you down. I will pray for you to have wisdom as well. Without God, nothing we try to do will work. So we need to soak our intentions in his will.

    “Another thing, that has arisen in my thoughts is why would God allow me to be deceived in Protestantism”

    Well if God allows children to die of malaria and for his Son to be murdered, I dont think I can answer that one. And think about this… if you are no longer decieved, then God isnt allowing the deception anymore. One thing I loved immediately about Catholicism is the doctrine of redemptive suffering. The crosses He gives us are for our good. They have meaning, and these crosses actually acomplish things when offered to God as a sacrifice united to Christ’s sacrifice. This doctrine was a true comfort to me after my conversion when a personal tragedy struck my family. Perhaps in God’s plan He knew I wouldnt make it with my Reformed conception of suffering and He decided I needed to convert? Perhaps there is a plan for you that is unforseen. Just keep following Jesus and find out.

    Peace to you,

    David Meyer

  112. Andrew McCallum, you write:

    As I’ve have stated repeatedly, Scriptures are never interpreted outside of the authority that is explicitly stipulated in Scriptures and then subsequently practiced by those following the Apostolic era. But at this point in time there was no Pope or Roman Magisterium of College of Cardinals or anything that is part of RCC understanding of that body which ought to do the interpreting.

    Andrew, why are you so focused on the Christians that lived after the apostolic era? Why would the second or third generation Christians that lived after the apostolic era suddenly believe that the authority within Christ’s church to settle doctrinal disputes was in any way different than what the first generation Christians believed?

    The first generation Christians tell us that Christ commanded those who would be his disciples that they should bring their personal doctrinal disputes to the church that Jesus Christ founded for resolution of those disputes. Those that “refuse to listen to even to the church” are to be excommunicated. (Matthew 18:17). That is what the first generation Christians believed, and I see no reason to think that the second and third generation Christians believed anything different. Indeed, the fact that these post-apostolic Christians held Ecumenical Councils to settle doctrinal disputes shows that they believed exactly what the first generation Christians believed. Doctrinal disputes among Christians are to be authoritatively settled in the same way a doctrinal dispute was authoritatively settled at the Council of Jerusalem (Acts chapter 15).

    Martin Luther, in contrast to the first generation Christians, taught his novelty of the primacy of the individual conscience as a rule of faith for Christians. Martin Luther brazenly asserted that he only needed to listen to the church when the church agreed with Martin Luther. But that belief of Luther utterly destroys the explicit teaching of Christ found in Matthew 18:17. If I only have to listen to the church when the church agrees with me, then I am under no obligation to listen to any church, including the church that Christ personally founded.

  113. Alicia (#109):

    My laughter is refreshing, I have done so much crying. Actually I have laughed in hysterics when a vicious argument happened in my home over the idea of me becoming Catholic. I feel like I am in the Twilight Zone, and am the only one that can see the monster on the wing of the plane;)

    I love that Twilight-Zone metaphor so much that I’ve quoted it in my Facebook status! William Shatner would be pleased. Thanks.

    Best,
    Mike

  114. Alicia,
    I will pray to Bl John Henry Newmanas well as the Mother of God for you.

    You were not decieved. You may not have been ready for the Tuth of Christ’s Church. Your path to the Church has had many twists and turns. You don’t know why but someday it will be revealed. I used to wonder that until I finally decided “Who cares I’m here”.

    In Christ,
    Annie

  115. Mike,

    First of all, I’m not sure how many times I’ve tried to show you what it means to speak of “divine authority,” prescinding altogether from any specific eccesiology one might or might not extract from the early sources by study. If somebody were to say: “When I teach that P is divinely revealed, I speak with divine authority, but of course I could be wrong to say that P is divinely revealed,” they would be talking utter, indeed laughable nonsense. To claim to teach with divine authority is to claim, at the very least implicitly, to be divinely protected from error when one so teaches.

    And I have replied by quoting you back verbatim and saying yes I get this. Really, what’s not to get? But it’s not the claims of the Catholic Church concerning infallibility, ecclesiastical or papal, which I’m debating. Yes, I understand as I’ve said that you believe that the RCC speaks with divine authority in order to separate what is to be known about divine revelation from mere human opinion. Again, what’s not to understand about that? You say that you are “sad” that I cannot take this in, but I’ve never had any issues accepting what you believe on the matter. The question between us is whether God can and does work in such a manner. My point here is not to question the relationship you draw between revelation and authority, but to question whether God must work through a Church which acts in the way that you claim, that is, one which is divinely protected from error.

    Secondly, when you say that it’s “hardly fair to assume” that CDM’s development “has its roots in the history of early Christianity,” your criticism trades on an ambiguity. As a professing Catholic, of course I believe what you say is unfair for me to assume; after all, that’s part of what it means to be Catholic.

    Please re-read your last paragraph in #85. It was from here that I took it that you were saying that divine authority to interpret was bound up in those who collected, certified, etc. the Word of God. I did not see you trying to prove your contention, you just stated it. So I was questioning what I saw as an unproven statement which I did not agree with. You say that you are not making such an assumption. OK, if you say so I will believe that, but it was not at all obvious from #85.

    Since I’ve already rebutted your claim that the Catholic position is “just an assumption…

    Mike, this is a different assumption than what I spoke of earlier so I would ask you not to so readily dismiss what I wrote. I said in brief, “The assumption of the Roman Catholic is that there must some sort of ecclesiastical body which resolves these global disputes. But this is just an assumption and as pointed out, not one that is shared by theologians of the early centuries of Christianity.” Are you really debating the fact that there is an assumption held by the Roman Catholic hierarchy that she must adjudicate the world’s theological problems? I cannot guess that you would state such a thing. This is important and gets to the heart of the matter. You are defending ecclesiastical infallibility as the only way that the world can know what is truly divine revelation and what it just the opinion of men. But I have tried to suggest that before we can talk about the nature of revelation we have to discuss whether it is even the Church’s job to play this role of adjudicator. You are somewhat frustrated by what you perceive as my unwillingness to seriously grapple with your contention (which once again I understand!), but I’m trying to convince you that there is a question that logically precedes your contention which we have not grappled with. And that is the role of the Church as this role is defined in the ancient in Scriptures and secondarily practiced in the Early Church. But I don’t think I have really convinced you that there is any issue here. If the role of the Church could be established then a discussion on the methodology she employees to fulfill that role makes much more sense.

    We have talked about the Reformed concept of perspicuity before. No, we do not mean that people of similar intelligence ought to come to the same conclusion about a given text. When we last talked about perspicuity I used the example of the Jews who were blind to certain OT Scriptures. But when their eyes were opened, the veil was lifted; they saw matters which Jesus has spoken of clearly. The Jews who rejected Christ were not lacking in intelligence, they were lacking a heart for God. They had erred according to Jesus, not knowing the Scriptures. So likewise when Athanasius spoke from the Scriptures the rejection of the message was not a reflection of clarity (or the lack thereof) of the words, but the fact that the Arian’s hearts were hardened to the truth of God. Athanasius was correct in his contention that the message was plain. The fact that certain people rejected it did not bring into question its perspicuity.

  116. Moreover, without the guarantee of infallibility, how would someone submitting to a bishop know that his or her bishop is right? Especially if bishops are in disagreement with one another.

    But Joshua, this problem does not go away for you now, does it? There is no shortage of priests and bishops in the RCC, just like in Protestantism, who have veered pretty far away from historic Christian teaching on any number of matters. Do you trust them or do you decide that you know what the correct interpretation of the history of the Church is, and then judge that these particular Catholics are in error? Of course they think you are in error, but from your reading and studying you are quite convinced that they are in error. So would you not grant that there would be times that you would disobey a given bishop and encourage others to do the same?

    I appreciate what Mike L has to say in #57 about Catholics who are materially heretical, but I hope you understand that to us Protestants this is just one Catholic saying to another that they disagree with the other’s interpretation of tradition. From our standpoint it’s the same sort of disagreement that you see in Protestantism.

    . . Personally, this is exactly the problem that drove me from Protestantism. To submit to my pastor rather than another pastor simply because he is my pastor is so Catholic,

    So again you would only submit to your pastor if you are convinced that your pastor is teaching something in line with the historic Catholic Church, as you interpret that tradition. You would not submit to a pastor that you deemed to be in material heresy, correct?

  117. Fr. Bryan, and others.

    I only got on here to talk with Josh. I was not tying to talk to all of you at one time. I really don’t have the time to do so.

    Since Fr. Bryan was dyeing to know something. I don’t want to take part in his demise. I will answer him, and all so many others who are … are not knowing how to answer, and are wanting an answer to his question.
    Which is something like: How do I personally know that Luther was right? How do I know that my pastor is right? How do I know that I, myself, am right? Isn’t that the epistemologically lost groping for the light?

    The question says a lot about the people who ask it. If you know the scriptures and the teaching of Christianity, then you should have known the answer to the above questions. But, since most are ignorant of what protestants believe, and are mislead into the dark and have their eyes plucked out, I will just try to state the obvious for those who still have ears to hear.

    What does the song of God’s people say?

    Your word is a lamp to my feet and a light for my path. (Psalm 119:105)
    Your word, O LORD, is eternal; it stands firm in the heavens. (Psalm 119:89)
    I have hidden your word in my heart that I might not sin against you. (Psalm 119:11)

    What does God, himself, say about his word?
    “Is not my word like fire,” declares the LORD, “and like a hammer that breaks a rock in pieces? … Does not my word burn like fire?” says the LORD. (Jeremiah 23:29)

    What does Jesus say the scriptures are?
    If he called them ‘gods,’ to whom the word of God came–and the Scripture cannot be broken– (John 10:35)

    Where does scripture come from?
    But know this first of all, that no prophecy of Scripture is a matter of one’s own interpretation, 21for no prophecy was ever made by an act of human will, but men moved by the Holy Spirit spoke from God. (2 Peter 1:20)

    What is scripture and what is it sufficient for?
    15and that from childhood you have known the sacred writings which are able to give you the wisdom that leads to salvation through faith which is in Christ Jesus. 16All Scripture is inspired by God and profitable for teaching, for reproof, for correction, for training in righteousness; 17so that the man of God may be adequate, equipped for every good work. (2 Timothy 3:15)

    I know the fool would say, “scripture is just a book.” Books can’t do anything. That is partly right, in the very materialistically foolish way of thinking about it. Isn’t the constitution only paper? Isn’t the laws of any land, only paper? Isn’t the DMV rules, just a booklet? Isn’t the spoken words, “I love you.” or “I do.” just sounds produced by the pushing of air. You foolish personal even making such obvious statements. What of it? Does that mean that they are meaningless? That the people will not try to drive according to it; that the government does not live on its very word; isn’t that push of air communicating the commitment for a life time; and the scriptures says Jesus are the words of God, will those who are the people of God going to live, formulate ideas and start thinking in biblical catagories in conformity to the Word of God?

    How does one know which teach is teaching right doctrines? Talk about a teacher, and preacher. Luther himself was but a mice in comparison (Luther would loudly confess that!). Paul himself was teaching. But how do you, Peter, know that Paul was to be trusted?

    That must have been the same question the Bereans asked. To what standard did the Bereans hold Paul’s teaching to?
    “Now the Bereans were of more noble character than the Thessalonians, for they received the message with great eagerness and examined the Scriptures every day to see if what Paul said was true.” (Acts 17:11)
    God’s word declare them “noble” for testing the teachings of Paul on the anvil of the Word of God. How do we know if this or that teach is teaching the truth? Take it to the word of God.

    The foolish will ask, what about the differing perspectives of interpretations? The Bereans did not have the help of the endarkenment to darken their minds to the reality of the written word on paper. Also, it should be obvious that the Bereans were not so anti-God as to mock God in claiming that God made himself known in holy scripture, but God fails to make himself clear enough to be understood. The Bereans were not postmodern fumblers who would claim that the scriptures are from God, and yet on the other hand claim that words on the page can’t be understood. Only the educated Postmodern writers would make such elite claims in tomes of their own writing. Gladly the Bereans were not so educated, so they were able read and understand the meaning of God’s word, and judge the teachings of Paul by it. Is the Roman Catholic going to claim that the teaching of the Popes are above the teachings of Paul, and can’t be tested by scripture? If not, then you must submit the teachings of the church fathers, the Popes and any other preacher or teacher to the anvil of God’s word. That is right! By the teachings of scripture we are to judge the claims of any preacher, and supposed popes.

    But there are contradictory opinions of what the Bible teach. Well, then they can not both be what the Bible teach, can they? Are you saying that one side is wrong about their interpretation? No kidding!!! So, either I accept contradiction as both truth, or that I would hold that the Bible is clear enough to be understood. Wow! Is that so hard to choose? Don’t you know that to accept contradictory teaching being both true, is to reject rationality? If A = A and A does not = A is both true, then you would be claiming that Jesus is God and Jesus is not God in the same sense and in the same manner. If you claim that contradictory interpretations of the Bible are true, then any and all contradiction are true. You are Fr. Bryan, and it is also true that you are not Fr. Bryan, in the same sense and in the same way. May you are Napoleon after all! So, I am left with an obvious choice, am I not?

    Maybe it was obvious to the Bereans that if the Bible is the word of God, then what this guy, Paul, is saying should be consistent with what God has already spoken. What? Proof texting? Scripture interpreting scripture? Holding people accountable to the word of God if they claim to be speaking for God? I thought those were some kind of doctrine things. Isn’t it an arbitrarily made up paradigm of sorts we can take as we please?

    So, if Luther teach consistent with the teachings of the Bible, such as the small subject of how sinners are justified before God, that we would take Luther’s teaching to scripture and see if that is the teaching of scripture? That seams so simplistic, it takes educated people to miss.

    What about personal doubt? To what are we to appeal to? Let me ask you, when Jesus was tempted to doubt, to what did Jesus appealed to? Jesus answered Satan (and all those who want to undermine the word of God), “It is written: ‘Man does not live on bread alone, but on every word that comes from the mouth of God.'”(Matthew 4:4) Talk about guilt by association! I known it. But, if the shoe fits! … It was Satan who first cause doubt in the mind of Eve as to the truthfulness and clarity of what God had said. How do you know what God said, Eve? “Did God really say, ‘You must not eat from any tree in the garden’?” (Genesis 3:1) It seams many in our days are trying to do the work of Satan. Guess that would include the Popes, and leaders of the Roman church, for they try to connect themselves to Peter. For Jesus turned and said to Peter, “Get behind me, Satan! You are a stumbling block to me; you do not have in mind the things of God, but the things of men.” (Matthew 16:23) Jesus will be your judge, you who claim to be his follower, but undermined the word of God for the foolish teachings of men.

    But who are you to question our authority? That is right, I am nobody. But I come to you with the Word of God. A nobody who has the word of God. That is all I am. If what I am saying is consistent with the word of God, then God’s word is what you are dealing with, not me. If you care less for the teachings of the Bible, then again, that says where you stand before God and his word. I do not claim some high power so as to make others submit to me. As Josh seams to be wanting. NO Christian teacher is to lord it over other Christians, (Matthew 20:25) as Rome claims such authority for her self. No, Christian teachers present the Word of God, and like the Bereans, the followers of God will search the scriptures to know if the teaching conforms to scripture. That was what the Bereans did to the teachings of Paul no less. I rather you think and reflect over the points made and let the Holy Spirit move you as he choose. When the teachings is consistent with scripture, then it is not the man, but rather the word of God that convicts the believer. It is the truth of God, and not the speaker. As I have wrote, Luther was a tool in the hands of the Savior, who salves perfectly by his death on the cross, never to be recrucified again and again–the blasphemy of the mass. Jesus is a perfect Savior who in fact saved people by his death for them; not to impersonally make merits for people to save them selves. All repentant sinners who believe in Jesus alone to be his/her means of right standing with God are saved. God declare him righteous because of what Jesus had done for him. What an awesome salvation in Jesus, who would be so foolish as to pass up on the Finished work of Jesus for a tattered raged blend of earned merits from jesus, mary, the saints, and self. Salvation is not by works of men, so that no sinner will be able to boast.

    How do I know that I am right? That is such a foolish either/or. Don’t you see the foolishness of that question? Either I am infallible, or I am not. Isn’t it foolish to even ask such a question? I am not infallible. I am not infallible, in choosing the church I am going. I am not infallible in knowing every word the preacher is preaching. I am not infallible in knowing the teachings of my church. But I got news for you. Neither are you infallible! That is right. You are in the same boat with me as far as finitude goes.

    For those of you who would say that you are following an infallible man on some old chair that supposedly makes him a super-man; it does not negate the fact that you are fallible. Your choice in following that supposed infallible man was a fallible choice. You have not become infallible. You have removed yourself from scripture and have added a supposed infallible funnel, but how do you know that you are understanding that funnel rightly? Again, you had not left the same boast of finitude.

    The problem is the either/or. I don’t have to be infallible, but that does not mean that I am entirely ignorant of truth. IF you disagree, then prove to me that it has to be either/or: either my personal infallibility or entirely ignorant of truth. Prove it. Do you have infallible knowledge that it is a matter of either/or? You don’t, because it is false!

    The either/or is a false standard with regards to human knowledge. However, I have the truth of God’s word made known to me in written form. God has made himself known in scripture and in creation–Scripture judging our natural knowledge–God gives internal convictions as well. We humans may have limited but true knowledge as to what God teach. This knowledge grows in searching the scriptures. Those who remove themselves from the teaching of scripture to submit themselves to some supposed infallible teacher will be mislead and become ignorant of what the word of God in fact teach. They are another step away from knowing. Not closer.

    Those who have the word can speak the word and leave it to the Spirit to convict others of its veracity.

  118. Just flipped around and found another false premise that I have already responded to:

    Calvin teach total depravity, which you guys take to mean “bereft of reason”? Where in Calvin’s writing does he claim that total depravity = bereft of reason?

    How many of you Confessing Roman Catholics, but former Protestants are able to point out the foolishness of that confusion? Are there any honesty in your bones to be willing to say that that is not what total depravity means?

    For all those who are confused on this. Total depravity has to do with sin infecting ever aspect of humanity, but that does not mean that humans are not able to reason. That does not mean that depraved sinners are not able to read the bible and know what it says. It also does not mean utter-depravity–as sinful as one can be. How can a seminary grad not know this fact?

    If you know it, then why distort the fact?

  119. Jeremiah,

    I did assume that you knew what I mean by it. Maybe you are not sure what I mean by it because you have a lot of background on all kinds of studies, that does not have a lot to do with what I mean by the Gospel. I was just speaking in Christian speech. IF you think that Rome has the gospel, then either it is just communication or you really don’t know why you are a protestant.

    I was talking about the good news of the work of Jesus to save sinners by his life, death, and resurrection. On the basis of which sinner are declared by God to be saint. Oh, if you only know this gospel. The good news, the only hope, for sinners who come to God with nothing in their hands but sin and the expectation of judgement and condemnation. Looking to Jesus alone, as the only hope for sinner, like myself, if you only know this salvation in Jesus. All guilt of sin is removed, and the burden lifted, the just and holy wrath of God… satisfied by the once and for all time finished work of Jesus.

    Oh, sure the background studies are good, and Greek word studies are nice to do as well, but if you lost the promised found in the scriptures. If you lost the finished work of Jesus to save, and gives sinners peace, lasting peace with God…. then all that study, be it Greek, Hebrew, Latin, church history, the early church fathers… if you lost the fact that salvation is found in no other than Jesus once and for all time, finished work, then you missed everything.

    That is what I meant by the gospel, the good news for sinners in facing the Holy, Holy, Holy God; that God has provided his own Son as atone for sins. All who believe in the Son, are declared saints on the account of His Son.

    The Roman Catholic church, condemned the gospel, because Rome must make room for human works as a means to justification. Oh, that’s right to put itself as the means of dispensing grace for people to earn by works, or paying for it. Like all man made schemes, the first act is free, baptism. It is all works after that to merits or maintaining by meriting grace. What a blasphemous contradiction in terms!

    Maybe you can add to your reading: Ott’s “Fundamentals of Catholic Dogma”

    https://vintage.aomin.org/Roman.html

    https://www.christiantruth.com/articles_roman_catholicism.php

  120. Peter (re: #118):

    I never claimed that Calvin meant by total depravity, man’s utter inability to reason. To say that man is ‘bereft of reason,’ as Donald does, does not mean that man is unable to reason absolutely, but simply that he is unable to reason properly due to the corruption of sin.

    Here’s the Synod of Dort, third and fourth heads of doctrine:

    Article 1: “. . . But revolting from God by the instigation of the devil and by his own free will, he forfeited these excellent gifts; and in the place thereof became involved in blindness of mind, horrible darkness, vanity and perverseness of judgment; became wicked, rebellious, and obstinate in heart and will, and impure in his affections.”

    This is all I need to substantiate my claim regarding Calvinism. And as Mateo pointed out above (#92), the question ultimately boils down to whether there can be any living human authority (albeit sinful) that has the charism of the Spirit, and therefore claim infallibility. I would also direct you to Brent’s comment (#102).

  121. Andrew (#115):

    Addressing me, you write:

    My point here is not to question the relationship you draw between revelation and authority, but to question whether God must work through a Church which acts in the way that you claim, that is, one which is divinely protected from error.

    You’re still confused after all these years. As I’ve often tried to make plain, my order of inquiry is as follows: (1) Establish by strictly philosophical argument that (for us who weren’t there) divine revelation is distinguishable from human opinion only with recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority. (2) See which visible churches claim such authority. (3) Compare the arguments supporting each respective set of claims to see which is the strongest. (4) Make one’s voluntary act of faith by submitting to the church with the strongest claim. Most churches, including yours, don’t figure in the inquiry because they make no claim to the sort of authority described in Step 1. You guys aren’t even in the game.

    Now if you’ve understood all that, then the quotation I’ve just made from you would indicate that you’re questioning how I carry out Steps 2-4, without questioning the argument I make in and for Step 1. But I have never seen you accept Step 1; when you attend to it at all, you brush it aside as irrelevant. Yet it is supremely relevant as the starting point of the inquiry, entirely apart from history or from the claims of any particular church. For the reasons I’ve long been giving, the Bible cannot function as the sort of authority called for in Step 1.

    Please re-read your last paragraph in #85. It was from here that I took it that you were saying that divine authority to interpret was bound up in those who collected, certified, etc. the Word of God. I did not see you trying to prove your contention, you just stated it. So I was questioning what I saw as an unproven statement which I did not agree with. You say that you are not making such an assumption. OK, if you say so I will believe that, but it was not at all obvious from #85.

    More confusion. Here’s what actually happened in the passage you refer to. You first wrote, and I quoted:

    If God has used His Word to convince millions of people as to a given truth, these people’s God-given knowledge is not “opinion” just because there are some or many others who God has not revealed Himself to….Why should this lack of consensus necessarily cause us alarm if God’s truth is being proclaimed? Your “solution” is to propose an infallible human court to judge the world, right? But when and where did God ask His Church to do this?

    I then replied as follows:

    It utterly astounds me that, after several years, you have yet to appreciate the force of Newman’s elementary point: “No revelation is given, unless there be some authority to decide what it is that is given.” Thus, treating “Scripture” as “the Word of God” is at most a plausible opinion, unless the body of people who wrote, used, collected, and certified those writings as the Word of God had divine authority to do so. That latter question is the one needing to be answered first, which is why I proceed as I do, and precisely why it would be idle at best to seek proof in Scripture by itself that the Catholic Church is that church. On the Catholic account summarized in Dei Verbum §10, Scripture, Tradition, and the teaching authority of the Church stand or fall together; the first two give the third its rationale, and the last is the authentic interpreter of the first two. Accordingly, to make the kind of inferential move your question invites would totally beg the question.

    In that paragraph I did not assert, either baldly or as the conclusion of an argument, that the Catholic Church actually is “the body of people who wrote, used, collected, and certified those writings as the Word of God” and “had divine authority to do so. ” Rather I made two brief arguments. The first was that unless there was and is some such body of people, treating Scripture as divinely inspired is “at most a plausible opinion.” The second was that trying to support the Catholic claim to be that body by appealing to any source independent of the Magisterium would beg the question, since the Catholic claim is that there is no such source. None of of the above says or even assumes that the Catholic doctrine of the Magisterium is actually true.

    I fear that, like many people, you have a lot of difficulty recognizing the difference between assertion on the one hand and making a supposition for argument’s sake on the other. But learning to do so is essential for following philosophical arguments and for critical thinking generally.

    Equally elementary errors of logic are manifest in the following:

    Are you really debating the fact that there is an assumption held by the Roman Catholic hierarchy that she must adjudicate the world’s theological problems? I cannot guess that you would state such a thing. This is important and gets to the heart of the matter. You are defending ecclesiastical infallibility as the only way that the world can know what is truly divine revelation and what it just the opinion of men. But I have tried to suggest that before we can talk about the nature of revelation we have to discuss whether it is even the Church’s job to play this role of adjudicator. You are somewhat frustrated by what you perceive as my unwillingness to seriously grapple with your contention (which once again I understand!), but I’m trying to convince you that there is a question that logically precedes your contention which we have not grappled with. And that is the role of the Church as this role is defined in the ancient in Scriptures and secondarily practiced in the Early Church. But I don’t think I have really convinced you that there is any issue here. If the role of the Church could be established then a discussion on the methodology she employees to fulfill that role makes much more sense.

    As best I can tell, you’re suggesting that the Magisterium of the Catholic Church makes, concerning its own authority, an “assumption” that it should instead be treating as a matter for debate using an appropriate “methodology.” If that’s what you’re suggesting, then you’re just begging the question. Why? Because if the Magisterium did what you suggest, then the falsity of its claims would follow as a matter of course, for the reason I’ve given more than once just in this thread. I deny that the Magisterium is “assuming” something that needs to be established by a scholarly methodology. The Magisterium sees itself as preserving a key aspect of the deposit of faith, namely the one about its own, charismatic authority. If, per impossible, that could be established by any scholarly methodology, it would be a provisional conclusion of reason rather than a point of faith, and precisely as such would prove the Magisterium’s actual self-understanding to be false. I’m sure you’d welcome that result, but I’m equally sure you can understand why you won’t see it.

    The same consideration applies to what you want me to do. You want me, as a Catholic, to treat as genuinely open the question whether the Magisterium’s claims for itself are true. If I did that, I could not and would not be a Catholic, for I’d be withholding the assent of faith from what is perhaps the most distinctive doctrine of Catholicism, namely its doctrine of the Magisterium (CDM). Surely it’s unreasonable to expect me to debate the question whether Catholicism is true only by ceasing to be a Catholic. You can’t expect me to forfeit the game before it even starts. I understand how easy that would make things for you, but you need to understand how unreasonable it would be for you to expect it.

    What I’m doing instead are the only things I can do in this debate. As I Catholic I deny, because I must deny, that the CDM can be proven by any academic methodology, even though it can be adequately supported by such a methodology for those who care about such things. As a philosopher, I insist that the question whether an infallible authority is necessary for identifying divine revelation as such is not only worth debating but must be debated before we consider any concrete candidates for such an authority. In other words, before the Catholic Church even enters the room, I must carry out and you must consider what I presented as “Step 1” above. That’s what I keep hoping you’ll focus on.

    Having said that, I’m afraid the prospects don’t look good. You write:

    We have talked about the Reformed concept of perspicuity before. No, we do not mean that people of similar intelligence ought to come to the same conclusion about a given text. When we last talked about perspicuity I used the example of the Jews who were blind to certain OT Scriptures. But when their eyes were opened, the veil was lifted; they saw matters which Jesus has spoken of clearly. The Jews who rejected Christ were not lacking in intelligence, they were lacking a heart for God. They had erred according to Jesus, not knowing the Scriptures. So likewise when Athanasius spoke from the Scriptures the rejection of the message was not a reflection of clarity (or the lack thereof) of the words, but the fact that the Arian’s hearts were hardened to the truth of God. Athanasius was correct in his contention that the message was plain. The fact that certain people rejected it did not bring into question its perspicuity.

    Just so we’re on the same page, here’s what I had argued (emphasis added here):

    …if Scripture were perspicuous in the way [your] argument requires, then one could account for major interpretive disagreement only by ascribing illiteracy, ill will, or both to everybody who dissents after rational consideration. If that’s how St. Athanasius explained away the Arians, or if that’s how St. Gregory of Nazianzus explained away the Pneumatomachi–and I’m not convinced they did–then those fathers of the Church were simply wrong. And you know it—for I have more than once seen you deny that heresy can only be accounted for in such an uncharitable manner. If people of similar intelligence and virtue can sincerely disagree about how to interpret Scripture on a matter of central importance, then Scripture is not perspicuous in the way your argument requires–even granted that Scripture somehow contains what Nicene orthodoxy finds in it.

    I notice that, in your reply, you did not address my phrase “ill will” and just mentioned “intelligence.” But you should have addressed it. For if the pertinent meaning of Scripture is plain, and those who don’t get it are just as “intelligent” as those who do, then only ill will on the part of those who don’t get it can explain why they don’t. But instead of acknowledging that directly, you claim that the heretics’ “hearts were hardened” as had been those of the Jews who disagreed with Jesus’ and the Apostles’ hermeneutic of the OT. Well, if it was God who hardened their hearts, then I’d agree that it wasn’t “ill will” on their part which prevented them from seeing what’s plain under their noses. Are you prepared to say that God actively prevents some people from seeing what he’s otherwise made plain for all to see? If so, that’s not the God I worship; you can have a Calvinist idol if you want, but I want no part of it, not least because it raises far more questions than it answers. Or are you claiming that the Jews’ and heretics’ hearts were hardened because they themselves had hardened them? In that case, they were guilty of what I called “ill will.” I can understand your reluctance to just come out and say that; but until you come clean one way or another, you’re left with saying that some people can’t see what’s plain under their noses, without really accounting for such an odd thing.

    Rather than trying to thread that needle, you would do better to admit that Athanasius and friends actually saw an epistemic need for the Council of Nicaea and the later exercises of ecclesiastical authority which eventually, after much struggle, allowed Nicene orthodoxy to prevail. You claim to have no problem with admitting that church authority is necessary for the right interpretation of Scripture; but if Scripture is perspicuous in the way you claim to believe, then the function of such authority is purely disciplinary, not epistemic.

    Best,
    Mike

  122. Peter –

    Posting on a public forum, such as this, opens you up to wider criticism. If you want to speak to Josh personally, perhaps you could find another way of doing so.

    But what I gathered from your lengthy reply was your admittance that you do in fact distinguish heretical and orthodox preachers and teachers according to your own personal interpretation of scripture. And to suggest anyone who doesn’t agree with your interpretation is a fool. That was a long way to go about explaining it, but that is pretty much what what I gathered in the midst of all that clanging.

    As I see it, the problem with your paradigm (or rather, one problem with your paradigm) is what this means if it is true. If your view is true, then God designed his Church to operate under the assumption that everyone is an expert on the Bible. Here is a nice post from a baptist discerning a move to Catholicism, explaining why in Protestantism everyone needs to be an expert. Part two of his story can be found here.

    So… how is an uneducated man in a third world country to know who is teaching orthodox doctrine if he can’t even read? In your paradigm, it seems as though he must first learn how to read in his own language, then he must study greek and hebrew so that he can read the bible in the original language. How else is he going to know if the translation being read at his Church is a good translation or not? Furthermore, if scripture is perspicuous then why would this man need to be instructed at all?

    Is that really the way God meant for it to be? For all of us to be experts in Greek and Hebrew? I don’t think it is. I think God established a Church that would interpret the Bible correctly – one that not even the gates of Hell could prevail against. Satan himself could not corrupt the core of this Church. So, rather than trying to corrupt it’s doctrine, he just decided to make a few counterfeits to see if he could get some people to believe the counterfeit was the real thing.

    Both of these views are messy. There is much confusion in both. The difference between them is that in one of these paradigms, Satan is the author of confusion. In the other, God himself is the author of the confusion.

    Fr. Bryan
    Fool for Christ

    P.S. James White? Really?

  123. my #98 – I have failed :-( I have looked around in my piles of books and … well, junk! … to find my copy of Van Til’s Syllabus – haven’t found it, though I don’t think I have binned it. There are, I think, a variety of places on the web where Van Til engages Gilson and other Catholic thinkers.

    jj

  124. Mike,

    Not to defend Andrew’s point, but reading the Father’s it seems clear that they did in fact ascribe to the heretics the motivation of “ill will”. Again, while I’m not necessarily wanting to argue against the other points you made, it does seem to me that there are largely two camps of people on the earth these two camps are described in John 3

    “This is the verdict: Light has come into the world, but men loved darkness instead of light because their deeds were evil. Everyone who does evil hates the light, and will not come into the light for fear that his deeds will be exposed. But whoever lives by the truth comes into the light, so that it may be seen plainly that what he has done has been done through God.”

    There are those who love light and are looking to attribute to GOD their good deeds and those who love darkness. The Father’s (at least in the first three centuries) were pretty clear about calling the heretics of their day lovers of darkness. As a protestant I deeply appreciate you guys being charitable enough to assume that I’m a heretic (at least from your perspective) because of a lack of knowledge, but I don’t think that is true of all of us. But those who really do love Jesus will come around eventually, so keep plugging.

  125. Andrew,

    I think that Mike has put his finger on the very root of this multi-year dialogue that has been going on between yourself and various commentators here at CTC (including myself). He claims (along with I and others), that entirely prescinding from the question of whether or not the claims of the Catholic Magisterium (or any other magisterial claimant) are true; the first step one must take is a philosophical one, not a theological one. Mike nicely described this first step as follows:

    Establish by strictly philosophical argument that (for us who weren’t there) divine revelation is distinguishable from human opinion only with recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority.

    Now in any number of ways over the last few years, what I have witnessed you do nearly every time someone tries to slow down and engage you in a sustained focus on this foundational epistemic point is either one of two things:

    a.) Utterly ignore or elude the question by jumping directly to some comment about how you and others don’t see sufficient evidence for the Catholic Claims (at least as they now stand) in the early Christian centuries or patristic documentary evidence, or;

    b.) Offer a vague, imprecise, nod to the notion of Scriptural perspicuity as somehow sufficient to eliminate the philosophical need for some divinely protected authority to distinguish between divine revelation and mere human opinion in the here and now.

    I note that move a.) is an evasion pure and simple, because the foundational philosophical question which Mike and others keep putting to you has absolutely nothing whatsoever to do with whether or not the claims of the Catholic Magisterium, or any other proposed authority, are true – or even historically defensible. Nothing whatsoever. Our argument is simply that there can be no principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion without the input of some divinely protected authority in the here and now.

    That leaves us with your response b.); namely, that some notion of Scripture’s perspicuity eliminates the need – in the here and now – for the type of divinely protected authority which we Catholics think is necessary to establish the revelation/opinion distinction. And that is exactly what you have done once again in this thread.

    You wrote:

    If God has used His Word to convince millions of people as to a given truth, these people’s God-given knowledge is not “opinion” just because there are some or many others who God has not revealed Himself to….Why should this lack of consensus necessarily cause us alarm if God’s truth is being proclaimed? Your “solution” is to propose an infallible human court to judge the world, right? But when and where did God ask His Church to do this?

    Mike has already explained quite well the many problems with this approach, and in particular, how it forces you to maintain that those who don’t “get” the perspicuous message of Scripture are either:

    a.) Less intelligent (you apparently don’t think this is the problem, and besides, such a notion obviously would seem arrogant) or

    b.) Willfully blinded (“hard hearted”).

    The source of this “hard heartedness” being either:
    1 The “ill-will” of individuals (a claim which would again seem arrogant), or
    2 A preordination of individuals to damnable ignorance by God – along the lines of Calvinist double-predestination.

    I look forward to reading your response to Mike in this regard, as I think you have no choice (given your rejection of a.), but to openly affirm either b1 or b2, or perhaps both.

    Nevertheless, I would like to parse your quote as given above, in order to highlight just how inadequate is the “perspicuity” response to the epistemic question.

    If God has used His Word to convince millions of people as to a given truth. . .

    Problem 1: How did you determine the scope of what writings constitute “God’s Word”? That is, on what authority transcending human opinion? For if you cannot point to some opinion-transcending authority to establish the very scope of some set of writing called “God’s Word”, you can hardly turn around and deploy something called “God’s Word” as a tool which God has uses to enable people to distinguish between divine revelation and human opinion. This is essentially the “cannon problem” as it relates to the foundational epistemic question we Catholics have been putting to you.

    Problem 2: Supposing that somehow (and I have never seen it done), you resolved problem 1 without recourse to some divinely protected authority. How – exactly – does God “use” His Word (some set of writings), to “convince millions of people as to a given truth”? Andrew, the devil is in the details. It seems to me that you must choose one of two broad options:

    a.) God uses some intermediate person or set of persons to authoritatively expound the correct interpretation of Scripture such that the exposition in question rises above mere human speculation (opinion), or;

    b.) God directly informs or illumines the intellect of the text-reader such that he or she is “convinced of a given truth” in such a way that they hold the truth in question to be more than just human opinion or speculation directly and without intermediary interpretive assistance.

    Consider option a.): If you admit that God utilizes some intermediate authority in order to authoritatively interpret His “Word” so as to enable the 21st century Christian to distinguish divine revelation from human opinion, then you are already in agreement with Catholics regarding the first step of Mike’s argument. Namely that IF we are to distinguish divine revelation from human opinion in the here and now, THEN there must necessarily be some present day intermediary authority which can call forth the needed distinction. In which case, your next logical question should be: “what candidates in the world around me even make a claim to having that kind of authority?” And that rules out all of Protestantism almost by self definition!

    Consider option b.) If the way we distinguish divine revelation from human opinion is that God directly illumines people regarding the correct interpretation of scripture, then we need to account for why it that so many self-proclaimed Christians read the same Scriptures and come to entirely different conclusions about the content of divine revelation on important matters such as sola fide, etc. As stated above, your explanatory options seem limited to attributing one of the following to those with whom you disagree about the content of revelation: 1.) lack of intelligence, 2.) “hard heartedness” due to malice on the part of the individual, or 3.) God-induced blindness. As I say, I am interested to see which of these options you embrace in your response to Mike.

    Continuing, you wrote:

    these people’s God-given knowledge is not “opinion” just because there are some or many others who God has not revealed Himself . . .”

    Here I want to highlight the fact that according to this statement, you have now made the admission that it IS important that our religious convictions rise above the level of “opinion”. Whatever flaws exist in your notion of perspicuity (and they are many), the fact remains that you are clearly here deploying perspicuity as a means by which human religious knowledge might rise above the level of opinion. This is important to establish, because in other threads where a similar epistemic challenge has been raised, you often resort to statements like the one which you made earlier in this very thread:

    “It seems to me that either God did ordain the kind of human certitude that you long for or He did not. If He did not then the fact that you feel that there is insufficient epistemological certainty is immaterial. I’ve pointed out in the past that the lack of the kind of certitude that you posit in the Magisterium does not make Christianity unworkable. It just means that you need to accept that God can and does work through a fallible Church.”

    So which is it? On the one hand you claim (without any basis or argument I might add) that God never intended to offer men the level of certitude regarding religious knowledge that we Catholics are seeking (which I would argue is really just the basic human instinct for certitude regarding questions of ultimate importance). Yet, on the other hand, you are motivated to deploy the Reformed notion of perspicuity to explain how Christians (presumably like yourself) might have religious knowledge that is not just mere “opinion”. It is precisely this sort of lack of precision in your position which makes dialogue with you so difficult. You seem not to want to allow that your doctrinal positions are mere “opinions” because that would undermine almost everything you have ever written or taught on religious matters; but you don’t want to allow that God has given men a means to attain doctrinal certitude, because the logical trajectory of that supposition would entail either agnosticism or an exit from Protestantism.

    How will you stake out a middle ground? You really can’t, and that is why you resort to the imprecise doctrine of Scripture’s perspicuity in tandem with the subjective doctrine of direct illumination, so as to create a fog of ambiguity that attempts to hide the rather clear epistemic problem which myself and many other converts have come to see clearly. The doctrine of Scripture’s perspicuity was put forward during the Reformation as a hopeful barrier to doctrinal divisions and disintegration in the absence of a recognized Magisterium. But the doctrine of perspicuity does not work in principle for the reasons I addressed above; and if the intellectual problems were not enough, the last 495 years have added experimental verification to the fact.

    Continuing with the parse, you wrote:

    Why should this lack of consensus necessarily cause us alarm if God’s truth is being proclaimed?

    Obviously, if one has already established how it is that one knows “God’s truth” (and not just human opinion), then consensus would surely not matter. But nothing you have written, especially as it pertains to perspicuity, has provided any solution as to how that all-important distinction can be made. Hence, the perspicuity argument is manifestly circular in this respect. Until you show how the doctrine of Scripture’s perspicuity enables one to be sure that his religious knowledge is really “God’s truth” and not his own opinion, the lack of consensus will continue to entail both an intellectual and pragmatic defeater for the Reformed doctrine of perspicuity.

    Continuing on, you wrote:

    Your “solution” is to propose an infallible human court to judge the world, right?

    It is an IF/THEN philosophical proposal. Here is the crucial point: at this stage in the epistemic argument Catholics are not claiming anything about the Catholic Church! All we are saying is that – on purely philosophical grounds – IF there is going to be a principled distinction between divine revelation on the one hand, and human opinion on the other in the here and now; THEN there must necessarily be some divinely protected authority capable of making the distinction. This is a foundational epistemic argument which is broader than both Protestantism and Catholicism. It is a question about the nature and knowability of revelation per se. That is why you are quite wrong when you write:

    “before we can talk about the nature of revelation we have to discuss whether it is even the Church’s job to play this role of adjudicator.”

    Or when you finish the original quote I have been parsing by writing:

    But when and where did God ask His Church to do this?

    The question of the nature and knowability of revelation is broader and prior to any discussion of “the Church” or “churches” or “prophets” or any other form of religious institution or authority? Mike’s step one IS step one. I really can’t imagine how you think it can be otherwise. By the time you are asking about the “Church’s job . . . of adjudicator”, you have already presupposed, at minimum, Christianity. But the epistemic question of the nature and knowability of any purported revelation is simply prior to and broader than Christianity itself. I leave you again with Newman’s famous line and ask you to consider that his quip stands firm regardless of whether we are talking about Protestantism, Catholicism, Orthodoxy, Christianity, Islam, Judaism, etc.

    “No revelation is given, unless there be some authority to decide what it is that is given.”

    I admire your continuing desire to dialogue here, but I also would very much like to see the fruits of a sustained focus on this core topic, since all other theological questions rests upon it.

    Pax Christi,

    Ray

  126. Peter #119,

    What you mean by “Christian speech” is interesting. I think it contains a lot of assumptions and presuppositions that you have not thought through very well.

    The evangelical/reformed/protestant subculture in the United States has an assumed meaning for the “gospel” or the “good news” that typically contains what you laid out in your post.

    Unfortunately, the people who walk in those circles very rarely ask two questions. They are as follows:

    1) Is this “gospel” the same gospel that Jesus, Paul, James, Peter, or John preached?
    2) Is this “gospel” the same gospel that was preached by the immediate followers of the original 12 apostles?

    What I was asserting in my last post to you is that the “gospel” you received and so rapturously elucidated on in your last post, IS NOT THE GOSPEL PAUL PREACHED. To understand exactly what the gospel Paul preached is, you have to, at minimum, understand the meaning of the words that he used when he declared what that message is.

    In the opening salvo of Romans, Paul declares that he is a commanding general/admiral for a conquering army. He has been sent to declare the terms of unconditional surrender and the demand for obedience to these terms to “all the gentiles”. He qualifies who the King is, and identifies Jesus specifically as the heir to the Davidic Kingdom that is now to encompass the gentiles. This, in fact, was the expected outcome of the Jewish Zealots of that day. They were expecting that when the Messiah came he would, by military force, not just throw off the Roman yoke, but subject them to Israel. And now Paul is declaring that this is what he is doing, though not through military means.

    The doctrine of “Jesus saved me from my sins” is, at best, a very little part of Paul’s gospel. Paul’s gospel is that Heaven has come to earth and expects earth’s obedience. Jesus prayed “…your Kingdom come, your will be done, on earth as it is in Heaven…”

    Salvation is great, but after you get it, then what? That can’t be all there is!

  127. Mike said: You’re still confused after all these years. As I’ve often tried to make plain, my order of inquiry is as follows: (1) Establish by strictly philosophical argument that (for us who weren’t there) divine revelation is distinguishable from human opinion only with recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority. (2) See which visible churches claim such authority. (3) Compare the arguments supporting each respective set of claims to see which is the strongest. (4) Make one’s voluntary act of faith by submitting to the church with the strongest claim. Most churches, including yours, don’t figure in the inquiry because they make no claim to the sort of authority described in Step 1. You guys aren’t even in the game. Now if you’ve understood all that, then the quotation I’ve just made from you would indicate that you’re questioning how I carry out Steps 2-4, without questioning the argument I make in and for Step 1.

    Mike – As in the past you are not understanding my intentions and I think this is the reason why my answers appear to you confused and confusing. But I will try again to shed some light here. You think my quote above is an attempt to understand or challenge the flow from 2-4, but it is not. I’m not challenging your system, at least not directly at this point. I’m just trying to establish an alternate ecclesiological paradigm and then compare it with your system. So if I summarize the way I am proceeding into the same format as yours it would be 1) Extract and synthesize an ecclesiological system from Scripture (of course already done by numerous systematic theologians), 2) Compare such a system with the praxis of the Early Church, 3) Challenge other systems from the standard set by #1 and #2, 4) Submit in faith to that system assuming it has stood up to the challenges of other systems.

    Your comment about Protestant churches “not being in the game” is another way of saying what I’ve been trying to tell you all along. We are not trying to be “in the game.” That’s just the issue. We are looking at ecclesiology from an entirely different reference point. So you have established your “game” but you really don’t know what mine is. At least, nothing you have answered me would indicate to me that you understand. Every time I try to get you understand you come back, as you do above, with a reply about YOUR system.

    When we Protestants speak of ecclesiology we continually get responses likeTom’s in #106. The question that Tom asks here is unanswerable in the Protestant (and Early Church) system. But then we are not trying to answer it. Do you understand what I mean given what I write above? If you don’t then we still have not made much progress. I will be interested to hear your reply.

    I think I will stop here for now since if we don’t get on the same page with what I write above, the remained of your reply will not matter.

    OK, I will take up your last question about perspicuity and “ill will” since this just seems to be a clarification issue which I should be able to address quickly. Like the intelligence matter it’s not about ill will. Someone like in my Jewish example could be a person of ill will, which obviously some of the Pharisees were. But they were not all, and we read of Jews at that time who were seriously seeking to be holy but were blinded to God’s full truth. Again, they had a veil over their eyes, as Scripture states. When the veil was lifted they saw clearly. The Word of God was clear on who the Messiah was, and once the veil was lifted they saw it. I find just this kind of testimony with the Messianic Jews today – they were reading an OT passage and by God’s grace the lights just came on. The perspicuity of Scripture speaks to the issue of the central clarity of the essential message of Scripture. As Paul and Peter both say, there are some things that are basic in Scriptures and some things which are not. Those things which are of paramount importance in Scripture are perspicuous, but this hardly means that every person with sufficient intelligence and good motivation will perceive them. You are trying to read something into perspicuity which we are not saying.

    Ray (re: 125),

    I think maybe the comments I have just made to Mike can help to answer what you perceive as me being “vague.” I don’t want to ignore what Mike has said about establishing a philosophical argument as he has. I just want to propose an alternative system that I think makes sense and that does not have the pitfalls this I see in his system. But I want to make sure he understands my system. Right now Mike is taking what I say a direct attack on what he has formulated. My tact has been to say yes, I get what he is saying, I understand it, and I recognize that this is the system which he is defending as being fully in accord with the Teaching Magisterium of the RCC. And I understand what Mike and you are saying about “principled distinction” – this makes sense to me within the RCC understanding of ecclesiastical authority. So I’m not sure about what you mean by your “elusive” statement. What more do you think I need to do to affirm what he is saying? Does my suggestion of an alternative paradigm take away from what I have affirmed previously?

    On perspicuity, I’m not making the case that perspicuity necessarily eliminates the need for this divinely protested human court of authority. The Bible could be entirely clear in its teaching on essential matters but God could still have ordained that Scripture should be mediated through a human court that speaks infallibly on some issues. This is a distinct logical possibility. The other logical possibility is that God speaks through the Scriptures that are clear but without the Church having a charism of infallibility on any matter unless of course someone is just reading Scripture. These two alternatives represent positions from the two competing paradigms I spoke of to Mike.

    Perspicuity is just one characteristic of Scripture (not off course all of Scripture as Peter says). My “clear meaning” comment comes from Athanasius who was telling the Arians that they were not listening to Scripture. Athansius’ central point was not that the Scriptures were clear, although of course they needed to be clear about the points he was making to be useful. His central contention was that the Arians were not listening to the Word of God and rejected what God was telling them through the Scriptures. But the Scriptures were not mediated by any authority identifiable as speaking infallibly. Mike comments was that if Athanasius or any other Father believed that the Scriptures could be mediated without an infallible Magisterium then these Fathers were wrong. This statement makes sense within the paradigm that Mike is operating in.

    Out of time tonight, Ray. I see you are raising the issue of canonicity next. I hoped I would not have to go through this one again. It just seems to take so long….

    Anyway, good night…

  128. Peter said:

    Maybe you can add to your reading: Ott’s “Fundamentals of Catholic Dogma”

    If you want to know what Catholics teach, at least refer to a Catholic source. There should be a rule: If you are going to disagree with Catholic teaching, you should be required to read at least the entire subsection of the Catechism at least three times to make sure it isn’t your understanding which is mistaken.

    Ignatius of Loyola seems worth quoting, also:

    If an orthodox construction cannot be put on a proposition, the one who made it should be asked how he understands it. If he is in error, he should be corrected with all kindness. If this does not suffice, all appropriate means should be used to bring him to a correct interpretation, and so to defend the proposition from error.

  129. Andrew,

    You said: “And I understand what Mike and you are saying about “principled distinction” – this makes sense to me within the RCC understanding of ecclesiastical authority.”

    I think this is where we are talking past each other. Having a “principled distinction” is not a precondition or an assumption of RC ecclesiology. Instead, it is a consequence of it. Having a “principled distinction” is a precondition for knowledge when the knower has more than one plausible, reasonable, etc. option to choose from. To make a choice of belief without a “principled distinction” would be to make an irrational ad hoc decision. Mike’s point is only to say that with regards to theology, you have no “principled method” to make a “principled distinction” between the various plausible theological opinons expressed in various denominational doctrinal preambles.

    “Principled distinction” is not a phrase that only makes sense within an RC ecclesiology. It is is a phrase that makes sense within a human-using-reason paradigm.

  130. re 120

    In 105 I wrote, “Calvin tells us, using TULIP, that we are totally depraved. Fallen human reason is not to be trusted.”

    In 120, I read, “I never claimed that Calvin meant by total depravity, man’s utter inability to reason. To say that man is ‘bereft of reason,’ as Donald does, does not mean that man is unable to reason absolutely, but simply that he is unable to reason properly due to the corruption of sin.”

    It appears to me that we are saying exactly the same thing, – fallen human reason is not to be trusted – albeit a bit differently, except that one of us is not defending Calvin, and the other is. One of us believes Calvin’s position is defensible, the other does not.

    So we return to a principle part of my own contention: Jesus said, “Be perfect!” I do not believe we can respond to that command (and it is a command) if our reason cannot be trusted, or if we are unable to reason properly due to the corruption of sin. However I delivered another principle, that Jesus founded His Church with the authority to speak in His Name, forgive sins, confect the new Passover which must be eaten, and govern – making binding decisions that must be made when the implications of questions of theology and therefore truth are presented. Jesus gave His own authority operating in this world through the Church He founded. It can deliver us to truth beyond our ability to reason. That, it seems to me, is consistent with the idea that Judeo/Christianity was founded on revelation, revealed truth.

    I noted that I got here by reading scripture, and taking Jesus as being honest and therefore trustworthy whenever He spoke. It was scripture that brought an evangelical Pentecostal to the Church Jesus founded. I found Him to be both clear and cogent, and I recognized I was called to obedience without necessarily understanding “how” He would do what He promised to do or said He was doing. It did not matter whether He acted directly or through His apostles and their successors, He is responsible for this entire operation. Our salvation does not hinge on the success or failure of individual human beings, it hinges on Jesus. Not Peter. Not Paul. Not Mary. Not Benedict XVI. Jesus. And I am a Catholic.

    I actually recognize limitations on human reason, at least my own, that should not keep me from listening to Him and then responding obediently. I was listening to Him when He said, “Be perfect!” I did not know the “how,” but recognized the command, and tied it to “I will show you my faith through my works, because faith without works is dead.”

    I am now certain that He won’t save me without my cooperation. I am expected to respond and that requires my reason.

    Cordially,

    dt

  131. Josh, you mention ‘Eastern Orthodoxy’ above….so why in your case Rome over Constantinople? Doesn’t that decision come down to the same sort of ‘invidualistic interpretation’ that leads one to chose Presbyterianism over Lutheranism? Thanks.

  132. Andrew,

    Please address Mike’s point one: is revelation distinguishable from human opinion? If so, how?

    Thanks,

    Fred

  133. Jeremiah (#124):

    Not to defend Andrew’s point, but reading the Father’s it seems clear that they did in fact ascribe to the heretics the motivation of “ill will”.

    I don’t doubt that some of the early Fathers of the Church (ECFs) ascribed ill will to some heretics. There is such a thing as ill will, and it probably did motivate some heresy, even as it does now. But I don’t see much evidence that the ECFs in general ascribed all heterodoxy to ill will. Why? Well, a Christian who believes the revealed sources to be so plain that only the stupid and/or ill-willed would get them wrong would eo ipso deny that ecclesial authority is necessary to secure their right interpretation. But most of the ECFs, including Athanasius, clearly did believe ecclesial authority is necessary for that purpose. Ergo, they didn’t think Scripture and Tradition were plain enough in themselves to obviate the need for ecclesial authority to interpret them.

    That said, the ECFs in general did ascribe ill will to those who refused to submit to the Church. All I can say is that in some cases they were probably right and in some cases they were probably wrong. I think they were probably wrong in those cases where it wasn’t clear to the heretics involved just who spoke for “the” Church. After all, disagreement about which communion of churches even is “the” Church is chiefly what separates Catholicism and Orthodoxy even today. In the days before there were any councils generally acclaimed as “ecumenical,” vagueness about exactly who spoke for “the” Church is, or was, even more understandable. So when the ECFs denounce heretics and/or schismatics as children of darkness, etc., I take that to be more a rhetorical device than a sober description.

    As a protestant I deeply appreciate you guys being charitable enough to assume that I’m a heretic (at least from your perspective) because of a lack of knowledge, but I don’t think that is true of all of us.

    Well, I appreciate your willingness to concede that some of your co-religionists are knaves, but that’s just psychological realism, not theological sophistication. ;-) For that reason, I would certainly not ascribe all heterodoxy to ignorance. I just reject the notion that all heterodoxy is attributable to either foolishness or ill will or both. In taking that view, I’m just being a good Catholic; for the Fathers of Vatican II explicitly said that we may no longer “presume” non-Catholic Christians to be at fault for not being Catholic.

    Best,
    Mike

  134. OK Ray, back to your post (re: 125),

    Problem 1: How did you determine the scope of what writings constitute “God’s Word”? That is, on what authority transcending human opinion?

    Without (I hope) getting into the detail that we have before on this issue, let me try to compare the Catholic vs Protestant approaches on this issue. Both approaches look to a historical collecting and sifting process in the first several centuries of the Church. The Catholic position (my interpretation of it) is that an infallible God worked through an infallible Church to produce an infallible canon. The Protestant position is that an infallible God worked through a fallible Church to produce an infallible canon. As I see it, in both cases the final product will be infallible. In other words, there is no need for an infallible Church to produce a canon of books which is infallible. So the charism of ecclesiastical infallibility would be redundant in this case. But of course there must be an appeal to divine authority. This is true in the writing of the individual books as well as their collection into the canon. The only question is where the locus of this infallibility resides and there is obviously more than one logical possibility here. Since the issue of the Apocrypha/Deuterocanonicals often comes up in this context, let me say that I am speaking about the just the Protocanonicals here since the canonical status of the Deuteros remained in doubt until the 16th century in the Protestant case and the 17th century in the Catholic one. As the Catholic Encyclopedia says, there were “few” in the Medieval Church who would have given unqualified approval to the canonical status of the Deuteros and thus Trent needed to weigh in definitively on the matter. But there was no debate on the Protocanonicals after the 4th century, idiosyncrasies like Luther/James aside.

    How – exactly – does God “use” His Word (some set of writings), to “convince millions of people as to a given truth”?

    I read a story recently about a Muslim postal worker who routinely stole mail to supplement his income. One day he stole a Christian Bible and took it home. In his reading of this Bible he became convinced of the truth of the message, committed his life to Christ, and went out to find a Christian community. This story would be an example from your “b” scenario. Accounts like this are legion, God works immediately through His Word and I would hope that you would not doubt that God can and does work in such a way. But I would also add that such accounts are not typical of the way that God works. Generally God works through the preaching/teaching of the Word. This could be, and more often than not, happens in a corporate context, but may happen one on one or in a small group. People hear the Word of God and are convicted in their heart of the truth of the message and turn to Him. This is an example of your “a” scenario. The question is for you then is, given what I write to Mike L above about the Protestants/Early Church understanding of such things, is this preaching/teaching in the context of in a Christian congregation, and God working in the life of the individual, sufficient for the person to come to a true knowledge of those essential elements of the Christian faith? If not then why not? What I’m asking you to do is for the moment suspend what you believe as a Catholic concerning revelation and authority and answer the question within the conceptual framework of a Reformed Protestant.

    If you admit that God utilizes some intermediate authority in order to authoritatively interpret His “Word” so as to enable the 21st century Christian to distinguish divine revelation from human opinion, then you are already in agreement with Catholics regarding the first step of Mike’s argument. Namely that IF we are to distinguish divine revelation from human opinion in the here and now, THEN there must necessarily be some present day intermediary authority which can call forth the needed distinction. In which case, your next logical question should be: “what candidates in the world around me even make a claim to having that kind of authority?” And that rules out all of Protestantism almost by self definition!

    Yes, there is some “intermediate. But when you speak of “candidates” you are starting with RCC presupposition and asking me to answer you. But I cannot answer this. Do you understand why I cannot answer it? And given what you know of Protestant ecclesiology, what do you think is the “intermediate” that I will propose?

    If the way we distinguish divine revelation from human opinion is that God directly illumines people regarding the correct interpretation of scripture, then we need to account for why it that so many self-proclaimed Christians read the same Scriptures and come to entirely different conclusions….

    Absolutely correct. This is why in my Muslim example above, if the new convert stays on his own and does not find a Christian congregation he will be lost. The lone ranger approach is how cults get started.

    Here I want to highlight the fact that according to this statement, you have now made the admission that it IS important that our religious convictions rise above the level of “opinion”

    Yes, of course. As pagans or atheists look at Christianity there is nothing in their minds that separates our opinions about worldly matters from our opinions about religion. As Christians we have to make such distinctions and be able to explain them to others.

    On the one hand you claim (without any basis or argument I might add) that God never intended to offer men the level of certitude regarding religious knowledge that we Catholics are seeking (which I would argue is really just the basic human instinct for certitude regarding questions of ultimate importance).

    By the “kind” of certitude, I’m not suggesting that you and I don’t need certitude (Mike L’s comments on certitude aside). “Kind” refers to the way in which God would have us to arrive at such certainty. That is different for Catholic and Protestant and different for RCC and Early Church I would argue.

    One more thing about perspicuity – Something in the Christian faith has to be perspicuous or the only people who will come into the Kingdom of God will be those with advanced degrees and training in theology and philosophy. For many ordinary Catholics it is the concept of the Church which is perspicuous – they know something of the history of the Christian Church and to them it is clear and straightforward that this is the Church which Christ founded. I would guess that you will not argue with a Catholic layperson who sees the Roman Catholic concept of the Church as something perspicuous. I don’t know of many Catholic laypeople who have to come to their conviction of the truths of the RCC by contemplating philosophical arguments such as those that Mike lays out.

    Obviously, if one has already established how it is that one knows “God’s truth” (and not just human opinion), then consensus would surely not matter. But nothing you have written, especially as it pertains to perspicuity, has provided any solution as to how that all-important distinction can be made.

    OK so let me continue with my convert from Islam example above. This person becomes convinced of the truth of the Triune God as He is described in Scripture. He then becomes part of a local Evangelical congregation and begins to receive all of the blessings that we would associate with such community. He hears again and again the message from God’s Word concerning the truths of God’s Word and his faith and his resolve to serve God are strengthened. Years of the Spirit and the Word strengthen this knowledge. But it would seem from your standpoint that he cannot really be able to make the distinction between revelation and opinion on the Trinity because the congregation he attends cannot reference an infallible human authority, they can only reference an infallible divine (biblical) authority. Is that correct? If that’s true then what of the years of the Spirit and Word convicting him of the truth on this matter? What is this person lacking?

    It is an IF/THEN philosophical proposal. Here is the crucial point: at this stage in the epistemic argument Catholics are not claiming anything about the Catholic Church! All we are saying is that – on purely philosophical grounds – IF there is going to be a principled distinction between divine revelation on the one hand, and human opinion on the other in the here and now; THEN there must necessarily be some divinely protected authority capable of making the distinction.

    Right. So the question between us becomes can this divinely protected authority be the Word and Spirit working through a fallible Church as this Church is defined in the pages of Scripture? And if not then why not? Understand I am only asking you whether it is conceptually possible that God could work this way. If you say “yes,” then we can move forward. If God cannot then why not?

  135. Matt (re: #131):

    The Catholic Church does teach that apostolic succession exists in Eastern Orthodoxy, but that she is in schism. As I stated above, it is ultimately the primacy of the Peter as the head of the apostles that drew me to Rome over the East. In the case of apostolic authority, it is necessary to know whom to follow if schism or division occurs. It seems to me that as a follower of Christ, I must entrust myself to Peter, whom Christ instructed to ‘feed his sheep,’ and to ‘strengthen the brethren.’ To quote St. Ambrose once again, “Where Peter is, there is the Church, there is God.”

    I think the person who joins the Catholic Church or Eastern Orthodoxy is in a substantially different situation than any Protestant. The Catholic or the Orthodox is searching for the true Church who can claim Christ’s authority through apostolic succession; the Protestant is not searching for a church to submit to, but rather a church that submits to his or her own beliefs and convictions about God and religion. In other words, the ‘true’ Church for the Catholic and Eastern Orthodox is not something contingent upon the individual’s convictions, it objectively exists and can be found–whether it is recognized or not; and once it is found, the individual must submit to that authority since it is divine authority. For the Protestant, on the other hand, the quest for the true Church is a quest for a body that agrees most with what one already believe to be true about God and the Bible.

    When I decided to become Catholic, I surrendered my own beliefs and ideas (no matter how interesting they seemed to me) to Christ’s Church. If I discover that a belief that I hold is out of line with the authoritative teaching of the Church, I will submit to the Church’s authority rather than find a body where I would not need to change my own opinions.

  136. Brent said: Mike’s point is only to say that with regards to theology, you have no “principled method” to make a “principled distinction” between the various plausible theological opinons expressed in various denominational doctrinal preambles.

    Brent,

    Mike talked generally about the importance of having a principled way to distinguish one’s own opinions from divine revelation. And I asked him in essence to describe what the object of making these principled distinction was. There are all sorts of reasons why we might want to make principled distinctions. For instance in I John 5 we are told that the words here are written (and here I’m paraphrasing a little) so that we Christians might be able to make distinctions between what is and is not necessary for eternal life. Or we might want to make such principled distinctions so that we can know what should and should not happen in a local congregation. Or we might want to be able, as you suggest, to determine the truth between competing truth claims held my two denominations. Or we might want to make such distinctions so that the bishops of the congregations of Christianity can formulate binding doctrine for all the world.

    So when we talk about making principled distinctions I ask the question as to what end these distinctions are to be used for. This is why I stated earlier to Mike that a discussions of the remit of the Church ought logically to precede a discussion of the methodology by which she carries out her remit. So of course we all have to be able to make principled distinctions, otherwise being a Christian would be meaningless. Where Protestant and Catholic don’t agree at the outset is the goal of making such distinctions. If we can’t agree on the goal how can we have a meaningful discussion about about the means to the goal?

  137. Andrew,

    You said:

    So when we talk about making principled distinctions I ask the question as to what end these distinctions are to be used for

    But you had just written:

    Mike talked generally about the importance of having a principled way to distinguish one’s own opinions from divine revelation.

    Then you stated:

    Where Protestant and Catholic don’t agree at the outset is the goal of making such distinctions.

    Do you disagree that it is important to have a principled method to make a principled distinction between theological opinion and revelation? Is that the Protestant and Catholic disagreement for which you refer? I note that you started in your first paragraph talking about particular cases where you would prefer to have such a method, but we are asking the question in general. Of course, the Catholic doesn’t believe that by having the capability to make the principled distinction, he can just make it willy-nilly. In other words, and as you already know, the Magisterium is not some doctrine coke machine. Nonetheless, we can say, “The Church has not spoken”. Which is still a principled distinction.

    Is the principled distinction, on your view (and as you seem to allude), those Scripture passages that appear or seem perspicuous? Would your “certainty” rest upon the clarity of a particular passage or set of passages of Scripture? If so, do you think that this necessarily circumscribes you to the “text” in such a way that our goals differ (Catholic and Protestant) so significantly so as to make irreconciliable our definitions of a “principled method”?

    I’m asking these questions because your communication strategy in this combox seems excessively obfuscatory, so I’m hoping answers to my questions will help us all understand your position.

  138. Andrew McCallum,

    You write:

    I will take up your last question about perspicuity and “ill will” since this just seems to be a clarification issue which I should be able to address quickly. Like the intelligence matter it’s not about ill will. Someone like in my Jewish example could be a person of ill will, which obviously some of the Pharisees were. But they were not all, and we read of Jews at that time who were seriously seeking to be holy but were blinded to God’s full truth. Again, they had a veil over their eyes, as Scripture states. When the veil was lifted they saw clearly. The Word of God was clear on who the Messiah was, and once the veil was lifted they saw it. …Those things which are of paramount importance in Scripture are perspicuous, but this hardly means that every person with sufficient intelligence and good motivation will perceive them. You are trying to read something into perspicuity which we are not saying.

    So what are you trying to say about “perspicuity”? You make this point to Ray Stamper, in your post 134:

    One more thing about perspicuity – Something in the Christian faith has to be perspicuous or the only people who will come into the Kingdom of God will be those with advanced degrees and training in theology and philosophy.

    How do fallen men believe anything about what is supernaturally revealed without God first giving them grace? The Catholic Church rejects the heresy of semipelaginaism – she rejects the idea that even the beginning of faith is something that can be brought about by human will unaided by grace. From the Catholic perspective, believing in what is supernaturally revealed in scriptures is not fundamentally a question concerning education; it is, rather, fundamentally a question about grace. A fallen man cannot even make a step towards desiring saving faith unless God first gives him actual grace. (Here I am making the Catholic distinction between actual grace and habitual grace). God’s grace explains why the Muslim you gave as an example in your post 134 could read the bible and desire to become a Christian. But giving a man the actual grace necessary so that he can believe that he needs to become a Christian, is not the same thing as giving a man the ability to infallibly interpret the bible.

    As Christians we all need to know what Christian beliefs are orthodox and what beliefs are heterodox, otherwise we don’t really know what we are supposed to believe as Christians. Five-hundred years of the Protestant experiment with the sola scriptura novelty has left the world with thousands upon thousands of bickering and divided Protestant sects that cannot all agree upon a single point of doctrine. How do you explain that? If the problem isn’t due to the ignorance and ill will of the Protestant disputants, then what, exactly, is the problem within Protestantism that leads to doctrinal chaos?

    Back to your point about Jews and the Jewish scriptures. You say that there were intelligent and holy Jews that didn’t understand that Jesus was their Messiah, even though the Jewish scriptures that they possessed testify to that truth. This is true, but we need to back up a step. Before Jesus ever became incarnate as the Messiah, the Jews believed that a Messiah was promised to them. The reason that the Jews believed that the Messiah was coming to them was because they believed that the Jewish scriptures were something more than just the idle speculations of men. The Jews believed that their Messiah would come because they believed their prophets spoke with divine authority. But there were also false prophets that plagued Israel (e.g. Jer 23:21), which means that there was some way to distinguish between a true prophet of God and a false prophet.

    My point here is that Jews awaiting the Messiah didn’t have to be prophets themselves to believe that true prophets existed. The ordinary faithful Jew believed that their prophets spoke revelation that was guaranteed by God to be inerrant when their prophets exercised the charismatic gifts of prophesy and inspiration. Which leads me to my other point: ordinary faithful Jews believed that there existed authorized teachers from God that taught infallibly when they exercised particular charismatic gifts of the Holy Spirit.

    To be sure, I am not saying that the ordinary faithful Jews possessed belief in the Messiah without being given grace. I am saying that they had faith in the coming Messiah because they had been given actual grace, the same kind of actual grace that is given to a Muslim postal worker so that he may desire salvation through Christ. Men need grace to believe in the Messiah, but receiving the grace necessary to believe in the Messiah does not mean that one can infallibly interpret the scriptures. Which should be obvious, since the Jews that lived just prior to the Incarnation of the Messiah, believed that the Messiah was coming to them to save them. But they also misunderstood many things about their Messiah because they interpreted their inerrant scriptures wrongly. Even after some Jews came to accept Jesus as their Messiah, some of these Jewish converts still interpreted their inerrant scriptures wrongly. Paul and Barnabas tangled with some of these Jewish converts to Christianity, but even Paul’s superior knowledge of the scriptures was insufficient to settle the dispute that he had with them.

    Andrew, if the scriptures are so “perspicuous” about fundamental beliefs, how do you explain away the Christians that we read about in Acts 15:1, the Christians that opposed Paul and Barnabas over a doctrine concerning salvation?

    Why was the Apostle Paul’s interpretation of the scriptures insufficient to silence these Christians in his dispute with them?

    Why did the brethren in Asia Minor tell Paul and Barnabas “to go up to Jerusalem to the apostles and the elders about this question” (Acts 15:2)?

    Why could the apostles and elders in Jerusalem settle this dispute among Christians, when Paul could not do that on his own?

  139. Fr. Bryan,

    Maybe what you have not proved was that by “your own personal interpretation” is that what I say about scripture is ONLY my own interpretation does NOT in fact reflect on the fact of what scripture states.

    So, anytime a Roman Catholic says something about the teaching of the Bible, that is ONLY his/her own personal interpretation as well, having nothing to do with the teaching of the words found in the Bible?

    It is fine for RCC’s to make that claim, because RCC had for a very long time forbid people to read the scripture, and you are now doing the same with postmodern philosophy. But prove to me that words can’t be understood. That the writings of the author can’t be understood from the written word. Prove that, then that will answer your accusation that my interpretation is ONLY my interoperation rather than me pointing out what the Bible in fact teach.

    You mean that you reject that God’s people are to study the Bible to understand what the word of God says? And what is wrong with that in your personal subjective mind?

    There you go with the either/or. Your either/or is false: either everyone os to be a scholar, and know Greek and Hebrew, or they all have to submit to the false teachings of Rome. I would that all God’s people know Greek/Hebrew, but let them just learn the language of their land, as the people of God has translated the Greek/Hebrew into their language. Your fundamental problem is that you are assuming that people can’t great the Bible and understand what it states. That is just false. If you are able to read what I am writing, and respond to it, then you are disproving your own assumption.

    Sure James White, which Roman Catholic has been able to take him on, and win a debate?

  140. Joshua L, (#120)

    You claim that you did not use the words “bereft of reason”, and that is right, but would you be assuming it, when you claim that in the teaching of human depravity sinner are unable to read and understand the basic meaning of the text of the Bible. You state that that simply means that he is unable to reason properly due to the corruption of sin. That claim is not clear, to what degree are you talking about when you say “unable to reason properly”?

    Dort does not teach that humans are not able to read and understand the meaning of written words, does it? IF you think so, where?

  141. Hi Joshua thanks for the article. The following from St Francis De Sales from his work “The Catholic Controversy” which he wrote to rebut Calvinism still seems relevant in light of the comments here .
    If then the Church can err, O Calvin, O Luther, to whom shall I have recourse in my difficulties? To the Scripture, say they. But what shall I, poor man, do, for it is precisely about the Scripture that my difficulty lies. I am not in doubt whether I must believe the Scripture or not, for who knows not that it is the Word of Truth? What keeps me in anxiety is the understanding of this Scripture, is the conclusions to be drawn from it, which are innumerable and diverse and opposite on the same subject, and everybody takes his view, one this, another that, though out of all there is but one which is sound. Ah, who will give me to know the good among so many bad? Who will tell me the real verity through so many specious and masked vanities? Everybody would embark on the ship of the Holy Spirit; there is but one, and only that one shall reach the port, all the rest are on their way to shipwreck. Ah, Ah, what danger am I in of erring! All shout out their claims with equal assurance and thus deceive the greater part, for all boasts that theirs is the ship. Whoever says that our Master has not left us guides in so dangerous and difficult a way, says that he wishes us to perish. Whoever says that he has put us aboard at the mercy of wind and tide, without giving us a skilful pilot able to use properly his compass and chart, says that the Savior is wanting in foresight. Whoever says that this good father has sent us into this school of the Church, knowing that error was taught there, says that he intended to foster our vice and our ignorance. Who has ever heard of an academy in which everybody taught and nobody was a scholar? Such would be the Christian commonwealth if the Church can err. For if the Church herself err, who shall not err? And if each one in it err, or can err, to whom shall I betake myself for instruction? To Calvin? But why to him rather than to Luther, or Brentius, or Pacimontanus?

  142. Do you disagree that it is important to have a principled method to make a principled distinction between theological opinion and revelation? Is that the Protestant and Catholic disagreement for which you refer?

    Brent – Let me draw an analogy. If you asked me to recommend a means of transportation for you I would first ask you where you planning to go and what your goals were for this means. The establishment of a set of goals would logically precede the discussion for the means of getting to those goals. Does that make sense? OK, so now in our discussion the ability to distinguish revelation from opinion allows the Church to do something. It is a means to an end, right? You believe that the RCC possesses the ability to make such distinctions for a purpose. If there was no purpose we would not be talking about it. So all I’m asking is this – What is this end, what is this purpose? Is this not a reasonable question?

    Protestants and Catholics disagree on the goal and the purpose for which principled distinctions are made. And if we don’t agree on this goal it’s not going to make much sense to have a discussion about the means to get there. Does this make sense?

  143. Peter (re: #140):

    You write:

    You claim that you did not use the words “bereft of reason”, and that is right, but would you be assuming it, when you claim that in the teaching of human depravity sinner are unable to read and understand the basic meaning of the text of the Bible. You state that that simply means that he is unable to reason properly due to the corruption of sin. That claim is not clear, to what degree are you talking about when you say “unable to reason properly”?

    Dort does not teach that humans are not able to read and understand the meaning of written words, does it? IF you think so, where?

    When did anyone claim that a person cannot read or understand the meaning of written words? I don’t believe that’s true, neither does anyone else here. Otherwise we wouldn’t be arguing with you.

    If ‘unable to reason properly’ is unclear to you, you should turn your questions to the theologians of Dordtrecht and ask what they mean by “blindness of mind, horrible darkness, vanity and perverseness of judgment.” Their answer is my answer.

  144. Andrew McCallum, you write:

    Let me draw an analogy. If you asked me to recommend a means of transportation for you I would first ask you where you planning to go and what your goals were for this means. The establishment of a set of goals would logically precede the discussion for the means of getting to those goals.

    It is obvious to me that no one would ever ask you to recommend a mode of transportation without also telling you at the same time where he or she wants to go. But let me stick with your analogy. Suppose I have torn a page out of a phone book that lists all the “Christian Churches” that are within a fifty mile radius of my house. There are several hundred listings on that page – Catholic Churches, Orthodox Churches, and Protestants Churches of various sects. My goal is to go to a church that not only teaches that the bible is the inspired inerrant word of God, I also want to go to a church that interprets the bible correctly.

    Suppose, that I have used the internet to find out which of these “Christian Churches” professes that the bible is the inspired, inerrant word of God. So far, so good. Suppose that each of the churches on my “possible list” also has a website that lists the doctrines that are taught in that church, or gives links to the official teachings of that church. Now I have a pretty good idea about what these various “Christian Churches” consider to be orthodox doctrine, and I also now know that none of the churches of the different sects agree on what constitutes orthodox doctrine.

    Andrew, what directions should I follow to find the church that teaches what is truly orthodox doctrine?

    If all men are, as Luther and Calvin interpret Scripture to say, helplessly corrupt and depraved, how can I trust anyone? Why should I trust what Martin Luther says that the Bible teaches, or what John Calvin says the Bible teaches or any of the Reformed confessions, for that matter? Is it not the height of naiveté, even hypocrisy, to believe that everyone is totally depraved and yet continue to trust that any human interpretation of Scripture is somehow guaranteed by the Holy Spirit?

  145. […] recently saw concern surrounding this story on some Presbyterian lists. Well, it’s not a trend yet, but if the post here is legit there […]

  146. Peter –

    First of all, I didn’t mention it in my last reply, but thanks for answering my question and having this discussion with me and others here.

    Maybe what you have not proved was that by “your own personal interpretation” is that what I say about scripture is ONLY my own interpretation does NOT in fact reflect on the fact of what scripture states.

    It isn’t my intention argue that your personal interpretation is wrong. We can talk about whether it is or isn’t in another place. My intention is to show that God didn’t intend for the Bible to be interpreted in doctrinal matters by individual men and women. This does not mean that I, or you, or anyone else shouldn’t read the Bible to make sense of our own individual lives or to help us discern how God wants us to live. All I’m arguing is that God did not intend for orthodox doctrine to be developed by individual Christians and individual interpretation. Doctrine is to develop in the community of faith – in the Church that Jesus established.

    So, anytime a Roman Catholic says something about the teaching of the Bible, that is ONLY his/her own personal interpretation as well, having nothing to do with the teaching of the words found in the Bible?

    Depends on what you mean here. An individual Roman Catholic can certainly error in doctrine, and many do – even Catholics with advanced degrees in theology and scripture make mistakes all the time. But the Church – the entire Community that Jesus established, properly ordered hierarchically – cannot err. The Holy Spirit makes it impossible for her to err. Roman Catholics should submit to their leaders, just as Jesus’ own disciples submitted to Him. Josh said this well above in response to another commenter:

    When I decided to become Catholic, I surrendered my own beliefs and ideas (no matter how interesting they seemed to me) to Christ’s Church. If I discover that a belief that I hold is out of line with the authoritative teaching of the Church, I will submit to the Church’s authority rather than find a body where I would not need to change my own opinions.

    But prove to me that words can’t be understood.

    I have no intention to prove that words can’t be understood. After all, I do believe that the words of the Bible are properly understood and interpreted properly. I think the burden of proof might be on you hear to show that words can’t be misunderstood.

    You said:

    You mean that you reject that God’s people are to study the Bible to understand what the word of God says? And what is wrong with that in your personal subjective mind?

    No. I don’t mean that. I answered this earlier in this comment. If you need me to elaborate, I will be happy to do so. What is “wrong” with orthodox doctrine being determined by personal interpretation of the Bible is that it is not the way God intended orthodox doctrine to be determined. God intended orthodox doctrine to be decided by the Pillar of Truth, which is the Church that he established.

    There you go with the either/or. Your either/or is false: either everyone os to be a scholar, and know Greek and Hebrew, or they all have to submit to the false teachings of Rome. I would that all God’s people know Greek/Hebrew, but let them just learn the language of their land, as the people of God has translated the Greek/Hebrew into their language.

    I think you may have misunderstood me. I do not believe that everyone has to be a scholar in Greek or Hebrew. I was arguing that, if Protestantism is true, then every Christian is ultimately responsible for coming up with Orthodox doctrine on their own which would entail that everyone must seek as much education as they can. I don’t think God did it that way.

    Humor me for a moment. Say that I am an illiterate man from a country that does not have a good education system set up. I work hard to provide for my family, and don’t have time to seek out a basic education. There isn’t a Church in my village, but there the two neighboring towns have communites of Christians, each with different doctrines. Each Church is about 5 miles away. Every Sunday, my family has to walk five miles to Church, and five miles back. Which Church do we go to? How do I, a man who can’t read the Bible, determine which of these Churches is instructing us properly in living the Christian life?

    If protestantism is true. I would first have to learn how to read. Then I would have to acquire a Bible. Luckily, both Churches give out Bibles for free. Unfortunately, both of them are translated slightly differently. How do I figure out which one is translated properly? I’m just going to have to pray that God will let me know which one is more accurate and trust that he leads me to the right one, even though probably every person at both of these Churches prayed this same prayer and were led to different conclusions.

    Thankfully, both of them have footnotes, but in order to prove that they are accurate footnotes, I’m also going to have to buy a book on the history of Christianity and Judaism, which means I’m going to have to sacrifice even more money to get this book AND I’m going to have to travel all the way to the city to acquire it.

    Then I would have to spend hours that I don’t have going over everything each pastor said and checking the scriptures to make sure he is right on. But, uh-oh – it looks like BOTH of these pastors are saying some things that aren’t clear in scripture. One of these pastors is saying that we can baptize infants, but it doesn’t look like there is explicit evidence that the early Christians did this. The other is baptizing in the name of Jesus despite a clear command from Jesus that we should baptize in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit.

    Looks like I’m going to have to start my own Church.

    I really, really, REALLY, REALLY have a hard time believing that God actually designed it this way. I think it is much more likely that he established ONE Church so that I don’t have to go through all that stuff. I can just go to Church knowing that what my pastor is teaching is the faith that the apostles taught – the faith that has been handed down through the ages.

    Now, unfortunately, things are the way they are and we all find ourselves asking, “which Church is the right Church?” But my point above stands. In the protestant perspective, God is responsible for the confusion. In the “God established one Church” perspective, the devil is responsible for the confusion.

    Your fundamental problem is that you are assuming that people can’t great the Bible and understand what it states. That is just false.

    No. My fundamental problem is that I don’t believe that God intended doctrine to be developed by individual Christians. I believe that God intended orthodox doctrine to develop within the entire Church, properly ordered hierarchically. I don’t believe that God intended poor, illiterate people to be responsible for coming up with orthodox doctrine on there own.

    If you are able to read what I am writing, and respond to it, then you are disproving your own assumption.

    Unless I’ve misunderstood you at some point. Have you ever been misunderstood?

    Sure James White, which Roman Catholic has been able to take him on, and win a debate?

    Pretty much all of them.

  147. Andrew,

    What is common to your most recent comments is that they – again – simply skirt the epistemic nature of the question which we Catholics have been raising with you repeatedly. Instead of substantively engaging the question, you now seem to be attempting an end-run around the question by asking what you apparently take to be a more basic question still, namely: “why does the epistemic question matter in the first place?” Addressing Brent you write:

    The establishment of a set of goals would logically precede the discussion for the means of getting to those goals. Does that make sense? OK, so now in our discussion the ability to distinguish revelation from opinion allows the Church to do something. It is a means to an end, right? You believe that the RCC possesses the ability to make such distinctions for a purpose. If there was no purpose we would not be talking about it. So all I’m asking is this – What is this end, what is this purpose? Is this not a reasonable question?

    That I take it, is the primary upshot of your last response. Yet this is somewhat strange considering that in you previous remarks to Mike, and in your most recent remarks to me, you remain quite concerned to show that the doctrine of Scripture’s perspicuity saves Protestants (at least Reformed Protestants!) from holding theological views on core matters which reduce to mere “opinion”. It appears to me that you are playing two horns at once as a means of evading sustained criticism of Scripture’s perspicuity as a workable solution to the epistemic problem at large. You first blow the “perspicuity” horn, and then – as soon as someone attempts to respond to it in a sustained way – you blow the “but what is the purpose of making the principled distinction after all?” horn.

    Are you really unclear as to what the purpose might be for desiring a principled means of distinguishing divine revelation from human opinion? You know very well that the answer to that question is no mystery, since you have answered it yourself. Consider what you wrote to Brent:

    So when we talk about making principled distinctions I ask the question as to what end these distinctions are to be used for. This is why I stated earlier to Mike that a discussions of the remit of the Church ought logically to precede a discussion of the methodology by which she carries out her remit. So of course we all have to be able to make principled distinctions, otherwise being a Christian would be meaningless

    In the last line of that paragraph you affirm that without principled distinctions, being a Christian would be meaningless. Viola! Yes! – that’s the bottom line, you DO get it! Without some principled means to make the distinction between divine revelation and mere human opinion, being a Christian would be literally meaningless – you could not affirm in a meaningful way (that’s the key – you could affirm it – just not meaningfully) what it means to be a Christian – it would just be your arbitrary definition. So why in the world are you asking – in the first sentence of that same paragraph – “what these distinctions are used for”? Oy Vey! They are used to establish the grounds by which the content of any revelatory claim (in particular Christianity) is first identified and then put on a footing above that of arbitrary human opinion in our own minds, as well as in the minds of our fellow human beings!

    How then can you argue that a discussion of the remit of the Church ought logically to precede a discussion of the methodology by which she carries out her remit? Huh? Discussions of the Church or her remit (whatever that means) presuppose the general meaningfulness of Christianity! Hence, it makes no sense to put such a cart before the horse! Why do you keep going there? We are NOT presently discussing the Church or her remit or the Catholic faith! Not because we can’t, or won’t, or because we are just being stubborn. We are following a basic human logical progression by first asking HOW it might be possible, given any sort of purported divine revelation whatsoever, to make a principled distinction between what is really part of the content of that revelation, and what is merely human opinion passed off as revelation.

    That question presupposes zero pre-commitment to the Catholic or Protestant authority paradigm per se – or any other potential authority paradigm. It begins by arguing merely that unless there be some divinely protected authority in the here and now by which that distinction might in principle be made; affirming any sort of revelatory theism will be meaningless (literally, the expressed content of that revelation will devolve into a perceived ocean of arbitrary and equivalent human opinion). Therefore, the WHY of the distinction-making effort is self evident (as you yourself have affirmed). The initial question simply must be HOW!

    For that reason, the anecdotal story about the Muslim postal worker only holds relevance for this discussion to the degree that it serves to promote the thesis of Scripture’s perspicuity as a potential solution to HOW the crucial distinction between divine revelation and human opinion might be made. What may or may not be the case about the inner workings of God in this man’s life entail ontological facts which simply “are what they are” regardless of human knowers. Hence, offering my opinions as to what the man may or may not be lacking, neither changes the ontological facts (whatever they may be), nor in any way advances discussion of the epistemic issue at hand. Hence, while I am happy to continue a dialogue concerning Scripture’s perspicuity as a proposed solution to the epistemic problem, I simply see no point in moving forward with discussion until we can agree that the epistemic question concerning how one might achieve a principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion is:

    a.) Fundamentally important as preserving the very meaning of Christianity

    b.) Necessarily prior to any assumptions about the role of any Christian Church or churches; since the use of all such terms and concepts derive their meaningfulness from the meaningfulness of Christianity generally; which generalized meaningfulness is what any proposed solution to the epistemic problem seeks to establish by exploration of the general types of communicative – here and now authorities – which might potentially yield the needed distinction (for instance a book, or person, or a group of persons, etc. – in conjunction with whatever attributes might necessarily have to attach to such authority types in order to render them capable of effecting the needed distinction). In short, agreement that the question must first be approached philosophically, rather than theologically.

    Pax Christi,

    Ray,

  148. Re: Post 145

    I am not sure who posted #145, but I was surprised, to put it mildly, when I followed the links at “Loci Rari” to this from Jason Stellman (whom I believe posted at CTC as JJS):

    https://www.creedcodecult.com/2012/06/heartfelt-farewell-to-pca.html

    This quote by Jason Stellman, I believe, is germane to what is being discussed in the most recent posts to this thread:

    In my own reading of the New Testament, the believer is never instructed to consult Scripture alone in order to adjudicate disputes or determine matters of doctrine (one obvious reason for this is that the early church existed at a time when the 27-book New Testament had either not been begun, completed, or recognized as canonical). The picture the New Testament paints is one in which the ordained leadership of the visible church gathers to bind and loose in Jesus’ Name and with his authority, with the Old Testament Scriptures being called upon as witnesses to the apostles’ and elders’ message (Matt. 18:18-19; Acts 15:6-29), with no indication in Scripture that such ecclesiastical authority was to cease and eventually give way to Sola Scriptura (meaning that the doctrine fails its own test). Moreover, unless the church’s interpretation of Scripture is divinely protected from error at least under certain conditions, then what we call the “orthodox” understanding of doctrines like the Trinity or the hypostatic union is reduced to mere fallible human opinion. I have searched long and hard, but have found no solution within the Sola Scriptura paradigm to this devastating conclusion.

  149. In light of some of the discussion I was listening to James R Whites critique of Joshua’s journey. One comment he made I found interesting. He said that if we claim that we cannot interpret the bible without an external authority we are dishonouring the Holy Spirit and his ability to reveal to us in a way that is clear to understand. In a previous podcast he was criticising the Southern Baptists for the error in their doctrines of salvation. Can we say that the Holy Spirit has revealed his word in such a way that even the ploughboy can understand it? Are we dishonouring the Holy Spirit if we claim we can’t reach consensus on a given doctrine from the Bible? It would seem to me that a lot of contentious doctrines such as the Eucharist as a sacrifice and forgiveness of sins is at least implicit in scripture but that the writings and witness of early Christians lends support to our interpretation. One again Francis De Sales is relevant,
    “…… I am not in doubt whether I must believe the Scripture or not, for who knows not that it is the Word of Truth? What keeps me in anxiety is the understanding of this Scripture, is the conclusions to be drawn from it, which are innumerable and diverse and opposite on the same subject, and everybody takes his view, one this, another that, though out of all there is but one which is sound. Ah, who will give me to know the good among so many bad? Who will tell me the real verity through so many specious and masked vanities?”

  150. Thank you, Joshua. Just FYI in case you don’t know about it, we celebrate the Tridentine Mass at the Mission San Juan Capistrano at 8 am every Sunday in the Chapel. It is said by a Norbertine Priest from Saint Michael’s Abbey. As you may well know, the Junipero Serra Chapel is the oldest building in the State of California still in use and the last place (still standing) Father Serra is known to have said Mass. It is quite a blessing and an honor to celebrate the Mass of the Ages in such a place. (I am in the choir.) God Bless and welcome home.

  151. Joshua,

    This quote from Van Til captures his criticisms:
    It is our conviction that in the Roman doctrine of analogia entis (analogy of being) is concentrated all the heresy that is Romanism, and that in the Reformed conception of analogia fidei (analogy of faith) is concentrated all that is biblical. – The Reformed Pastor & Modern Thought

    What are your thoughts on the analogy of being ?

    “Principled Distinction” exchange team,

    …you are treasuring up for yourself wrath in the day of wrath and revelation of the righteous judgment of God….Rom. 2:5

    When the day arrives, how will anyone know the difference between this revelatory judgment and mere human judgment ?

    Thanks,
    Eric

  152. Ray (and Mateo),

    …. and in your most recent remarks to me, you remain quite concerned to show that the doctrine of Scripture’s perspicuity….

    So first let me say that I did not raise the issue of perspicuity at all. This question was asked of me so I thought I should answer it. The question was prompted by my Athanasius quote, but as I explained the issue with Athanasius was not about perspicuity, it was about the use of Scripture. I would rather have not gotten diverted and I would rather not get diverted again, so I would appreciate it if we could drop the perspicuity issue now. I think I’ve answered it quite thoroughly once again.

    I take it you read Mike L’s steps 1 – 4 (#121) concerning his order of inquiry and then my order of inquiry 1 – 4 (#127). Any comments on how I proceed vs how Mike proceeds? Is such a comparison a good way to begin to compare respective positions? It sounds like you read my example of the convert to Christianity who is convinced by the Word under the guidance of the Spirit concerning the Christian faith. I asked Mike if such conviction would amount to mere opinion and Mike said of course not, which I was glad to hear him say.

    So you seem surprised by my statements that we ought to have principled distinctions. Well if I was not making principled distinctions in #127 then what do you think I was doing? I think I’ve been reasonably clear as to the purpose here. Anyway, you want to try to separate out the general and philosophical question of how distinctions are made. OK, let’s give it a try. I’m not saying anything I have not already said to you and Mike, but I’ll say it again without anything on the “why” – From the Protestant standpoint we see God working to establish the truth in the heart and minds of people using His Word under guidance of His Spirit. But of course there is a Church here as that Church is defined in Scripture. It is God working through the Scriptures via the Holy Spirit in the context of the Church that provides an understanding of the content of revelation and, to put it in the Mike L verbiage, distinguishes what is to be believed about revelation from mere human opinion. So as per my previous example, we can say that the belief that Jesus is the Messiah is not just mere human opinion and we can demonstrate it powerfully through the means that God has ordained. The conversion of countless thousands of Jews in NT times testifies to this. They heard the Word preached and they believed. God used the preaching of the Word and the communion that flowed out of these conversions to convince the Church of God concerning the truth that Jesus was the Messiah (and other matters of course). This pattern happens over and over again in Scripture – the people hear the Word and they come to believe and know what God’s revelation is. They were able to distinguish between revelation and mere human opinion through the preaching/teaching of the Word as that Word was attended by the Spirit. And this pattern continues into the era following the Apostles. There is no evidence of any officers of the Church trying to define revelation by claiming infallibility for the Church. They preached and preached and God used this just like He did in the Apostolic times. Like the EO scholar Florovsky said, in the early centuries of the Church biblical exegesis was “the main and probably the only theological method , and the authority of the Scriptures reigned sovereign and supreme.” There was lots of struggles to determine what Christians were supposed to believe and how they were to act but nobody at that time looked to some hierarchical Church to make such distinctions. What I have described in this paragraph is the historic Christian pattern and that’s the Reformed pattern. That’s how distinctions are made. Any thoughts?

    You talk about the distinctions between revelation and opinion coming from a source that is infallible, at least under certain conditions. But I hope you are willing to consider that this is not the only logical possibility, particularly if the “why” question is off the table for now.

    So what happens today when two congregations or two ecclesiastical bodies disagree over a given doctrinal matter? Then they go to Scripture and seek to work it out. Sometimes they do and sometimes they don’t. But it is not the purpose of one ecclesiastical body to solve all of the problems of lack on unity on doctrinal matters. I’m SURE that you disagree with this last statement. But that’s because you understand the Church to have a very different function than what the Reformed do. And that issue of the purpose of the Church will dictate how ecclesiastical bodies determine and proclaim revelation. And that’s why I suggested we start with a discussion of what the purpose of the Church is from the Reformed and Catholics perspectives. Anyway, you don’t want to get into the “why,” so I will not push that. If we are not going to talk about the “why” then I think that’s all I have to say for now.

  153. Eric, (re: #151)

    On the analogy of being see The Analogy of Being: Invention of the Antichrist or Wisdom of God?, edited by Thomas Joseph White (Eerdmans, 2010), and Steven Long’s Analogia Entis: On the Analogy of Being, Metaphysics, and the act of Faith (University of Notre Dame Press, 2011).

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  154. Welcome home, Joshua! I’m a member of the Tiber Swim Team of 2011, along with my husband. It’s so hard to communicate all the reasons why we had to come home to the Church because so many of them are simply down to the Holy Spirit’s leading. We can talk and talk about authority and the Magesterium and specific doctrines & dogmas, but it all comes back to following the gentle (and sometimes not-so-gentle) nudgings of the Spirit.

  155. Bryan:

    Thanks for those titles. They’ve been added to my Amazon wish list.

    Best,
    Mike

  156. Andrew (#127):

    I much appreciate the fact that you’ve acknowledged how our differences arise from fundamentally different paradigms, not just from this-or-that point of theology. And, regarding what’s currently at issue, I think you’ve described the difference reasonably well. But need I remind you that, in my CTC article last year, I already laid out the method by which the neutral inquirer can determine which of the two paradigms is the more reasonable one to adopt? And did I not argue carefully that your paradigm must produce conclusions that are “rationally unassailable” in order to qualify as, itself, rationally preferable?

    The thing is, you’ve already admitted, in effect, that your paradigm does not produce rationally unassailable results. For our audience’s benefit, I repeat that, if Nicene orthodoxy were as perspicuous in Scripture as your paradigm requires, then heterodoxy could only be explained by ignorance, ill will, or both. I have observed some of your Reformed brethren agreeing heartily with that bit of reasoning, thus going on eagerly to attribute culpable blindness to me and to Catholic theologians generally. But you don’t seem willing to go that far. And that’s a problem for you.

    You claimed, and still claim, that Nicene orthodoxy is perspicuous in Scripture. But you don’t draw from that premise the conclusion I do. Thus you write:

    Like the intelligence matter it’s not about ill will. Someone like in my Jewish example could be a person of ill will, which obviously some of the Pharisees were. But they were not all, and we read of Jews at that time who were seriously seeking to be holy but were blinded to God’s full truth. Again, they had a veil over their eyes, as Scripture states. When the veil was lifted they saw clearly…Those things which are of paramount importance in Scripture are perspicuous, but this hardly means that every person with sufficient intelligence and good motivation will perceive them. You are trying to read something into perspicuity which we are not saying.

    Accordingly, even though Nicene orthodoxy is perspicuous in Scripture, some people of intelligence and good will only “get it” when “the veil is lifted” from their eyes. Really?

    Now for one thing, you didn’t answer my question about how the veil got to be there in the first place. In effect, I asked whether it was God or the epistemically blind person who had put it there; instead of answering that question, you just note that at some point the veil is “lifted” for some people. So I’ll answer it for you: If the veil is lifted, but not by the people it had blinded, then it’s the Holy Spirit lifting the veil, presumably at a time of his choosing. Sounds great–except for one problem.

    The problem is that the notion of Scripural perspicuity is no longer doing any work for you. If we need the enlightenment of the Spirit to interpret Scripture aright–and I’d agree that we do, though we’d disagree about the means–then what difference would it make if Scripture were not perspicuous on matters of “paramount importance”? Whether Scripture is perspicuous or not, the enlightenment of the Spirit is necessary and sufficient for interpreting it aright. So the question then becomes: on which of our respective paradigms is it easier for the neutral inquirer to recognize and share in the enlightenment of the Spirit?

    Here’s where my argument last year, in the article linked, returns to the fore. If your paradigm cannot show its conclusions to be rationally unassailable–but instead, the enlightening grace of the Spirit is required for orthodoxy–then it is not rationally preferable to mine. And not only is it not rationally preferable, it’s rationally inferior; for it cannot secure a distinction we both agree is necessary, i.e. the principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion. Why not? Because the methodology specified in your paradigm cannot, by itself, offer anything more than human opinions as answers to its questions. The Holy Spirit has to come and rescue it by “lifting the veil” from your opponents’ eyes. And on your paradigm, there is of course no agreement on how we’d recognize when that’s occurred.

    Best,
    Mike

  157. Eric (re: #151):

    On this score, Van Til sounds almost identical to Barth, who called the doctrine of the analogia entis the ‘doctrine of the antichrist.’

    I think Barth (and from what you’ve said, Van Til as well) was severely confused about the analogy of being. You can look at the books that Bryan Cross recommends which are quite good. I would also recommend John Betz’s two-part piece in Modern Theology, entitled, “Beyond the Sublime: The Aesthetics of the Analogy of Being.” Balthasar also deals with this in his book on Barth, and I think Balthasar is basically right in his critique, though, at times, he seems to be susceptible to the same criticisms.

    Basically, I think one has to have something like an analogia entis in order to properly speak of God and have a properly Chalcedonian christology. We speak and know of God according to our mode of knowing even with revelation because we know God from his effects, not as he is in himself (this goes against the Van Tillian idea that we all know God innately). This is the whole purpose of the negative theology tradition. Once you confuse philosophy with theology, as I believe Barth and even Van Til did, then it becomes very hard to demarcate what is human and what is divine–this is especially problematic when it comes to predicating things of God. Moreover, Barth’s concern was to ensure that man does not ‘grasp’ God by putting him into philosophical categories; ironically, Barth ended up doing much the same, except with neo-Kantian categories. To pit the analogia fidei against the analogia entis is, in my opinion, severely confused. One needs both because grace does not destroy, but perfects and elevates nature.

  158. Andrew McCallum, you write:

    So what happens today when two congregations or two ecclesiastical bodies disagree over a given doctrinal matter? Then they go to Scripture and seek to work it out. Sometimes they do and sometimes they don’t. But it is not the purpose of one ecclesiastical body to solve all of the problems of lack on unity on doctrinal matters. I’m SURE that you disagree with this last statement. But that’s because you understand the Church to have a very different function than what the Reformed do.

    Hmm …. the Presbyterian Church on one side of the street, and the Southern Baptist Church on the other side of the street both believe that the words found in their bibles are the inspired, inerrant word of God. Their Protestant bibles have the exact same canon of scriptures. Indeed, they both may be using the exact same translation of the bible in their respective churches. But the members of these two churches vehemently disagree on how to interpret the exact same bible, and because of that, these two churches teach contradictory doctrine. That means that at least one of these two churches is teaching heresy, and, that possibly both churches are teaching heresy. Andrew, from what I understand you to be saying, this state of confusion, while unfortunate, is what God intends us to have. You are explicitly saying that God has established on earth no church that has the authority to settle a matters of doctrinal dispute among Christians. Why? Because God Almighty did not intend for one church to have that authority.

    If that is what you are saying, then as a Catholic, of course I reject what you are saying, and I am rejecting it, not because I am a Catholic, but because that is totally unscriptural !

    Your Protestant bible shows that Christ founded his own church; that Christ promised that the powers of death will never prevail against his church; and that Christ promised that He would send the Holy Spirit to guide His church into all truth. Your Protestant bible contains Christ’s explicit instructions on how doctrinal disputes are to be settled among Christians … and not only that, your Protestant bible gives us an example of those instructions being put into practice. Your peculiar Protestant teaching about the authority of Christ’s church (or more precisely, her lack of authority) is a teaching that is nowhere to be found within the pages of your Protestant bible! To quote Jason Stellman once again:

    The picture the New Testament paints is one in which the ordained leadership of the visible church gathers to bind and loose in Jesus’ Name and with his authority, with the Old Testament Scriptures being called upon as witnesses to the apostles’ and elders’ message (Matt. 18:18-19; Acts 15:6-29), with no indication in Scripture that such ecclesiastical authority was to cease and eventually give way to Sola Scriptura (meaning that the doctrine [Sola Scriptura] fails its own test).

    Andrew, you write:

    There was lots of struggles to determine what Christians were supposed to believe and how they were to act but nobody at that time [the immediate post-apostolic era] looked to some hierarchical Church to make such distinctions.

    Nobody? You hold that opinion, an opinion that leaves you asserting ecclesial deism. There is nothing in the scriptures that makes me believe that what you are saying is true. Mr. Stellman rightly observes, there is “no indication in Scripture that such ecclesiastical authority was to cease and eventually give way to Sola Scriptura.”

    I tried to make the same point in post #112:

    Andrew, why are you so focused on the Christians that lived after the apostolic era? Why would the second or third generation Christians that lived after the apostolic era suddenly believe that the authority within Christ’s church to settle doctrinal disputes was in any way different than what the first generation Christians believed?

    The first generation Christians tell us that Christ commanded those who would be his disciples that they should bring their personal doctrinal disputes to the church that Jesus Christ founded for resolution of those disputes. Those that “refuse to listen to even to the church” are to be excommunicated. (Matthew 18:17). That is what the first generation Christians believed, and I see no reason to think that the second and third generation Christians believed anything different. Indeed, the fact that these post-apostolic Christians held Ecumenical Councils to settle doctrinal disputes shows that they believed exactly what the first generation Christians believed. Doctrinal disputes among Christians are to be authoritatively settled in the same way a doctrinal dispute was authoritatively settled at the Council of Jerusalem (Acts chapter 15)..

    Andrew, you write:

    … you understand the Church to have a very different function than what the Reformed do …

    I agree with that! I believe in the scriptures, therefore, I believe that I can’t listen to any old church. I am commanded by Christ to listen to the church – the church that Jesus Christ personally founded; the church founded on the rock of Peter; the church against which the powers of death can never prevail; the church with bishops, presbyters and deacons; the church that has Jesus Christ as its head; the church that is guided by the Holy Spirit into all truth; the church that has Christ’s authority to excommunicate heretics; the church that can teach in the name of Christ; the church that has an uninterrupted, two-thousand year old history.

    Protestants don’t listen to that church, instead, they listen to churches founded by mere men and women. They listen to the church started by Mary Baker Eddy, or Charles Taze Russell, or John Knox, or Garner Ted Armstrong, or Martin Luther, or the Wesley brothers, or the Campbell brothers, or, or, or … there are thousands upon thousands of these Protestant churches founded by men and women, all interpreting the same Protestant Bible, and all coming up with conflicting interpretations of the Protestant bible.

    You say that churches founded by men and women have a different function than the church that I listen to. I don’t disagree with that, because the Protestant churches are only the creations of men, teaching the mere traditions of men. These Protestant churches can do whatever they want to do … and they do! Whatever function they have is determined by the men and women that create them.

  159. Mike,

    And did I not argue carefully that your paradigm must produce conclusions that are “rationally unassailable” in order to qualify as, itself, rationally preferable?

    But I did not argue with you about this. I think you were answering what you saw as an inference from Mathison, or maybe Mathison suggested it directly. I don’t know but I understand where you are coming from here and was not arguing with it.

    The thing is, you’ve already admitted, in effect, that your paradigm does not produce rationally unassailable results. For our audience’s benefit, I repeat that, if Nicene orthodoxy were as perspicuous in Scripture as your paradigm requires, then heterodoxy could only be explained by ignorance, ill will, or both

    So again on perspicuity, the word is used to demarcate those things which are basic in Scripture from those things that are not. I don’t believe I ever thought about the issue of whether someone rejecting a basic doctrine is ignorant or evil or whatever else until I was asked by a Catholic. I really don’t see the point in speculating, it just does not matter. God knows why someone rejects something clear and we don’t need to worry about it IMO. But this is entirely beside the point.

    The problem is that the notion of Scripural perspicuity is no longer doing any work for you.

    It’s not supposed to be doing any work. It is a description of one quality of some of the doctrines of Scripture. Peter and Paul talk about doctrines being “elementary” and “basic” but there are other things which are “hard to understand.” Also, the WCF makes this same distinction between basic and more difficult doctrines. The fact that Jesus is the Messiah is basic to Cristian theology, the significance of the colors of Zechariah’s horses in Zech 1 is not. I remember a Messianic Jew telling me about a three inch book on his shelf from when He was an Orthodox Jew. I t was a commentary on Isaiah 53 that tried to explain away the obvious import of the testimony about the Messiah in Is. 53. The Jews by his account are extraordinarily sophisticated in their ability to explain away the clear and obvious. He talked about how blind he was before he knew Jesus and then all of a sudden one day he was reading from the Scriptures and the lights just came on. As I Corinthians speaks of , the veil over his heart was lifted. There are gazillions of these kinds of stories – What was not clear becomes clear as God opens the eyes. The person in question was not necessarily evil or ignorant in the classic sense of these terms. My Messianic friend was and is one of God’s children and had God’s love on Him even when he did not know God. But even if we can say someone who rejects something clear is evil or ignorant (which obviously some are) this is not the crux of the matter. The point is that there are some things (but not all things) which are clear in Scripture and can be apprehended readily IF the Spirit gives them eyes to see as the Scriptures say.

    And to continue with the Jewish example, most of these folks who have converted to Christianity have come from a background where the model you propose is utilized. There is a ruling council that makes decisions concerning allowable opinions and actions. The distinctions between orthodoxy and heresy in such communities are much more straightforward.

    So Mike does it surprise you that a very intelligent and sincere Jewish man who intellectually knew the Scriptures could be blind to the essential message of the Scriptures and then one day God opened his eyes to the truths of His Word? Would it surprise you if this person told you that he was totally blind until God opened his eyes? Isn’t this a description of many of the Pharisees who came to believe in Jesus?

    what difference would it make if Scripture werenot perspicuous on matters of “paramount importance”?

    If nothing in Scripture was clear then nobody or very few people would comprehend the gospel. We would have some sort of Gnostic like mystery religion that only a few people of great intelligence and insight would respond to.

    I have observed some of your Reformed brethren agreeing heartily with that bit of reasoning, thus going on eagerly to attribute culpable blindness to me and to Catholic theologians generally. But you don’t seem willing to go that far. And that’s a problem for you.

    Reformed folks are always willing to speculate on such things whether or not they are an integral part of the doctrine at hand or not.

    the methodology specified in your paradigm cannot, by itself, offer anything more than human opinions as answers to its questions. The Holy Spirit has to come and rescue it by “lifting the veil” from your opponents’ eyes. And on your paradigm, there is of course no agreement on how we’d recognize when that’s occurred.

    MY opponents? And who are MY opponents?

    And so you would say that the group of people who have found the truth because God’s Spirit worked through His Word are now possessors of JUST opinions? In your previous post you flatly denied that this was the case. And the Spirit does not save the paradigm; the Spirit is an integral element of the paradigm. Without the Spirit nobody comes to knowledge of salvific matters. By itself you are right, the system does nothing.

    I like rationally self-contained systems. I would much prefer adopting a system where the distinctions between what is allowable and what is not are relatively straightforward. I get the JW system and the Orthodox Jewish one and the RCC one, and others where much or even all of the subjectivity is removed. These are all rationally superior since they leave no or little doubt as to what is to be believed concerning revelation. But is that a criterion that God gives us for adopting one system over another? Well it’s just not obvious to me that it is. I think it’s far superior to speak of what is exegetically and then historically preferred first and then we can look at the relative logical and rational consistencies of the respective paradigms. This is seems to me to be more in line with historic Christianity. It may be that you have by far and away the more rationally preferable system for making the distinctions that you speak of, but one that God never intended you to have.

    As I look at the various Catholic doctrines or methods or practices that we Protestants struggle with I see some that apparently have little to no basis in the history of the Early Church and are relative latecomers to the ecclesiastical world. The Assumption springs to mind. Your method as you outline it seems to be another similar sort of thing. We just see no exegetical or historical basis for claiming that this was an accepted way of making distinctions that you describe. However we do see lots of evidence for the Church doing exactly what I outline. And if what I say it true (and I know you do not concede that it is) then I conclude that my system is preferable even if it does not provide the same ready distinctions that your and other such systems produce.

  160. Fr. Bryan,

    Your question assumed that anything I said about the Bible was ONLY my “own personal interpretation” as a posed to the fact that it may in fact be the teaching of the Bible. If what is what you hold then you have to prove it. You did not even try to answer that because you can’t. What your intention maybe, is not the issue you presume in your comment and you can’t respond to.

    You claim:
    My intention is to show that God didn’t intend for the Bible to be interpreted in doctrinal matters by individual men and women. ….All I’m arguing is that God did not intend for orthodox doctrine to be developed by individual Christians and individual interpretation. …. God intended orthodox doctrine to be decided by the Pillar of Truth, which is the Church that he established.

    Is that your “own personal interpretation”??? Is it your “own personal interpretation” that it is the teaching of Rome??? How do you have 100% certainty of that???

    In respond to you. What makes you think that I hold that doctrines are a matter of personal development, and that the individual does not rely on the true Christian church body? The church of Christ is the Pillar of the truth, but a pillar holds something else up. Rome claims to be “the pillar” and what sits on that pillar. The Christian church, exist because of the teachings of the Bible, and the Christian church, puts the Word of God. It is God’s word that is the truth for the lost world.

    You claim:
    the Church – the entire Community that Jesus established, properly ordered hierarchically – cannot err.

    That is where your faith is resting on. Partly I don’t disagree with you that Jesus has established the church (because that is the teaching of the Bible), but you claim that is Romanism, which it is not. Part of your claim is that the Roman “ordered hierarchically” – cannot err. You take that by unprovable faith?

    Josh wrote (as you present here):
    When I decided to become Catholic, I surrendered my own beliefs and ideas (no matter how interesting they seemed to me) to Christ’s Church. If I discover that a belief that I hold is out of line with the authoritative teaching of the Church, I will submit to the Church’s authority rather than find a body where I would not need to change my own opinions.

    Isn’t that exactly what he did when he join Rome? He rejected the Christian Church, the Christian salvation in the finished work of Jesus, the Christian grounds of authority in the word of God, for the traditions of Roman church, with its blasphemous re-crucifying of Christ, meriting of grace, an insult to the grace of God, and the continues erring Rome as authority. In the Christian Church he is to keep learning scripture and have his mind conform to the teachings of scriptures, however the difference is that NOW with Rome he must “surrendered my own beliefs”. What a fallible choice in what to “surrender believes” to!

    You claim:
    I think the burden of proof might be on you hear to show that words can’t be misunderstood.

    Why would I have to do that? Rome is proof that passages, such as Matt 16:18, can be misunderstood. Sinners sin. Rome misinterprets the Bible and calls that dogma. So, why must I prove that people can’t knowingly or unknowingly suppress the fact of what the Bible teach (in Rome’s case to insert dogmas from the middle ages into one verse and make that the grounds of anathema)?

    You wrote:
    I was arguing that, if Protestantism is true, then every Christian is ultimately responsible for coming up with Orthodox doctrine on their own which would entail that everyone must seek as much education as they can. I don’t think God did it that way.

    I know my comments here is a little biting, but some of the idea’s on this site does provoke me to calling out what I see are blasphemy. I read your long story, and I did humor you to some extent, but come on. Look. You are talking about the two church, using two english translations. What difference are they to each other versus the divisions in Rome? Roman Catholics who are for abortion, Roman Catholics worshiping Mary/Saint, Romans Catholics for evolution/against, Roman Catholics trying to make Mary into Coredemptrix, Roman Catholics apologist softening purgatory, and hush-hush on the sale of indulgence, come on the list can go on and on as to the drastic differences in Rome, the petty infighting for power, leaking of documents, university having an abortion advocate speaking…. That is not even to include those Roman Catholics who reject the current Pope, Liberation theology, feminism, gays, and child molesters and those who protect them. All of those claim to be Roman Catholics as well.

    You wrote:
    I really, really, REALLY, REALLY have a hard time believing that God actually designed it this way. I think it is much more likely that he established ONE Church so that I don’t have to go through all that stuff. I can just go to Church knowing that what my pastor is teaching is the faith that the apostles taught – the faith that has been handed down through the ages.

    So, you think that what God designed was a mindless submission to a human organization with less than perfect track record. Rome is anything but that ONE church, as I have already printout out. “Oh, there are things we have to work on,” you may say, but you admit my point then. If not, then Rome is not that ONE church. You don’t know if what your pastor teach is the faith the apostles taught, if you don’t know the word of God. You only take it by blind and uninformed dependence on Rome! I can’t even abuse the word faith in that sentence. Faith is a dependence upon which one has knowledge of. You are talking about a blind dependence, as the Josh quote, the turning off the mind at the door of Rome.

    Maybe you got the story wrong. What Jesus appealed to, and claim to be the Word of God is scripture. It is not a matter of have to, but want to. The People of God want to study the word of God. They want to know what the word of God teach. They want the word, and not the human traditions that bind them down with man made requirements, and false dogmas and condemnations. They want to know what God has made known to his people throughout time. They want to go back to the source. The fountain from which churches, even supposedly Rome, gets her doctrines from. I love the word of God, it is not a “must,” but “may” learn more and more of God’s word.

    Your wrote:
    Now, unfortunately, things are the way they are and we all find ourselves asking, “which Church is the right Church?” But my point above stands. In the protestant perspective, God is responsible for the confusion. In the “God established one Church” perspective, the devil is responsible for the confusion.

    I agree that the devil is responsible for the confusion. Maybe that is why Rome is so confused. People should ask which church is the right church. What is the problem with asking? And there are a lot of churches out there calling itself Roman Catholic. If you are gay, you may want to go to one that is more “accepting”. If you are for abortion, you may become the next speaker at the commencement of a Roman Catholic University. How many pastors of Roman Church will give you difference answers on any number of subjects? “Oh, But…” you may want to say, but that does not mean it does not happen.

    You keep going on about ONE church, but when does the Bible teach that God established only one church, rather than that God instituted the church, and there are many churches, which continue the teachings of the Bible, and those which undermined the teachings of God’s word, or adding dogmas as if it is God’s word.

    You wrote:
    No. My fundamental problem is that I don’t believe that God intended doctrine to be developed by individual Christians. I believe that God intended orthodox doctrine to develop within the entire Church, properly ordered hierarchically. I don’t believe that God intended poor, illiterate people to be responsible for coming up with orthodox doctrine on there own.

    You wrote:
    Pretty much all of them.

    Is that because you keep your finger in your ears the entire time through, or only when James White is speaking?

    And by the way, it is fine and good to be a fool for Christ, but to be a fool for Rome, that is just being foolish.

    Sorry, I don’t have time to continue this. I do have other people to be sarcastic to, and poorly abuse their reading ability abilities with my bad writing errors. Thanks for tolerating them so far.

  161. Dear Joshua,

    Welcome home. What a blessing to have you as part of the Catholic Church.

    Didn’t you win a free copy of my book The Catholic Perspective on Paul from Called to Communion a year ago or so? If so, fantastic!

    Welcome home. I’d love to chat one of these days.

    ad Jesum per Mariam,
    Taylor Marshall

  162. Dear Taylor,

    Thank you!

    Yes, I was one of the seminarians who received your book for free. I read it and recommended it to a few friends who are now in RCIA.

  163. #159 Andrew,

    I would like for you to see my own personal dilemma, perhaps you can help.
    Would you say that “the gospel” should be understood as what is given from the Gospel of John, “For God so loved the world that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believes in him should not die, but have everlasting life.”?
    This what was told be when I was a young adult. Since then I have been informed that “the gospel” means justification as put forward by Luther and Calvin. I came to faith by believing the God died for me. God opened my eyes and it was not conditional my having the Reformed doctrine properly understood. So, I know uses different means to give grace to man. Some people, maybe those raised in Christian homes, have never had a conversion experience, but they still come to profess a love for God, but since man by his nature can never raise himself to a supernatural state, which is what regeneration is, the veil must be removed, no one denies this. It would be Pelagian to think otherwise. But now that I have sight, whose doctrine of justifcation do I submit to, The Roman Catholic Church, or Calvinist, or Lutheran? There is biblical room for almost all from the Protestant’s new vision, and the Catholic will not permit any other view. As far as I can be sure I have the Holy Spirit and believe the words of Christ and that the scriptures are inspired, how do I now choose a church?

  164. Peter (re # 160)

    If perhaps I might interject on some of your comments, I think you have mis-characterized Catholicism in light of a Protestant paradigm of viewing the Church. It seems to me that this is sometimes common in Protestantism and in the media outlets that provide a somewhat alien view of what the Church is and is not.

    Perhaps we can go around and around and say that all of our judgments and acts are never going to be 100% infallible, and it is true that sin makes the world more complicated than it ought to be, however this does not necessarily mean that men cannot make good judgments so as to have hope in an infallible God, or if as they have seen it in Scripture in a Providentially protected Church, i.e. the Catholic Church. That is why an act of faith is necessary in Christianity in general, and we must have the humility to always ask God where He is and where we are going.

    The paradigm here that is distinct from Protestantism though is, as argued by many at Called to Communion, that within the Protestant communities one’s faith is internally developed and posited as the main criteria for one’s doctrines and morals and if one comes up against another member of the congregation on the matter of doctrine there is no judge apart from the two’s interpretation of Scripture and theology from whence they can decide where God is trying to lead them. While this may work in some aspects, it has shown to lead to what Catholics see as constant schisms which are heavily scandalous to Catholics and non-Christians for our Lord desired and prayed infallibly that we would be one. One in faith and one in baptism.

    In the Catholic paradigm when two or more Catholics have conflicts they appeal to the Teaching Authority of the Church, the Magisterium, which can either act through a binding declaration such as a Ecumenical Council or Papal Declaration, or simply a clarification from an earlier binding declaration, or even smaller yet an admonishment that though not infallible considers and merits the consideration of the faithful because of the bishops’ wisdom and authority as an authentic authority (similar to the Apostles who were uniquely sent out as teachers and evangelizers by Christ).

    Now of course there is much here to pick apart, but as it stands Protestants do not have a judge to appeal to other than their own consciences and God in private, and as such are not bound indefinitely to any of their churches teachings per se. In like manner a Catholic can defect from holding the doctrinal (dogmatic is a better word, but this word carries to many subtle meanings) teachings of the Catholic Church, but will cease being a Catholic both in their soul and in an external manner (they will be forbidden Communion if all goes to plan). Yes, this faith in God’s Church is an extra degree of faith that must be held and must be regarded with humility but as you kindly pointed out learning from Scripture and from God’s commandments is never per se a repulsive external compulsion (perhaps, ‘a must’ as you say) but rather an internal and loving guidance (perhaps, ‘a may’ as you say).

    As for taking that the Church is the true Church by an un-provable faith, this is in some aspects unsubstantiated as any atheist will claim Christian faith is un-provable. In all humility, reason cannot come to the teachings of the Faith on its own, we need faith, and faith is hope in things unseen as St. Paul writes in Hebrews. There are certainly arguments for the internal consistency and orthodoxy of the Catholic Church when viewed through a certain historical and Biblical lens. There are other pages at this website that may help you to find this more clearly.

    You then wrote, commenting on Mr. Lim’s essay:

    Josh wrote (as you present here):
    When I decided to become Catholic, I surrendered my own beliefs and ideas (no matter how interesting they seemed to me) to Christ’s Church. If I discover that a belief that I hold is out of line with the authoritative teaching of the Church, I will submit to the Church’s authority rather than find a body where I would not need to change my own opinions.

    Isn’t that exactly what he did when he join Rome? He rejected the Christian Church, the Christian salvation in the finished work of Jesus, the Christian grounds of authority in the word of God, for the traditions of Roman church, with its blasphemous re-crucifying of Christ, meriting of grace, an insult to the grace of God, and the continues erring Rome as authority. In the Christian Church he is to keep learning scripture and have his mind conform to the teachings of scriptures, however the difference is that NOW with Rome he must “surrendered my own beliefs”. What a fallible choice in what to “surrender believes” to!

    On one part, yes the first act that Mr. Lim made was to separate from a Protestant community because he saw that the Protestant paradigm of only abiding by the rules of a Protestant church when he saw fit to was problematic in that it caused schism and created a problem for any person to be guided in a community regarding the teachings of the Church. However it is distinct as when one accepts the Catholic Church as the true Church in that one cannot simply treat it as another Protestant denomination, you either abide in total to Christ and His Church founded upon the Lord’s Rock, or you do not abide totally in Christ, and so become among the tares in the harvest that will one day be burned up. It is not a matter of two persons who debate each other and leave paths but of verifiable human witness that is protected by God and can be consulted so as to settle the matter doctrinally and finally for all of the Christian faithful. You may disagree that there exists such a body, but that is not the topic totally entitled within this thread, and it is here mainly to point out that Protestantism does come in inherently with a flaw that Catholicism does not have. If God intended the Church to be fallible, then this one-up that the Church has above Protestantism is in vain, but this is precisely what we Catholics do not hold.

    As for your paragraph regarding Catholicism’s beliefs. It is the Catholic faith that all matter of grace that is given to any human soul (and for the Franciscans, any created soul, either angelic or human) is truly merited by Christ’s sacrificial Passion, and the possibility of new life lead by example and the force of Christ’s Resurrection.

    The Church similarly believes that the Scriptures are the inerrant Word of God. The Traditions of the Roman Church, as you say, are not simply the Traditions of the Roman Church, but the Traditions of the entire Church, for the Church is Catholic, i.e. universal, and the Roman Pontiff solely serves as the primary brother bishop to uphold and support his brother bishops about the entire world. These Traditions are not simply things invented but come out of the practice and worship of the first Christian communities. A reading of the Church Fathers and other historical works will show that much of what Protestants hold as defective with Catholicism have been around for longer than any Protestant community can attest to.

    There is no re-crucifying of Christ’s Passion in any respect, He is bodily in Heaven. We make a distinction that there is a re-presentation or manifestation made present of the offering (one might say re-offering, but this is the problem of human language, it cannot convey an eternal offering being effected again without happening per se again) in the Eucharist. However this can be seen in some of the writings of St. Paul in Hebrews that God does not effect a new Testament without the shedding of blood, yet the Son of God said on the night before He was betrayed that He came to install the new and everlasting Testament in both the offering of His Body and His blood, under what appeared to be bread and wine. You can investigate that if you so choose, but that is for another thread.

    Regarding the meriting of grace, this is an unfortunate term because no orthodox scholastic, medieval, or late-antiquity Christian writer means that the meriting of salvation is a true meriting as if God were endebted to us out of pure justice, though they do intend that God binds Himself to reward our good works when they are done in Him, that is through His grace and our co-operation (which is mysterious because a good work is 100% God’s will and in some smaller respect 100% our co-operation). This is the Augustinian synthesis then that God when He rewards us for the good works that He prepared and willed in us, that God is crowning His own work and showing His glory in us. If you do not believe me you can go to my blog where I’ve spilled some small electronic ink regarding St. Augustine’s theology of grace and justification. Even St. Augustine says that we merit our own salvation, though he says no work of our own can merit grace, and though this may sound like a contradiction it is actually a subtle argument, wherein he retains the age-old Christian tradition that God rewards good men for their good works, with the fact that nobody can tell God what to do and not do.

    You also wrote regarding the submission to the Holy Church. The Church is the Body of Christ and so submission to the Holy Church is submission to Christ. I would gladly surrender all my beliefs to Christ, and so I trust in His Church. I may have erred about the Church being the true Church, but this is a function of faith. We all take risks when we have faith, but not all risks are unreasonable.

    As for your comment:

    I know my comments here is a little biting, but some of the idea’s on this site does provoke me to calling out what I see are blasphemy. I read your long story, and I did humor you to some extent, but come on. Look. You are talking about the two church, using two english translations. What difference are they to each other versus the divisions in Rome? Roman Catholics who are for abortion, Roman Catholics worshiping Mary/Saint, Romans Catholics for evolution/against, Roman Catholics trying to make Mary into Coredemptrix, Roman Catholics apologist softening purgatory, and hush-hush on the sale of indulgence, come on the list can go on and on as to the drastic differences in Rome, the petty infighting for power, leaking of documents, university having an abortion advocate speaking…. That is not even to include those Roman Catholics who reject the current Pope, Liberation theology, feminism, gays, and child molesters and those who protect them. All of those claim to be Roman Catholics as well.

    Perhaps you are not very familiar with the Catholic Church itself and so we won’t rebuke you too harshly but when you really want to critique somebody in a proper and appropriate way it is proper to understand the other side of the argument as best possible. It is a matter of justice to do so.

    The divisions in Protestantism are far sharper, one member of a congregation can disagree with another one, enter into schism, think nothing of it and have no body other than God Himself at the man’s death offer him a definite declaration that he is out of bounds. Sure maybe one body could do this in Protestantism but it isn’t binding in any way that prevents him from going off to start another body or another body and so to lose the necessary sense of community and authority necessary in any Christian Church. The divisions in Catholicism while permitted in some manner or other are not in the same manner in that some divisions are not cause for one to say that the other is formally or materially heretical, and there is certain flexibility in certain areas wherein it is permitted because they are not detrimental to the Gospel message in total. Some things in which Catholics dissent however are actual heresies whether known or not known to the heretical person, and as such that person is no longer in communion with the Church, and is a lapsed Catholic, or a Catholic in mortal sin, or in respects to formal heresy, no longer Catholic. It is not whether a person claims to be Catholic but whether they are recognized as formally Catholic. And so much of your critiques of rogue Catholics is simply the extra dimensionality that sin plays in day to day life style, but is not really an active critique of the Catholic versus the Protestant paradigm.

    So far it may not seem like the two paradigms are all in all that different, or that the Catholic paradigm is better than the Protestant one, but this is where things get very bad: If a Protestant disagrees about the canon of Scripture, or the inerrancy of Scripture, or the divinity of Christ, etc., then there is no body within Protestantism can authoritatively and speak infallibly that certain teachings are verifiably and for all eternity the teachings of Christ. They outright reject this paradigm and so schisms and heresies can go on unchecked.

    You said that you won’t return, but we welcome you back for dialogue any time. Much of your irreverent comments are quite off the mark and show a disability to hear or consider the other side, perhaps out of superstition, fear, or incredulity of our cause, but if you want to hear the truth, you can come back anytime you like. :-)

    God bless.

  165. Pete. (re #160)
    Sorry my blog was http://www.corinquietam.blogspot.com

    God bless.

  166. Actually, the Reformed formularies will not permit just and old view either, and are acting just as magisterial as Rome. Do you submit your autonomy to the Reformed Confessions, Andrew? As long as there are other doctrines out there that are supposed to clarify and sum-up the scriptures( especially if it existed prior the Reformation), I don’t know whose view I should submit to. Need guidance seriously. Please, won’t you tell me which church I should join?

    ~Alicia

  167. Alicia,
    (re #163)

    If I might give a bit of my advice regarding the Gospel. I have a final exam on Friday and a tragic family loss so you should ask others here more than I. The Gospel in my understanding is the good news of Christ, which entails not only that Jesus died for our sins and so an abiding faith and faithfulness in Him will be our salvation, but also all of the in-between references made in these things. The Good News is that God came down from Heaven, became Incarnate, took on a human nature, but remained One Person, human and divine in nature, with two operating wills, a human and divine one, united by grace, born of a Virgin who was made Immaculate as a manifestation of the Lord’s glory and love, incarnate by the operation of the Holy Spirit, raised by His mother and step-father, gave a message to the world regarding love, grace, and the new creation that every person is called to through an indwelling in Him, etc., etc.

    The Gospel is not just one thing that God did for us, but everything that He has done for us, and the proper way in which we must relate to Him. The Good News is not just a set of doctrines but a type of life lived out in the Church whereby we are transformed from being just people into being adopted sons of God, to enjoy His love eternally in Heaven.

    As to choosing a Church, you must pray very fervently, for if anything is the most sacred and valuable thing in this life it is prayer and the yearning for God. God will lead you, but you must ask yourself what God wants for you and where He is leading you. You seek the Church that God founded , and so you must ask yourself what that Church ought to look like. Study the Scriptures with a prayerful mind, but be careful and read slowly (similar to the mentality of Lectio Divina perhaps if you can) and reflectively. Next it may help you to see what the Church looked like at various stages in its growth. Do any of these things look like an authentic witness to the transformed lifestyle that God is supposed to give us in our new life with Him? A look at the lives of the saints in Catholicism I think may help you here.

    I’ve never converted per se from Catholicism though I once had doubts about it, and if anything prayer, devotion, and reading what you can about what Christians should be and where truly holy and humble Christians have left their hearts has been a huge help to me finding what I believe to be Christ’s Holy Apostolic and Catholic Church.

    God bless.

  168. Mr.Reyes,

    Thank you for your thoughtfulness and encouragement. I am very sorry for the loss of your loved one. I pray for you comfort.

    I believe that the RCC is the only true church. I was hoping that Andrew( earlier in this thread) might tell me how he comes to decide which church to choose from:)

  169. Maybe Joshua said that he was not saying that the Catholic Church is Christ, but I am going to put another excerpt from Father Mueller to show that Christ and the Catholic Church is One.

    Of all the parts of the body, the head is
    the principal organ. Hence the beginning of a thing is called the head. As the human nature of Jesus Christ is
    hypostatically united to the Divinity, He possesses the fulness of grace and communicates it to all the members
    of his mystic Body. Hence the Apostle says, “He that raised up Jesus Christ from the dead, shall also vivify your
    mortal bodies on account of the Spirit that dwelleth in you.” (Rom. viii. 1.) The Church is Christ’s mystical Body,
    and his complement or perfection, the head being incomplete without the body; but when the head has all the
    members of the body, so that none is wanting, then it is entirely complete, says St. Chrysostom.
    Although Christ is most perfect himself, yet he considers himself incomplete, and, so to speak, a mutilated head
    to members, without having the Church as body joined to him.
    Hence St. Paul says: “For as the body is one and hath many members, and all the members of the body, though
    they are many, yet are one body: so also is Christ.” (I. Cor. xii. 10.) On these words St. Augustine comments
    thus: “St Paul says not: so also is the body or the members of Christ; but, so also is Christ. He says head and
    body is one Christ. And this should not appear incredible to us; for, if Christ’s divine nature, which infinitely differs
    from and is incomparably more sublime than his human nature, was so united with it as to be only one person,
    how much more credible is it that the faithful and holy Christians are one Christ with the Man Christ! The whole
    Christ is head and body. The head and members are one Christ. The head was in heaven and said: ‘Paul, why
    dost thou persecute me?’ We are with him in heaven by hope, and he is with us on earth by charity.” (Lib. I. de
    Peccat. Merit., c. 31.)

  170. Steven Reyes, you said in #164:

    …it is here mainly to point out that Protestantism does come in inherently with a flaw that Catholicism does not have. If God intended the Church to be fallible, then this one-up that the Church has above Protestantism is in vain, but this is precisely what we Catholics do not hold.

    Can you put some more meat on that for me? I was tracking with you the whole time, but I don’t understand the point of the hypothetical here.

    And… have you written a book? You communicate so charitably and so clearly (save my scrupulous question above) I need to read more!

  171. Andrew McCallum, I am still trying to understand what you mean by “perspicuity”. You write:

    So again on perspicuity, the word is used to demarcate those things which are basic in Scripture from those things that are not.

    Peter and Paul talk about doctrines being “elementary” and “basic” but there are other things which are “hard to understand.”

    The fact that Jesus is the Messiah is basic to Christian theology … I remember a Messianic Jew telling me about a three inch book on his shelf from when He was an Orthodox Jew. It was a commentary on Isaiah 53 that tried to explain away the obvious import of the testimony about the Messiah in Is. 53. The Jews by his account are extraordinarily sophisticated in their ability to explain away the clear and obvious. He talked about how blind he was before he knew Jesus and then all of a sudden one day he was reading from the Scriptures and the lights just came on. As I Corinthians speaks of, the veil over his heart was lifted. There are gazillions of these kinds of stories – What was not clear becomes clear as God opens the eyes.

    You say that “Jesus is the Messiah” is a basic doctrine of Christianity, and then you give us an example of an Orthodox Jew that that needed grace from God to believe this basic doctrine. This is similar to your Muslim postal worker story. A Muslim man begins reading the bible, and then when God gives him grace, he believes that Jesus Christ is the Messiah.

    I get that – that without God’s grace, these adults could not believe in even “basic” Christian doctrine.

    There are gazillions of these kinds of stories – What was not clear becomes clear as God opens the eyes. The person in question was not necessarily evil or ignorant in the classic sense of these terms.

    I don’t doubt that there are gazillions of these kinds of stories. But the point that I am taking away from your stories is a point about Semipelagianism. A man may be both intelligent and without ill will in the “classical sense” of these terms (the Jewish man and the Muslim man in your examples), but unless he is first given grace from God, he can’t believe even a “basic” doctrine of Christianity. As you say, “What was not clear becomes clear as God opens the eyes.” This is exactly what the Catholic Church teaches, and this is why she condemns the heresy of Semipelagianism. No unbeliever past the age of reason could ever have even have the beginning of faith without God first giving the unbeliever grace. To your Jewish and Muslim examples, we could add a gazillion Protestant examples too – men and women that didn’t believe in even “basic” doctrines of Christianity, but then, when given God’s grace, they come to believe that Jesus is Lord. The fact that some of these new believers become members of Protestant sects proves what? There are thousand upon thousands of Protestant sects, and they teach contradictory doctrine. That only shows that the grace that God gives to men and women so that they can have the beginning of faith, is not the same thing as God giving them the grace to infallibly interpret the scriptures.

    Andrew, I have always thought that you rejected the heresy of Semipelagaianism, but please correct me if I am wrong about this, so that I can understand what you mean about the scriptures being perspicuous about “basic” doctrine. Do you believe that any mystery of the faith be believed without grace?

    If nothing in Scripture was clear then nobody or very few people would comprehend the gospel. We would have some sort of Gnostic like mystery religion that only a few people of great intelligence and insight would respond to.

    Without grace, nobody would believe any mystery of the Christian faith, not even the men and women among us that possess the highest levels of intelligence.

    An unbelieving man of average intelligence that possesses reasonable critical reading skills can read a good translation of the bible and comprehend that this is a religious book that contains a story about a man named Jesus. There are millions of religious Hindus living in India that read English quite well. We could give them RSV bibles to read, and then test their critical reading skills. These religious Hindus could easily discern that the RSV bible is a religious book that speaks about the religious mysteries believed by Jews and Christians. But would any of these Hindus believe in these mysteries? With critical reading skills, and if they had access to Western history books, they might comprehend that certain historical facts are contained in the bible; Jesus was a real man; Pontius Pilate was a real man; Jerusalem, Bethlehem and Nazareth are real places, etc. Critical reading skills alone allow these Hindus to discern that all sorts of religious mysteries are contained in the RSV bible. And with critical reading skills and some good Western history books, they could discern that the bible does not present itself to be a mythology. But comprehending isn’t the same thing as believing in what you comprehend.

    My point here is that the unbelieving man or average intelligence can comprehend that there are religious mysteries spoken of in the bible. But comprehension is not enough to be a Christian, since no man can believe in the mystery of the Christian faith unless he is first given grace by God. The reason why the Christian religion isn’t like a Gnostic mystery religion is because God gives grace even to the humble and uneducated so that they can believe in the mystery of our religion:

    Great indeed, we confess, is the mystery of our religion: He was manifested in the flesh, vindicated in the Spirit, seen by angels, preached among the nations, believed on in the world, taken up in glory.
    1 Tim 3:16

    For consider your call, brethren; not many of you were wise according to worldly standards, not many were powerful, not many were of noble birth; but God chose what is foolish in the world to shame the wise, God chose what is weak in the world to shame the strong, God chose what is low and despised in the world, even things that are not, to bring to nothing things that are, so that no human being might boast in the presence of God.
    1 Cor. 1:26-29

    God’s grace is necessary to even have the beginning of faith, but if I have the beginning of faith, that does not mean that I am going to be able to interpret the bible without error. Even the “basic” doctrines of Christianity are great mysteries that can only be discerned in the Spirit.

    I would much prefer adopting a system where the distinctions between what is allowable and what is not are relatively straightforward. I get the JW system and the Orthodox Jewish one and the RCC one, and others where much or even all of the subjectivity is removed. These are all rationally superior since they leave no or little doubt as to what is to be believed concerning revelation. But is that a criterion that God gives us for adopting one system over another?

    The New Testament gives an explicit answer to your question! Matthew’s Gospel tells that Christ founded his own church, and that if disputes arise among Christians, that they are to follow certain steps laid out by Christ to resolve those disputes (Matthew 18:15-20). Andrew, if you think that I am sinning by preaching heresy, then you need to confront me and try to reason with me. If that doesn’t get you anywhere, then your are to bring two or more other witnesses with you, and try and reason with me again. If that still doesn’t work in getting me to repent of what you and your witnesses believe to be heresy, then you and I are to bring our doctrinal dispute to the church that Jesus Christ personally founded. Christ’s church will settle this dispute over doctrine, and the Christian that “refuses to listen even to the church” is to be excommunicated.

    Christ’s church may rule against me, or Christ’s church may rule in my favor, but the scriptures are perfectly clear about this: the church that Jesus Christ founded has the final say in the manner. So yes, God does intend for us to have a church that can settle doctrinal matters. The inspired, inerrant, scriptures testify explicitly to that truth! So how you can even ask your question utterly baffles me.

    Andrew, how do you explain the verses found in Matthew 18:15-20? Where, exactly, are the scriptures that teach the Protestant doctrine of the primacy of the individual conscience? Where are the scriptural verses that say I am free to reject what Christ’s church solemnly teaches as doctrine if what she teaches conflicts with my personal interpretation of the bible?

  172. Peter –

    I hope you don’t mind if I address your points slightly out of order.

    Steven Reyes has done a great job responding to you, so I’m not going to go in depth. I will merely offer a few parting comments.

    Sorry, I don’t have time to continue this. I do have other people to be sarcastic to, and poorly abuse their reading ability abilities with my bad writing errors. Thanks for tolerating them so far.

    No worries. Believe me, I understand what it is to be busy and, truth be told, debates like this on the internet are pretty low on my priorities. Still, I’m happy to have the last word if you have, indeed left the conversation. Don’t worry about the sarcasm. I actually appreciate it more than many, however, I’m not the only one reading your responses.

    And by the way, it is fine and good to be a fool for Christ, but to be a fool for Rome, that is just being foolish.

    Unless “Rome” is the Church that Jesus established. If it is, then being a fool for Christ and a fool for Rome are one in the same.

    Your question assumed that anything I said about the Bible was ONLY my “own personal interpretation” as a posed to the fact that it may in fact be the teaching of the Bible. If what is what you hold then you have to prove it. You did not even try to answer that because you can’t. What your intention maybe, is not the issue you presume in your comment and you can’t respond to.

    No, I didn’t try to argue it because it won’t contribute to our discussion. I also didn’t address it because it is not my, nor anyone’s, opinion that the Bible cannot be interpreted correctly. Your interpretation of the Bible may very well be what the Bible actually teaches… but in order for us to have that discussion of whether it is or isn’t, we would be here for hours going back and forth in a prooftexting match and never make any progress.

    Perhaps if you showed me how it would contribute to the discussion I would do it, but as you admit in your previous post, time is precious and I’m not going to spend my time arguing things that aren’t essential to the discussion. I don’t expect you to do that either.

    Is that your “own personal interpretation”??? Is it your “own personal interpretation” that it is the teaching of Rome??? How do you have 100% certainty of that???

    This argument has been discussed many, many times here at Called to Communion. It is known as the Tu Quoque argument. Bryan Cross does a much better job of explaining it than I could, so if you are interested in truth, I encourage you to go there and read the comments.

    And regarding 100% certainty, I can be honest and say that I do not have 100% epistemological certainty on the matter. Michael Liccione established what I believe is what we all ought to do:

    You’re still confused after all these years. As I’ve often tried to make plain, my order of inquiry is as follows: (1) Establish by strictly philosophical argument that (for us who weren’t there) divine revelation is distinguishable from human opinion only with recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority. (2) See which visible churches claim such authority. (3) Compare the arguments supporting each respective set of claims to see which is the strongest. (4) Make one’s voluntary act of faith by submitting to the church with the strongest claim.

    Thus, among many reasons, I remain Catholic because I believe that the Catholic Church has the strongest claim to be the Church that Jesus Christ established. You can go ahead and argue that the Lutheran Church is the Church Jesus established, or that the Presbyterian Church is the church that Jesus established, or that Mars Hill Church (mega Church in Seattle, where I'm from) is the Church that Jesus established. There we can have a really good discussion about whose claim to be the Church is the strongest.

    In respond to you. What makes you think that I hold that doctrines are a matter of personal development, and that the individual does not rely on the true Christian church body? The church of Christ is the Pillar of the truth, but a pillar holds something else up. Rome claims to be “the pillar” and what sits on that pillar. The Christian church, exist because of the teachings of the Bible, and the Christian church, puts the Word of God. It is God’s word that is the truth for the lost world.

    Does the Church exist because of the Bible? Or does the Bible exist because of the Church? I think it is clear that the reason we have a Bible is because we have a Church who could decide which books to include in the Bible. For more on this, see Tom Brown’s post on The Canon Question.

    I won’t argue with you that God’s word is truth, but I will argue with you about what God’s word is. I see no evidence in the Bible that it is the Bible Alone.

    “I think the burden of proof might be on you hear to show that words can’t be misunderstood.”

    Why would I have to do that? Rome is proof that passages, such as Matt 16:18, can be misunderstood. Sinners sin. Rome misinterprets the Bible and calls that dogma. So, why must I prove that people can’t knowingly or unknowingly suppress the fact of what the Bible teach (in Rome’s case to insert dogmas from the middle ages into one verse and make that the grounds of anathema)?

    The reason you have to prove it is because you are making the argument that the Bible is easily understood. Citing (an opinion) that somebody else has gotten it wrong does not bolster your argument.

    Isn’t that exactly what he did when he join Rome? He rejected the Christian Church, the Christian salvation in the finished work of Jesus, the Christian grounds of authority in the word of God, for the traditions of Roman church, with its blasphemous re-crucifying of Christ, meriting of grace, an insult to the grace of God, and the continues erring Rome as authority. In the Christian Church he is to keep learning scripture and have his mind conform to the teachings of scriptures, however the difference is that NOW with Rome he must “surrendered my own beliefs”. What a fallible choice in what to “surrender believes” to!

    Peter, please see Steven Reyes’ comments on this point.

    What difference are they to each other versus the divisions in Rome? Roman Catholics who are for abortion, Roman Catholics worshiping Mary/Saint, Romans Catholics for evolution/against, Roman Catholics trying to make Mary into Coredemptrix, Roman Catholics apologist softening purgatory, and hush-hush on the sale of indulgence, come on the list can go on and on as to the drastic differences in Rome, the petty infighting for power, leaking of documents, university having an abortion advocate speaking…. That is not even to include those Roman Catholics who reject the current Pope, Liberation theology, feminism, gays, and child molesters and those who protect them. All of those claim to be Roman Catholics as well.

    I’ve made the point as good as I can, here, Peter. Of course there is confusion in the Catholic Church – it is just of a completely different type of confusion than the confusion in Protestantism. Thats all I’m saying. The difference is is that confusion is built into one of the systems and confusion enters from outside, sinful influences in the other.

    Catholics who are pro-choice (to cite but one example) know full well that they are dissenting from the Church and holding a heretical position. A protestant who is teaching heresy does not know he is teaching heresy, but spreads the falsehoods under the impression that he is teaching orthodoxy.

    Do you really not see the distinction?

    So, you think that what God designed was a mindless submission to a human organization with less than perfect track record. Rome is anything but that ONE church, as I have already printout out. “Oh, there are things we have to work on,” you may say, but you admit my point then. If not, then Rome is not that ONE church. You don’t know if what your pastor teach is the faith the apostles taught, if you don’t know the word of God. You only take it by blind and uninformed dependence on Rome! I can’t even abuse the word faith in that sentence. Faith is a dependence upon which one has knowledge of. You are talking about a blind dependence, as the Josh quote, the turning off the mind at the door of Rome.

    I’m not sure where to begin with this. First, I’m not advocating a mindless submission at all. Second, the Church is not a merely human institution. Third, while you have pointed certain things out you have given me no reason to accept that what you are pointing out is true.

    To drive home the point that Catholics do not turn their mind off, I refer you to any thread on this exact website. Here at CtC, all the Catholic contributors and commenters – Bryan Cross, Tim Troutman, Tom Brown, Michael Liccione, Steven Reyes, Fred Noltie, Josh Lim, and all the others here – ALL of us are united in faith but each and every single one of us has a unique grasp of this truth and a slightly different way of explaining the same thing. Clearly anyone who visits this site could not accuse the Catholics here of “Turning their mind off.”

    Maybe you got the story wrong. What Jesus appealed to, and claim to be the Word of God is scripture. It is not a matter of have to, but want to. The People of God want to study the word of God. They want to know what the word of God teach. They want the word, and not the human traditions that bind them down with man made requirements, and false dogmas and condemnations. They want to know what God has made known to his people throughout time. They want to go back to the source. The fountain from which churches, even supposedly Rome, gets her doctrines from. I love the word of God, it is not a “must,” but “may” learn more and more of God’s word.

    Yes, Jesus appealed to scripture but, because he was God, he also had the authority to interpret the scripture accurately. I agree that the people of God want to know what the Bible teaches. The way they can no that they are actually learning what the Bible teaches is to listen to the person or the institution that has the authority to interpret it properly. If there isn’t a person or institution who can be guaranteed to interpret the Bible accurately, then we can never be sure we know what the word of God teaches.

    I agree that the devil is responsible for the confusion. Maybe that is why Rome is so confused. People should ask which church is the right church. What is the problem with asking? And there are a lot of churches out there calling itself Roman Catholic. If you are gay, you may want to go to one that is more “accepting”. If you are for abortion, you may become the next speaker at the commencement of a Roman Catholic University. How many pastors of Roman Church will give you difference answers on any number of subjects? “Oh, But…” you may want to say, but that does not mean it does not happen.

    I have no problem with people asking the question of which is the Church Jesus established. In fact, I wish ALL Christians would ask this question. I think that Christianity would be much more united if more people asked this question. I think that every Christian should want to be part of the Church Jesus established.

    It is quite true that if you ask two Catholic Priests a question about faith or morals they may give you answers that conflict with each other. But, these two priests (or perhaps two Catholic commenters on this website) can resolve their dispute with an appeal to authoritative teaching, contained in Church documents. If that didn’t work, they can appeal to the Church, who could rule on the subject. Two protestant pastors do not have that luxury. They are ultimately left to their own, darkened intellect.

    You keep going on about ONE church, but when does the Bible teach that God established only one church, rather than that God instituted the church, and there are many churches, which continue the teachings of the Bible, and those which undermined the teachings of God’s word, or adding dogmas as if it is God’s word.

    Well, when Jesus said that he would build a Church – not ChurchES. Furthermore, the early Creeds all profess belief in one, universal Church. “Churches” are only Churches so long as they are attached to the vine – through preaching the universal faith and celebrating valid sacraments.

    Is that because you keep your finger in your ears the entire time through, or only when James White is speaking?

    Yes. When I listen to James White I keep my fingers in my ears because I’m afraid of what he is going to say (I’m allowed one sarcastic comment, right?)

    Thats all I got for a while, Peter. I’m getting to the busy part of my week right now and have an awful lot to do. Thank you for asking questions and giving me an opportunity to share the truth of the Catholic faith with our readers.

  173. Andrew (#159):

    1. You wrote:

    So again on perspicuity, the word is used to demarcate those things which are basic in Scripture from those things that are not. I don’t believe I ever thought about the issue of whether someone rejecting a basic doctrine is ignorant or evil or whatever else until I was asked by a Catholic. I really don’t see the point in speculating, it just does not matter. God knows why someone rejects something clear and we don’t need to worry about it IMO. But this is entirely beside the point.

    No, it is very much to the point–the point you seem to have conveniently left behind.

    The question was how your paradigm could supply a something we had agreed Christians need: a principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion. Since you reject my paradigm’s way of supplying it, yours needs to supply one itself. And what was it? A Bible that’s perspicuous as well as inerrant; for reasons I and many others here have given, a Bible that’s inerrant without also being perspicuous cannot afford a basis for the needed distinction.

    Now at first you denied that the Bible is altogether perspicuous. You affirmed its perspicuity only on matters of “paramount importance,” such as Nicene orthodoxy. I replied that, if the Bible were perspicuous on just the most important matters, then anti-Nicenes could only fail to “get it” through illiteracy, ill will, or both. That isn’t a matter of speculation; it’s a matter of logic. It tells us what must, disjunctively, be the case for those who don’t understand what’s perspicuous, i.e. what’s perfectly clear in itself. Either they can’t read and thus can’t understand, or they don’t want to see what they do understand. And I didn’t ask you to speculate by ascribing illiteracy or ill will to anybody in particular. All I asked was that you acknowledge such a logical consequence of affirming biblical perspicuity.

    But it’s now clear that you are unwilling to do so. Instead, you keep insisting that people who don’t “get it” just have a veil of mysterious origin over their eyes that the Holy Spirit lifts, or not, as he wills. But if that’s true, it’s true whether or not Scripture is perspicuous in some respects. And so, as I wrote, “[t]he problem is that the notion of Scripural perspicuity is no longer doing any work for you.”

    Rather than deny that, you write:

    It’s not supposed to be doing any work. It is a description of one quality of some of the doctrines of Scripture. Peter and Paul talk about doctrines being “elementary” and “basic” but there are other things which are “hard to understand.”…The point is that there are some things (but not all things) which are clear in Scripture and can be apprehended readily IF the Spirit gives them eyes to see as the Scriptures say.

    So the “perspicuous” doctrines in Scripture are really the “basic” doctrines, and those are easy to understand “IF the Spirit gives them eyes to see.” But with that reply you’ve once again missed my point: anything, regardless of how clear or unclear it may be in itself, becomes clear once the Spirit enables us to apprehend it. What you’re really pointing out is that the Spirit makes the important things in the Bible clear to people when and as he wills. And my point is that, if and when that’s true, it’s true regardless of the text’s inherent degree of intelligibility, or lack thereof. Given your heavy reliance on the Spirit’s enlightening activity, the aforesaid distinctions you’ve been trying to make within the text itself–basic vs. non-basic, clear vs. unclear–are distinctions that make no difference. The Spirit either enlightens a person or he doesn’t.

    Given as much, it is clear once again that your paradigm offers no principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion. It offers only a deus ex machina for resolving disputes about which doctrines are demonstrable from Scripture, and only scholarly disputation about all other points of contention, such as the interpretive paradigm by which we should handle points of contention.

    2. Thus I had asked: “[W]hat difference would it make if Scripture were not perspicuous on matters of “paramount importance”?” And you replied:

    If nothing in Scripture was clear then nobody or very few people would comprehend the gospel. We would have some sort of Gnostic like mystery religion that only a few people of great intelligence and insight would respond to.

    Although that’s quite true, the way you’re now handling perspicuity moves the main source of clarity from the inspired text itself to the Spirit’s enlighening influence on the reader. Hence it doesn’t matter whether, or to what degree, the text is clear in itself. On your account, all that matters is the Spirit swooping down to enlighten the reader about it. Then, and only then, is the text’s true meaning revealed.

    But that leaves untouched what I had written: that “the methodology specified in your paradigm cannot, by itself, offer anything more than human opinions as answers to its questions. The Holy Spirit has to come and rescue it by “lifting the veil” from your opponents’ eyes. And on your paradigm, there is of course no agreement on how we’d recognize when that’s occurred.” And you replied:

    MY opponents? And who are MY opponents?

    The opponents I referred to are those, such as myself, who disagree and dispute with you about the matters at hand, and any other matter concerning the truth revealed by God. I find it strange that you do not seem to understand such a way of speaking.

    3. You wrote:

    And so you would say that the group of people who have found the truth because God’s Spirit worked through His Word are now possessors of JUST opinions? In your previous post you flatly denied that this was the case. And the Spirit does not save the paradigm; the Spirit is an integral element of the paradigm. Without the Spirit nobody comes to knowledge of salvific matters. By itself you are right, the system does nothing.

    We agree that when God’s Spirit, through whatever means, shows people the revealed truth, what he shows them is no mere opinion, but God’s very truth. What we disagree about is how one’s “formal object of faith” (see my article) plays a role in that process. I argue that “your paradigm cannot, by itself, offer anything more than human opinions as answers to its questions.” Thus, when you or somebody following your paradigm is led by the Spirit to learn the divinely revealed truth rather than mere human opinion, that is in spite of your paradigm, not because of it–because your paradigm offers no principled way of making that distinction. I also implied, without phrasing it this way, that when somebody following the paradigm I advocate is led by the Spirit to learn the revealed truth rather than opinion, that is in part by means of the paradigm, and not in spite of it.

    4. Astonishingly, you write:

    It may be that you have by far and away the more rationally preferable system for making the distinctions that you speak of, but one that God never intended you to have.

    You’re just not seeing what’s at stake here. If the paradigm I follow has “by far the rationally preferable way of making the distinctions” in question, then that is itself a powerful reason for preferring that paradigm. The only way you could show your paradigm to be preferable all the same is to produce unassailable reasons for believing the conclusions you reach by means of it. But you insist that God might have “never intended” for us to have a paradigm that’s rationally preferable in the respects I’ve shown. In other words, God might never have intended that we be able to distinguish in a principled way between divine revelation and human opinion. But any possible argument could you offer for such a suggestion would beg the question, and thus provide no reason for preferring your paradigm to mine. Why would it beg the question? Because, by its own lights, it would give an account of biblical interpretation and early church history that would offer us no way to distinguish what’s divine revelation in its conclusions, and thus what God wants us to believe, from what’s just human opinion, and thus purely optional. It can offer no doctrinal conclusions commanding the assent of faith as distinct from that of opinion. Do you really expect any of us to believe that such is the result God had in mind when he revealed himself to humanity for its salvation?

    Of course you’ll want to answer that we should prefer your paradigm because it facilitates reaching conclusions that are true. But by your own lights, you can’t tell us why your conclusions are more than just provisional proposals that some find persuasive and others do not. You can’t seriously maintain that its conclusions are divine revelation rather than human opinion, and you no longer even pretend to. Thus you have no way, even in principle, of showing why your conclusions should command the assent of divine faith. Your paradigm can’t even distinguish between theology and religious studies! All it does is invite academic inquiries and exercises which needn’t be confessionally compelling. Such is no object for the assent of that “faith” which Jesus is always calling for in the Gospels. It is not to be taken seriously as doctrine or theology.

    5. Finally, you write:

    As I look at the various Catholic doctrines or methods or practices that we Protestants struggle with I see some that apparently have little to no basis in the history of the Early Church and are relative latecomers to the ecclesiastical world. The Assumption springs to mind. Your method as you outline it seems to be another similar sort of thing. We just see no exegetical or historical basis for claiming that this was an accepted way of making distinctions that you describe. However we do see lots of evidence for the Church doing exactly what I outline. And if what I say it true (and I know you do not concede that it is) then I conclude that my system is preferable even if it does not provide the same ready distinctions that your and other such systems produce.

    All that does is apply your paradigm to the data. So what? The fact that you and your cohort “see no exegetical or historical basis” for my paradigm in the data as interpreted by your paradigm is only to be expected. It does not supply reasons to believe that your paradigm is rationally preferable to mine.

    Best,
    Mike

  174. Eve Marie,
    Re: #170,
    Hi Eve, you made me blush! Sometimes I don’t know the things that come out of my mouth very much, which is why I dislike working in apologetics sometimes or commenting at this wonderful website. I have a tendency to write in a flurry and don’t know why I write things sometimes, so I’ll have to track my thought down a bit.

    As for what I was saying to Peter in my reply was, it might be true that God never intended to found a Church that could act infallibly in His authority and carry out the things that the Catholic Church claims to hold, like the capacity to make declarations of the faith infallibly. God could have willed it that way, but from looking at Scripture it honestly does seem as though the Lord intended the Church to stand the test of time as a cohesive group of men and women in an orthodox and holy community. And if He prayed that we would be one, then by golly we will be one. God after all is the one who is the one behind the wheel.

    But the hypothetical was to say that believing in the Church’s infallibility is something we hold by faith, but it isn’t an unreasonable belief, and I believe in fact that it makes the Church even more beautiful if so perilous. As a priest once wrote, every single institution in the world will fail, except the Catholic Church, and this makes her all the more beautiful as Jesus’ Bride.

    I’ve never written any books, I’m not a theologian or anything, in fact I just received a job offer today to make about $10.50 an hour which is the highest amount of money anybody has ever paid me. To be fair though I’m only 20 though ;-). Thank you for your comment on my charity and clarity, I assure you it’s more God’s work than mine, not that I myself am holy, it is only that after He’s rebuked me so many times in my life that I’ve gotten to understanding the bigger picture of where I fit in life.

    I try to write about weekly at my blog, http://www.corinquietam.blogspot.com, but I’m studying science in college and so I can’t always devote a lot of time to the blog. Feel free to shoot me an email at cooldraw01ster@gmail.com if there is anything you would like to know about Catholicism. Though there isn’t that much remarkable to my own self if you consider me next to the wonderfully able and graced young men and women who work so hard at this website. Also I will be very busy this week, so if you do shoot me an email, I may take some time to reply. Also, I’m a bit bad in my memory sometimes so I’m sorry if I miss an email from you or other correspondence.

    May God bless you

  175. Andrew,

    I had decided to forgo further dialogue on this matter because we seem to be at odds over the most foundational aspect of this question – i.e. there would seem to be no deeper level to which we might dig in an effort to find common ground. Nevertheless, I will some final comments concerning something you recently wrote, because it seems to highlight the basic reason why this dialogue is essentially out of gas. After all the back and forth with Mike, myself, and others on what we all take to be a foundationally epistemic issue you write:

    And so you would say that the group of people who have found the truth because God’s Spirit worked through His Word are now possessors of JUST opinions?

    1.) Your appeal to Scripture’s perspicuity is a smoke screen as is evidenced by the fact that when you are pressed about the details of perspicuity, you religiously resort to an appeal to the necessity of the Spirit’s work “through the Word”. The quote I have just provided simply reinforces the point that an appeal to the Spirit’s work constitutes your explanatory end game and is, in fact, doing all the work (as Mike has argued in a rather perspicuous way).

    2.) But for that very reason your question shows a continuing inability to grasp the epistemic nature of the problem.. Here is your question once again:

    And so you would say that the group of people who have found the truth because God’s Spirit worked through His Word are now possessors of JUST opinions?

    IF, IF, IF we ALREADY KNEW that such and such group of people, in arriving at some truth, had, IN FACT, been influenced by God’s Spirit working through His Word; THEN, of course it would immediately follow that whatever truth they had arrived at by such means would necessarily entail more than human opinion. Such a truth would be true in the order of reality or being (ontology), regardless of how many other persons recognized that truth in the order of knowing (epistemology).

    But without a principled epistemic means, we DON”T already know that any such group, or which such group (if any), has been influenced by God’s Spirit working through His Word.It is an epistemic problem, not an ontological problem. Is it possible that some group – say Reformed Protestant Christians – have been influenced by God’s Spirit working through His Word, such that their doctrinal views – as an ontological fact – are not mere human opinion, but rather the very truth of God? Yes, it is possible, but there is no way to KNOW that this claim – this possibility – is true! How can we publicly navigate or differentiate claims to personal or group enlightenment by the Spirit, when there are conflicting doctrinal claims on core matters arising from persons and groups who claim equal Spirit-led guidance in arriving at their distinct doctrinal positions?

    Mike has pointed out the same thing when he wrote:

    But that leaves untouched what I had written: that “the methodology specified in your paradigm cannot, by itself, offer anything more than human opinions as answers to its questions. The Holy Spirit has to come and rescue it by “lifting the veil” from your opponents’ eyes. And on your paradigm, there is of course no agreement on how we’d recognize when that’s occurred.” [bold emphasis mine]

    All you can say is that it is possible that God has and does lead people to come to a knowledge of what He wishes them to know through His Spirit working through His Word. You can even go about claiming that the particular doctrinal positions which Reformed Christians promote (such as Sola Fide) have been arrived at by just such a method. But from an epistemic point of view, the claim that something is possible is little less than useless. All kinds of things are possible. How do we decide between possibilities? How do we know? That is the question. All of your anecdotal stories, and much of your general dialogue is simply geared towards getting someone to acknowledge that the way in which God operates according to your paradigm might be possible. “Couldn’t God do this?” or “IF God worked this way, what would this man be lacking?”, etc, etc, etc. So here you go: YES – God could do anything that is possible – including the actualization of the sort of possibilities you keep putting forward.

    But Andrew, sitting around discussing how things might possibly be is the very stuff of human opinion. What we are interested in – at least what I am interested in – is arriving at some principled means by which we might make a principled choice between mere possibilities. Until you acknowledge and grapple with the epistemic problem inherent in your position, you are – frankly – not achieving anything very interesting. You are raising possibilities – so what? You can certainly – on a personal level – cling to your conviction that you and your co-religionists have, in fact, been led to the doctrinal positions you currently hold by the working of God’s Spirit. But (at the risk of sounding like a broken record) if you would hope to see those claims achieve any level of persuasive power with anyone outside Reformed circles, you will simply have to tackle the epistemic problem. As the scholastics were fond of saying (and I paraphrase): “What is gratuitously asserted, can be gratuitously ignored”.

    Pax Christi,

    Ray

  176. Wow Pete.

    I read Jesus saying, “Whose sins you forgive, they are forgiven them,” but me and mine were saying something else.

    I read Jesus saying, “Unless you eat My Body and drink My Blood, you will not have Life within you,” but me and mine were saying something else.

    I read Jesus saying, “Upon this rock I will establish My Church, and the gates of Hell will not prevail against it,” but me and mine were saying something else.

    I read Paul saying, “Work out your salvation in fear and trembling, because it is God’s good purpose both to will and to work in you.” I would note that Paul was writing to believers and therefore assumed faith was present in them. But me and mine were saying something else.

    I read James saying, “I will show you my faith through my works, because faith without works is dead.” I would note that James was writing to believers and therefore assumed faith was present in them. But me and mine were saying something else.

    It became clear to me from reading scripture, that Jesus was directing comments and commands to His apostles, and through them to us. This was not the free-for-all chaos seen in the Yellow Pages under Church. I finally understood that I did not really get to pick and choose what I would and – importantly – would not believe. One is really all in, or one is not.

    In John 6, when Jesus establishes the fact that unless one eats His Body and drinks His Blood one would not have Life within them, a bunch of people complained and then left. He did not rescind what He said, rather He looked at the apostles and asked if they were leaving as well. I don’t believe that the word “transubstantiation” occurred to any of them, but however He planned to do what He had said, they noted that “You have the words of eternal life,” and they continued to follow Him.

    The word perspicacity is used a lot at C2C. I looked it up to be sure, and it says in part “the capacity to draw sound conclusions.” I was graced with the perspicacity to find the Church where what Jesus was saying was believed. The Church where Jesus is seen as being true, including true to the words on the pages of the gospels that the same Church ordered into a canon. (Of keen import, there were other gospels and letters which were held as unworthy of belief, and those were denied entry into that same canon. I believe that the councils, led by the Holy Spirit, which decided and then verified the decision about what is and what is not scripture were showing perspicacity.)

    Who is true? If it is Jesus, if He is telling you the truth, and using scripture as a means to do so, then you do have a decision to make. Is He telling you something you cannot believe, ala the departing disciples in John 6? Is He lying to you? I did not believe He was lying to me, rather I believed that I was trying to manipulate Him into surrendering His leadership to me and those who believed as I did. Bad idea!

    Lastly there is always a cost. Most of the people who post here have arrived at the crossroads where one must make a choice about which direction to take. Even staying put is a choice. Only one choice is eternally good, and that choice must be worked out in fear and trembling because God is willing and working within one, in order for that person to be perfect.

    Cordially,

    dt

  177. Mike/Ray/Mateo/Alicia,

    Much as I would like to respond to all of you, I’m afraid I have a number of things to deal with in the coming days and I’m just not going to be able to respond properly anytime soon. I will be sure to read through your posts again and have a think about them for the next time….

    Thanks very much for the interaction.

    Cheers for now,

    Andrew

  178. Lurker here… Andrew, I just want to thank you for how you’ve handled the onslaught of all your interlocutors. Like you I’m trying to make sense of the epistemic ground we can stand on as Protestants, apart from what we claim to be “Spirit-guided” opinion (and therefore orthodox).

    I’ll pray for you tonight that the Spirit guide you to a clear answer to the latest comments. If you’re going to be away for long, would you mind finding a suitable replacement that can faithfully and charitably argue? I feel the last few statements were as clear as I’ve ever seen the Catholic epistemic challenge ever communicated and could sure use some support the other direction.

    Peace.

    Michael et. al. – I applaud your clarity. I hope it’s not as simple as you put it, and in the end shown differently, but you are fantastic thinkers even if we don’t see eye to eye on everything (yet). I hope Andrew, Kieth, James, and others come to demonstrate the error of your logic but until then I stand impressed and maybe a little fearful how clear you’ve made it sound. I’ve watched your dialogues with Andrew here for years now and have learned a whole lot. This particular conversation has truly gotten to the bottom of it and I am eager for a proper Protestant rebuttal. I wish you all well.

  179. Salvador – If I can I will try to put my thoughts together early next week. It’s a good discussion, I just don’t want to try to answer in a quick and cursory manner. I appreciate your encouragement to both sides. It’s definitely an interesting dialogue.

    Cheers,
    Andrew

  180. Andrew McCallum,

    I agree, the discussion has been interesting. I look forward to picking up the discussion once again when you have the time to do so.

    May God bless you abundantly,

    mateo

  181. You said, “These issues have not moved me from the conviction that the Catholic Church is the true Church; on the contrary, they have only increased my faith that this must be the true Church. If Christ could continue to work to build his Church with such a history of failings on the part of the laity, various priests, bishops, and even popes, surely this Church must be sustained by God himself”

    AMEN!
    This is the response very few expect because rather than a weak defense of all our (the Church’s) failings, this response is instead a strong, and reliable witness to the truth of the Catholic Church’s divine guidance by the Holy Spirit!

  182. Is anyone planning on writing a response to this article posted yesterday on aomin https://aomin.org/aoblog/index.php?itemid=5107

    If someone has already done so and I’ve overlooked it then I apologize.

  183. Alejandro (#181)
    Your comment made me smile. It reminds one of Boccacio’s Second Tale in the Decameron – in which Abraham the Jew becomes a Catholic because any church so depraved but still surviving must have the Holy Spirit at its foundation :-)

    jj

  184. Do you feel obligated to give your diploma back to WSC?

  185. Pio, (re: #182),

    David Meyer has already done so. See here.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  186. Joshua,

    Thanks for sharing your story. In it I hear echoes of the questions that have given me more than a few sleepless nights over the past several years.

    You alluded to your conversation with Dominican priests as a significant turning point, and you specifically mention that they had well-reasoned answers to your most vexing questions on various topics, including historical issues. Did you ask them about apparent contradictions in purportedly infallible statements made by the Catholic Magisterium? I am thinking specifically about the strongly worded version of -extra ecclesia nulla salus- found in Unum Sanctum as compared to statements in the documents of Vatican II that appear to state the opposite (non-Catholics can be saved etc). I posted this question on another thread at this site last year (I believe it was Fred Noltie’s conversion story), but I am interested in your response. I can understand the argument for the necessity of an infallible living Magisterium. I think you would agree that the presence of self-contradictory teachings would be a fatal flaw for any group claiming to be such an authority. On the previous thread, Mike Liccione correctly warned against approaching the Catholic claim in a way that is prejudicial, and to give the Catholic Church the same “fair shake” one would give Scripture when evaluating instances of supposed self-contradiction. This however, does not let the Catholic Church (or Scripture) off the hook in providing a reasonable explanation for apparent contradictions.

    I acknowledge the great difficulties that the Protestant paradigm has in defining orthodoxy, heresy, schism, the Canon and a few other small items :) This realization is what lead me to initially start questioning some pretty basic presuppositions and at least entertain the claims of Catholicism. It would be a bit of a bummer to ultimately conclude that neither one can be right, and for me, this issue of historical contradiction seriously threatens to doom me to that paralyzing state called ecclesial agnosticism. Fred linked me to a piece by Mike Liccione at a different site. I’m sure Mike will jump in if my grossly oversimplified version is off the mark, but I think he suggested that the apparent contradiction is resolved when one recognizes that: (1) there are other instances prior to the 13th century where the church officially recognized the possibility of salvation outside of formal, visible union with her, so Unum Sanctum can’t mean what it prima facie seems to mean (2) different historical context (3) the reasons why Vat. II statements on the subject qualify as legit development of doctrine (that’s where he got a bit too fuzzy and nuanced for me). All in all, I left with with general feeling of …”yeah, but”.

    Long and drawn out rambling post- apologies – its way past my bedtime. Just wondered how you reconciled the above difficulties.

    Burton

  187. I just read James Swan’s piece over at aomin.org. The most interesting statement can be found in the second to last paragraph:

    “Why can I not say the same thing from a Protestant paradigm? Why can I not say that I have a conviction in God’s providence over the world and the church, that despite a history of sinful people, beginning with Adam and Eve, God calls and sanctifies His people in every generation, and he does so without the means of an infallible magisterium, but simply by having his infallible word available?”

    This would be an excellent springboard for discussion, and I hope Mr. Swan will be willing to jump in and discuss it. This is, in my opinion, the central question. Is “having His infallible Word available” all that is necessary?

    Mr. Swan, I do think that your claim that CtC conversion stories are somehow inherently manipulative and luring in the unsuspecting Protestant is unfair and a bit underhanded. It would be very helpful if you could instead address the actual meat of Mr. Lim’s claims.

    Burton

  188. Its interesting when you take into account sola scriptura and listen to James Whites debate with Bob Wilkin on regeneration and perseverance. James White goes to great lenghts to use the Westminster Confession, Baptist confession and other confessions to make the point that this is the way that reformed theology has always been understood from the bible. Bob Wilkin on the other hand made a point of the fact that he cared little about what other people thought re the creeds, he stood on and accepted the bible as his sole authority. Reminded me off tradition vs the bible…hmmmmm

  189. Wow, Donald [#176]

    First you cherry pick some of the very few Scripture passages upon which Rome has given a definitive spin, and then you infer that Protestant hermeneutics derive a meaning from these self-same verses contrary to their clear meaning!

    I don’t have the foggiest notion who “you and yours” are, but they’re pretty far off the mark, even for us invariably off-the-mark Protestants.

    1. Protestant churches, by and large, all receive confession and pronounce absolution. We believe that those whom we forgive are forgiven by the Father…unlike “you and yours,” whoever they might be.

    2. All of the magisterial Protestant groups accept the Real Presence in the Eucharist. That’s right, they believe they receive the actual body and blood of Christ…unlike “you and yours,” whoever they might be.

    3. A good many Protestant commentaries interpret the Rock in Matthew 16:18 as Peter himself…unlike “you and yours,” whoever they might be. (To be fair, they don’t go on to link this fact with Peter’s being the first pope…for the simple reason that Scripture doesn’t imply any such thing.)

    4. Philippians 2:12-13 happens to be a favorite verse of many Reformed folk. Maybe that’s because we have no problem with good works fitting into the process of salvation, unlike “you and yours,” whoever they might be.

    5. You are so correct that James is addressing believers. That’s the point. The TYPE of faith he is addressing is sanctifying faith. So James’ observation here is actually a corollary to justification by faith alone. Luther may have had a problem with James, but I know of no modern day Protestants who do…unlike “you and yours,” whoever they might be.

    6. As for John 6, I kind of doubt any sane Catholic has seriously considered crushing and swallowing the crystal ampulla containing the true blood of Christ at the Basilica of San Marco in Venice. Though Catholics believe it to be the physical blood and body in the Eucharist, it is still mediated spiritually. How else could the tiniest crumb of bread or the smallest sip of wine–either one, no necessity for both–be the ENTIRE body of Christ, including the blood from his whole circulatory system.

    How could the wine and bread Christ offered in the Last Supper be transformed into his (still living) flesh and blood? How could it be a genuine sacrifice before he was ever sacrificed? Augustine stated that Christ “carried himself in his own hands.” What do you think that means? Thomas Aquinas teaches that Christ’s “quantitative dimensions” are not in the Eucharist. Otherwise, the Eucharist would be the same shape and size as Christ’s body, instead of having the size and shape of bread. Since the Eucharist does not possess Christ’s quantitative dimensions, it cannot exist in a single circumscribed place. [If you want to read St. Thomas himself, go to his Summa Theologica, third part, q. 76 a. 5.] What we see here is that the Catholic Eucharist is not as unequivocally physical as you seem to think. It is a mystery; just as it is for EO adherents and for magisterial Protestants…unlike “you and yours,” whoever they might be.

    As for the canon, the Protestants codified their version of the canon just after the Roman Catholics did so at Trent in 1546. (The Gallic Confession was ratified in 1559, and the Belgic Confession in 1561. ) So, you’re a whole 13 years ahead of us!

    Rome gives no specific direction on many theological topics:

    What is the definitive RC position on eschatology?

    On soteriology, does the magisterium side with the Jesuits or the Dominicans?

    What is their exact position on the use of historical criticism in biblical exegesis?

    What is the precise relationship between Science and Faith? (Does the magisterium espouse the scientific consensus on naturalistic evolution or opt for a more nuanced type of goal-oriented evolution?)

    Also, you must not comprehend Catholic dogma (since Vatican II) concerning the necessity of being “all in, or all out.” We Protestants are covered by the concept of invincible ignorance: in other words, we’re IN! Augustine was well aware of the “many sheep outside [the Catholic fold] and the many wolves within.” Perhaps you’re not as safe as you thought! (Following a version of “Pascal’s Wager” you might want to consider joining us Protestants. If you’re right in converting, you win heaven; if you’re wrong, you still end up in heaven (unless you hang on to your infernal certitude that Rome is correct!) At any rate, from the Catholic perspective, you are wrong about the choice having eternal consequences. According to RC dogma, both your choice and my choice are “eternally good.”

    As for perspicuity, you need to understand all the components that go into Protestant interpretation, including the “analogy of faith,” whereby Scripture interprets Scripture (the clearer sections explicating the vaguer sections). We employ sound exegetical methods, the authority of the church and its longstanding traditions, compatibility with the ecumenical creeds, and the Holy Spirit agreeing with our spirit (Acts 15:28). We insist that passages be read in context and compared with the overarching tenor of the whole of Scripture.

    The chaos you see in the yellow pages began with the unbiblical inflexibility of the Roman Catholic hierarchy in addressing valid 16th-century spiritual concerns. (Plus, there is very little chaos among the descendants of the magisterial Reformers, or at least not theologically. There is as much or more disarray in YOUR theological house. I suggest you clean up your own act before commencing to throw stones!)

    I see your “cordially” …and raise you a “cordial.”

    Tchin-tchin!

    –Eirik

  190. Burton (#186):

    I’m sure Mike will jump in if my grossly oversimplified version is off the mark, but I think he suggested that the apparent contradiction is resolved when one recognizes that: (1) there are other instances prior to the 13th century where the church officially recognized the possibility of salvation outside of formal, visible union with her, so Unum Sanctum can’t mean what it prima facie seems to mean (2) different historical context (3) the reasons why Vat. II statements on the subject qualify as legit development of doctrine (that’s where he got a bit too fuzzy and nuanced for me). All in all, I left with with general feeling of …”yeah, but”.

    Yeah, but what? There either is or is not a contradiction.

    Another question: Do you really think that popes and councils would say things which they believe contradict what they believe are irreformable teachings? I don’t. And if, as a reasonable man, you don’t, then you need to ask yourself how they themselves would see the teachings in question as a self-consistent set. That’s what I tried to do in the little series you cite, but there is of course so much more to be said in terms of the “analogy of faith.”

    Best,
    Mike

  191. Eirik,

    A few comments.

    1) Donald never used the word “physical” in his comment. If “physical” is taken materialistically, then no Catholic who understands transubstantiation believes in it. So it’s kind of a straw man to impute a physicalist understanding to Donald and then prove what he already knows — that the sacramental, substantial presence of Christ is not a local presence.

    2) There is a great deal of specific direction from the Magisterium on each of the topics you raise. For example, on eschatology, see The Catechism of the Catholic Church 668-682. On faith and reason, see Fides et Ratio. On biblical interpretation, see CCC 101-141 and Verbum Domini. On the Jesuit-Dominican controversy, I’m not sure why the pope saying, “Both of these opinions are within the bounds of orthodoxy; don’t call one another heretics,” fails in your eyes to constitute specific direction.

    3) Your caricature of invincible ignorance and of degrees of communion makes me severely doubt your assertion to Brent on another thread that you truly understand and could even imitate Catholic positions and arguments.

    4) The sarcasm is most unbecoming.

    best,
    John

  192. Burton,

    Sometimes I have been troubled by the fact that the “obvious” meaning of a text (at least when taken out of the context of prior teaching) seems different from the “obvious” meaning of another text. This has probably troubled me more about comparing statements of scripture than it has about the statements of the Church, but I have felt this feeling regarding Church statements as well.

    Something occurred to me that made me feel better, however: God never promised us that Church statements or even scripture would be presented in the clearest possible manner. Therefore, I needed to ask myself: in the absence of such a promise, what would I expect? I would expect that the vast majority of such statements would harmonize profoundly with each other, revealing “the masters’ touch”, as a famous protestant has said before. But I would also expect a distribution of such beauty: some statements would be especially beautiful in their “fit” with everything else in Christianity, while others would be especially difficult to “fit” with everything else.

    It occurred to me that the only way that this variety of levels of “fit” would not happen would be if we had been promised a “perfect presentation” after all. So what I was seeing was precisely what I should have expected to see given the promises we have been given.

    Then the question remains: how do we know we’re not just engaging in special pleading in order to justify believing in something that has at least a few blatant contradictions? We know for two reasons, both of which we have to keep in mind:

    (1) The vast majority of such statements of both scripture and magisterium have “the master’s touch.” They are too prescient at pointing out truths that I never would have guessed in advance for them to be mere human guesswork. For instance, the teaching on chastity in general and contraception is exceptionally difficult to believe before one has tried to live that way. Once one has, the beauty of this form of life is self-evident. No one but the Church (and scripture rightly construed) has been solid on monogamy, chastity, contraception, and the beauty of celibacy. Here is the master’s touch. God has been at work. We need to take the many examples of miraculous truth-telling into account whenever we feel shocked by the small handful of claims that seem self-contradictory.

    (2) We need to remember why God did not make the promise that all of His statements would be obviously clear and obviously non-contradictory, i.e., we need to remember why God has allowed for a world in which we need to work a little to understand why a few of the statements don’t contradict. Here is one reason why He has allowed this. I believe it was Origen who said that God wanted to leave later generations of Christians the chance to learn and explore and settle difficult theological issues as part of their pathway towards His kingdom. Read Origen’s commentaries and homilies and see how he glows with the joy of patiently untangling the mysteries (and apparent problems!) of scripture and the traditions of the faith. God has given us the opportunity of actually contributing to each other’s understanding of Him precisely by not making everything completely apparent. It is only by allowing there to be some small measly difficulties that we can have the opportunity of loving each other through the work of our minds.

    There is a purpose to all that God has willed, and all that He has allowed. I know it doesn’t _feel_ good to have to say: “there is a specific way to interpret these statements that keeps them from being a contradiction.” We would have rather had the easy way out and had every statement promised from the beginning to be perfectly clear and obviously non-contradictory. But to complain about this not only means we’re forgetting about all the miraculously true statements (point 1 above); it also means we’re not allowing for humans to interact and participate in this process at all. We’re not allowing humans to mess up and make the statements less clear than they would have been had the humans involved in the statements been more holy; we’re also not allowing humans to exercise heroic charity to bring the truth to light. The wonderful thing about being in the Church is that we’re all on this journey together, and God has left room for us to really help each other get to know and love him.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  193. This would be an excellent springboard for discussion, and I hope Mr. Swan will be willing to jump in and discuss it. This is, in my opinion, the central question. Is “having His infallible Word available” all that is necessary?

    I don’t know that that is the central question. What does “necessary” mean? Necessary for salvation? It is possible to be saved even without the bible. So the visible church is not needed from that point of view.

    One could ask if the gospel of Mark was necessary. If the answer is No, then what? If there is no essential doctrine that is only taught in the gospel of Mark can we just ignore it? Is that the question we should ask?

    It is not so much is it necessary but is it God’s plan. We can have a certain level of unity and a certain knowledge of the truth with just scripture. As a protestant it seemed like that level was declining over time. But can we have the depth God wants for us and can we maintain that for our children and grandchildren?

    Then there are sacraments. What role should they play? Rejection of the church prevents a person from from embracing the true power of the sacraments. What does God want to give us? Do we want it all or just what the tradition we are in can give us?

    Asking what is necessary leads to atheism. They point out that we don’t die if we don’t go to church. In fact, life seems to go on OK. At that level faith life also seems to go on OK even when we reject some important truths. In the longer term you have problems but those problems are hard to see if you don’t want to see them.

    In the shorter term you need to ask more than what will avert immediate spiritual disaster. You need to ask what will allow me to live the fullness of Christianity? What brings me closest to God?

    To me the central question is not one of need at all. It is one of truth. The Catholic church claims to offer so much more. Is the claim true or false? If it is true then becoming Catholic is a no-brainer. If it is false then every Catholic is history is spiritually dysfunctional is a major way. The church is either an amazing grace or a massive error. There really isn’t much middle ground.

  194. John–

    Please forgive any sarcasm I may have indulged in. Though it is my very nature to use it, I know that it can be seriously detrimental to interfaith dialogue. (In the family in which I grew up, sarcasm was our only humor. It was light. It was fun. It was demonstrative of acceptance. I responded to Donald in kind, mirroring his words. This was not in any way intended as derision…any more than his words were intentionally disrespectful toward Protestants. He sought to make a point. I took it that way. I merely sought to make a counter point. I would be more than grateful if you would find it in your heart to take it that way.)

    That said, you don’t know me from Adam, and I would appreciate it in future if you would give me some semblance of the benefit of the doubt. For any Protestant reader, this website veritably drips with sarcasm. It is difficult for me to even be here. It is injurious to the sensibilities of my faith, and I always depart in need of spiritual refreshment in the Lord. My conscience literally screams for respite…but I believe you all are important. I have absolutely no motivation to score “points.” This is not entertainment for me.

    I will now answer your objections:

    1. Donald makes much of John 6. Many fell away at this point in time because of a lack of trust in Jesus. What he claimed could be taken rather viscerally, and ancient middle-eastern sensibilities towards cannibalism were as sharp or sharper than modern ones. They took it as physical. How many modern Catholics understand the ins and outs of transubstantiation? How many of them comprehend that the host in the monstrance is not materially Christ? One in a hundred? One in a thousand?

    2. I didn’t say that the Catholic church had no take on eschatology. But what it does have is vague by Protestant standards. For example, on the millennium, most Catholics take a roughly amillenial stance if they take any stance at all. This is not asserted dogmatically though I do believe dispensational pre-millennialism is in view in the censure in CCC 675-676. (Catholics are distinctly post-trib.)

    On faith and science, Pius XII and John Paul II don’t seem to be in sync with the Catechism’s take on the physical historicity of Adam and Eve. In Humani Generis, for example, the creation of man’s body and soul are de-linked, allowing for acceptance of some forms of evolution theretofore out of bounds. The media certainly do not understand the Catholic stance on evolution as anything less than complete compliance with current scientific consensus. Catholics themselves don’t appear to be certain where they stand. The official position seems to be that some sort of divinely directed process is in place though unspecified as to mechanism, mysterious even. But positions clearly outside of these guidelines are routinely abided. When Christoph Cardinal Schoenborn recently clarified what he believed to be the magisterial position, he came under sharp attack from the director of the Vatican Observatory. I honestly see current Catholic thought on the matter as incoherent.

    On biblical interpretation, we have seen the encyclicals of Pius X overridden and higher criticism given free reign within the parameters of sticking to established tradition. The Catechism does not directly address this as far as I can see.

    The reason the acceptance of both Molinistic and Thomistic systems of soteriology bothers me is that they are clearly farther apart than Reformed thought and Thomism…and extraordinarily farther apart than Reformed thought and Augustinianism. Why would Luis Molina and Ignatius of Loyola be given such a “pass” unless it were for political reasons? And in light of the noncommittal attitude toward the Jesuit-Dominican squabble, why all the animus toward sola fide?

    3. I neither defined invincible ignorance nor discussed the role of motivations in evaluating it. So how could you possibly construe my use of it as a caricature? And I don’t recall even broaching the subject of degrees of communion. What are you reading into what I had to say? Moreover, I wasn’t trying to make myself out to be God’s gift to humanity in terms of my familiarity with Catholicism. My degree of expertise is irrelevant to the point I was making. At the very least, I know more than most Catholics.

    4. Your condescension is most unbecoming.

    Those of us who are Reformed on this website constitute a decided minority. I assume the intention would be to treat us as guests, to do everything possible to make us comfortable, to even protect us from time to time. That’s what I would do if I had a blog inviting Catholics to share their hearts. I’d give them a little more latitude and curtail the overeager home field fans.

    I honestly love you and wish you no ill.

    Under the blood,

    –Eirik

    P.S. I’m really not all that angry with this blog. I’m thankful they allow us to “mix it up” without any heavy handed constraints. I have to keep reminding myself that communication across paradigms is a trying task even under the best of conditions. I don’t know if any of you have heard of Bill Mallonee, a Catholic revert and terrific songwriter, a friend of mine, as a matter of fact. He has a song called “Skin” whose last stanza reads as follows:

    “Now look, if you’re gonna come around here
    And say those sort of things,
    You gotta take a few on the chin.
    Yeah, you’re talking about sin and redemption;
    Well, you better wear your thickest skin.
    Sometimes you can’t please everyone.
    Sometimes you can’t please anyone at all.
    Sew your heart onto your sleeve
    And wait for the ax to fall….”

  195. Burton (#187):

    You quoted James Swan writing:

    Why can I not say that I have a conviction in God’s providence over the world and the church, that despite a history of sinful people, beginning with Adam and Eve, God calls and sanctifies His people in every generation, and he does so without the means of an infallible magisterium, but simply by having his infallible word available?”

    You reacted by asking:

    This is, in my opinion, the central question. Is “having His infallible Word available” all that is necessary?

    And my answer to your question is “No.” Why?

    First off, if by “His infallible Word” you mean the Bible, it must be said that the Bible is not infallible because it is a not a person. Only persons can be infallible. The Bible is inerrant, however, because its principal author is the Holy Spirit, who is an infallible person.

    Notice, though, that the question now shifts. The question becomes: “Is the belief that an infallible person authored the Bible inerrant itself”? If one tries to answer that question by citing the Bible alone, one is simply begging the question. One cannot prove, from Scripture alone, that Scripture is inerrant. Extra-scriptural evidence is not only necessary but primary.

    So now the next question arises: What is that evidence to be? The burning in my bosom, or the dropping of scales from my eyes, which I undergo when I read Scripture? If so, why is that a more reliable sign of divine inspiration, and therefore of inerrancy, then the bosom-burning or scale-dropping some people claim to undergo when reading the Qu’ran or the Bhagavad-gita? Lots of people claim to be guided by God when reading their sacred text. How to adjudicate among their doctrinal differences? Once again, citing the Bible alone would beg the question. And if my answer is “the consensus of the Church,” I’m just kicking the can down the road. Why believe the Church?

    This is where the Catholic claim, and my own argument, become pertinent. If the Church–whichever body of people constitute “the” Church–is not infallible under any conditions, then one cannot infer that any consensual belief or teaching of hers is inerrant. The Church’s confession is only provisional, pending further evidence or consideration, because she is always fallible and thus could always be wrong. If so, then the belief that the Bible’s principal author is an infallible person is itself only provisional, not inerrant. Ultimately, there is no way to distinguish that belief from merely human opinion. So there is no basis other than opinion for claiming that the Bible is inerrant, or even for limning the canon as Protestants do. That in turn deprives Protestants of any principled basis for distinguishing between divine revelation and human opinion. Religion thus reduces to a matter of opinion–including the belief in God’s “infallible Word.”

    I’m sure that’s not the result you want. I leave it up to you to explain how you avoid it.

    Best,
    Mike

  196. Eirik (#189)
    I was interested in your list – and particularly in your ‘by and large’ ideas. I only became a Christian (a Protestant) when I was already 27 – nearly 43 years ago now :-)) – so my experience is not as wide as that of some. But during that time I was a formal member of five Protestant churches – one Lutheran, one Baptist, three Reformed (in the Three Forms of Unity tradition) – and was involved in a wide variety of others – Brethren, variously evangelical, Pentecostal, Baptist, Presbyterian, Anglican. Regarding your points, I never found any of them that would agree with your first point (confession and absolution); the TFU ones would agree with your second (Real Presence) only in the sense that the believer receives Christ by his faith, but would have denied that Communion was any sort of extra reception; denied your third point about Peter (the Rock is Christ or it is Peter’s confession.

    There no doubt are some – particularly Anglo-Catholic – groups that would agree with you. Our TFU churches – including the one I was instrumental in founding – considered themselves part of the magisterial Reformation but certainly would disagree with you.

    So … maybe some – but ‘by and large??’ I find that difficult to accept.

    In 1994 I made the decision to become a Catholic, was received into the Church at Christmas Eve, 1995. One thing I gained in doing so was to be in a church that unequivocally did affirm all three – and thank God for it.

    jj

  197. Mike,

    OK, I admit that “yeah, but..” isn’t a glowing example of sound argument. I ran out of steam and never quite finished my thoughts before heading off to bed. I acknowledge that it would be unreasonable for popes and councils to knowingly contradict previous popes and councils. For example, I would assume that the bishops of Vat. II and Pope Benedict XVI (Dominus Iesus) have some rationale explaining how all the teachings on this subject form a consistent whole, I have simply never heard the Church’s reasoning explained in a straightforward manner. “You shouldn’t expect reasonable men to knowingly contradict themselves” is not a terribly convincing argument, but I am truly open to hearing a reasonable explanation of how these teachings form a consistent whole. I think Fred suggested a book by Fr. Stravinskas which I have not ordered or read. I was hoping one of you guys could give me the short version.

    K. Doran,

    I hear the spirit of what you are saying and appreciate your insights. The Catholic Church’s consistent (and beautiful) teaching on human sexuality and the near-prescient words of Humanae Vitae are a strong piece of evidence in favor of her authority. I also agree that things can’t always be as intellectually neat and tidy as we want, and perhaps God uses these ambiguities to strengthen our faith. Interestingly, I have heard similar arguments from fellow Protestants trying to convince me that my interest in Catholicism is evidence of an overdeveloped need for certainty, and I wonder if your thoughts in (2) above could be readily adopted by a Protestant apologist to explain why the Protestant paradigm works just fine in discerning Truth.

    Burton

  198. Eirik,

    Sorry for my condescension and lack of charity in interpreting your tone. Please forgive me.

    best,
    John

  199. Randy,

    That’ll learn me for being imprecise with my wording at this site! I assure you that I did not mean to imply that my primary concern to is find that which will merely limit my spiritual liability. Perhaps a better way to state the question: is the “availability of God’s infallible Word” the means by which He reveals Himself to man, and therefore the only authority to which we should ultimately and finally submit? This is a perfectly fine question for Mr. Swan to pose, and for me it is the central question as I attempt to evaluate the claims of each position. You provide a helpful reminder that underneath all of these questions and arguments must be a deep yearning for Jesus Himself, not the “unassailable argument” or airtight answers to all questions. This is my frequent prayer.

    Burton

  200. Mike (#195),

    The result I want is the Truth. If what you have presented is the truth, then I’m all in. I don’t have a ready answer – another reason I am hoping for Protestant brothers and sisters more schooled than I on these matters to jump in and respond, hence my encouragement to Mr Swan, Dr. White et. al. to join the discussion.

    I have been following this site long enough to know that there are cogent Protestant responses, but I do believe those responses presuppose the inerrancy of of Scripture, an historically recognizable canon, and the perpiscuity of Scripture.

    Maybe this is why the most convincing Protestant arguments (to me) are negative arguments, i.e. the Catholic Church can’t be what it claims to be because (a) the historical record shows a messy contradictory accumulation of doctrines and/or (b) the Catholic brings just as many presuppositions to the table, therefore they possess no epistemologic superiority. CtC (and you specifically) have dealt with (b) in depth, so I guess I’m back to (a). I admit I am frustrated by the apparent lack of positive argument for the Protestant paradigm (“since the Catholic claim is obviously wrong, the Protestant claim must be right” or “until you recognize that the Catholic claim is wrong, you will be blinded to the obvious truth of the Protestant position” etc). I do think there exists some positive proof for the final authority of Scripture (over and above other authorities) in the Church Fathers, but a thorough study of patristics requires more time than I have to give, even assuming I possess the necessary expertise.

    Burton

  201. Burton:

    In #190, I already gave you my preliminary response to (a). What say you?

    Best,
    Mike

  202. JJ–

    All I can say is that you must have slept through a lot of worship services. Confession and absolution is a standard part of all Anglican and Lutheran worship and a mainstay in most traditional Presbyterian services, as well. I wasn’t referring to one-on-one auricular confession.

    I tend not to group the churches of the magisterial Reformation with the rest of “Protestantism” as it results in comparing apples and oranges for the most part. You’re right though, Baptists and Pentecostals would not make the list.

    The Real Presence is much more similar among the high churches than you seem to indicate. With all of them it is received by faith (either of the church or the individual) and with all of them it is spiritually mediated. The differences are mostly in the explanation of how this takes place. With Lutherans it is through the communication of attributes (the Risen Christ takes on the ubiquity of the Father and is thus omnipresent and corporeally available in, on, and under the bread and wine anywhere in the world). Those who actually follow Calvin believe that the believer is mystically transported to heaven in the sursum corda, communing thus with the Savior where he sits in glory at the right hand of the Father. Anglicans tend to go with some amalgamation of consubstantiation and/or virtual presence unless they are Anglo-Catholic. These last often come close to embracing (or indeed actually do embrace) transubstantiation. Of course, Catholics themselves believe the substances of bread and wine mystically change into the body and blood of Christ while the accidents remain. Even Zwingli was not a simple memorialist, and continued to hold to some sense of the Real Presence.

    As regards Peter’s designation as the Rock in Matthew 16:18, I was referring to Protestant commentaries–written by well trained exegetes–not popular-level apologists or pastors. Davies and Allison clearly follow this line of reasoning, as does Donald Hagner (Fuller Seminary) in the Word Biblical Commentary series. Likewise, in the New American Commentary series (a Broadman Press, Baptist work), Craig Blomberg, NT prof at Denver Seminary, emphatically resists going down any rabbit trails. [Craig, by the way, though well known in evangelical circles these days, graduated from my high school a year before I did. He had an amazing intellect, but I remember him more for his regularly thrashing me in tennis, using a wide variety of shots and placements–spins, slices, dinks, and lobs–it was like playing chess on a court.]

    I live in an area virtually devoid of a Reformed presence, so I don’t have a whole lot of choices of where to go. My present church doesn’t hold to any one of these three, but they are strong on justification by faith…for which I thank God.

    Have a good one!

    –Eirik

  203. Sorry Burton, I didn’t see your #197 before I posted my previous comment. Here’s my answer.

    First, the book by Fr. Stravinskas is serviceable and may be found here: https://amzn.to/Lj1NYX.

    Second, I’m not sure there is a “short version” of the proper response because I’m not sure exactly where you think the chief difficulty lies. For instance, you’re aware of Dominus Iesus; where do you think Ratzinger is contradicting himself in that document? Or where do you think he’s not making himself clear?

    In my experience, the most common difficulty people have with the development of Catholic ecclesiology is with the idea that non-Catholics can be in “imperfect communion” with the Church (cf. Unitatis Redintegratio §3). They seem to assume that, prior to Vatican II, the Catholic Church taught that people are either in full communion or no communion–either “all the way in” or “all the way out.” But an examination of how the Catholic and Orthodox communions interacted for centuries after the definitive break in 1054, and even after the failure of the reunion council of Florence in the mid-15th-century, shows that the matter was always more complicated than that. Language that was stark for rhetorical and political reasons was not usually understood so starkly in reality, even in Rome.

    Within the Catholic Church herself, that was true even in the dispute between Boniface VIII and King Philip IV, which gave rise to the former’s bull Unam Sanctam (1302). That document was never understood to require that everybody make an act of submission to the Pope in order to be saved. And though there was total agreement on what was sufficient for actually being subject to the Roman Pontiff, there was never total agreement on the minimum necessary for that.

    So again, I’m not sure where the nub of your difficulty lies.

    Best,
    Mike

  204. Eirik (#202)

    All I can say is that you must have slept through a lot of worship services. Confession and absolution is a standard part of all Anglican and Lutheran worship and a mainstay in most traditional Presbyterian services, as well. I wasn’t referring to one-on-one auricular confession.

    Ah. Well, yes – and, indeed, depending on how you define confession and absolution, every Christian group, even every Christian individual practises this. When I was active in Campus Crusade for Christ we told people the Four Spiritual Laws. But of course it is not only the ‘auricular’ bit which is different here. None of my churches would have had the minister saying that he had absolved the penitent – nor did we Campus Crusaders.

    In general, it was your ‘by and large’ that I was talking about, anyway. I think that your limiting your ‘by and large’ to ‘well trained exegetes’ does rather agree with me that the ‘by and large’ is a little broad.

    jj

  205. @Eirik #194

    How many of them comprehend that the host in the monstrance is not materially Christ?

    As by the words of consecration the bread becomes Jesus’ body, which is inhabited by his soul – like any living person’s body – and hypostatically united to his divinity, the consecrated host is materially Jesus Christ, the same Christ who walked along Palestine and is now in Heaven, the whole Christ in Whom the fullness of divinity dwells bodily.

    So, I sincerely hope that no Catholic at all comprehends Jesus’ eucharistic presence the way you do.

    On faith and science, Pius XII and John Paul II don’t seem to be in sync with the Catechism’s take on the physical historicity of Adam and Eve. In Humani Generis, for example, the creation of man’s body and soul are de-linked, allowing for acceptance of some forms of evolution theretofore out of bounds.

    In any case, the Catechism should be in sync with the Popes’ teachings. And specifically to this point, it certainly is, as I will show. The Catechism says in #362:

    The human person, created in the image of God, is a being at once corporeal and spiritual. the biblical account expresses this reality in symbolic language when it affirms that “then the LORD God formed man of dust from the ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living being.”

    The Catechism’s “in symbolic language” qualification of the statement that “God formed man of dust from the ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life” is entirely in line with Humani Generis allowing Catholics to discuss an evolutionary notion “of the human body as coming from pre-existent and living matter” while at the same time mandating them “to hold that souls are immediately created by God”. A position maintained exactly by John Paul II in his Oct. 22, 1996 message to the Pontifical Academy of Sciences: “Pius XII underlined the essential point: if the origin of the human body comes through living matter which existed previously, the spiritual soul is created directly by God.”

    The media certainly do not understand the Catholic stance on evolution as anything less than complete compliance with current scientific consensus. Catholics themselves don’t appear to be certain where they stand. The official position seems to be that some sort of divinely directed process is in place though unspecified as to mechanism, mysterious even. But positions clearly outside of these guidelines are routinely abided. When Christoph Cardinal Schoenborn recently clarified what he believed to be the magisterial position, he came under sharp attack from the director of the Vatican Observatory. I honestly see current Catholic thought on the matter as incoherent.

    While all Catholics holding evolution must believe that it is a divinely directed process, the specifics of that direction is a subject open to discussion. E.g. thomist philosophers Edward Feser and Francis Beckwith object strongly to Intelligent Design, saying that it can lead to a god but not “the” God. I personally hold that view. Others sympathize with ID, and they are free to do so.

    On biblical interpretation, we have seen the encyclicals of Pius X overridden and higher criticism given free reign within the parameters of sticking to established tradition. The Catechism does not directly address this as far as I can see.

    The Pius X’s document you are probably referring to is the Motu Proprio “Praestantia Scripturae”. On the subject of biblical interpretation, the ultimate reference is Vatican II’s Dogmatic Constitution “Dei Verbum”. The Catechism refers to it when dealing with the subject.

    The reason the acceptance of both Molinistic and Thomistic systems of soteriology bothers me is that they are clearly farther apart than Reformed thought and Thomism…and extraordinarily farther apart than Reformed thought and Augustinianism. Why would Luis Molina and Ignatius of Loyola be given such a “pass” unless it were for political reasons?

    FYI, the views on the specifics of the interaction between actual grace and free will that are within Catholic orthodoxy are not limited to the thomist (Báñez) and molinist positions, as Fr William Most proposed a third view (which I personally prefer) in a book in 1963 . Interestingly, Fr Most offers a straight answer to your question on why the Pope did not define Báñez’ as the only orthodox position.

    “When debates became acute in Spain, and people were becoming disturbed, Clement VII in 1597 ordered both sides to send a delegation to Rome to have a debate before a commission of Cardinals. In March 1602 Clement VIII began to preside in person. In 1605 he very much wanted to bring the debate to a conclusion. So he worked long into the night, and finally came up with a 15 point summary of Augustine’s doctrine on grace, intending to judge Molina’s proposals by it. That would have meant condemnation of Molina and probable approval of the so-called Thomists. But according to an article in 30 Days, No. 5 of 1994, on p. 46, “But, it seems barely had the bull of condemnation been drafted when, on March 3, 1605 Clement VIII died.”

    Another Pope had died at the right time centuries earlier. The General Council of Constantinople in 681 had drafted a condemnation of Pope Honorius for heresy – which was untrue – Pope Agatho had intended to sign it. But he died before being able. The next Pope, Leo II, having better judgment, agreed only to sign a statement that Honorius had let our doctrine become unclear, in his letters to Sergius, which did not teach the Monothelite heresy, but left things fuzzy.

    So it seems if there be need, God will take a Pope out of this life if needed to keep him from teaching error.”

    In other words, the Lord will fulfill his promise of not allowing the Magisterium to teach error “by any means necessary”.

  206. Daniel Chew, WSC M.Div Student: Open Letter to Recent WSC Grad Joshua Lim

  207. Wow, thanks guys for knowing your stuff. I am a Protestant but a lot of these arguments are so daunting to me. Your prayers are coveted. I prayed for you all you contribute here on both sides. I do see how arguments can be made on both sides and it’s confusing. Reading Foxes book of Martyrs and all these times of burning each other at the stake for this, I am glad we don’t anymore, but it seems we don’t care as much, I don’t know. The issue of authority and having one true church would seriously be quite comforting. I just see Mary, purgatory, treasury of merit, asso contrary to the bible. Joshua’s answer seemed to be, knowing the RCC was The Church, to submit his reason and will to their teachings no matter what. I want to believe but I have difficulty in the light of bible passages that seem to indicate otherwise. If it is the word of God as we all agree, the NT portion anyhow, why would ST or Oral Tradition be at odds with it? Aahhh so depressing

  208. May the one true God guide you brother, though Rome means nothing to me I pray your journey moves you ever towards truth. I will say this:

    “I have found few, save perhaps Luther, who suffered from such intense suspicion as I did.”

    Seems a bit melodramatic.

  209. Michial,

    “I just see Mary, purgatory, treasury of merit, ASSO contrary to the bible.”

    I would recommend you take your time and study all of these issues — one by one. Don’t rush. I, too, would have been startled had the Church said that I must believe in Obi-Wan Kenobi in order to be saved. That’s crazy talk. As a Protestant, many of those things you listed can feel like Obi-Wan Kenobi since the language is foreign to the Protestant tradition. However, I ask that you simply put in the time to see if, in fact, those teachings as understood by the Church are contrary to Sacred Scripture.

    Peace to you on your journey,

    Brent

  210. Michial,
    You said:
    “The issue of authority and having one true church would seriously be quite comforting.”

    It is! My despair as a Protestant was that the Church was so divided and there was no authority to lead me, yet it looked in scripture like there should be. I feel so at home now as a Catholic.

    “I just see Mary, purgatory, treasury of merit, as so contrary to the bible.”

    I had that issue also a couple years back. Just make sure you dont give up. There are good answers to all your concerns, many of which will surprise you with how biblical they are. Often we have a paradigm that is hard to get out of to see the other view. But if you can try to give the benefit of the doubt to the Catholic paradigm, and try to see it from the inside for each of these issues, you will at least perhaps have a better understanding of why these things don’t bother Catholics, and in fact are actually beautiful doctrines to us… not just ones we accept on authority because we have to!

    But your concerns need to be dealt with one at a time, and perhaps within the relevent articles here on this site. I suggest you go one at a time and see if you are not surprised at the answers you get. Dont give up though. Unity is so important to our Lord, it is worth some effort to acheive.

    Peace,
    David Meyer

  211. Michial,

    As an evangelical, I was seeing Mary in part in Genesis, in Kings I and II (look up the Gebirah), in Isaiah, and then I was seeing her clearly in the Gospels and Acts. She is so important that God Himself presented her to us, repeatedly, in both testaments. She is the prime example of someone with two human parents saying an unequivocal “yes” to God, and saying that unequivocal “yes” consistently.

    She caused the archangel to greet her by saying, “Hail full of grace. The Lord is with you.” If something is full, nothing else can be added. God is telling us something about this woman.

    The Third Person of God moved Elizabeth, mother of John the Baptist, to greet Mary, saying, “Blessed are you among women. Blessed is the Fruit of your womb.” Elizabeth continued by saying, “How is it that the mother of my Lord should visit me?” This is an overwhelming recognition of the dignity in which God held Mary. She is merely human, but she is full of grace and has a unique role in the mystery of salvation.

    Some of my old compatriots held that “any woman would do.” I now hold that position as a terrible lie. God planned everything out perfectly, and put this wonderful woman in a real pivot point. She was free to serve God, not forced, and she gave her “yes” freely. No other woman would do. Everything a worshipper brings, she brought. Everything that a mother brings, she brought. Everything that a disciple brings, she brought. She suffered with her Son, but never tried to dissuade Him from His purpose. Rather she was found standing in His shadow, offering whatever she could.

    She was so important that when Jesus said, “My God, My God, why have You abandoned me?,” He was not deprived of His mother and whatever comfort seeing her face could bring to Him.

    She is so important the when her Son was dying, He specifically remembered her and provided for her needs. He did so in such a way that it is not only John who “took her into his home,” but the rest of her sons and daughters continue to do so. She no longer has temporal needs, but as mother of all Christians she has a place with us, and we have a need for her and her intercession (see the Gebirah again, and think about the role of your own mother in your own family).

    She is so important that she is noted as being with the apostles in Jerusalem after the Ascension.

    Even Paul, the apostle born out of time, notes that Jesus “was born of a woman,” and we know who that woman is.

    Purgatory is pretty easy. You won’t get out of prison until the last farthing is paid, which means that you will get out (unlike Hell, which is a permanent abode). Note that if one has a wrong idea of how God extends His redemption to us, one will have a hard time with “being in prison until the last farthing is paid.” In this case, one might agree with what Jesus actually said and discard one’s theology if it is in opposition to Jesus’ words.

    Cordially,

    dt

  212. Johannes {#205]

    Get together with John S. [#191] and decide whether NO Catholic understands transubstantiation materialistically or whether ALL Catholics do. That’s quite a disparity!

    My guess is that you two are talking past one another. Eucharistic definitions are pretty darn intricate.

    I’m not a great fan of THE intelligent design movement, but any Christian version of a goal-directed evolution is teleological by definition. I am fascinated by emergent evolution (Philip Clayton at Claremont) and notions of inevitability of evolution (Simon Conway Morris, who is on board at BioLogos), but much if not most theistic evolution clearly repudiates directedness (other than, perhaps, front-loaded in deistically).

    The concept that one can separate the creation of body and soul in man is tremendously problematic. It can be squared with Scripture and the doctrine of the Fall, I suppose, but it gets really messy.

    –Eirik

  213. Thanks to all who replied. This article helped me.
    https://www.whitehorseinn.org/blog/2012/06/13/whos-in-charge-here-the-illusions-of-church-infallibility/

  214. Bryan (re: #153) & Joshua (re: #157),
    Three book recommendations ? I have used my remaining Christmas B&N gift card to purchase Steven Long’s book.

    Mike (re: #195),
    You wrote:
    One cannot prove, from Scripture alone, that Scripture is inerrant. Extra-scriptural evidence is not only necessary but primary.

    Please provide extra-scriptural evidence from the oral teaching of the Lord Jesus showing Scripture to be inerrant. If this oral teaching is now in written form, then please provide the source(s).

    Thanks,
    Eric

  215. Sorry for not responding. I was camping for the past few days.

    Matt (re: #184):

    Why would I feel obligated to give my diploma back? I received an education, passed what I needed to pass, and, as a result of all of that, received a diploma. According to WSC’s own teaching on two kingdoms, the seminary is not a part of the cultic sphere. My religious affiliation should not affect whether I am able to graduate or not. If you take issue with this you should probably contact WSC directly…

    Burton (re: #186):

    Yes, I did ask them about that. I found Charles Cardinal Journet’s The Church of the Word Incarnate: Vol. I helpful, even though it was written before Vatican II. Others who are better versed on this issue can correct me if I am off, but I do think one can argue for continuity on the matter on the basis of the Church’s constant teaching that those who are outside of the Church (i.e., those who have not been baptized) can be saved through baptism of desire. In other words, there has always been a recognition that the grace of baptism is sometimes given apart from the Sacrament itself.

    Here’s Journet:

    To reconcile the axiom “Outside the Church, no salvation”, with the doctrine of the possible salvation of those who remain ignorant of the Church in all good faith, there is no need to manufacture any new theory. All we have to do is to apply to the Church the traditional distinction made in connection with the necessity of Baptism, the door by which the Church is entered. To the question: Can anybody be saved without Baptism? St. Thomas, who here draws on the thought of St. Ambrose, replies that those who lack Baptism re et voto, that is to say who neither are nor want to be baptized, cannot come to salvation, “since they are neither sacramentally nor mentally incorporated into Christ, by whom alone is salvation”. But those who lack Baptism re, sed non voto, that is to say “who desire Baptism, but are accidentally overtaken by death before receiving it, can be saved without actual Baptism, in virtue of their desire for Baptism, coming from a faith that works by charity, by which God, whose power is not circumscribed by visible sacraments, sanctifies man interiorly”. Conformably with this distinction we shall say that the axiom “No salvation outside the Church” is true of those who do not belong to the Church, which in herself is visible, either visibly (corporaliter) or even invisibly, either by the sacraments (sacramentaliter) or even in spirit (mentaliter); either fully (re) or even by desire (voto); either in accomplished act or even in virtual act. The axiom does not concern the just who, without yet belonging to the Church visibly, in accomplished act (re), do so invisibly, in virtual act, in spirit, by desire (mentaliter, voto), that is to say in virtue of the supernatural righteousness of their lives, even while, through insurmountable ignorance, they know nothing of the sanctity, or even of the existence, of the Church. The Church of the Word Incarnate, p. 34.

    Derek (re: #208):

    Yes, it was probably a bit melodramatic.

  216. Re #213 Michial,

    A quote from the article you cited: “Scripture is the master; the church is the minister.”

    Really?

    I come from a different direction. The direction I come from says that Christ Jesus is the Head of the Body which is the Church. If Jesus is the Head of the Church, can scripture be the master? If Jesus is the Head of the Church, will the Church misinterpret scripture?

    I am under the impression that if the place one starts from is the wrong place, no matter how good the map, one will arrive in the wrong place at the end. “Scripture is the master; the church is the minister ” is the wrong starting place. Hence it necessarily leads to the wrong conclusion. Starting at the wrong place is never helpful.

    If one starts out at the wrong place, might one be hyper aware of the second coming, virtually to the exclusion of any sensible thought?

    If one starts out at the wrong place, might one be a Unitarian or a Oneness believer?

    If one starts out at the wrong place, might one reject reason as totally unreliable in determining what God is doing? Calvin’s thought expressed in TULIP’s total depravity appears to think so.

    If one starts out at the wrong place, might one be hyper aware of one’s limitations and of God’s ability to will and to work in you? Luther seemed to think so. “In” is the key word here. Luther seemed to think that God would save you juridically, wrapping grace around the sinfulness of your life. That grace would perfect nature, that you, in Jesus’ words, could “be perfect” was outside of Luther’s thought.

    I have seen several lists of the successors of Peter in Rome, recognized as his followers in the seat of that particular Church. The lists are always identical, name for name. You might want to source the references the author of the article used to come up with his quotes, then put them in context.

    Before I became Catholic, I was used to seeing items pulled out of context, including the context of history. For a Catholic, there were things that were undefined at one period in time which were defined later. The canon of scripture is such an item. Until it was defined, one might accept the letters of people such as Ignatius of Antioch as scripture. Once scripture was defined, Ignatius of Antioch wrote wonderfully and faithfully, but it was not scripture. Good as Ignatius was, his material was not apostolic in origin, and therefore not acceptable for the New Testament.

    Jesus noted that He would send the Holy Spirit to guide the Church into all truth. Understanding the truth of various things occurred in stages, as answering the questions became necessary. How do we understand the Trinity? The divine humanity of Christ Jesus? The position of Mary? The purpose of Peter? The meaning of the Church?

    There are to be sure keys to all of these things in scripture, but not necessarily complete answers. The overwhelming difficulty of these things are attested to in the Yellow Pages under Church, however the Yellow Pages don’t give answers, just competing and usually antithetical results.

    I did read the article so I could attempt some justice to you in responding.

    Cordially,

    dt

  217. Eric (#214):

    You wrote:

    Please provide extra-scriptural evidence from the oral teaching of the Lord Jesus showing Scripture to be inerrant. If this oral teaching is now in written form, then please provide the source(s).

    Your question would be pertinent only on the assumption that only “evidence from the oral teaching of the Lord,” to the effect that Scripture is inerrant, would suffice as evidence that Scripture is inerrant. But that assumption is unwarranted. Why?

    Because we cannot help relying on the Church for evidence, including Scriptural evidence, for what Jesus said, did, and willed. For instance, we learned what counts as inspired Scripture by the authority of the Church. So it is by the authority of the Church that we know what Jesus wants us to believe, regardless of the extent to which that is recorded, or not, in Scripture. But if the Church is always fallible, then so was her judgment about what counts and does not count as inspired Scripture, along with her judgment about any other question concerning what Jesus would have us believe.

    The upshot is that, unless the Church is divinely protected from error when teaching with her full authority, then even the question what counts as evidence for what Jesus wants us to believe is a matter of opinion, which cannot elicit the assent of faith.

    Best,
    Mike

  218. Mike (re: #216),

    You wrote:
    Because we cannot help relying on the Church for evidence, including Scriptural evidence, for what Jesus said, did, and willed.

    That’s fine. Provide extra-scriptural evidence from the teaching of the church showing scripture to be inerrant. Limit the evidence to examples where the church exercised its infallibility. Would you have answered my initial question differently if I was Jew who rejected Jesus and the church as authoritative ?

    You wrote:
    So it is by the authority of the Church that we know what Jesus wants us to believe, regardless of the extent to which that is recorded, or not, in Scripture.

    What causes you to stop at authority ? Why not identify the church as revelation ? The Lord Jesus embodied full authority and revelation of the Father.

    To hold a position by opinion includes fear of its opposite. This is certainly no sure grounds for faith. If a necessary principle is offered to differentiate divine revelation and human opinion, then what right do we have in saying this principle exists outside the individual mind ? Who determines what is believable before searching for the object of belief ?

    Thanks,
    Eric

  219. Michial,

    I appreciate the link to Michael Horton’s piece over at WhiteHorseInn. I read it and all the comments that followed. I am also standing on the edge of the Tiber, perhaps having even waded in. Sounds like the article has convinced you to remain Protestant. The three main points that I took from the essay were: (a) the record of church history strongly supports the Protestant paradigm of authority, evidenced by the fact that the majority of the pre-Tridentine Church Fathers and theologians recognized a sharp distinction between an infallible Scripture and a fallible Church, the poor support for any historical record of apostolic succession, and the sheer confusion of contradicting councils, popes etc, especially in the medieval period and (b) the fact that those who choose to submit Roman Church authority are in the same epistemologic situation as those who choose to submit to the authority of Scripture read in the context of tradition (his rule of faith) (c) Scripture is clear enough on the important substance of the Gospel.

    Are these the issues that were convincing to you? I find argument (a) to be the most convincing of the three, though it seems that Dr. Horton tries to cover too much territory in a short essay. If there is an argument that would keep me from becoming Catholic, it is that history does not support the post-Trent Catholic claims regarding Church authority and the papacy. I wish Horton would more fully address and explain a positive argument for the Protestant paradigm. He seems to concede that Sola Scriptura has some problems, but better to “limp along” with an imperfect means of attaining truth than to accept and submit to a system that is so clearly contra-historical record and contra-gospel. In one sense this resonates with me, but I think some question-begging arises from some of his assumptions.

    Burton

  220. One more general thought/question.

    I find the claims regarding history very difficult to evaluate. Michael Horton makes some strong claims at WhiteHorseInn and backs it up with quotes both from Church Fathers and modern Catholic theologians. Any suggestion on how to evaluate such claims without getting my PhD in Church History? In no way during this lifetime do I have the time or resources to do this subject any justice. The potential for bias is huge on both sides of the aisle, and depending on which author or selection of primary source materials I read, a pretty good case can be made for both sides’ claims. My PCA pastor has made the comment to me, “we know what these guys [Church Fathers] said”, in the context of making the argument that what they said clearly supports the Protestant view (or at least undermines the Catholic claim). Any way to cut through this?

    Burton

  221. Burton,

    You said: “If there is an argument that would keep me from becoming Catholic, it is that history does not support the post-Trent Catholic claims regarding Church authority and the papacy.”

    I have one book for you, and I will send it to you for free. The site administrators have my email address. The book is Studies on the Early Papacy by Dom John Chapman, the great convert and patristics scholar. I cannot encourage you enough to read it.

    Most Catholics, (including men like Steve Ray), do not know the wealth of evidence for papal authority in antiquity. You need to read this book, regardless of what you have read before. It doesn’t present all the evidence by a long shot. But it is almost the only source available today that does some justice to the overwhelming historical evidence for papal authority in antiquity.

    Please ask the site administrators to give you my email address (the work address guys, because my yahoo account is defunct). I will send you the book for free.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  222. K. Doran,

    Thanks for the offer. I would love to read the book.

    I find Michael Horton’s most convincing arguments regarding authority to be those from history, which he seems to know well. As I mentioned above, one of my great frustrations in trying to discern the truth about Catholicism, Protestantism etc is my apparent inability to thoroughly and objectively assess whether or not reasonably firm conclusions can be made regarding authority, the church, and Scripture. Each side trots out their favorite quotes and people latch on to the set that supports their bias. If that sounds cynical, its because after 10 years I get into cynical moods.

    Burton

  223. Burton;
    I’m right where you are: about 10 yrs of looking into this with varying levels of intensity and in many ways standing right on the edge. I also share your frustration about the history issue and differences of interpreting historical data along with concerns about bias. Here are 2 things that I’m presently pondering in response to my confusion from looking at history.

    1: (Anecodotal, I know) I see far more Christian scholars, pastors, and intellectuals leaving various camps of Protestantism for Rome than I see going from Rome to the Protestant side. Many of these people take a sophisticated look at the history, theology, and philosophy and often at significant personal and professional cost make the move to Rome. From a “man in the street” point of view, that lends credibility to the RC position. In fact, I have never heard of any Catholic scholars or pastors or intellectuals tell a story of conversion to Protestantism like what we often hear from folks going to the Catholic side. You know the type of story I’m talking about. It’s the story that a lot of the guys on this site can tell. They’re happy, well-informed, gainfully employed in and enthusiastic about their tradition until various historical, theological, and/or philosophical issues pop up that lead the person to further inquiries leading to conversion.

    2: Ecumenical councils making binding decisions on matters of faith. I think the councils believed they had the God-given authority to make binding decisions on what the faithful were to believe I don’t think they held that individual Christians, even extraordinarily intelligent individuals in ordained leadership positions, were free to dissent from conciliar teachings and go off in their own direction, either individually or in groups, to decide for themselves on matters of faith and develop their own separate confessional standards.

    Blessings to you,
    Mark

  224. Burton,

    I know exactly what you’re talking about. It tends to make me more angry than cynical; I guess that is my personality type. The key things to remember are:

    (1) The shape of the data
    (2) Relative consistency

    The data set is very sparse in the apostolic fathers. It has brief flashes of light until around 200 – 250 A.D., where we get four or five fathers of whom we have a number of words preserved, although not nearly all that they wrote. Then the data set goes dark again until after the official toleration of the Catholic Church began around 310 AD. The data slowly picks up in fits and starts, and finally gets going around 380 AD.

    So the earliest period for which we have lots of data is 380 AD and onward. Why is this important? Well, because without lots of data you can’t (I mean can’t) answer subtle questions about the people who produced the data. If you want to know what language I speak, or the name of my spouse, a small data set preserving a tiny fraction of my lifetime writing will be fine. But if you want to know my opinions on strict originalism in the interpretation of the constitution, as opposed to a modified originalism, then you need a big sample so that you can stumble upon the places where I’ve written on that. You also need a big sample so that you can see the various ways I’ve qualified or lived those beliefs.

    So, yes: there’s evidence for lots of Catholic doctrines from the apostolic fathers (and in the Acts of the Apostles as well!). But it’s a small data set, so it can’t defend itself against the corrosive force of incredibly intricate cross-examinations by Protestant historians. When they say that Ignatius of Antioch is perfectly in line with them, it seems weird to say the least. But poor Ignatius can’t write any more than the few words he already has. While the obvious implication of his words is decidedly Catholic, he didn’t have the space to explicitly rule out very intricate and counter-intuitive interpretations of his words (at least in the tiny set of writings which have survived).

    When the data set gets large, however, after around 380 AD, you get enough data that you can rule out complicated misconstruals of what the fathers are trying to say; one can explicitly rule out much of the “they didn’t really mean the obvious interpretation of their words” stuff. To do so takes exhaustive reading of the documents themselves, rather than pieces of them, as well as discipline to focus on the clear evidence without getting distracted by the unclear evidence.

    To give you one example of what can be done when the data set gets large, Pope Innocent I wrote the following letter to the African Bishops during the Pelagian Controversy (this is pre-Council of Ephesus, while the Church was unified throughout the World):

    “In making inquiry with respect to those things that should be treated with all solicitude by bishops, and especially by a true and just and Catholic Council, by preserving, as you have done, the example of ancient tradition, and by being mindful of ecclesiastical discipline, you have truly strengthened the vigour of our Faith, no less now in consulting us than before in passing sentence. For you decided that it was proper to refer to our judgement, knowing what is due to the Apostolic See, since all we who are set in this place, desire to follow the Apostle (Peter) from whom the very episcopate and whole authority of this name is derived. Following in his steps, we know how to condemn the evil and to approve the good. So also, you have by your sacerdotal office preserved the customs of the Fathers, and have not spurned that which they decreed by a divine and not human sentence, that whatsoever is done, even though it be in distant provinces, should not be ended without being brought to the knowledge of this See, that by its authority the whole just pronouncement should be strengthened, and that from it all other Churches (like waters flowing from their natal source and flowing through the different regions of the world, the pure streams of one incorrupt head), should receive what they ought to enjoin, whom they ought to wash, and whom that water, worthy of pure bodies, should avoid as defiled with uncleansable filth. I congratulate you, therefore, dearest brethren, that you have directed letters to us by our brother and fellow-bishop Julius, and that, while caring for the Churches which you rule, you also show your solicitude for the well-being of all, and that you ask for a decree that shall profit all the Churches of the world at once; so that the Church being established in her rules and confirmed by this decree of just pronouncement against such errors, may be unable to fear those men, etc.”

    The letter is preserved in Letter 181 of Saint Augustine’s corpus, and I am using Chapman’s translation of it above. Various scholars have tried to claim that Augustine must have been shocked by such pro-papal language. They look at various letters which Augustine wrote, and do not find such a broad pro-papal claim in the letters they look at. Using an argument from silence, they then claim that Augustine did not agree with the Pope’s claims. Now, arguments from silence are very weak in general unless the data set being considered is exhaustive and the need to break silence is obvious. But in this case the error goes much deeper. Augustine himself actually wrote a letter in which he explicitly discussed his feelings regarding the claims Pope Innocent’s made in the very letter quoted above. The letter in which Augustine writes about his feelings regarding Pope Innocent’s claims won’t be found in the standard free Protestant translation (the same translation, ironically, which is on New Advent). It is letter 186, and I include Chapman’s translation of the relevant passage:

    After letters had come to us from the East, discussing the case in the clearest manner, we were bound not to fail in assisting the Church’s need with such episcopal authority as we possess (nullo modo jam qualicumque episcopali auctoritate deesse Ecclesiae debueramus). In consequence, relations as to this matter were sent from two Councils — those of Carthage and of Milevis — to the Apostolic See, before the ecclesiastical acts by which Pelagius is said to have been acquitted had come into our hands or into Africa at all. We also wrote to Pope Innocent, of blessed memory a private letter, besides the relations of the Councils, wherein we described the case at greater length, TO ALL OF THESE HE ANSWERED IN THE MANNER WHICH WAS THE RIGHT AND DUTY OF THE BISHOP OF THE APOSTOLIC SEE (Ad omnia nobis ille rescripsit eo modo quo fas erat atque oportebat Apostolicae sedis Antistitem). All of which you may now read, if perchance none of them or not all of them have yet received you; in them you will see that, while he has preserved the moderation which was right, so that the heretic should not be condemned if he condemns his errors, yet the new and pernicious error is so restrained by ecclesiastical authority that we much wonder that there should be any still remaining who, by any error whatsoever, try to fight against the grace of God….

    The point is: once the data set becomes rich enough, even subtle questions about papal authority can be answered.

    The second point is relative consistency. You can find a lot of evidence of the sort I outlined above for worldwide papal doctrinal authority during antiquity. As far as I know, you cannot find one Church father who gets the Protestant Canon exactly right. It would take many such fathers for the evidence for the Protestant Canon in antiquity to match the evidence for worldwide papal doctrinal authority in antiquity.

    I’m not trying to convince you to become an agnostic, but the thing is: you can’t really take the protestant canon on history without taking the pope.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  225. Burton (re: #222):

    I can understand your frustration. What Horton wrote on his blog is basically what he taught in his lectures on the doctrine of the church. The historical reasons you give are what basically kept me from Rome for a long while (and eventually led me to agnosticism). If you’re pressed for time, I think you should take the major historical objections he poses and really see whether they actually diminish Rome’s claim. I, at least, found many of his claims to be unsubstantiated or highly skewed in terms of interpretation.

    I suppose for a Catholic, the way a Protestant interprets Church history is analogous to how higher critics interpret biblical history, assuming some sort of hermeneutic of rupture.

    For example, the quote from Pope Gregory regarding the title ‘universal bishop’ is often referenced by Horton, but many have already shown that what Pope Gregory meant by the term is ‘sole’ bishop, making all others bishops in a purely nominal sense, which is what Bishop John the Faster claimed for himself, is entirely different from how the Catholic Church understands the papal office. Even St. Francis de Sales had already answered this objection during the time of the Reformation in his tracts, The Catholic Controversy.

    Moreover, I would recommend reading Augustine’s works in their entirety rather than select quotes. When I did this as a Protestant I was severely disturbed by how Catholic Augustine really was.

    Hope that is somewhat helpful…

  226. @Eirik #212

    Johannes {#205]

    Get together with John S. [#191] and decide whether NO Catholic understands transubstantiation materialistically or whether ALL Catholics do. That’s quite a disparity!

    My guess is that you two are talking past one another. Eucharistic definitions are pretty darn intricate.

    All Catholics understand transubstantiation the same way, namely that Jesus is “really and substantially” on the altar. The term “materially” is imprecise and I should not have used it. The reason I picked it up from your comment was just to emphasize that we do not believe that after the consecration Jesus is present either symbolically (the Calvinist view) or united with the bread (the Lutheran view).

    So I stand for the rest I said: After the consecration there is no longer bread on the altar, but the same and whole Jesus Christ Who walked along Palestine and is now in Heaven, the same and whole Jesus Christ in Whom the fullness of divinity dwells bodily.

    And if we focus on the Last Supper, after Jesus’ words there was no longer bread in his hands, but the same and whole Jesus Who was sitting at the table. So that at the Last Supper, as Augustine aptly said, Jesus carried Himself in his own hands. (BTW, thank you for pointing out that augustinian statement, I did not know it.)

    Re your #189, we certainly do not need St Thomas to teach us that Christ’s “quantitative dimensions” are not in the Eucharist, because anyone can notice that by himself. And the same goes for the “qualitative dimensions”, so to speak, as Jesus’ Body in the Eucharist tastes like bread and Jesus’ Blood like wine. Only the substance changes, not the accidents.

    On this subject, I will quote at this point a former contributor to this site, now Eastern Orthodox, Fr Kimel:

    But if a change of substance has occurred, why is it that we only perceive bread and wine? It is here that Catholic theologians have invoked the distinction between substance and appearances (species): the bread and wine truly become the Body and Blood of Christ, yet they still appear to be bread and wine. All of the sensible qualities (accidents) of the bread and wine remain intact. If a scientist (God forbid!) were to analyze the consecrated elements, he would discover that they are identical to bread and wine in every way. No chemical, material, or molecular change has occurred. This is a critical point to recognize, because it is at this point that many people, including many Catholics, get confused. They think that transubstantiation necessarily entails a chemical-material change in the elements, a change that God miraculously keeps hidden from us. But this is not what the doctrine says. This is not what Thomas Aquinas says. The Lutheran Hermann Sasse has even accused Aquinas of being a semi-Calvinist, because of Aquinas’s insistence that Christ is not locally present in the Sacrament.

    The distinction between substance (what the Sacrament truly is) and appearance (what we perceive) is hardly an invention of the Latin Church. Consider this passage from St Cyril of Jerusalem:

    These things having learnt, and being fully persuaded that what seems bread is not bread, though bread by taste, but the Body of Christ; and that what seems wine is not wine, though the taste will have it so, but the Blood of Christ; and that of this David sung of old, saying, (And bread which strengtheneth man’s heart, and oil to make his face to shine) [Ps. 104:15], “strengthen thine heart,” partaking thereof as spiritual, and “make the face of thy soul to shine.”

    Or this passage from (Eastern Orthodox) St Theophylact (of Ohrid), commenting on Matt 26:26:

    By saying, ‘This is My Body,’ He shows that the bread which is sanctified on the altar is the Lord’s Body Itself, and not a symbolic type. For He did not say, ‘This is a type,’ but ‘This is My Body.’ By an ineffable action it is changed, although it may appear to us as bread. Since we are weak and could not endure raw meat, much less human flesh, it appears as bread to us although it is indeed flesh.”

    Neither author explicitly employs the term “substance,” but clearly the notion is implicit.

    Finally, a thourough treatment of the issues of spatial circumscription and multilocation is at this page, in the section “Speculative discussion of the real presence”.

  227. Burton, in your post # 200, you wrote this:

    I do think there exists some positive proof for the final authority of Scripture (over and above other authorities) in the Church Fathers, but a thorough study of patristics requires more time than I have to give, even assuming I possess the necessary expertise.

    It seems to me that you are looking for evidence from the Early Church Father that they positively taught the doctrine of sola scriptura (that is, you are not looking for an argument from silence). But even if you found positive evidence from the writings of the ECFs that they taught the doctrine of sola scriptura, why would that matter? The ECF’s taught about the doctrine of Purgatory too, but what sola scriptura confessing Protestant will accept the ECFs on that point of doctrine? If the ECFs can be wrong about the doctrine of Purgatory, then they can also be wrong about the doctrine sola scriptura (assuming that they taught it). The reverse is true too, if you found evidence that the ECF’s did not teach the doctrine of sola scriptura, why would that matter? The ECFs could be wrong about that – maybe they should have positively taught sola scriptura, and not taught about Purgatory. In the end, the doctrine of sola scriptura reduces everything that the Early Church Fathers taught to the level of mere opinion, opinion that may, or may not, be inerrant.

    It seems to me that to be consistent, the sola scriptura believing Protestant should look first to the scriptures to find where the doctrine of sola scriptura is actually taught in the scriptures. If a Protestant can find the verses in the scriptures that teach sola scriptura doctrine, then whatever the Early Church Fathers taught is irrelevant. If the Protestant finds evidence that the doctrine of sola scriptura was taught by the Early Church Fathers, then he has reason to believe that the ECF’s did not immediately fall into heresy on that single point of doctrine. If he finds that the ECF’s did not teach the doctrine of sola scriptura, then he would have evidence that the ECF’s are unreliable sources for what constitutes orthodox Christian doctrine. (Even a cursory reading the ECFs will reveal that they believed doctrines about Purgatory, Mary, the Sacraments, the Canon of scriptures, etc., etc., which most sola scriptura believing Protestant reject. Which shouldn’t concern me if sola scriptura doctrine is taught in the scriptures.)

    But what if the doctrine of sola scriptura is NOT taught in scriptures? I agree with the Reformers when they claimed that Reformation stands or falls on the doctrine of sola scriptura. Burton, may I suggest that before you dive into reading the Early Church Fathers, that you look first for the scriptures that explicitly teach the doctrine of sola scriptura? If you do that, I am sure that you will discover that there are NO verses to be found in within your Protestant bible that teach Luther’s doctrine of sola scriptura. Instead of finding sola scriptura doctrine taught in the scriptures, you will find that scriptures show that Jesus Christ founded his own church, and then commanded that his disciples must listen to his church or suffer the punishment of excommunication. Nowhere will you find that the scriptures authorize men to found their own personal “bible churches”. (Personal “bible churches” that teach, quite naturally, their founder’s own personal interpretation of scriptures!)

    Burton, you write:

    As I mentioned above, one of my great frustrations in trying to discern the truth about Catholicism, Protestantism etc is my apparent inability to thoroughly and objectively assess whether or not reasonably firm conclusions can be made regarding authority, the church, and Scripture.

    You don’t doubt that the scriptures are inerrant, isn’t that correct? That is a good starting point! Read for yourself what the scriptures actually teach about “authority, the church, and Scripture”. But read the scriptures anew without first presupposing that the doctrine of sola scriptura is taught in scriptures. If you do that, I think that you will see that you will see things in a new light:

    The picture the New Testament paints is one in which the ordained leadership of the visible church gathers to bind and loose in Jesus’ Name and with his authority, with the Old Testament Scriptures being called upon as witnesses to the apostles’ and elders’ message (Matt. 18:18-19; Acts 15:6-29), with no indication in Scripture that such ecclesiastical authority was to cease and eventually give way to Sola Scriptura (meaning that the doctrine [Sola Scriptura] fails its own test).

    Quote by Jason Stellman, (ref. post #158)

    Mr. Stellman is correct, Luther’s sola scriptura novelty “fails it own test”, that is, since the doctrine of sola scriptura is nowhere taught in scripture, there is no scriptural reason to believe that Luther’s novelty is scriptural.

    Which doesn’t mean that sola scriptura can’t be true; it just means that I can never know that Luther’s doctrine is true if I first presuppose that the only inerrant source of Christian doctrine that I possess is what is explicitly taught in the Protestant bible. Maybe Luther’s doctrine of sola scriptura is true, maybe it is bunk, but if it is true, then I can never know that it is true. Which is why I scratch my head and wonder why any sola scriptura confessing Protestant would ever look to the Early Church Fathers to see what the Early Church Fathers believed about sola scriptura. If sola scriptura is true, then it is irrational to look for evidence outside of scriptures to try and prove that sola scriptura is true!

    Mr. Stellman is stating a fact: the scriptures themselves give no indication that the apostolic era was going to give way to the era of sola scriptura. So why not just assume that the church that Jesus Christ personally founded didn’t lose her teaching authority when the apostolic era ended? After all, Christ promised that the powers of death would never prevail against his church.

    Each side trots out their favorite quotes and people latch on to the set that supports their bias.

    Reformed Protestant scholars will admit that the Early Church Fathers do not always teach what John Calvin taught. Their bias is this: if an Early Church Father conflicts with what John Calvin taught, then it is safe to presume that Calvin was right and the Early Church Father was wrong. Which is not necessarily an unreasonable thing to believe, as long as only one or two Early Church Fathers disagree with John Calvin. Maybe an Early Church Father was wrong, and John Calvin was right. Maybe.

    “Among all those who have been born of women, there has not risen a greater than John Calvin; no age before him ever produced his equal, and no age afterwards has seen his rival. In theology, he stands alone, shining like a bright fixed star, while other leaders and teachers can only circle round him, at a great distance — as comets go streaming through space — with nothing like his glory or his permanence.” – Charles Spurgeon

    Some Calvinists believe that John Calvin is the greatest theologian that ever lived, greater than any Early Church Father, St. Augustine included. But who is the one that is letting bias overrule reason when the Early Church Fathers overwhelming disagree with John Calvin on a point a doctrine?

    Pontificator’s Third Law: It’s one thing to read Scripture and the Fathers; it’s quite another thing to read Scripture through the Fathers.

  228. Joshua:

    Thank you so much for posting your conversion story. I am a cradle Catholic and am inspired by your love of Christ, your hunger to discern and grow in your love of Christ and in sharing with others, in caring, polite and thoughtful dialogue. You are a living contemporary example of discipleship. I will continue to pray for you.

    Having been challenged to better learn and understand more about my own Catholic faith and Church, I accessed a couple resources, one of which I share below. If you access Jimmy Akin’s website, don’t be fooled by his light-hearted and colorful presentation. He is a brilliant mind, theologically sound and greatly gifted to explain complex issues in practical speak. He repeatedly cites to authority that supports his analysis/discussion. I particularly enjoyed his book, The Salvation Controversy. It helped me, immensely, get a grasp on the differences of Protestant views from Catholic views on Salvation. I strongly recommend the book to anyone looking for a concise analysis of this topic.

    https://jimmyakin.com/about

    Peace be to you,

    Ed

  229. Mateo,

    I think the assumption among well-schooled Protestants (such as Michael Horton and Keith Mathison) is that the ECF’s writings provide at least plausible evidence that the only infallible authority is Scripture, and that all other authorities must ultimately be judged by it. If it can be shown that the Reformers and the majority of the ECF’s were in agreement on this foundational issue, then the areas of disagreement ( purgatory, Marian issues, etc) become secondary with respect to the question of how Truth is ascertained, doctrine defined, and consciences bound. Whether or not these assumptions are valid or a fair rendering of the historical evidence is another question.

    Burton

  230. Eric (#218):

    You wrote:

    Provide extra-scriptural evidence from the teaching of the church showing scripture to be inerrant. Limit the evidence to examples where the church exercised its infallibility. Would you have answered my initial question differently if I was Jew who rejected Jesus and the church as authoritative ?

    Before I sing that song, I ask: why would it matter to you?

    You wrote:

    What causes you to stop at authority ? Why not identify the church as revelation ? The Lord Jesus embodied full authority and revelation of the Father.

    I do not stop at authority. Instead, I rely on the authority of the Church to know who Jesus was, what he said, and why it matters.

    You wrote:

    If a necessary principle is offered to differentiate divine revelation and human opinion, then what right do we have in saying this principle exists outside the individual mind ? Who determines what is believable before searching for the object of belief ?

    Those questions seem misplaced to me. As to the first, the point of a principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion is to enable us to apprehend the former without reducing it to the latter. On the supposition that said distinction “exists” only “within the human mind” and does not correspond to broader reality, then the distinction has no application and thus collapses. So, while it certainly does exist in the human mind, it cannot exist only there, else we cannot distinguish reliably between divine revelation and human opinion. And Christ surely does not will such an outcome.

    There is no general, philosophical answer to your second question–nor, in my opinion, could there be. In theology, however, a Church speaking with divine authority and infallibility is absolutely necessary for proposing divine revelation for our assent of faith.

    Best,
    Mike

  231. Mike (re: #230),

    You wrote:
    Before I sing that song, I ask: why would it matter to you?

    I just wanted to see some of the evidence you would advance for infallibility in action. Since the church is infallible under certain conditions, I wanted to compare what you think is infallible and fallible teachings. Unless you think the church always teaches with infallibility. Identifying the scriptures without error depends on an infallible person, so did the Jewish church, who was entrusted with the words of God, possess infallibility ? If not, then was the Lord Jesus the first one in Jewish history to identify scriptures without error ?

    You wrote:
    I do not stop at authority.

    I mean why do you limit authority and conditional infallibility to the church ? I understand that her power and authority is a revealed truth, but why not simply call her revelation from God ? Christ was the fullness of revelation, so the church is revelation in a derivative sense. Marking out authority-revelation distinctions at just the right angle seem arbitrary. If the fullness of revelation is Christ and the deposit includes Christ’s revelation, then the very heart and nature of the church is revelation. Also, why are new definitions of revealed truths not new moments of God revealing ?

    You wrote:
    On the supposition that said distinction “exists” only “within the human mind” and does not correspond to broader reality, then the distinction has no application and thus collapses.

    I agree, but this is the most critical point for your basic argument. You are inviting the individual mind to reason about the supposed necessary principle without outside considerations. The correspondence is taking place between the mind of the individual and the thinking-individual as a fact in reality. The moment you get them to agree on the necessary conditions is the same moment you tell them to doubt and relinquish their determinative power of judgment. Your argument will become superfluous because they will not go from empowered-reasoning to reason-yielding-to-authority. At best, you will get them to accept an “expert” authority with more insight or knowledge, but never a permanent superior authority.

    You wrote:
    There is no general, philosophical answer to your second question–nor, in my opinion, could there be. In theology, however, a Church speaking with divine authority and infallibility is absolutely necessary for proposing divine revelation for our assent of faith.

    Reference your comment #121. Your step-proposal can’t ever move from (1) to (2) unless the person already believes (not philosophical agreement) the same as you. The reason is contained in the above comment. (1) is taking for granted that the person can determine the “believable” (which is logically prior to the object of faith). Starting with this philosophical approach will cause the person to see themselves as (2), or modifying (2) by denying the need for a divine authority protected from error.

    If you are a Father, then Happy Father’s Day.

    Thanks,
    Eric

  232. Johannes–

    Sometimes I wonder whether ANYBODY genuinely tries to understand the alternative views to the sacraments. I’m not going to claim to be some sort of an expert, and would love citations from any appropriate scholar clarifying fine points.

    1. Not only do all Catholics NOT understand transubstantiation in the same way, I would put a pretty hefty bet on the probability that a high percentage of Catholics do not understand transubstantiation in any way. I don’t blame them much. It’s not particularly understandable. By any normal criterion a modern mind would use to analyze the consecrated host and wine, they remain material: the wine will still get you drunk if you imbibe too heavily. (Whatever “accidents” meant in Aristotelian terms, why exactly do we need to abide by his take on the topic today? Is his philosophy somehow inspired?) If “substance” need not include possessing mass and occupying space, we have either a meaningless term or a supernatural one. In that case, you have the body and blood of Christ supernaturally juxtaposed here on earth in the same space and time as the bread and wine (the Lutheran view) or you have the bread and wine supernaturally juxtaposed with the body and blood of Christ resident in heaven (the actual Calvinist view). Memorialism (the symbolic view) is Zwingli’s view, and even he spoke in some sense of the Real Presence.

    What you describe here…

    “After the consecration there is no longer bread on the altar, but the same and whole Jesus Christ Who walked along Palestine and is now in Heaven, the same and whole Jesus Christ in Whom the fullness of divinity dwells bodily.”

    …is a rather nifty expression of Calvin’s view.

    Lutherans, Anglicans, Presbyterians, and Catholics all believe in some version of the Real Presence…the true corporeal presence of Christ. Only Catholics worship the host itself. Protestants worship within the presence of the Holy One, and many now choose to kneel. (It is decidedly the high point of worship for me…no less than breathtaking!)

    We choose not to worship the host because of the inherent temptation to idolatry: Jesus’ body is not literally bread (even within transubstantiation). You said as much in your description. Instead, the bread becomes his body. We encounter the incarnate Christ within the Eucharist.

    Whatever you have been told, ancient civilizations were not idiots. When they fashioned an idol out of wood, metal, and stone, they knew quite well who was doing the fashioning. But they believed the gods could come inhabit these forms. Yahweh himself did deign to indwell the earthly Jerusalem Temple, but he insisted on aniconic worship…absolutely no idols.

    Study it in detail, without the blinders on, and you’ll discover there’s really not that much difference between the Catholic Eucharist and that of the magisterial Reformation. We can probably both agree that the Radical Reformation, in eradicating the whole notion of sacrament, went in the wrong direction. (In their favor, it should be said that ALL of us also see the bread and the wine as metaphor for, as symbol of the body and blood. Not to do so would be to throw out all proper sense of aesthetics.)

    I see the primary difference as the role of faith within the transformation. Catholics prioritize the faith of the entire church through the presiding priest, whereby the consecration is done “ex opere operato.” Protestants tend to require the faith of the recipient for the efficacy of the sacrament. Even here though, I do believe Catholics require the faith of the recipient for it to benefit him or her. Both communions denounce the taking of sacraments in an unworthy manner. I often think much more is made of the differences than is actually there.

    All the best,

    –Eirik

  233. MarkS (#223),

    So you’ve been at this for over a decade, too? Don’t know about you, brother, but I’m beginning to envy those on either side of this regrettable divide that are firmly convinced and at peace.

    I have pondered your point (1). I suspect that the phenomenon you describe is real, and it is suggestive of a certain conclusion (the validity of Rome’s claims), but I would guess that the sociologists and psychologists among us could produce other equally valid conclusions. As for point (2), I’m not sure how the best Reformed theologians and apologists would respond to this. Perhaps by making the observation (as some have) that the first 1500 years of church history are much messier than the “romanticized” RCC version and that clean conciliar doctrine and unity simply didn’t exist. I am not saying that history necessarily supports this claim, just trying to think out loud. This does get to one issue to which I have yet to hear any reasonable or plausible Protestant response: how to account for what seems to be a near universal understanding in the early church and medieval church of the clear distinction between heresy as wrong doctrine and schism as separation from the visible church. Perhaps Michael Horton or Keith Mathison or James White have a clear and concise answer, and I just haven’t seen it.

    I will pray for you, that God gives you eyes to see and the courage to follow Him wherever He leads, be that the RCC or remaining Protestant.

    Burton

  234. Burton, thank you for bearing with me in our discussion. I pray that I can be of some use in answering your objections.

    You write:

    I think the assumption among well-schooled Protestants (such as Michael Horton and Keith Mathison) is that the ECF’s writings provide at least plausible evidence that the only infallible authority is Scripture, and that all other authorities must ultimately be judged by it.

    You have got me thinking about judgement and inanimate objects. An inanimate object can be used to make a judgement that is affirmed by God, if God chooses to use inanimate objects to help men make that discernment. In the OT era, inanimate objects were sometimes used as divination tools to discern God’s will, e.g. the use of the Urim and Thummim stones, casting lots, throwing a fleece, etc. In the NT era, the eleven living apostles cast lots to decide between Justus and Matthias to discern God’s will as to which of these men should succeed Judas in his office. That occurred shortly before Pentecost, and that was the last time that the NT records the use of an inanimate object to discern God’s will. After Pentecost, the church that Christ founded is built up through the exercise of the charismatic gifts of the Holy Spirit. I don’t see any evidence in the post-Pentecost era for using a bible (an inanimate object) as a divination tool to decide between plausible interpretations of scriptures. But a man that exercises a particular charismatic gift – the charism of infallibility – could discern between plausible interpretations of scriptures, and his judgement, because it was guided by the Holy Spirit, would be inerrant, with an inerrancy that is guaranteed by God. From the Catholic perspective then, in the post-Pentecost era, only a man exercising the charismatic gift of infallibility can be an “infallible authority”. And again, from a Catholic perspective, sola scriptura confessing Protestants have no infallible authority. These Protestants only have men and women that can give, at best, well intentioned, but fallible opinions, and they admit as much.

    I want to pause here to make a point here about the charism of infallibility and why that charism not identical with the charism of inspiration. First let me give a definition of the charism of biblical inspiration:

    INSPIRATION, BIBLICAL. The special influence of the Holy Spirit on the writers of Sacred Scripture in virtue of which God himself becomes the principal author of the books written and the sacred writer is the subordinate author. In using human beings as his instruments in the composition, God does so in harmony with the person’s nature and temperament, and with no violence to the free, natural activity of his or her human faculties. According to the Church’s teaching, “by supernatural power, God so moved and impelled them to write, He was so present to them, that the things which He ordered and those only they first rightly understood, then willed faithfully to write down, and finally expressed in apt words and with infallible truth” (Pope Leo XIII, Providentissimus Deus, Denzinger 3293).

    Ref: Modern Catholic Dictionary
    https://www.therealpresence.org/cgi-bin/getdefinition.pl

    When an author of the scriptures exercised the charism of inspiration, he simultaneously exercised the charism of infallibility. An OT prophet, when overshadowed by the Holy Spirit, could exercise simultaneously the charismatic gifts of prophesy, inspiration, and infallibility. The Apostles could also exercise these three charismatic gifts simultaneously. For example, the Apostle John exercised the charismatic gifts of prophesy, inspiration, and infallibility when he wrote the last book of the NT. Through the charismatic gift of inspiration, mankind received public revelation. After the last apostle died, public revelation became closed, and with the closing of public revelation, the charismatic gift of inspiration ceased to be exercised by men. The Catholic Church teaches that God has given to us the fullness of revelation in Christ Jesus, and that there will be no more public revelation given to man.

    Catechism of the Catholic Church

    III. CHRIST JESUS — “MEDIATOR AND FULLNESS OF ALL REVELATION”
    God has said everything in his Word

    65 “In many and various ways God spoke of old to our fathers by the prophets, but in these last days he has spoken to us by a Son.” Christ, the Son of God made man, is the Father’s one, perfect and unsurpassable Word. In him he has said everything; there will be no other word than this one. …

    There will be no further Revelation

    66 “The Christian economy, therefore, since it is the new and definitive Covenant, will never pass away; and no new public revelation is to be expected before the glorious manifestation of our Lord Jesus Christ.” Yet even if Revelation is already complete, it has not been made completely explicit; it remains for Christian faith gradually to grasp its full significance over the course of the centuries.

    “Yet even if Revelation is already complete, it has not been made completely explicit; it remains for Christian faith gradually to grasp its full significance over the course of the centuries.” The Catholic Church teaches that through men exercising the charismatic gift of infallibility, what is implicit in the public revelation, can be made explicit, and what has been made explicit when this charismatic gift is exercised has a guarantee from God to be inerrant. It is through the exercise of the charismatic gift of infallibility that doctrinal controversies can be settled when such controversies arise among Christians in the course of the centuries. To be clear, Catholic Church teaches that no new public revelation can be given to the world through the exercise of the charism of infallibility.

    All that I have said above is to make this point: Luther’s doctrine of sola scriptura is not fundamentally a doctrine about the inspiration, inerrancy, and authority of the scriptures. Luther’s doctrine is, rather, fundamentally a doctrine pertaining to the charismatic gift of infallibility. Luther agreed with the Catholic Church that public revelation became closed after the death of the last apostle. But Luther then made the radical assertion that after the last apostle died, that no man, under any circumstance conceivable, could ever exercise the charismatic gift of infallibility when defining doctrine. And merely asserting that this was true is all that Luther ever did. Luther never showed to the world any evidence for believing in his radical departure from what Christians had always believed.

    Luther’s denial that the charismatic gift of infallibility could ever be exercised in the post-apostolic era is what puts the “alone” in his “scripture alone” novelty. According to Luther, the Protestant bible is the ONLY source that a Christian has access to in our era that has a guarantee from God to be inerrant. But if, contrary to Luther, a man could exercise the charismatic gift of infallibility when interrupting the bible, the Christian would then have at least two sources for doctrine that is guaranteed by God to be inerrant – the bible, and the interpretations of the bible that have been defined when the charism of infallibility has been exercised.

    I think the assumption among well-schooled Protestants (such as Michael Horton and Keith Mathison) is that the ECF’s writings provide at least plausible evidence that the only infallible authority is Scripture, and that all other authorities must ultimately be judged by it. If it can be shown that the Reformers and the majority of the ECF’s were in agreement on this foundational issue, then the areas of disagreement ( purgatory, Marian issues, etc) become secondary with respect to the question of how Truth is ascertained, doctrine defined, and consciences bound. Whether or not these assumptions are valid or a fair rendering of the historical evidence is another question.

    Why don’t Protestant scholars just look at the evidence that Luther gave for asserting that no man could ever exercise the charism of infallibility? Why not? Because there isn’t any evidence to be found from Luther!

    Burton, I believe that we agree that the scriptures are the only writings that humans have that are inspired (God breathed), and because they are the very words God wants us to hear, they are authoritative and without error. I want to stress this point again: the foundational issue that is in dispute between Catholics and sola scriptura confessing Protestants is not a dispute about the inerrancy and authority of the scriptures – it is a dispute about the charismatic gift of infallibility.

    I completely agree with you that the foundational issue at the heart of the Protestant/Catholic dispute is how “Truth is ascertained, doctrine defined, and consciences bound.” So how, exactly, would my conscience bound to a man’s interpretation of scriptures from the perspective of a sola scriptura confessing Protestant?

    If the Protestant bible is indeed the only source that I have available to me that is guaranteed by God to be inerrant, then I must necessarily reject the possibility that any man can ever exercise the charismatic gift of infallibility when interpreting the Protestant bible. So who, then, has the authority to bind my conscience to his interpretation of the Protestant bible? No one. If, in good conscience, I believed that an interpretation of the Protestant bible is just plain wrong, then I would be conscience bound to act on my belief. Which is just another way of saying that Luther’s sola scriptura doctrine implicitly contains the doctrine of the primacy of the individual’s conscience.

    Luther never gave any evidence for the doctrine of the primacy of the individual conscience, and since that doctrine is at the foundation of his sola scriptura novelty, it seems to me, that what Michael Horton and Keith Mathison need to be searching for is the scriptural evidence that supports Luther’s doctrine of the primacy of the individual conscience. Good luck with that! If Horton and Mathison are going to scour the writings of the ECFs for evidence, they need to find the evidence that the ECFs believed in the doctrine of the primacy of the individual conscience. But the only Christians that believed that they didn’t need to listen to the church that Christ founded are heretics such as the Montanists.

    Horton and Mathison can find plenty of evidence that the ECFs believed that scriptures are authoritative, but what does that prove? The Catholic Church has always believed that scriptures are authoritative. What the Catholic Church has never believed is Cessationism – i.e. the belief that all the charismatic gifts of the Holy Spirit ceased to be exercised in the post-apostolic era. She does, however, believe that the charism of inspiration ceased to be exercised in the post-apostolic era.

    Burton, may I ask you a question? What scriptural evidence do you see for believing in the doctrine of the primacy of the individual’s conscience?

  235. Eric (#231):

    You wrote:

    I just wanted to see some of the evidence you would advance for infallibility in action. Since the church is infallible under certain conditions, I wanted to compare what you think is infallible and fallible teachings.

    That first sentence is still unclear. I can offer you instances of what, as a Catholic, I believe to be teachings that have infallibly set forth; traditionally, Catholic theologians call those “irreformable,” and the Bible “inerrant.” I hope that’s all you want, since listing irreformable teachings is not per se evidence that those teachings that the Church is in fact infallible when she propounds them. Your second sentence is imprecise, in that “teachings” are never infallible; only persons or bodies thereof are infallible.

    Now, since you wanted an example of irreformable Catholic teaching on the inerrancy of Scripture, I present the following statement from the Second Vatican Council, which merely presents what the Catholic Church has always believed and professed:

    Since everything asserted by the inspired authors or sacred writers must be held to be asserted by the Holy Spirit, it follows that the books of Scripture must be acknowledged as teaching solidly, faithfully and without error that truth which God wanted put into sacred writings (5) for the sake of salvation. (Dei Verbum §11).

    You ask:

    …I mean why do you limit authority and conditional infallibility to the church? I understand that her power and authority is a revealed truth, but why not simply call her revelation from God ? Christ was the fullness of revelation, so the church is revelation in a derivative sense. Marking out authority-revelation distinctions at just the right angle seem arbitrary. If the fullness of revelation is Christ and the deposit includes Christ’s revelation, then the very heart and nature of the church is revelation.

    I do not do what you say. The Church is infallible by the grace of God when she speaks with the authority of God, and God alone is infallible by nature. Since God is infallible by nature, divine revelation, which is transmitted by Scripture and Tradition, is inerrant. But as Vatican II also said:

    …the task of authentically interpreting the word of God, whether written or handed on, has been entrusted exclusively to the living teaching office of the Church, whose authority is exercised in the name of Jesus Christ. This teaching office is not above the word of God, but serves it, teaching only what has been handed on, listening to it devoutly, guarding it scrupulously and explaining it faithfully in accord with a divine commission and with the help of the Holy Spirit, it draws from this one deposit of faith everything which it presents for belief as divinely revealed.

    It is clear, therefore, that sacred tradition, Sacred Scripture and the teaching authority of the Church, in accord with God’s most wise design, are so linked and joined together that one cannot stand without the others, and that all together and each in its own way under the action of the one Holy Spirit contribute effectively to the salvation of souls.Dei Verbum §10

    You also write:

    …why are new definitions of revealed truths not new moments of God revealing ?

    Because they merely express a refined understanding of what’s already given in Scripture and Tradition. They do not add to the content of the deposit of faith.

    You write:

    You are inviting the individual mind to reason about the supposed necessary principle without outside considerations. The correspondence is taking place between the mind of the individual and the thinking-individual as a fact in reality. The moment you get them to agree on the necessary conditions is the same moment you tell them to doubt and relinquish their determinative power of judgment. Your argument will become superfluous because they will not go from empowered-reasoning to reason-yielding-to-authority. At best, you will get them to accept an “expert” authority with more insight or knowledge, but never a permanent superior authority.

    To the extent I understand that–and it seems pretty unclear to me–I must say that it’s just wrong. For one thing, I don’t ask anybody to “relinquish” their judgment when they make the decision to render the assent of faith to what the Church teaches about her own authority. After all, their judgment is in large part what enables them to discover reasons to do just that. So, when my judgment tells me to look for and accept a principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion, I am being reasonable when I rule out approaches that don’t offer such a distinction, and accordingly when I render the assent of faith to the only authority that does. But your approach seems to me to call for one’s own judgment to remain always “determinative” and thus a trump over authority. It thus rules out the very distinction I’m proposing. And that is itself unreasonable.

    You wrote:

    Reference your comment #121. Your step-proposal can’t ever move from (1) to (2) unless the person already believes (not philosophical agreement) the same as you. The reason is contained in the above comment. (1) is taking for granted that the person can determine the “believable” (which is logically prior to the object of faith). Starting with this philosophical approach will cause the person to see themselves as (2), or modifying (2) by denying the need for a divine authority protected from error.

    I shall assume that you’re referring not to my (2) in #121 but to my (4). Otherwise your argument makes no sense.

    In fact, it still makes no sense. First you assert, without argument, that the methodology I proposed already requires that the inquirer “believe” as I do. Well, it just doesn’t. Such an inquirer might not reach the same conclusion I do; he might, for instance, come to see the Eastern-Orthodox communion, or even the JWs or Mormons, as the infallible teaching authority God has put here for us.

    Second, and for the reasons I’ve already given above, accepting the philosophical argument I offered does not make the inquirer his own authority. It merely enables him to use his reason to direct him to a higher authority.

    Best,
    Mike

  236. Mateo (#234),

    One possible piece of Biblical evidence for individual conscience is found in Acts 17:11. I am sure you are familiar with the account of the Bereans and their searching the Scriptures to verify the truth of what Paul was teaching them. I understand that there are differing interpretations of exactly what the Bereans were doing and how it specifically related to the issue of authority.

    I would also point out that many Reformed Protestant theologians agree that Scripture was not meant to be interpreted by “individual conscience” alone, but in the broader context of “ecclesia” (though I find Mathison’s definition of ecclesia to be somewhat fuzzy).

    Burton

  237. Hi Eiric

    Your #232 Your stated:

    Not only do all Catholics NOT understand transubstantiation in the same way, I would put a pretty hefty bet on the probability that a high percentage of Catholics do not understand transubstantiation in any way. I don’t blame them much. It’s not particularly understandable.

    You are no doubt correct when you say many Catholics are unaware of the substance of their faith. That could be a result of not learning it in the first place or having forgotten it due to lack of participation in the faith. That said however, most faithful Catholics are quite aware of the faith and while not being able to give you the scientific definition of transubstantiation would still be able to explain the Eucharist.

    You said: After the consecration there is no longer bread on the altar, but the same and whole Jesus Christ Who walked along Palestine and is now in Heaven, the same and whole Jesus Christ in Whom the fullness of divinity dwells bodily.”
    …is a rather nifty expression of Calvin’s view.

    All I would say is this, If this is Calvin’s view then he took it from the Catholic Church. By the consecration of the bread and wine, they become for us the full Body, Blood , Soul and Divinity of our Lord Jesus Christ. The bread and wine are no longer bread and wine. They are in fact the real body of Christ. Do we believe it in faith, Yes, Is it still bread and wine though it looks like it. No.

    As I gather Calvin above states: After the consecration there is no longer bread on the altar, but the same and whole Jesus Christ Who walked along Palestine and is now in Heaven, the same and whole Jesus Christ in Whom the fullness of divinity dwells bodily.”

    To say that the Lord, creator of all things visible and invisible could not present Himself in the appearance of bread and wine for our nourishment is silliness. He is capable of doing anything he desires. If Jesus has said I will feed you my Body and Blood so that you have life in you then obviously that is what He does. Jesus is the Life. We are absorbed in to His Life when we receive Him in the Eucharist. It is not a symbolic ritual that has only a spiritual meaning to it. But an absolutely physical dimension that entitles eating the real flesh and drinking the real blood of Christ, BUT not the dead Christ. It is the LIVING Christ in all His glory. Body , Blood , Soul and Divinity.

    Is it an act of idolatry to adore Christ in the form of bread and wine after the consecration. Not anymore so than to adore Him in the FLESH.

    I cannot agree with your statement:

    it should be said that ALL of us also see the bread and the wine as metaphor for, as symbol of the body and blood. Not to do so would be to throw out all proper sense of aesthetics.)

    For the Catholic the “bread ands Wine` is not a symbol of His body and blood, but is an actuality.

    Blessings
    NHU

  238. Eirik (#232)

    What you describe here…

    “After the consecration there is no longer bread on the altar, but the same and whole Jesus Christ Who walked along Palestine and is now in Heaven, the same and whole Jesus Christ in Whom the fullness of divinity dwells bodily.”

    …is a rather nifty expression of Calvin’s view.

    It is?? When I was becoming a Calvinist, I read the Institutes a couple of times, and a lot of Calvinist theology. I really don’t think this would express Calvin’s view. I wonder if I missed something.

    Certainly the view of my Reformed (Calvinist – well, at least they thought they were!) was not remotely like this.

    jj

  239. Burton, you write:

    One possible piece of Biblical evidence for individual conscience is found in Acts 17:11. I am sure you are familiar with the account of the Bereans and their searching the Scriptures to verify the truth of what Paul was teaching them. I understand that there are differing interpretations of exactly what the Bereans were doing and how it specifically related to the issue of authority.

    Certainly the scriptures talk about the individual’s conscience. For example:

    When Gentiles who have not the law do by nature what the law requires, they are a law to themselves, even though they do not have the law. They show that what the law requires is written on their hearts, while their conscience also bears witness and their conflicting thoughts accuse or perhaps excuse them
    Romans 2:14-15

    For wickedness is a cowardly thing, condemned by its own testimony; distressed by conscience, it has always exaggerated the difficulties.
    Wisdom 17:11

    By rejecting conscience, certain persons have made shipwreck of their faith, among them Hymenaeus and Alexander, whom I have delivered to Satan that they may learn not to blaspheme.
    1 Timothy 1:20

    Both the OT and the NT contains verses pertaining to the individual’s conscience, but that was not the point that I was trying to make. (If you didn’t understand my point, that is probably my fault, not yours!)

    The point that I was trying to make was about primacy, that is, whose interpretation of the inspired scriptures holds primacy, or “ultimacy”. Should a Christian confess a doctrine of Petrine primacy, the primacy of the individual’s conscience, or something else entirely (perhaps a doctrine of primacy that involves the teachings of bishops at a valid Ecumenical Council).

    The sola scriptura confessing Protestants hold to a doctrine of the primacy of the individual’s conscience. To illuminate what I mean by that, I want to quote what David Meyer posted in #5 in the CTC thread Podcast Ep. 17 – Jason & Cindy Stewart Recount Their Conversion (https://www.calledtocommunion.com/2012/06/podcast-ep-17-jason-cindy-stewart-recount-their-conversion/). The following is David Meyers transcription of Jason speaking:

    … I began to find very quickly (and we all know about this within the Reformed camps, and its true of Protestantism in general) is that when people disagree –particularly over doctrinal matters when you’re Reformed or Presbyterian- they will leave a church over those things. And understandably. They believe that the bible teaches something –that means that God is teaching something through the scriptures- and if someone doesn’t believe that or hold to that or teach that then there is a problem. In their thinking of course they’re wanting to be as faithful to God as possible. So as a pastor in the OPC I was called to uphold the Westminster standards and I was called to teach them, and I did faithfully. But when I would find those in the congregation who would come and they would have perhaps a disagreement, we would talk through those things; the session would talk through those things with them, but we found very often that if they didn’t like the answer that the session gave in terms of the teaching of the Orthodox Presbyterian Church, they would simply leave, and they would go to another church somewhere. And that began to weigh heavily on me, because I got a sense of “what is exactly this authority that God has vested His church with?”

    The above illustrates perfectly the point that I am trying make about primacy. Suppose I have come to a personal interpretation of scriptures that is in conflict with what my sola scriptura confessing Protestant sect teaches. What should I do? First, I should meet with the pastor and those with teaching authority in my sect to try and work out my issue. But if I cannot find resolution in that process, then I would be conscience bound to leave that sect and find a sect that agrees with my personal interpretation of scriptures. The ultimate temporal authority that I must listen to is my own conscience. Which means that my conscience has primacy; my conscience is the ultimate temporal authority that I must follow in matters of interpretation. And that means that the sola scriptura confessing Protestant church that I belong to has no real authority to bind my conscience to a particular interpretation of scriptures.

    ”And that began to weigh heavily on me, because I got a sense of “what is exactly this authority that God has vested His church with?”

    Burton, you mention the Bereans of Acts 17:11:

    I am sure you are familiar with the account of the Bereans and their searching the Scriptures to verify the truth of what Paul was teaching them. I understand that there are differing interpretations of exactly what the Bereans were doing and how it specifically related to the issue of authority.

    I think Acts spells out pretty clearly what the Jews in Beroea were doing. The Jews living in Beroea were commended by Paul, and rightly so, for searching the Jewish scriptures to determine if the divine revelation that Paul was preaching could be possibly be true. But what, exactly, was Paul preaching to the Jews living in Beroea? Paul was teaching that Jesus is the Messiah (the Christ), and that the messianic prophecies found in the Jewish Scripture found their fulfillment in Jesus. This was the same message that he brought to the Jews living in Thessalonica:

    … they came to Thessalonica, where there was a synagogue of the Jews.
    And Paul went in, as was his custom, and for three weeks he argued with them from the scriptures, explaining and proving that it was necessary for the Christ to suffer and to rise from the dead, and saying, “This Jesus, whom I proclaim to you, is the Christ.”
    Acts 17:1-3

    The Jews in Berea were more noble that the Jews in Thessalonica because they eagerly accepted what Paul was preaching – that Jesus is the Messiah.

    … they [the Jews in Beroea] received the word with all eagerness, examining the scriptures daily to see if these things were so.

    These Jews in Beroea could not have understood what Paul was revealing about Jesus without the enlightenment of the Holy Spirit. But because these Jews they were open to the grace of God, they searched the Jewish scriptures and believed in the Christ. And then they became members of the church that Christ personally founded, the church that has the authority to bind one’s conscience to a particular interpretation of scriptures – e.g. Jesus is the Messiah the Jewish scriptures prophesized about.

    For sure, the Jews in Beroea believed that their Jewish scriptures were God-breathed, which meant that they believed that their scriptures were authoritative. Paul was quoting these authoritative scriptures to the Jews in Beroea! But I don’t see the connection that you seem to be making – how the act of searching the Jewish scriptures to see if Jesus fulfilled the messianic prophecies is an act that supports the doctrine of the primacy of the individual’s conscience. Please enlighten me on this point!

    If the Jews in Beroea had rejected the divine revelation that Paul had brought to them because it conflicted with their personal interpretations of the Jewish scriptures, then the they would have been no more noble that the Jews in Thessalonica. It is one thing to assert that the scriptures are authoritative, it is quite another thing to assert that my personal interpretation of scriptures is the highest authority that I am conscience bound to accept!

    I would also point out that many Reformed Protestant theologians agree that Scripture was not meant to be interpreted by “individual conscience” alone, but in the broader context of “ecclesia” (though I find Mathison’s definition of ecclesia to be somewhat fuzzy).

    No one interprets the scriptures with his conscience. A person interprets the scriptures with his or her mind (a mind that is hopefully enlightened by the Holy Spirit). Conscience comes into play when there is a conflict in interpretations. When your interpretation of the inerrant scriptures conflicts with my interpretation, whose interpretation am I conscience bound to accept?

    The sola scriptura confessing Protestants have built their faith upon Luther’s novelty of the primacy of the individual’s conscience (which is why there is no principled distinction between sola scriptura and solo scriptura). I will grant you that the Reformed believe that one should not be a Lone Ranger Christian that is going it alone. But when push comes to shove, in the world of sola scriptura confessing Protestantism, primacy always lies with the individual, as he or she is conscience bound to follow what he or she personally believes to be true. If my sect does not agree with me, and I can’t work that out, then I am conscience bound to leave that sect for another sect. Or perhaps, I need to found my own personal bible church, as Luther did.

    Burton, I am always interested to know how a Protestant reconciles belief in the primacy of the individual’s conscience with this teaching of Jesus:

    … if he refuses to listen even to the church, let him be to you as a Gentile and a tax collector.
    Matthew 18:17

    Would you please explain to me how you reconcile the doctrine of the primacy of the individual conscience with Matthew 18:17?

  240. Burton, you may want to take a look at Michael Kruger’s Canon Revisited. He provides a very thorough, and very early look at the New Testament scriptures, and addresses a lot of the issues you’ve mentioned you’re not hearing above.

  241. John,

    You bring this guy’s book up quite a bit. It seems like it suffers from the phantom argument fallacy. Can you sketch out Kruger’s arguments much like Tom Brown sketches out the arguments of Ridderbos here:

    https://www.calledtocommunion.com/2010/01/the-canon-question/

    If you can write a more accessible summary then getting a response from someone here is more likely.

  242. Mike (re: #235),

    You wrote:
    I hope that’s all you want, since listing irreformable teachings is not per se evidence that those teachings that the Church is in fact infallible when she propounds them.

    You can’t argue from effect (inerrant) to cause (infallible agent) using written teachings ?

    You wrote:
    I present the following statement from the Second Vatican Council, which merely presents what the Catholic Church has always believed and professed:

    Thanks for the help in clarifying and finding more percise terms. Please provide evidence of the catholic church’s profession, not belief, of the inerrancy of scripture between Paul’s second letter to Timothy and the council of Rome. How could this profession exist without an inerrant canon produced by the infallible church ? If the canon did exist, then provide the source.

    You wrote:
    I do not do what you say.

    We are ships passing in the night !
    The head and the body constitute one mystical Christ.
    The head is revelation of God the Father.
    The body is revelation of God the Father.

    What’s wrong with the last statement ? Rome is arbitrary when it attributes infallibility and divine authority to the church, but avoids calling the church revelation.

    Evaluation of the Step-Proposal:

    Roman Catholic teaching has the order of faith and the order of reason. (1) mingles these together in a way not consonant with the teaching.

    (1) divine revelation is distinguishable from human opinion
    This philosophical approach belongs to reason and is not opposed to faith.

    (1) recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority
    This belongs to faith and is not opposed to reason.

    By placing these together, you are inviting the inquirer to make a determinative judgment, apart from faith (virtue), about the “believability” and truth-value of faith-related topics. In addition, you want them to judge themselves incapable and impotent to accurately distinguish revelation and opinion. If the error prone inquirer judges your proposed “recourse” to be necessary (logical and ethical) and true, then please tell me if his judgment is with or without error ? If it is error free, then the inquirer has no principled reason to think he can’t distinguish revelation from opinion.

    1. No error in judgment means your argument swallowed a grenade.
    2. An error in judgment means he has no good reason to rely on his judgments and move to (2).

    …you are treasuring up for yourself wrath in the day of wrath and revelation of the righteous judgment of God….Rom. 2:5
    When the day arrives, how will anyone know the difference between this revelatory judgment and mere human judgment ? God’s revealed law ! Revelation is how you distinguish between revelation and opinion.

    Follow-up:
    I think these questions must be answered if your position is to retain any force.

    Identifying the scriptures without error depends on an infallible person, so did the Jewish church, who was entrusted with the words of God, possess infallibility ? If not, then was the Lord Jesus the first one in Jewish history to identify scriptures without error ?

    Thanks,
    Eric

  243. Dear Burton,

    I found this article by Steve Ray about the Bereans and the whole issue you mention. James White wrote a response, and you can find his criticism of the article buried in a bunch of ad hominems — so it is in there, just take your time looking for it. I figure you are “noble minded”, so I will let you decide which argument accounts for the data under question in Steve’s article.

    Peace in Christ,

    Brent

  244. Eric:

    All I can do in face of your latest comment (#242) is correct the many misunderstandings you continue to labor under. At this point I can only hope you’re disposed to benefit from that. But even if you’re not, others will be.

    You can’t argue from effect (inerrant) to cause (infallible agent) using written teachings?

    If one presupposes that a given doctrine D is inerrant, then it’s easy to infer that those who propound D with divine authority are infallible in doing so. But so what? Whatever is gratuitously presupposed can be gratuitously denied. The real work lies in the other direction: showing that some D should be received as inerrant because there is good reason to believe that those propounding D are, by divine grace, infallible when doing so.

    Please provide evidence of the catholic church’s profession, not belief, of the inerrancy of scripture between Paul’s second letter to Timothy and the council of Rome. How could this profession exist without an inerrant canon produced by the infallible church ? If the canon did exist, then provide the source.

    That you even make such a request begs the question, for the request matters only on your interpretive paradigm, when the adequacy of that paradigm is precisely what’s at issue. Please read the fourth section of an article I wrote last year for this site.

    The head and the body constitute one mystical Christ. The head is revelation of God the Father. The body is revelation of God the Father.

    What’s wrong with the last statement ? Rome is arbitrary when it attributes infallibility and divine authority to the church, but avoids calling the church revelation.

    That just misunderstands Catholic ecclesiology. In one sense, “the Church” is a datum of revelation, inasmuch as divine revelation tells us about the nature of the Church, among other things. In another sense, the Church is the subject of revelation, i.e., she is that “body” to whom the deposit of faith is entrusted to be proclaimed, preserved, and studied. For both those reasons, the divine constitution of the Church tells us something about God. That is a truth of Catholic ecclesiology, and it presents no special difficulty for Catholic doctrine as a whole. But you seem to have something else in mind when you criticize the Catholic Church as arbitrary for not calling herself “revelation.” I have no idea what that criticism amounts to, and I doubt you’re even clear on it yourself.

    You summarize my methodology thus:

    (1) divine revelation is distinguishable from human opinion
    This philosophical approach belongs to reason and is not opposed to faith.

    (1) recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority.
    This belongs to faith and is not opposed to reason.

    That’s a fair summary for our present, limited purpose, though the second thesis should really be labeled (2), which I shall now do.

    You criticize the conjunction of (1) and (2) thus:

    By placing these together, you are inviting the inquirer to make a determinative judgment, apart from faith (virtue), about the “believability” and truth-value of faith-related topics. In addition, you want them to judge themselves incapable and impotent to accurately distinguish revelation and opinion. If the error prone inquirer judges your proposed “recourse” to be necessary (logical and ethical) and true, then please tell me if his judgment is with or without error ? If it is error free, then the inquirer has no principled reason to think he can’t distinguish revelation from opinion.

    There are two major difficulties with that criticism. First, I do not invite the uncommitted inquirer to make their determination apart from faith as a virtue. One can have at least the rudiments of faith as a virtue without affirming all that the Catholic Church teaches with her full authority, including what she affirms about her own authority. Rather, I invite the uncommitted inquirer to proceed without already assuming that the Catholic Church’s claims for herself are true. In that sense, I ask people to proceed without assuming a key tenet of the Catholic “faith.” That tenet is a proposition, not a virtue.

    Second, once the inquirer recognizes that a principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion can and should be made, his recognizing the inherent fallibility of his private judgment does not undermine that distinction or its applicability. On the contrary: it points to both. Why? Because he recognizes that whatever can be identified, in a principled way, as divine revelation rather than human opinion, must originate from outside his own, fallible judgment and make an unconditional, authoritative claim on his assent. Making that assent is a choice to respond to the divine gift of faith. That choice can be made reasonable by conclusions reached through study and meditation thereon, but it can never be dictated by such factors, which only yield provisional opinions, which of necessity cannot compel assent. So the fact that such opinions are reached only fallibly does not undermine the choice to make the assent of faith partly with them as reasons; rather, that fact points to said choice by exposing the importance of making it.

    Finally, you write and ask:

    Identifying the scriptures without error depends on an infallible person, so did the Jewish church, who was entrusted with the words of God, possess infallibility ? If not, then was the Lord Jesus the first one in Jewish history to identify scriptures without error ?

    On that topic, please see my exchange a few years ago with Prof. R.F. White.

    Best,
    Mike

  245. Brent, thanks for the link to the two articles from Steven Ray and Dr. White in #243. I don’t completely agree with Steven Ray, nor do I completely reject every criticism of Dr. White about Mr. Ray’s article.

    In his rebuttal of Steven Ray, Dr. White makes this statement which I found surprising:

    One will search high and low for any reference in any standard Protestant confession of faith that says, “There has never been a time when God’s Word was proclaimed and transmitted orally.” You will never find anyone saying, “During times of enscripturation—that is, when new revelation was being given—sola scriptura was operational.” Protestants do not assert that sola scriptura is a valid concept during times of revelation. How could it be, since the rule of faith to which it points was at that very time coming into being? One must have an existing rule of faith to say it is “sufficient.” It is a canard to point to times of revelation and say, “See, sola scriptura doesn’t work there!” Of course it doesn’t. Who said it did?

    “Who said it did?” All the Protestants that use Acts 17 to “prove” the Bereans believed in the doctrine of sola scriptura!

    But let us assume for the moment that what James White is correct when he says this:

    Protestants do not assert that sola scriptura is a valid concept during times of revelation.

    What Dr. White says in the above is at least logical. Dr. White is arguing that sola scriptura can’t possibly be an “operative” rule of faith until public revelation is closed. But it is not only Protestants that cannot possibly believe that sola scriptura is an “operative” rule of faith until public revelation is closed, that logic also applies to any Jew that is living “during times of revelation”. Which means that Dr. White should agree with at least one thing that Steven Ray is asserting – that the Jews in Beroea never believed in the doctrine of sola scriptura!

    Steven Ray makes several other points that Dr. White agrees with, for instance, that the Apostle Paul was bringing to both the Jews in Thessalonica and in Beroea an infallible interpretation of the inerrant Jewish scriptures … and … the Apostle Paul was bringing new divine revelation to these Jews. Paul is preaching to these Jews a very specific interpretation of the Jewish scriptures, and that is an interpretation that teaches that Jesus is the Messiah that was prophesized about in the Jewish Scriptures. This infallible interpretation of the Jewish scriptures was originally given to the Jews by Christ himself on the very day that Christ rose from the dead:

    And he said to them, “O foolish men, and slow of heart to believe all that the prophets have spoken! Was it not necessary that the Christ should suffer these things and enter into his glory?” And beginning with Moses and all the prophets, he interpreted to them in all the scriptures the things concerning himself.
    Luke 24:25-26

    It is from the church that Jesus Christ personally founded that Paul received this infallible interpretation of scriptures, and it is the church that Jesus Christ personally founded that sent Paul on his mission to Thessalonica and Beroea.

    Dr. White is claiming, (for no reason that I can see), that in the post-apostolic age, the church that Jesus Christ founded lost all her authority to bind Christians to a specific interpretaion of the inerrant scriptures. Dr. White claims:

    Sola scriptura says the Church always has an ultimate authority to which to turn: and the Church isn’t that ultimate authority!

    This statement by Dr. White about “ultimate authority” is really a veiled claim about Dr. White’s Protestant doctrine of primacy. Dr. White is claiming that the church that Jesus Christ founded does not have primacy in interpreting scriptures in the post-apostolic age. Here Dr. White is assuming that Luther’s novelty of the primacy of the individual’s conscience became “operative” after the last apostle died, and when the primacy of interpretation passed to each individual Christian, “sola scriptura” then became the new “operative” rule of faith for post-apostolic Christians. For some unexplained reason, the primacy of interpretation does not belong with the individuals during the time of revelation, for it did, then the Jews in Thessalonica did nothing wrong in rejecting an interpretation of scriptures that they personally didn’t agree with!

    Dr. White gives a rather convoluted explanation of what it means to be “noble” and then draws this strange conclusion about the “noble” Bereans:

    … here you have individuals comparing the Apostolic message against the Scriptures. What is the ultimate source of authority for the Bereans? Plainly, it is the Scripture.

    Huh? The Apostle Paul preached an inerrant interpretation of the Jewish scriptures to both the Jews in Thessalonica and Beroea. If any thing is plain to me, it is that while Paul and the Jews in Thessalonica and Beroea believed that the scriptures are indeed authoritative, the scriptures cannot be the ultimate temporal interpretive authority. Primacy (ultimate temporal interpretive authority) can’t belong to a book, because a book cannot correct men if their interpretations are wrong. The Bereans were “noble” because they accepted the interpretation that Paul had brought to them as an authorized teacher of Christ’s church.

    The Jews in Thessalonica were protestors. They protested against an interpretation of scriptures that had been brought to them by an authorized teacher from the church that Jesus Christ personally founded.

  246. Randy, regarding your comment #241, Just as an initial comment, I’ve responded to Tom Brown’s claims about Calvin having “misstated the Catholic position on Scripture”. In short, Brown misrepresents the situation.

    Further to your request that I “sketch out Kruger’s arguments”, as you mentioned, I’ve posted a great deal about Canon Revisited, and I’ll offer it up directly for anyone who is interested in dealing with it. You make the charge that “It seems like it suffers from the phantom argument fallacy”, but the work itself is a tremendous source of detail, not only at a theological level (such as Ridderbos’s work), but he provides a treasure of factual information about, for example, “book” production in the first and second centuries, and what we can learn about canon development from the assembly of various manuscripts.

    Specifically, about his “argument”, this post gives a good summary and overview of what Kruger has to say. For those who don’t want to click on my links, I’ll provide this brief summary:

    Kruger’s is the first work that I am aware of, from a Reformed and evangelical perspective, that deals specifically with the entire range of the issues surrounding the Protestant acceptance of the 27-book canon of the New Testament. That includes not only the writing of the books [and Kruger notes that the New Testament books were “Scripture” at the moment they were penned], to how they were collected [immediately], how the church fathers used them, to how they were copied [and there are detailed accounts of “books” in that day as well as book production], distributed, used in worship, reflected upon, [in some cases] disputed, and accepted, all without the authority of the Roman Catholic Church.

    The stated purpose of the book, Kruger notes, is not to provide a comprehensive look at the history of the development of the canon of the New Testament. There are other works that deal with the historical issues. Kruger’s stated purpose is to respond to “the narrow question of whether Christians have a rational basis (i.e., intellectually sufficient grounds) for affirming that only these twenty-seven books rightfully belong in the New Testament canon. Or put differently, is the Christian belief in the canon justified (or warranted)? The answer is an unqualified “yes”.

    While Kruger does not write specifically to counter the charge of the Roman Catholic Church (that only the supposed authority of the Roman Catholic Church can have fixed this canon for Protestants, and therefore Protestants are dependent upon Roman Catholic authority), he clearly is aware of this charge and he addresses it thoroughly. And since there are unthinking Roman Catholics who do not know what Sola Scriptura is [and worse: thinking Roman Catholics who do know what it is, but who nevertheless continue to caricature that position], and who continue to ask the question “where is Sola Scriptura in the Bible?”, this work is extremely useful in addressing these specific claims as well.

    The “Canon” argument has been used by Roman Catholics from the time of the Reformation (Kruger cites “the sixteenth-century Roman Catholic Cardinal Sanislaus Hosius, papal legate to the Council of Trent”, who said: “The Scriptures have only as much force as the fables of Aesop if destitute of the authority of the Church”, pg 40). I’ve noted here that Roman Catholics are so comfortable with “the canon issue” that, in response to a major work undermining the centuries-old myth of “Peter as the first pope”, Oscar Cullmann did not receive responses that directly addressed his work on Peter, but that he merely that “In … most of the Catholic reviews of my book on St. Peter, one argument especially is brought forward: scripture, a collection of books, is not sufficient to actualize for us the divine revelation granted to the apostles (cited in “The Early Church”, London: SCM Press Ltd, © 1956, in the Foreword to the article “The Tradition”, pg 57).

    Canon Revisited, far from being devoid of an argument, presents the most thorough and factual response I’ve seen to date to Roman Catholic questions about the Protestant acceptance of a 27-book canon.

  247. John, (re: #246)

    The Bible has authority in two distinct and non-mutually exclusive ways. All Scripture has divine authority because it is God-breathed. But the canon of Scripture also has authority in another sense because it was recognized as canonical by the Church, through Tradition. What Tom is talking about is the authority Scripture has as God-breathed; Scripture does not derive that authority from the Church. What Eck is talking about (in the selection Swan cites) is the authority the canon has on account of its having been recognized as canonical by the Church; Scripture does derive that authority from the Church. So there is no contradiction. Calvin is claiming that the authority of Scripture in no way depends on the Church. And Eck shows the problem with that position. Tom is pointing out that Calvin is misstating the Catholic position insofar as he [i.e. Calvin] implies that the Catholic position is that the entire authority of Scripture derives from the Church. And Eck would agree, because Eck is not talking about the authority Scripture has from divine inspiration, but about the authority it has from its ecclesial recognition. But, this discussion would take us off topic for this post. If you wish to discuss the canon, please do so in the combox under Tom’s “The Canon Question” article.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  248. John,

    I was not saying Kruger used the phantom argument fallacy. I was saying you were. That is the post required someone to buy a book and read it. If someone does not do so then their position is labeled as uninformed because they have not read this allegedly amazing argument in this obscure book.

    the three attributes of canonicity that all canonical books possess—divine qualities, corporate reception, apostolic origins—and the work of the Holy Spirit to help us recognize them.

    I am interested in the second part of that. How exactly does the Holy Spirit help us recognize when the 3 conditions of canonicity have been met? How objective are his criteria? Where exactly do the criteria come from? I am not as interested in factual detail, although we would likely have disagreements there as well.

    Reading what you have provided it still seems quite obscure. I am not sure if Kruger tries to finesse the problems and there is no there there or if your summary misses the essential points.

    He seems to say the canon question was settled very early, in the 2nd century. That brings up another issue. If the question was settled in the 4th century why do the writings from the 4th century seem to indicate it isn’t? We have a lot of writings from the 4th century. It is easy to make sweeping statements that everyone has misunderstood them but it is really not that likely.

    Anyway, suppose he can provide strong evidence that those 27 books and only those 27 books were written by an apostle and accepted by some prominent early Christians. So what? They might have been the Purpose Driven Life of the first century. That is simply Christian writing that is generating excitement among some people. Suppose the books themselves and the people writing the books said they just knew they were God breathed? So what? You still have fallible human opinion about these books. What brings the books across the threshold from being well respected by fallible humans to being infallibly known to be God-breathed? Does Kruger ever go there? If he doesn’t then he his book is only going to be an interesting source of data related to 27 books.

  249. Brian — You are certainly missing something Eck is saying. While Eck (in #3) suggests “canonical” authority, in the paragraph following, he is speaking in the broader sense: “Therefore it thus is clear that the Church is older than Scripture, and Scripture would not be authentic without the Church’s authority.” So if Calvin has Eck in mind at this point, he certainly is not making a misstatement.

    Whether Eck mean authority in the “canonical” sense, Prierias, whom I quoted, certainly intended that “the Church” itself caused the Scriptures to have authority:

    He who does not hold the teaching of the Roman Church and the Pope as an infallible rule of faith, from which even Holy Scripture draws its power and authority, he is a heretic.

    Eck is not the only Roman Catholic writer from whom Calvin might be drawing. Certainly he would know of Prierias. Calvin was not misstating anything. He was certainly drawing from what contemporary authors were saying.

    Your facile answer here does not address these concerns.

    Nor are comments open in the “canon” thread. It seems just as pertinent to address this here, where the question came up.

  250. There is another problem with Calvin’s position.

    Calvin and all the Reformers seemed to think that they could prove sola scriptura merely by demonstrating that Scripture does not receive its authority from the Church, and that the Holy Spirit’s witness is sufficient to persuade us of Scripture’s authority.

    But “where Scripture comes from,” and “how we know it speaks with divine authority” are questions who’s answers have no definitive meaning for the real point at issue between Protestants and Catholics: What is Scripture’s Purpose?

    Protestant theologians (like early moderns in other fields) thus restricted themselves to explanations of efficient and material causality, and assumed that formal and final causality followed as a matter of course.

    Every Catholic confesses that Scripture comes from God, and has divine authority. And a Catholic could, in theory, admit that the Holy Spirit testifies to that divine authority. What the Protestant needs to show is that God intends this divinely authoritative book to serve as the Rule of Faith for the Church. And that is something no Protestant has ever demonstrated, nor have many even tried.

  251. John, (re: #249)

    You wrote:

    Brian — You are certainly missing something Eck is saying. While Eck (in #3) suggests “canonical” authority, in the paragraph following, he is speaking in the broader sense: “Therefore it thus is clear that the Church is older than Scripture, and Scripture would not be authentic without the Church’s authority.” So if Calvin has Eck in mind at this point, he certainly is not making a misstatement.

    In that statement of Eck’s you cite, he is talking about Scripture’s authority as canonical, not its authority as divinely inspired. So, you haven’t shown that I am “missing something.” And insofar as Calvin implies that the Catholic position is that the entire authority of Scripture derives from the Church, Calvin misstates the Catholic position.

    Whether Eck mean authority in the “canonical” sense, Prierias, whom I quoted, certainly intended that “the Church” itself caused the Scriptures to have authority:

    He who does not hold the teaching of the Roman Church and the Pope as an infallible rule of faith, from which even Holy Scripture draws its power and authority, he is a heretic.

    Prierias is also there talking about the authority Scripture derives from its recognition by the Church, not the authority it has by its divine inspiration.

    Eck is not the only Roman Catholic writer from whom Calvin might be drawing. Certainly he would know of Prierias. Calvin was not misstating anything. He was certainly drawing from what contemporary authors were saying.

    I agree that Calvin was drawing from what contemporary authors were saying, but they were not claiming that divine inspiration gives no authority to Scripture. They were claiming that without ecclesial recognition of the canon, Scripture could not function as authoritative, because Christians would not know which books are divinely inspired. So ecclesial recognition was absolutely necessary in order for Scripture to function as authoritative, but is not the source of the authority Scripture has as divinely inspired.

    Your facile answer here does not address these concerns.

    Which concern have I not addressed?

    Nor are comments open in the “canon” thread. It seems just as pertinent to address this here, where the question came up.

    My mistake; I forgot that comments on the Canon article had been closed. Carry on.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  252. Bryan (251):

    they were not claiming that divine inspiration gives no authority to Scripture. They were claiming that without ecclesial recognition of the canon, Scripture could not function as authoritative, because Christians would not know which books are divinely inspired.

    So what are you saying? That the letter from Paul to the Romans only had some … what … oomph? – definitely not “authoritative”, but definitely, what’s the term you used? “Divine authority because it’s God-breathed” But not having the authority the canon has on account of its having been recognized as canonical by the Church”

    How does that work in real life? “God said, ‘let there be light’, and the light had to wait for some centuries because the canon of God’s Word had not been recognized as canonical by the Church”

    It is a distinction without any real meaning. It is a distinction that does genuine violence to God’s authority. It is both arrogant and meaningless.

    What you are missing is the fact that God speaks and his word has all the authority of God (see 2 Peter 3:16. What authority is lacking from “all of Paul’s letters”, different from “the other Scriptures”? You said:

    Scripture could not function as authoritative, because Christians would not know which books are divinely inspired.

    Peter himself tells you Paul’s letters are “divinely inspired”. This is Kruger’s principle of “canonical core”. There was no time when “all of Paul’s letters” were not authoritative, in the highest possible way.

    Calvin in no way “misstates the Catholic position”. Calvin precisely described the violence that Roman apologists do to the Scriptures with their artificial distinctions which claim, with Eck, “the Church is older than Scripture, and Scripture would not be [and therefore, is not] authentic without the Church’s authority”.

  253. John, you’re overlooking a few rather elementary facts.

    For one thing, while they lived, Peter, Paul, and other authors of New Testament books were themselves the leaders of the Church appointed directly by the Lord. They had been teaching the Church and speaking for the Church well before they wrote those books. So “the Church” just is “older than Scripture,” where the Scripture in question is the New Testament. (More generally, the entire “people” of the God and Father of Our Lord Jesus Christ is older than the entire scriptural canon, since the Jews were constituted as God’s chosen people before any of the OT was put to papyrus.)

    Given as much, believers saw some of the NT books as divinely inspired because the Apostles and those who wrote and taught with their authorization said they were. The faithful believed them because, in making that claim, the Apostles and those they authorized were known to be exercising the authority the Lord had given them. So those NT books which were accepted early as divinely inspired–whatever the exact list, if any–were authenticated as such by the Apostles and those they authorized to write and teach. And that is the same as to say that said books were authenticated as divinely inspired only with “the Church’s authority.” So Eck was by no means off base in making the claim you say does “violence” to the Scriptures. The NT Scriptures were books of the Church: written through her instrumentality, and recognized as such by her authority. That is historical fact, not theological dogma.

    Moreover, it’s just a historical fact that the entire NT canon took several centuries to coalesce and be closed. It was the Church which decided all along which books belonged in the NT canon and which didn’t. That decision didn’t make the NT divinely inspired, but as things happened, the decision was clearly necessary for making the conviction that certain books were divinely inspired anything more than private opinion. Just recall the Marcionite controversy and others regarding particular books.

    All of the above is well-known, and it’s all that’s necessary to explain Bryan’s point.

    Best,
    Mike

  254. Mike (re: #244),

    A Christian should remain teachable through his life. This is no different for teaching Christians who excel in knowledge and understanding. I have labored, at the very least, to stay close to your actual arguments.

    You wrote:
    The real work lies in the other direction

    No argument here. In fact, it becomes very real when you try to prove D is infallible without signs, wonders, or miracles from D.

    You wrote:
    That just misunderstands Catholic ecclesiology.

    I’m accusing Catholic ecclesiology of being arbitrary and self-serving when it explains the church’s relation to revelation. Catholic theologians consciously avoid such things as: God reveals through the church, the church is revelatory, or the church is revelation. They know that a revelation requires an infallible agent for interpretation.

    You wrote:
    You summarize my methodology thus

    I have benefited from the explanations about your methodology. In my opinion, it is a friendly and serious way to engage any uncommitted inquirer. My criticism begins and ends with Step (1) and its new label convention:

    (1) divine revelation is distinguishable from human opinion

    Two things are recognized: A mental-extra mental distinction and the fallible judgment of the inquirer. These are reasonable conclusions based on philosophical speculation. I call this the grenade.

    (2) recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority

    This statement, according to catholic teaching, is a revealed truth or a necessary truth connected to revelation. Either way, it belongs to the order of faith. For a catholic, its truth and divine character are known with certainty through the infallible teaching authority. This authority guarantees inerrancy. Why are you presenting it to a fallible person for judgment ? You are asking him to judge its reasonable compatibility with faith-truths and revelation. If he agrees with you, then (1) has been accomplished without any outside authority which is divinely protected from error ! Moreover, it shows that a fallible person can reach a truth of faith-revelation without error ! I call this the grenade pin.

    I recommend that your methodology return to good old-fashioned authoritarian demand for assent.

    I will devote time to read the links and comment.

    Thanks,
    Eric

  255. John, (re: #252)

    I agree with what Mike said. I might add a few additional remarks. You wrote:

    So what are you saying? That the letter from Paul to the Romans only had some … what … oomph? – definitely not “authoritative”, but definitely, what’s the term you used? “Divine authority because it’s God-breathed” But not having the authority the canon has on account of its having been recognized as canonical by the Church”

    No, that’s not what I’m saying. The authority Scripture has as God-breathed is not some part or percentage of its total authority, the rest being supplemented by the Church. Rather, these are two different types of authority, and can belong to the same thing at the same time. The authority Scripture has as God-breathed is intrinsic to Scripture. The authority Scripture has by way of the Church’s recognition and approbation is that of divine attestation and testimony concerning the identity and nature of Scripture, much as the law and the prophets (including John the Baptist) testified concerning Christ, even though Christ, being the Son of God, already had divine authority intrinsically. The comparison is not perfect, of course, but it is an example of the difference between authority possessed by way of attestation from some divinely authorized representative, and intrinsic authority.

    Peter himself tells you Paul’s letters are “divinely inspired”. This is Kruger’s principle of “canonical core”. There was no time when “all of Paul’s letters” were not authoritative, in the highest possible way.

    I agree that there was no time when all of Paul’s letters (at least the ones that came to be included in the canon) were not divinely inspired. From the moment they were written they had divine authority, being God-breathed. But, St. Peter’s testimony concerning St. Paul’s letters is an example of the sort of attestation I’m talking about, except that the broader attestation I’m talking about wasn’t only attestation by St. Peter, but also by the other Apostles and apostolic churches that authenticated for the whole Church that these texts were apostolic in origin and had canonical authority to be read as the word of the Lord.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  256. Eric (#254):

    Thank you for being willing to “devote time to read the links and comment.” We’re starting to understand each other better. In the meantime, though, I think it’s important to deal with the nub of the issue as you present it.

    I had argued that, in order to adopt a principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion, the uncommitted inquirer should have “recourse to an authority which is divinely protected from error when teaching with its full authority.” Referring to the Catholic Church’s claim such authority, you write:

    This authority guarantees inerrancy. Why are you presenting it to a fallible person for judgment? You are asking him to judge its reasonable compatibility with faith-truths and revelation. If he agrees with you, then (1) has been accomplished without any outside authority which is divinely protected from error ! Moreover, it shows that a fallible person can reach a truth of faith-revelation without error ! I call this the grenade pin. I recommend that your methodology return to good old-fashioned authoritarian demand for assent.

    There are two problems here. The first, it seems to me, is that you’re misunderstanding the purpose of apologetics as a discipline. The apologist as such must present reasons for making the assent of divine faith as distinct from that of mere opinion. That’s because his task is to show that the assent of faith is reasonable. Now I think you’d agree that, in general, infallibility is not necessary for having good reasons to believe certain things in light of merely human reason and experience. Thus, e.g., we have quite sufficient reason to affirm the fact that Earth is spherical in shape, even though our judgments about such matters are in principle fallible. Hence, our assent to the proposition that Earth is spherical qualifies as knowledge, even though our assent to that is not divinely protected from error. To a certain extent, the same goes for making the assent of faith to propositions expressing data of divine revelation. One’s reasons for making that assent can and should be good enough, even though fallible; when they are, then one’s assent is reasonable even though the process of reasoning yielding them is fallible.

    That brings me to the second problem with what you say above: to wit, there’s a crucial epistemic difference between truths knowable by merely human experience or reason and truths that can only be affirmed by the assent of divine faith. Showing that such assent is reasonable is not going to show that the propositions to which one assents are facts, as distinct from opinions which, though perhaps well-founded, are open to revision in principle. That’s because truths of faith are supernatural, not natural, so that by definition they cannot be shown to be factual by any method of human reasoning, no matter how reliable that method may be. For that reason, our epistemic access to the revealed truths of faith must ultimately rely on authority–specifically, divine authority. And given as much, the central task for the apologist is to show that accepting some agency’s claim to divine authority is reasonable, even though he cannot prove, by human experience and reasoning alone, that such a claim is actually true.

    For us, then, the immediate question is simply whether accepting some agency’s claim to divine authority, with its concomitant claim to be divinely protected from error, is more reasonable than rejecting such a claim while at the same time affirming something as Christian revelation. I have long argued that the answer is yes. For unless some authority can truly make such a claim, there is nothing in principle to distinguish its tenets from human opinion, as distinct from expressions of revealed facts. The subject matter of divine revelation, after all, is not like that of science or even ordinary experience; in matters of divine revelation we have no basis, other than recognizing some authority as divinely authorized and protected from error, for discovering and demonstrating the relevant facts. The only question is where to locate and identify that authority.

    In the final analysis, then, the apolgist’s task is simply to show whose claim to such authority is the most reasonable. That being reasonable about the matter does not require infallibility on the part of the inquirer does nothing to take away from the infallibility, if any, of the authority to which assent is reasonably rendered. Quite the opposite: rendering the assent of faith to any other sort of authority would be unreasonable.

    Best,
    Mike

  257. Michael Liccione said (comment 253):

    “The faithful believed them because, in making that claim, the Apostles and those they authorized were known to be exercising the authority the Lord had given them

    And

    The NT Scriptures were books of the Church: written through her instrumentality, and recognized as such by her authority. That is historical fact, not theological dogma.

    Everyone agrees that the Reformation was about “authority”. This discussion, too, is about “authority.
    But neither of these claims you are making can be supported. Not exegetically from the Scriptures, nor from history.

    Before I go any further, I want to point out that you make the assumption of a “her”. You already here are assuming a “church structure”, a “church hierarchy” that was not in existence at this time. This is Horton’s “overrealized eschatology”. I’ll have more to say about this below.

    You’ll also want to invoke Newman here, and say something like “no doctrine is defined until it is violated”, but this is what I meant above by “facile” – the historical details we know – what actually happened – betrays this simple attempt at explanation. The whole concept of “authority” as passed along either in a “monarchical bishop”, and much less a “succession” of bishops, is far, far removed from the kind of authority with which the New Testament authorizes the elders of the church.

    Paul’s imagery in the Pastoral letters and elsewhere, is strongly and thickly that of “estate stewardship” – household servants, not household masters. What Paul has in mind is more the Butler managing the household staff.

    So exegetically, you can look to other Scriptures which bear witness to how a steward should behave.

    * * *

    Scripturally, of course, the Apostles were” sent”. But in what way were they “sent”? What kind of “authority” did they perceive that they had? And what kind of “authority” did they perceive that they were giving to those they named as elders? These are appropriate questions.

    Christ himself (John 17:20) made the distinction between his apostles, whom he prayed for – “them alone” – and “those who will believe in me through their message”.

    Paul, an Apostle, noted too his “message” – (Galatians 2:6) – he is critical to note that even the “pillars”, those who “seemed to be influential” (ESV) or “were of high reputation” (NASB) in truth “added nothing to my message”.

    So when Bryan talks about Peter’s “authorization” (comment 255) or , so too, what “the church” does when it “authorizes” adds precisely nothing to the Scriptures.

    We are of course talking about “authority”, and as a proof-text, Roman Catholics point to Titus 2:15, where Paul tells him “These, then, are the things you should teach. Encourage and rebuke with all authority”. But the authority here is not something that is “divinely protected from error under certain conditions”. The charge to Titus is to constantly be on guard for error.

    Paul does not say, “teach, encourage and rebuke with all authority, then pass that on to those you are appointing”. That, of course, is the Roman doctrine, but it is not at all in view as Paul is instructing Timothy.

    The entire theme of the letters to Timothy and Titus, the “controlling theme” in these Epistles (in a study by Alan Tomlinson (“The Purpose and Stewardship Theme within the Pastoral Epistles”, in “Entrusted with the Gospel,” Andreas Kostenberger, Terry Wilder eds., Nashville, TN: Baker Academic, ©2010), is the “οἰκονόμ ία θεοῦ”, “the household of God”, and Apostles and elders as “stewards”.

    Don’t think of a “bishop” as someone in charge. Think rather of the Butler who runs the place. (In fact, imagine the scenes of the Butler pouring drinks for the pope. Think about how “out of place” that pope is – in the Pastoral epistles, Paul is telling Timothy and Titus what it takes to be a good Butler).

    In the New Testament, you see primary images of “faithful stewardship” in Luke 12:35-48, Luke 16:1-13, Matthew 24:45-51 and Matthew 25:14-30. Consider just some of the imagery of those verses:

    “Who then is the faithful and wise manager, whom the master puts in charge of his servants to give them their food allowance at the proper time? It will be good for that servant whom the master finds doing so when he returns. Truly I tell you, he will put him in charge of all his possessions.

    This is the kind of thing Michael Horton has in mind when he uses the phrase “overrealized eschatology”. He is far too kind. Rome has already assumed itself “in charge of all his possessions”.

    “Whoever can be trusted with very little can also be trusted with much, and whoever is dishonest with very little will also be dishonest with much”.

    It is “the message” that is key. “The message” (John 17:20, Gal 2:6) with which these have been “entrusted”. Those in “authority” are “stewards” of it. But this is not the only instance of this theme.

    Roman doctrine pays lip service to this concept, but in reality, the notion that “at some times” they have to speak infallibly is just a gift that they provide to themselves, which has no warrant in the Scriptures.

    But you’re equivocating on the word “authority”. You’re using the same word in different senses. You are ignoring Paul’s original meaning of that word, and you are back-filling it with a current Roman Catholic definition of “authority”.

    Of course, we are not talking about “the authority of the Apostles”. We are talking about “the authority” of “the message”. And the stewards as “adding nothing” to the message.

  258. Following up on the historical portion of what I have been saying:

    Historically, it was understood that there was a difference between “the Apostles” and everyone else. This much was recognized even at that time in question: the last half of the first century, the first half of the second century. The Apostles had the ability, because of their eyewitness status, to craft the message. Someone above said that Calvin changed “the foundation of the Apostles

    To be sure “the apostles” “appointed” “overseers and deacons” as 1 Clement said, but this was not the institution of a permanent office – there were no guarantees for the future. These men had to be, and were, “tested by the spirit”. The “permanent character” (1 Clem 44) of their office was not the promise of “a succession for all time”, it was permanent within their lifetimes. It was an effort to guarantee faithfulness within the lifetimes of these men.

    But Clement already has, through the influence of the Roman military, mixed the metaphor, away from one of “stewardship of the household” to that of serving as “soldiers under commanders” (1 Clem 37). Nevertheless, in spite of his admiration for the Roman military, Caragounis noted that this is all that 1 Clement could do – persuade – and in fact, the literary form of that letter, a symbouletic letter, was one of persuasion. Caragounis notes:

    The great difference between the model passage (Titus 1:5-7) and 1 Clement is that the former says nothing about any succession. Titus is merely to appoint presbyters or bishops, but they are not taking Paul’s place in any way. In fact, they cannot. In the 1 Clement passage, however, the thus appointed bishops “succeed to their” [i.e., the apostles’] ministry. There is thus an inconsistency in 1 Clement . On the one hand the writer—assuming him to be Clement, the third bishop of Rome—totally effaces himself, the letter being sent by and having the authority of the whole church, while on the other hand he seeks here to establish an apostolic succession between the apostles and his own office!

    Clement may want papal authority, but he [contra Fortescue] clearly does not have it.

    * * *

    John Behr, in his introduction to Irenaeus of Lyons “Demonstration of the Apostolic Preaching” (Crestwood, NY: St Vladimir’s Seminary Press, pgs 9-11), notes that Ignatius did not hold to “apostolic succession”. Behr discusses Ignatius’s repeated comments to the effect that as a bishop he, unlike the apostles, is not in a position to give orders or to lay down the precepts or the teachings (δόγματα), which come from the Lord and the apostles alone.

    * * *

    As a third example of the difference between the kind of “authority” that the Apostles viewed themselves as having, and what the later church “assumed” for itself, comes from the Shepherd of Hermas. Rome, the capital city, of course was esteemed, and the elders of the church of that city, may at one time have seen themselves as “servants”. But the Shepherd of Hermas notes that the the elders (presbuteroi) who preside (proistamenoi – plural leadership) over the church (Vis 2.4) were “conducting themselves like sorcerers” (Vis 3.9).

    In none of these instances, 1 Clement or Ignatius or Hermas, are we talking about “a succession” of bishops. That concept of
    succession” is, as I’ve borrowed from the writings of the words of Joseph Ratzinger, in his in his essay “Primacy, Episcopacy, and Successio Apostolica” in the work “God’s Word: Scripture-Tradition-Office (San Francisco: Ignatius Press ©2008; Libreria Editrice Vaticana edition ©2005), clearly from the second century. Ratzinger says:

    He says “The concept of [apostolic] succession was clearly formulated, as von Campenhausen has impressively demonstrated, in the anti-Gnostic polemics of the second century; [and not in the first century] its purpose was to contrast the true apostolic tradition of the Church with the pseudo-apostolic tradition of Gnosis” (pgs 22-23).

    The idea of a “New Testament” as “Scripture” is still quite inconceivable at this point—even when “office”, as the form of the paradosis, is already clearly taking shape” (Ratzinger 25).

    This “office taking shape” is happening in “the second century”.

    * * *

    In any event, even at this late date, this “succession” is not offered as “a permanent charter for all time”. It is offered by Irenaeus as a looking back – it is offered as an evidence that there has been faithfulness. But it is one test of faithfulness, and in no wise is offered as a “permanent guarantee” of future performance.

    * * *

    This is contrasted even to what Bryan says in #255 – Peter clearly acknowledges that Paul’s letters are “scriptures” (but in doing so, as Paul notes, “adds nothing to my message”).

  259. Bryan (comment 255):

    The authority Scripture has by way of the Church’s recognition and approbation is that of divine attestation and testimony concerning the identity and nature of Scripture, much as the law and the prophets (including John the Baptist) testified concerning Christ, even though Christ, being the Son of God, already had divine authority intrinsically. The comparison is not perfect, of course, but it is an example of the difference between authority possessed by way of attestation from some divinely authorized representative, and intrinsic authority.

    Not only is the comparison “not perfect”, but it is a category mistake. Bavinck addressed this when he discussed the difference between the Scriptures quoad se [in themselves] and the Scriptures quoad nos [as they have to do with us]. As one writer asked, “are [these] identical with one another and perfectly correspond at every single point? Is content and expression, essence and form, God’s absolute truth and the Church’s assimilation into her consciousness, confession, cultural language and ideas, articulation, and proclamation identical at every point?” (cf. Herman Bavinck, Reformed Dogmatics, 1:30-32).

    You also said:

    St. Peter’s testimony concerning St. Paul’s letters is an example of the sort of attestation I’m talking about, except that the broader attestation I’m talking about wasn’t only attestation by St. Peter, but also by the other Apostles and apostolic churches that authenticated for the whole Church that these texts were apostolic in origin and had canonical authority to be read as the word of the Lord.

    There is no hint that this “attestation” of the church is “divine”. I’ve spoken above of what an “authorized representative” is, and how, with humility, a steward ought to regard (the way Paul esteemed his “message”) – Paul did not even claim “divine” authorization, but “apostolic” authorization.

    With this “attestation”, as Paul says to the Galatians, and as I explained above, “nothing” was added to his message.

    * * *

    Finally, following up on the concepts of these three comments, Michael Kruger presses home the concept that (a) the New Testament writings were covenant documents, they were viewed as such. They had authority as such (which he calls “divine qualities”, and also, because they were acknowledged to have apostolic authority. His discussion of “the church receiving” these works takes up three chapters, and I don’t have time to get into it here. But I’ve outlined my case fairly thoroughly in the two previous posts, and the contrast between the “authority” of the church following the Apostles, and the second century “development of office” and Kruger’s portrayal of the divine [“quoad se”] qualities of the New Testament writings, could not be clearer.

  260. I apologize for typos. I rushed to get this off before leaving for work.

  261. Mike (#256),

    I’ve reflected on your most recent comment on my blog here. Carry on. I did not want to muddy up the combox.

    Pax,

    Brent

  262. John Bugay.

    We just had our fourth baby the other day so I won’t have time to really get into an extended discussion. Hopefully some of the others here will be able to interact with your comments in greater detail. Some things stood out though, that you’ve said, which I’d like to quickly address.

    Firstly, recall our previous discussion in the thread: Modern Scholarship, Rome and a Challenge. In that thread you had every opportunity to prove that apostolic succession from the apostles to the bishops is not an historical reality. You didn’t accomplish that. In your recent comments you seem to be making a very similar argument.

    Secondly, you seem to be arguing that scripture came before the church. I might ask you pointedly the following: Did Christ build a Church (Matt 16:18). And, were Paul and Peter and Luke etc not part of that Church?

    Next, you say with certainty that Ignatius did not accept or teach apostolic succession. This is just false. There are many examples but only a few should suffice.

    “For what is the bishop but one who beyond all others possesses all power and authority, so far as it is possible for a man to possess it, who according to his ability has been made an imitator of the Christ off God? And what is the presbytery but a sacred assembly, the counselors and assessors of the bishop? And what are the deacons but imitators of the angelic powers, fulfilling a pure and blameless ministry unto him, as…Anencletus and Clement to Peter?” Ignatius, To the Trallians, 7 (A.D. 110).

    I believe Behr errs in that Ignatius only said at times that bishops do not ‘create’ dogma. Well, that is true. They don’t. That is not a denial of apostolic succession and further, we know that Ignatius affirms apostolic succession in other places.

    Lastly, Behr’s book is about Irenaeus and we all know that he spelled out the succession of the bishops from Peter explicitly.

  263. Sean,

    Congratulations on your baby!

    Much of the passage you cited is not from St Ignatius, but comes from a much later interpolation. However, you’re right that while (as Fr. Behr points out and the Catholic Church teaches) there are important distinctions between the unique apostolic charism and the episcopal charism, that hardly counts against apostolic succession.

    best,
    John

  264. Sean — the fact that there are “later interpolations” of Ignatius should concern you, but it does not seem as if it does concern you (I’ve seen you cite “pseudo-Ignatius several times now). “Pseudonymity”, especially the kind where somebody pretends to be someone they’re not, is, among other things, a moral issue. What it essentially means (to scholars whom you seem to disdain) is that somebody is being dishonest. You may get warm fuzzies from citing things like that, but it’s not very well respected in broader circles.

    Behr is not the key component of the argument I have made here. In fact, I have cited Joseph Ratzinger affirming a key point that I have made (again, from “scholarship”). Bryan tried to tell me that it was simply “the concept” that was borrowed from 2nd century Gnosticism, not “the practice”.

    But you have to keep in mind, there are multiple trajectories of historical things happening, which we are describing: Scripture has more authority up front (and Kruger’s work goes into a tremendous amount of detail as to just how important the New Testament writings were for the earliest church — say, before Clement and Ignatius — and how the things that these individuals wrote about were relatively less important. It throws the whole “authority” calculus that the Roman Catholic Church relies on out of whack.

    Congratulations on your baby. I’m sure you have your hands full.

  265. John, (re: #264)

    Bryan tried to tell me that it was simply “the concept” that was borrowed from 2nd century Gnosticism, not “the practice”.

    I said no such thing. Here’s what I actually said:

    Regarding the quotation from Ratzinger, the fact that the concept of succession was first “clearly formulated” in the anti-gnostic polemics of the second century does not mean that the Church’s practice of apostolic succession came from 2nd century gnostics or was only adopted in the 2nd century. Ratzinger’s statement is fully compatible with practice of apostolic succession going back to the Apostles themselves, and with Ratzinger’s uninterrupted belief in the practice of apostolic succession going back to the Apostles themselves. Every belief and practice of the Church becomes more “clearly formulated” in the face of challenge by heretics. That does not mean that the Church derived her belief and practice concerning apostolic succession from second century gnostics. (source)

    The Church always had the concept of apostolic succession. But she first formulated that concept clearly in a written and public manner in the anti-gnostic polemics of the second century. She never “borrowed” the concept from the gnostics.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  266. John.

    I don’t think Ignatius’ affirmation of the succession of the bishops from the apostles rely only on that one passage, whether part of it (not all of it) is an interpolation or not. I am not as read on this as you, no doubt, but I would think that whether part is an interpolation is somewhat debatable. Besides, in the ‘shorter’ Letter to the Traillians even without the portion that is considered by many to be an ‘interpolation’ there is a strong affirmation of the office of bishop and apostolic succession.

    You said, In fact, I have cited Joseph Ratzinger affirming a key point that I have made (again, from “scholarship”).

    What has Joseph Ratzinger affirmed about your point, specifically?

    Nobody here is denying that scripture has real God breathed authority. Maybe I am misunderstanding you but you seem to be focusing on that, as if there is disagreement, but there isn’t.

    It throws the whole “authority” calculus that the Roman Catholic Church relies on out of whack.

    I don’t see how scripture having authority (something we all agree on) throws the calculus of the Catholic Church out of whack.

    Congratulations on your baby. I’m sure you have your hands full.

    You have no idea, or rather I bet you do ; 0 )

    It’s nap time and I can’t sleep.

  267. Bryan: Forgive my imprecision. It was Von Campenhausen who said that the concept was not original with Christianity, but was [choose your word: “borrowed” from, “derived from”, etc.] the Gnostics. The first “Christian” use of the actual word “succession” (“διαδοχἡ”) is from Ptolemaeus in 164, I believe. This first quote, affirming this factually, is from Joseph Ratzinger, in a 1961 essay that was reproduced in the recent publication of the work “God’s Word: Scripture-Tradition-Office” (San Francisco: Ignatius Press ©2008; Libreria Editrice Vaticana edition ©2005).

    The concept of succession was clearly formulated, as von Campenhausen has impressively demonstrated, in the anti-Gnostic polemics of the second century; its purpose was to contrast the true apostolic tradition of the Church with the pseudo-apostolic traditions of Gnosis. It is therefore, from the outset, closely connected with the question of what is truly apostolic; in particular, it is clear that successio and traditio were originally neighboring terms; the two concepts were at first practically synonymous (Ratzinger, 22-23).

    This second account is from the von Campenhausen work he said was “impressively demonstrated”:

    The decisive step on the development of the concept of tradition was taken … about the middle of the second century. It is about this time that the ideas of “transmitting” and “receiving” tradition acquire new theological importance and a markedly technical meaning. The origins of this phenomenon are, however, not to be sought in the circles which elaborated the ecclesiology of the Great Church; instead they take us into the world of the gnosis and its cult of the free individual teacher. At any rate, within the Christian world it is the Gnostic Ptolemaeus who provides the earliest evidence known to us of this new, theologically oriented usage. In the Letter to Flora he speaks explicitly of the secret and apostolic tradition (παράδοσεις) which supplements the canonical collection of Jesus’s words, and which by being handed on through a succession (διαδοχἡ) of teachers and instructors has now come to “us”, that is, to him or to his community. Here the concept of “tradition” is plainly used in a technical sense, as is shown particularly by the collocation with the corresponding concept of “succession” (Citing von Campenhausen, 158).

    You say, “The Church always had the concept of apostolic succession”. I’ve shown from Scripture that Paul, at least, did affirmed that the “succession” of “the message” was what he had in mind. Where, in the New Testament, does it say, “The Church has ‘always’ had the concept of apostolic succession”? If you can’t show it from the New Testament, what written evidence do you have that say that the church “always” had this concept?

  268. John Bugay writes:

    Everyone agrees that the Reformation was about “authority”.

    I agree! The disagreement between the Catholic Church and Protestants is NOT about whether the scriptures are authoritative – they are, and they possess a unique authority because they were written under the charismatic gift of inspiration. The disagreement is about what interpretations of the scriptures Christians are conscience bound to accept. And this is a disagreement over primacy. Every Christian holds to some doctrine of primacy whether they openly acknowledge that they do or not. The sola scriptura confessing Protestants hold to doctrine of primacy that asserts that the individual Christian’s conscience has primacy when scriptures are interpreted. But this doctrine of primacy contradicts what is explicitly laid out in the scriptures.

    I will ask you the same question that I asked Burton in 239. John, as a sola scriptura confessing Protestant, how do you reconcile the Protestant doctrine of the primacy of the individual’s conscience with this teaching of Jesus:

    … if he refuses to listen even to the church, let him be to you as a Gentile and a tax collector.
    Matthew 18:17

    Joshua Lin touches on the Protestant doctrine of the primacy of the individual’s conscience in the main body of his article:

    My Reformed belief in the relative importance of the visible church was in conflict with the Reformed emphasis on the importance of one’s individual conscience. Thus, while I wholeheartedly agree with the sense of importance attached to remaining accountable to a visible body, to feel this way as a Protestant seems to be entirely contradictory. Luther felt that it was necessary to separate from the Catholic Church, Zwingli from Luther, the Anabaptists from the Magisterial Reformed, the Calvinists from Arminians, and on and on–all on the conviction that I have the correct interpretation of Scripture: “Here I stand, so help me God.”

    Joshua Lin is correct. If primacy lies with the individual, then a Reformed sect has no real authority to bind one’s conscience to an interpretation of scriptures, and to assert otherwise is a contradiction. Which, fundamentally, means that a Reformed sect has no real authority.

    If I submit (only when I agree), the one to whom I submit is me.

    On the other hand, if the doctrine of the primacy of the individual’s conscience is not true, then Luther, Calvin and Menno Simons had no business leaving the Catholic Church to create their personal “bible churches” that taught contradictory doctrine.

    John Bugay, you write:

    To be sure “the apostles” “appointed” “overseers and deacons” as 1 Clement said, but this was not the institution of a permanent office …

    That is an opinion that depends on an interpretation of scriptures. Against your opinion, I would like to quote Jason Stellman once again:

    In my own reading of the New Testament, the believer is never instructed to consult Scripture alone in order to adjudicate disputes or determine matters of doctrine (one obvious reason for this is that the early church existed at a time when the 27-book New Testament had either not been begun, completed, or recognized as canonical). The picture the New Testament paints is one in which the ordained leadership of the visible church gathers to bind and loose in Jesus’ Name and with his authority, with the Old Testament Scriptures being called upon as witnesses to the apostles’ and elders’ message (Matt. 18:18-19; Acts 15:6-29), with no indication in Scripture that such ecclesiastical authority was to cease and eventually give way to Sola Scriptura (meaning that the doctrine fails its own test). Moreover, unless the church’s interpretation of Scripture is divinely protected from error at least under certain conditions, then what we call the “orthodox” understanding of doctrines like the Trinity or the hypostatic union is reduced to mere fallible human opinion. I have searched long and hard, but have found no solution within the Sola Scriptura paradigm to this devastating conclusion.

    Where do the NT scriptures teach that “ecclesiastical authority was to cease and eventually give way to Sola Scriptura.” Nowhere! Which is why sola scriptura is a self-refuting doctrine that fails its own test.

  269. John (#240),

    I appreciate the book suggestion. Having read some reviews of the book, I’m sure if the author will deal with some primary issues (for me). I was struck by this quote from one reviewer:

    “When Kruger examines the community-based and historical-based canon models, he finds fault with both of them because they subject the New Testament to an authority outside of itself in order for the canon to be authenticated. The Bible is the final authority, according to Kruger, and cannot be subjected to an outside authority. If it were, then it would no longer be the authority. Why is this a problem?
    Because he didn’t devote a single page to defending the idea that the Bible is the ultimate authority from God.”

    Would you agree with this reviewers assessment? As I attempt to objectively assess each side’s authority claims, I see many Protestant authors give lengthy critiques of the RCC paradigm, but then fairly scant historical and especially philosophical support for the foundational underpinnings of their own paradigm (Bible as the Ultimate authority by which all ecclesial authorities must be judged). I’m not sure that even a scholarly and well argued description of a self-attesting means of recognizing NT canon does much to help address those issues. I know it is not fair of me to judge the book before reading it, but just wondering if in your opinion Krueger fairly addresses these deeper issues.

    Thanks,

    Burton

  270. Burton, I don’t think it’s a problem that Kruger doesn’t “devote a single page to defending the idea that the Bible is the ultimate authority from God”, because he’s primarily writing to an audience who believes that it is. Protestants generally accept that they know how to read, and they trust themselves not to need an “ultimate authority”.

    Kruger’s stated purpose is to respond to “the narrow question of whether Christians have a rational basis (i.e., intellectually sufficient grounds) for affirming that only these twenty-seven books rightfully belong in the New Testament canon. Or put differently, he asks is the Christian belief in the canon justified (or warranted)?

    In the first part of the book, he does discuss what he calls several other “canonical models” are – different critical (and not so critical) understandings of how the canon of the NT became “fixed”. But he moves quickly through those, his purpose probably being just to orient his readers to the issues, not to argue against any one of them.

    His real purpose is to defend the traditional Reformed “self-authenticating” view – he defines this somewhat differently than it has been defined in the past, and he spends a great deal of time talking about not only the theological issues (“divine attributes”, the role of New Testament writings as “covenant documents), as well as the hands-on historical issues, such as book production, literary issues of the early centuries, the development of a “canonical core” (i.e., early collections of Paul’s letters, the four gospels, etc).

    It’s a *positive account* of a traditional Protestant understanding, and it defends against a number of “key defeaters” (without addressing every objection).

    I’ve already printed large swatches of the first half of the book at Triablogue under the labels “Michael J Kruger” and “Canon Revisited”.

  271. Kruger’s stated purpose is to respond to “the narrow question of whether Christians have a rational basis (i.e., intellectually sufficient grounds) for affirming that only these twenty-seven books rightfully belong in the New Testament canon. Or put differently, he asks is the Christian belief in the canon justified (or warranted)?

    I think that it is great that Kruger will establish for the Protestant that the 27-book NT is an historically credible book. I’m also glad that Protestants will be able to feel rationally justified in keeping their 27-book NT. However, that gets them no closer to an article of faith than an argument would for the historically and rationally credible doctrine of the “Trinity”. If this is the central thesis and mission of the book, then it simply talks right over the Catholic critique, leaving it untouched. For starters, the books in controversy between Catholics and Protestants are in the OT, so I would like to see Kruger or anyone write a book about those. The missing books are the scandal. Secondly, and more importantly, a supernatural article of faith cannot rest upon just history and reason. It will be supported by them, but the “ground” so to speak needs to be something more. That is why for Kruger et. al. “self attestation” — personal, private spiritual enlightenment — does all the heavy lifting. In fact, the other stuff we agree on, but just not the implication that history and reason give you enough warrant to believe a supernatural dogma. Then again, neither does Kruger et. al., thus the requirement for “self-attestation” in the argument for it to work. Which is why this view truly makes the canon impossible.

  272. John Bugay,

    When I was studying what would later become “on my way” into the Catholic Church, I noticed that many Protestant arguments against the Catholic position(s) proved too much. What I mean is that if I accepted their critique unilaterally (in all cases), while even having a tinge of truth to it’s color, the argument turned on and destroyed other dogmas that the Protestant considered orthodox.

    Let me give you an example using your argument against Apostolic Succession — at least one particular leg of the argument. You would have me to hold that because “succession” is a “concept” that doesn’t emerge until the 2nd century and only in anti-Gnostic literature (scary!), that I should reject it as a novelty. On your view, the apparent novelty of it confirms it as a mere assertion of Rome. However, if I were to take this principle and apply to elsewhere, you would have me to deny the “concept” of “Trinity” because it is clearly from the second or third century (mostly third), and comes to us only in anti-Adoptionist, Sabellian and Arian literature. Therefore, on this view, “Trinity” is a mere assertion of Rome.

    I will just make one more comment to you Mr. Bugay. I appreciate your honesty in trying to show that error creeps into the Church in Clement (#258), and then you trying to prove a fairly significant point with the concept of “succession” being a novelty in the mid-second century. I think you get what must be proved in order for the Catholic Church to be false. I studied the Protestant secondary sources you site, as well, and while I was still a Protestant (my library only had the Protestant scholarship — mostly). In fact, I wrote a 65 page thesis on (Pope St.) Clement, and approached the research with the basic assumption that error had to have crept into the church; the compass had to have been a few degrees off from the beginning, or else there was no way to explain the 16th century Reformation project of pressing the “restart button”. In other words, it must be proven that the particular “Roman Church” had failed, and I don’t think that can be done unless you prove it over a long period of time, as a kind of “by degrees”, gradation effect (or else you run the risk of being a historical sensationalist).

  273. John,

    Thanks for the response. That is very helpful. I am in a slightly different boat than the Protestant who knows how to read :) At this point, I do not take Sola Scriptura for granted, partly because I don’t see strong Biblical evidence for it, and partly because I find the philosophical and logical criticisms of this doctrine compelling. Above, you recommended the book to me in the context of a discussion regarding historical and Biblical evidence for the Bible as ultimate authority by which all other authorities are judged. If this premise is assumed to be true in Kruger’s book and therefore not addressed, then it may not by helpful for me.

    Burton

  274. Burton 272, Kruger’s book certainly contains a huge amount of “historical and Biblical evidence for the Bible” — it doesn’t use the term “ultimate authority” because in the circles for whom he’s writing, that’s just a given. He’s working toward affirming some of the historical questions. Yes, the Bible does have “divine qualities”. It does speak with “apostolic authority”. He describes in great detail the process of the spread and adoption of New Testament writings based on manuscript evidence (where, when, what they contained, etc.)

    Since I don’t know the nature of your questions all that well, it seems fair to ask, Why is it not a given for you that the Bible is the ultimate authority? If you are looking for an “ultimate authority”, then I would ask, why is God not your ultimate authority? And why, then, is God’s word somehow equated with God as an authority? That is, if God speaks, why are you not capable of hearing (reading) and understanding it?

    What ultimate questions has the “Roman Infallibility Mechanism” really answered and defined in such a way that is really “ultimate”? There are two: “the pope is infallible” and “Mary was assumed bodily into heaven”. Outside of those two, everything else in Roman Catholicism seems to be open for negotiation. And at Vatican II, much of what had been “infallibly, authoritatively” defined was “reformulated positively”, with the result that a centuries-old understanding that “there is no salvation outside the church” became, in practical terms, “anyone who follows his conscience can be saved, just because the Church exists as a source of grace”.

    Rome’s “authority” is really not much more than CGI — smoke and mirrors that have historically looked impressive to common people, but it’s only purpose is not much more than to affirm Rome’s authority.

  275. John (#257):

    You wrote:

    Everyone agrees that the Reformation was about “authority”. This discussion, too, is about “authority. But neither of these claims you are making can be supported. Not exegetically from the Scriptures, nor from history.

    After supplying your exegesis about the authority structure of the Church as presented in the NT, you concluded by addressing me thus:

    But you’re equivocating on the word “authority”. You’re using the same word in different senses. You are ignoring Paul’s original meaning of that word, and you are back-filling it with a current Roman Catholic definition of “authority”. Of course, we are not talking about “the authority of the Apostles”. We are talking about “the authority” of “the message”. And the stewards as “adding nothing” to the message.

    What I usually do in discussions about authority and revelation is prescind from questions of exegesis and history while broaching the more fundamental, philosophical question I’ve been discussing with Andrew M. and “Eric.” When I addressed you, I departed a bit from that and presented what I take to be historical fact; but I did that only so as to show that you’re reading more into Bryan’s account than was there. Especially in light of Bryan’s #255, I still think you’re “over-intepreting” his, and my, point about this.

    I do not argue, nor do I think Bryan has argued, that a Catholic, Orthodox, or high-Anglican understanding of apostolic authority can simply be inferred, by proof-texting or deductive logic, from passages in the NT and the sub-apostolic fathers. Not even Ratzinger does that in the passages of his you quote. What we have claimed, rather, is that it’s historical fact that some NT books were accepted as God-breathed because the Apostles, who wrote some of them and authorized others, said they were. That should be obvious because the Apostles were understood by the faithful to be teaching in the Lord’s name with his authorization. That in turn wasn’t just because they said so; the evidence that they were so teaching was ample in their personal association with the Lord, in their miracles, and in other manifestations of spiritual power. There’s nothing especially controversial about that claim, at least among Christians.

    Moreover, nothing you’ve said undermines that claim, because what you’re doing is defending a particular interpretation of the facts we’ve cited. According to your interpretation, the authority of the Apostles and those whom they authorized was not personal to them, but resided solely in “the message,” the kerygma they proclaimed. That is a rationally plausible opinion: a possible interpretation of the data that is not obviously false. But there’s nothing compelling about it. For one thing, it premises a false dilemma: to wit, that the locus of authority is either personal to the leadership of the Church or solely in the message. Until the Reformation, the Church didn’t see the matter as an either-or proposition, nor did theologians generally present it that way. The older, more traditional interpretation, on which apostolic succession and Scripture were both essential for presenting divine revelation, is at least as rationally plausible as yours, and in my opinion more so. But so far this matter resides at the level of opinion. And that brings me to the main difficulty with your approach–the difficulty that motivates my own wider, more philosophical approach.

    Rather than repeat myself here, I refer you to sections IV and V of the essay I wrote for CTC last year. The upshot of my argument was that we’re dealing here with a clash of interpretive paradigms, such that the question which paradigm is more reasonable for the purpose of presenting divine revelation has to be discussed before we get into any particular set of exegetical and historical details. Present and intepret all the details of that sort you want–until you address that prior philosophical question, nothing that you or any other scholar say can rise beyond the level of opinion, and thus cannot clearly present divine revelation for the assent of faith.

    Best,
    Mike

  276. John,

    God is certainly my ultimate authority. I do not believe that this fact leads inexorably to the conclusion that therefore the Bible, as God’s written revelation, is the only authority to which I am bound to submit, or by which, I as an individual am able to judge all other authorities. It is certainly possible that God left us with a Church whose leaders were and are gifted to recognize which books define the Bible, both OT and NT, and who are gifted by the Holy Spirit to interpret the Bible with authority, so as to define orthodoxy versus heresy and schism versus unity. The question then becomes, which approach best fits the Biblical, historical, and philosophical data.

    Why am I not capable of reading and understanding God’s Word? First, I must ask if I am able to infallibly recognize the true canon, OT and NT. Then, as I read the New Testament (which I have four times in the past 18 mos), and especially as I have tried to read it in the context of the teachings of the church over the centuries, I have come to the conclusion that what I do (how I love, show mercy etc) actually has some real bearing on my salvation and that JBFA as understood by the reformers is probably not what the Bible actually teaches. I have also come to the conclusion through reading the Bible in the context of the church’s history that my Protestant view of human sexuality is seriously flawed and that by practicing contraception my wife and I for years were persisting in a serious sin and harming our marriage. I have also come to the conclusion that Baptism and communion probably mean and do a lot more sacramentally than I ever thought they did, and are more than the “covenantal sign” that my reformed elders tell me they are. It has been humbling and in a sense terrifying that I have been reading the Bible for so many years, and even led many Bible studies, but seemingly have missed so much. This does make me question my ability as an individual to fully understand the saving truth without a church, established in authority by God, to help keep me from falling into heresy or schism.

    I also see the pages of history littered with those who were utterly convinced that they had the true understanding of the Bible while falling headlong into heresy. I wonder, do I really suppose that I, just me and my Bible, am immune from falling into the same?

    So this brings up your next question. How does the “Roman Infallibility Mechanism” help fill any of the purported deficits? First, I’m not saying that it does. I am saying that the Protestant paradigm is highly problematic for me with serious real-life consequence, and I am looking to see whether or not the RCC (or Orthodox) claims make sense. As I mentioned on another thread many months ago, if left for my children a list of rules for the household and then left them for a month, their epistemologic situation would be qualitatively different than if I was present to interpret those rules when controversy arose.

    Your criticism of the RCC with regard to change in doctrine over issues like “outside the church no salvation” is a real potential problem for them, and without adequate explanation (if doctrinal contradiction can be shown to have occurred) I think this would disqualify them from their claim to be that living magisterial authority, but I don’t think that helps the Protestant situation because I don’t think it negates the need for just such an authority. Hence my pestering Michael Liccione to explain what you so eloquently stated:

    “And at Vatican II, much of what had been “infallibly, authoritatively” defined was “reformulated positively”, with the result that a centuries-old understanding that “there is no salvation outside the church” became, in practical terms, “anyone who follows his conscience can be saved, just because the Church exists as a source of grace”.”

    Burton

  277. Burton.

    My story sounds a lot like your story. For one thing, my look at the Catholic Church started with my reading the scriptures anew.

  278. HI Burton,

    Just to clear up something. “Outside of the Church there is no Salvation.” Quite literally means that “Outside of Christ there is no Salvation.” I think all Christians believe that Salvation comes ONLY through Christ. Even if a person was to die without ever knowing about Christ. If he/she is to be saved it will be through Christ. Thus outside of the Church there is no salvation. The Church is Christ and Christ is the Church. We ( the Church) are the Living Body of Christ.

    Blessings
    NHU

  279. Hi Burton,

    Where does the doctrinal controversy lie? In the past the Church taught that outside the Church no salvation. Vatican 11 teaches outside the Church no salvation but explains it more fully. Really there is no salvation outside of Christ. That has always been the teaching of the Church.

    Blessings
    NHU

  280. Burton (#276):

    Addressing Jobn Bugay, you wrote:

    Your criticism of the RCC with regard to change in doctrine over issues like “outside the church no salvation” is a real potential problem for them, and without adequate explanation (if doctrinal contradiction can be shown to have occurred) I think this would disqualify them from their claim to be that living magisterial authority, but I don’t think that helps the Protestant situation because I don’t think it negates the need for just such an authority. Hence my pestering Michael Liccione to explain what you so eloquently stated:

    “And at Vatican II, much of what had been “infallibly, authoritatively” defined was “reformulated positively”, with the result that a centuries-old understanding that “there is no salvation outside the church” became, in practical terms, “anyone who follows his conscience can be saved, just because the Church exists as a source of grace”.”

    To the extent there’s a problem for the Catholic Church here, it lies in misunderstandings of the kind that often attends doctrinal developments. Vatican II’s development of the doctrine of extra ecclesiam nulla salus (EENS)–which was actually the culmination of a course of development that had been gathering momentum for centuries–is no exception. Allow me to clear up a few of the misunderstandings.

    First, what Nelson just said.

    Second, John’s characterization of the pertinent doctrinal development is simply incorrect. It does not follow from the teaching of the Church that anyone who follows their conscience will be saved by or through the grace available through the Church, or will even be saved at all. The Church allows for the possibility that some consciences are not only malformed but culpably so (cf. CCC §1791 ff), and there’s no reason to believe that all such culpability will be repented of. And even assuming EENS, the Church is not a source of grace. Grace comes only from God; the Church is but the ordinary and indispensable medium thereof.

    Third, and as I’ve repeatedly argued before, the idea that non-Catholic Christians are in “imperfect communion” with the Church does not contradict EENS but rather refines it. During a period of Western history when people assumed that all had heard and understood the Gospel and the papal claims, it was natural to assume that full communion with the Catholic Church was necessary with salvation. The reports of Marco Polo, Christopher Columbus, and the Spanish conquistadors about native peoples forced a re-examination of that assumption. The long-term political fallout from the Protestant Reformation and the 17th-century wars of religion only accelerated that process. The eventual result was what you read in Lumen Gentium and Unitatis Redintegratio. There just is no logical contradiction here. Rather, the notion of what it is to be “inside” the Church was duly refined in light of historical developments, so that it came to be understood as a matter of degree.

    If you have further objections, I’ll be glad to handle them.

    Best,
    Mike

  281. Mike (re: #256),

    It appears that our actual defending has turned into the guidelines and goals of defending. I appreciate you taking the time to exchange. May God bless are intentions and efforts as we seek to serve and know His will for our lives.

    Thanks,
    Eric Waggoner

  282. Burton, (re: #276)

    Regarding the last two paragraphs of your comment #276, in addition to what Michael said in #280, I recommend looking at Tom Brown’s “VanDrunen on Catholic Inclusivity,” Fr. Peter Stravinskas’s very helpful article “Can Outsiders Be Insiders?,” and his book “Salvation Outside the Church?.”

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  283. John (re: #267)

    The concept of succession can be found in many ancient sects, schools, and religions. That does not entail that the Church borrowed or derived the concept from pagan sources, either in the second century, or during the time of the Apostles, or at any later time, just as it does not entail that Moses borrowed the idea from pagans when appointing Joshua as his successor. The quotation you cite from then Professor Ratzinger is affirming that the first preserved records of Church leaders using this concept of succession are from their polemical works against the gnostics of the second century. That is what Prof. Ratzinger says van Campenhausen has impressively demonstrated. It should be noted that these second century anti-gnostic polemical works are some of the earliest Christians writings that have been preserved.

    On June 14, in the comments under Stellman’s “Time to Go Dark,” I wrote:

    Regarding the quotation from Ratzinger, the fact that the concept of succession was first “clearly formulated” in the anti-gnostic polemics of the second century does not mean that the Church’s practice of apostolic succession came from 2nd century gnostics or was only adopted in the 2nd century. Ratzinger’s statement is fully compatible with practice of apostolic succession going back to the Apostles themselves, and with Ratzinger’s uninterrupted belief in the practice of apostolic succession going back to the Apostles themselves. Every belief and practice of the Church becomes more “clearly formulated” in the face of challenge by heretics. That does not mean that the Church derived her belief and practice concerning apostolic succession from second century gnostics.

    In the Ratzinger quotation in question, Prof. Ratzinger is not saying that the Church derived her concept and practice of apostolic succession from the second century gnostics, or came to possess the concept of succession only in the second century. And contrary to what you imply, Prof. Ratzinger never says that van Campenhausen demonstrated (let alone “impressively demonstrated”) that the Church’s concept and practice of apostolic succession was derived from gnostics, let alone from second century gnostics. Nor has van Campenhausen actually demonstrated such a thing. When van Campenhausen says, “The origins of this phenomenon are, however, not to be sought in the circles which elaborated the ecclesiology of the Great Church,” he is not demonstrating that the Church borrowed the idea from pagans. To assume that because the pagans practiced succession in their sects and schools, therefore the Church’s notion of succession was derived from the pagans, would be to commit the post hoc ergo propter hoc fallacy.

    I have laid out in summary form the evidence from the Church Fathers for the practice of apostolic succession in all the apostolic churches (Jerusalem, Antioch, Rome, Alexandria, etc.) going back to the Apostles themselves, in the section on Apostolic Succession in my dialogue with Michael Horton. And that evidence has not been refuted.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  284. Dear Burton,

    I’ve recently written two pieces about just the topic you referenced:

    Does the Council of Florence Contradict Vatican II? & Myth Busters: Catholicism Teaches Universalism

    Peace to you on your journey,

    Brent

  285. John, (re: #257-259)

    I have a few more thoughts on some things you said in #257-259. You claim that because St. Paul says in Galatians 2:6 that those who were of repute added nothing to me [ἐμοὶ γὰρ οἱ δοκοῦντες οὐδὲν προσανέθεντο], that therefore the Church can in no way ‘add’ authority to Scripture. But that conclusion does not follow. When St. Paul says that they added nothing, he is talking about both the content of his message (i.e. “the gospel which I preach”) and his authority as an apostle, since he received this gospel not from man, but through a revelation of Jesus Christ. (Gal 1:12) The other Apostles did not ordain him, or select him to fill an apostolic office as they had done with Mathias in Acts 1. But St. Paul is not here denying that the other Apostles’ acceptance and recognition of his calling to the uncircumcised and the grace that had been given to him, and their giving to him the right hand of fellowship, added credibility for the Church to his vocation and teaching as an apostle of Jesus Christ in Christ’s Church. On the contrary, he is appealing precisely to their acceptance of his teaching, in order to confirm its authenticity.

    Regarding Titus 2:15, of course Titus was not infallible. That’s fully compatible with Catholic doctrine. And yes, St. Paul does not say, “teach, encourage and rebuke with all authority, then pass that on to those you are appointing.” But of course the argument from silence is a fallacy, so nothing follows from St. Paul not completing his sentence in that way. But there is plenty of positive evidence in Scripture that the Apostles did establish apostolic succession. See section IX.C “Evidence From Scripture” for Apostolic Succession in my reply to Michael Horton.

    You issue imperatives that we must not think of a bishop as someone in charge, but rather as a butler. However, imperatives from you are not evidence that bishops have no authority or were given no authority by the Apostles, since you have no authority to issue imperatives regarding how Scripture is to be interpreted. Yes, bishops are stewards of the deposit of faith. There is no dispute there. The Catholic Church and all orthodox Catholics fully affirm the passages of Scripture you cite regarding “faithful stewardship.” But if the bishops had no authority, they would be stewards in no other sense than that in which every Christian is a steward of the deposit of faith. Denying their authority, is therefore to make the office of bishop superfluous, which therefore calls into question your assertion that they have no authority. If they had no authority, there would be no basis for us to “obey” them and to “submit to them.” (Heb 13:17) They would be just as obliged to submit to us. So your claim goes too far, and therefore refutes itself.

    As for your claim that episcopal authority is an example of “overrealized eschatology,” in order for such a claim to be more than mere hand-waving, you first need to establish the standard by which to distinguish between overrealized eschatology, underrealized eschatology, and rightly realized eschatology. You have not done that. By implication, the standard you seem to be using in order to judge an eschatology as “overrealized” is Michael Horton’s interpretation of Scripture. And, of course, that just pushes us back to the question: On what basis should we believe that Horton has the authority to provide the authoritative interpretation of Scripture, by which other interpretations can be judged to be cases of overrealized or underrealized eschatology?

    As for the difference in authority between the Apostles and their successors, the Catholic Church recognizes this difference. I explained this difference briefly in comment #59 of “Evangelical Reunion in the Catholic Church.” That’s why the claim that either the bishops had the same authority as the Apostles, or they have no magisterial authority, is a false dilemma. That’s also why it is inaccurate to claim that John Behr believes that St. Ignatius denies apostolic succession. Behr is claiming (rightly) that for St. Ignatius (and for Catholics and Orthodox) the successors of the Apostles do not have the authority to overturn the teaching of the Apostles or set down any new revelation from Christ. In that sense they are truly subordinate to the Apostles. There is a real difference in authority between the Apostles and their successors. But that does not entail that St. Ignatius believed that there could be no apostolic succession in the sense believed and practiced in the Catholic Church. There is a middle position between the bishops being equal in authority to the Apostles, and the bishops having no magisterial authority.

    You grant that according to St. Clement the Apostles appointed bishops and deacons. But then without any corroborating evidence you assert that “this was not the institution of a permanent office,” and that this office was only “permanent within their lifetimes.” Without any corroborating evidence, these claims are mere unsubstantiated assertions. This also involves you in the following problem. On the one hand, you claim that the office to which St. Clement refers is not a “permanent office,” but on the other hand you claim that present-day Presbyterian elders occupy the office of presbyter instituted by the Apostles in the New Testament. If the office instituted by the Apostles was not permanent, but only for their lifetimes, then the present office of presbyter is not that office, but merely a man-made office. But if the current Presbyterian office of presbyter was established by the Apostles, then you are treating it as permanent. And if you are claiming that the office of bishop was only intended to be temporary, while that of presbyter was intended to be permanent, then you are acknowledging a difference between bishop and presbyter.

    You imply that because the literary form of St. Clement’s letter is that of persuasion, it shows that “this is all that” he could do, allegedly, in your view, because he had no authority. But that is not good reasoning, because the conclusion does not follow from the premise. As any good pastor knows, it is always better to shepherd with gentle persuasion, if possible, than with the rod. Making use of the form of persuasion does not therefore indicate that St. Clement had no ecclesial authority. Moreover, as I showed in the ecclesiology section of my post on St. Clement, he does provide evidence that he thinks of himself as having ecclesial authority, because he issues imperatives, and indirectly threatens excommunication if the rebellious Corinthian Christians do not comply.

    You suggest that the Shepherd of Hermas provides an example of the difference between the authority of the Apostles and the authority of the elders of the Church at Rome. First, I should point out that the presence of a plurality of elders is fully compatible with one of those elders being a bishop (since bishops too are elders). It is also fully compatible with there being multiple bishops present (as other evidence indicates), even while always only one of those bishops had jurisdictional authority. So this does not show that there was no bishop of the Church at Rome at this time. But second, the poor behavior of certain presbyters does not prove anything one way or another regarding their ecclesial authority. It is fully compatible with their being presbyters who were ordained by the bishops having the succession from the Apostles. (Ordination, as you know, does not include the infusion of the gift of impeccability.)

    When Cardinal Ratzinger says, “even when “office”, as the form of paradosis is already clearly taking shape,” he is not claiming that the office of bishop was coming into existence in the second century. He is talking about the Church’s understanding of the relation of that office to the Apostolic Tradition, namely, that the Tradition is located in and normatively locatable in that office. The Church’s understanding of this relation was more clearly developed through her second century response to the gnostics.

    You wrote:

    It is offered by Irenaeus as a looking back – it is offered as an evidence that there has been faithfulness.

    I addressed this notion in the second to the last paragraph of Section IX.A “Evidence from Tradition” [for apostolic succession] of my dialogue with Michael Horton.

    I don’t see anything in the Bavinck citation showing that the comparison between the way in which the law and the prophets testified concerning Christ authoritatively testifies to His divine authority, and the way in which the Church authoritatively testifies to Scripture’s divine authority, is a category mistake.

    Concerning the Church’s attestation of Scripture you wrote:

    There is no hint that this “attestation” of the church is “divine”.

    The deity of Christ, and His union with His Church as the Head of the Body, and the guidance of the Church by the Holy Spirit, is a hint that he who listens to the Church listens to Christ, and that what the Church as a whole does, Christ is doing. That’s why catholicity is normative, in the sense of the ordinary universal magisterium. The Church is not an ordinary body, because Christ, who both founded it and governs it, is not a mere human.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  286. Michael Liccione, #275:

    I agree that we need to address the issue of “interpretive paradigms” – in fact, these kinds of issues are among the “theological prolegomena” that theologians talk about.

    Before I comment on “IPs”, I want to address one element of your comment right up front:

    What we have claimed, rather, is that it’s historical fact that some NT books were accepted as God-breathed because the Apostles, who wrote some of them and authorized others, said they were. That should be obvious because the Apostles were understood by the faithful to be teaching in the Lord’s name with his authorization. That in turn wasn’t just because they said so; the evidence that they were so teaching was ample in their personal association with the Lord, in their miracles, and in other manifestations of spiritual power. There’s nothing especially controversial about that claim, at least among Christians.

    Moreover, nothing you’ve said undermines that claim, because what you’re doing is defending a particular interpretation of the facts we’ve cited.

    We are not saying anything different up to this point. In the following instance, though, you misunderstand what I am saying …

    According to your interpretation, the authority of the Apostles and those whom they authorized was not personal to them, but resided solely in “the message,” the kerygma they proclaimed.

    … and your analysis that follows – “it premises a false dilemma: to wit, that the locus of authority is either personal to the leadership of the Church or solely in the message. Until the Reformation, the Church didn’t see the matter as an either-or proposition, nor did theologians generally present it that way” – is incorrect. It is not an “either-or” dilemma, but rather, it has to do with the relationship of one to the other.

    What I am saying is that the “message” was pivotal to be sure. But while Roman Catholicism claims that the “successors” after the apostles have some very similar authority vis-à-vis the message (“interpretive” authority), I am rather saying is that those who followed the apostles had a somewhat (in fact, a good deal less authority “ministerial” vs “magisterial”) and we can talk about that some time later.

  287. Michael Liccione, #275:

    Rather than repeat myself here, I refer you to sections IV and V of the essay I wrote for CTC last year. The upshot of my argument was that we’re dealing here with a clash of interpretive paradigms, such that the question which paradigm is more reasonable for the purpose of presenting divine revelation has to be discussed before we get into any particular set of exegetical and historical details. Present and intepret all the details of that sort you want–until you address that prior philosophical question, nothing that you or any other scholar say can rise beyond the level of opinion, and thus cannot clearly present divine revelation for the assent of faith.

    Regarding your essay, I have to say that this very much strikes me as an exercise where the rules of the game are written so that the identity of the winner is never in doubt.

    This “paradigm” is not something that is new to yourself (although you frame it in different words), it was actually was noticed by Turretin, who (vol 3, page 2), actually seemed to complain that his opponents would not actually discuss the facts, but “to this day … (although they are anything but the true church of Christ) still boast of their having alone the name of the church and do not blush to display the standard of that which they dispose. In this manner, hiding themselves under the specious title of the antiquity and infallibility of the Catholic church, they think they can, as with one blow, beat down and settle the controversy waged against them concerning the various and most destructive errors introduced into the heavenly doctrine”.

    The Roman claim to authority is (and today is very much used as) an attempt, with one statement, to avoid argumentation on any other point of Scripture or doctrine.

    That is, the argument from Rome’s side never is, “the doctrine is (a) because the Scripture says (a)”. The argument from Rome’s side is always “the doctrine is (b) even though the Scripture says (a) because ‘the Church’ has the ‘interpretive authority’ to make it (b)”.

    I’ve commented a number of times where I think this impulse comes from: it is clearly recognizable in Imperial [secular, “not the church”] Rome, and it exists outside of what you think might be included in the “interpretive paradigm”:

    Emperor Worship and the Ancient Roman Mindset (1)

    Augustus Caeser, pontifex maximus, becomes a god

    Caesar Worship and Christian Art

    These are not in any particular order, and of course, “correlation does not imply causation”. It’s true that I have not yet “close the loop” on that particular thought, but I don’t think it’s a hard argument to make.

    For example, it is clear that the Roman church [Pope Leo 1, specifically] used Roman law to bolster its own position, in defining itself in the fourth and fifth centuries (such “definitions” then being “reading back into” earlier statements about Rome, bishops of Rome, Peter, etc”, and being the source of Roman Catholic teaching about “divine institution” of itself. In fact, it’s no secret that Pope Leo I relied on Roman adoption law to give make himself not just “a successor of” but the “heir” of Peter and thus giving himself “the same rights, authority and obligations as the one whom he replaced”. Now, to my mind, that is a thing that must be argued for on two levels: first, that Leo was anything near to being an “heir” to Peter, and second, whether God subjects himself and his kingdom to ancient Roman adoption laws. But that is for another day.

    At any rate, I hope these blog posts of mine will give you some idea of why I tend to distrust (and in fact be dismissive of) your (and Rome’s) “interpretive paradigm”.

    * * *

    In your IP, here is your criterion: something that …

    reliably identify[ies] the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion.

    you carefully avoid using the word “infallible” here, so that you avoid using the conclusion within the premise, but it is clear from the way that you posit this, that is the answer you are looking for.

    However, your choice of “leaving it to mere human opinion about how to interpret sources that have been alleged to transmit divine revelation”, or choosing the method that you eventually adopt, is a false dilemma. It is not “either-or” (either “an infallible interpreter” or “mere human opinion”.

    First, Scripture itself defines itself as what is “the formal, proximate object of faith”, or in the words of Bavinck’s editors (Vol 1, pg 354), that “Scripture does not [merely] give us data to interpret; it is itself the interpretation of reality.” Consider Jesus’s words in Luke 16:29: ‘They have Moses and the Prophets; let them listen to them.’ I could bring much more than this, but this illustrates that the concept is in Scripture: the words of the Scriptures themselves are “the formal, proximate object of faith”.

    This is why Kruger’s work is so key at this point in the discussion, in clarifying that (contra Roman Catholic and other claims) Protestants are warranted, justified in their acceptance that the 27-book volume of the New Testament is the extent and limit of “divine revelation” we have today. He takes the wind out of the sails of the argument that “sola scriptura is self-defeating”.

    His work tremendously bolsters Protestant epistemological claims in this area of “interpretive paradigms”. [Once you have read his reasons for this, and I’m not going to outline them here, you should feel free to argue with the specific arguments he makes. But I don’t think any Roman Catholic, from this time forward, should be able to get away with the facile statement “Sola scriptura is self-defeating”, without tackling Kruger’s specific and individual arguments].

    The Protestant says, “Lord, you alone are my portion and my cup; you make my lot secure” (Psalm 16). Note that this trust, too, is fundamental to the Protestant IP. Once one’s faith in the “Lord” “alone” is established as the “formal principle” by which the Protestant (not just his “understanding”, but the Protestant in his own person) is secure, then is the understanding that “Your word is a lamp for my feet, a light on my path” (Psalm 119).

    Scripture interprets Scripture”, as the saying goes. [In this link, I show how Irenaeus himself does not hold to your view of “IP”, but the Protestant view: “All Scripture, given to us by God, will be found consistent. The parables will agree with the clear statements and the clear passages will explain the parables. Through the polyphony of the texts a single harmonious melody will sound in us, praising in hymns the God who made everything.”

    This comports with Old Testament notions of Authority, too. God does not give the Israelites a Bible and then say “wait for someone to come along who can identify the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”. He says, “Get the assembly of the people together (“the church”) and read the law to them”. God himself plays an active role in this process. He says, “my word shall not return to me void”. Remember Psalm 16: God himself makes our lot secure.

    In the Old Testament, God’s word is “the formal, proximate object of faith”. No “interpretation” was required. It’s true, Moses and others were called upon to “judge” in specific instances. And this occurred in the Old Testament, and the Reformers allowed, too, that the church would have “ministerial authority” to judge in disputes.

    But this relates to the very question that was brought up in my previous comment:

    while Roman Catholicism claims that the “successors” after the apostles have some very similar authority vis-à-vis the message [of the Gospel, i.e., “interpretive” authority], I am rather saying is that those who followed the apostles had a somewhat (in fact, a good deal reduced authority vis-à-vis “the message]. The difference is characterized “ministerial” vs “magisterial”, and we can talk about that at another point.

    For Protestants, the “authority” that the church has is the kind of authority that Moses and the judges of Israel held in the Old Testament.

    [more to follow]

  288. [continuing]

    You then posit the question:

    the question fairly arises: How to explain the fact that many baptized, churchgoing people don’t agree about what the plain sense of Scripture is, or even that it’s always and necessarily inerrant even when agreed to be plain? If the proximate, formal object of faith can be clearly identified by a rationally unassailable set of inferences from the pertinent early sources, the primary one of which is assumed to be inerrant, does that tell us that those who don’t find that set rationally unassailable are either unlearned or willfully irrational?

    This too is a false dilemma, unless you want to call God himself “either unlearned or willfully irrational” in setting up the paradigm he set up with Moses and the Israelites. God posits his own word as “plain”.

    Your illustration from Anthony Lane presents itself as an instance of Judges 21:25: “Everyone did what was right in his own eyes”.

    But even in 1530 Casper Schwenckfeld could cynically note that “the Papists damn the Lutherans; the Lutherans damn the Zwinglians; the Zwinglians damn the Anabaptists and the Anabaptists damn all others.” By the end of the seventeenth century many others saw that it was not possible on the basis of Scripture alone to build up a detailed orthodoxy commanding general assent. (A.N.S. Lane, “Scripture, Tradition and Church: An Historical Survey,” Vox Evangelica, Volume IX – 1975, pp. 44, 45).

    But this, too, is a false dilemma. First, in the Old Testament, God himself permitted such a situation to occur; in this case, the Roman paradigm is guilty of exceeding what God has done with regard to “interpretive paradigms”. Second, as Steven Wedgeworth has argued (and I’ve argued similarly),

    The evangelical doctrine of the universal priesthood has become merely nominal in many Reformed churches, which is why a number of Reformed people are predisposed to admiration of Rome. We need to reaffirm this fundamental doctrine, and its corollary of the representative character of the ministry. We must become more truly Calvinian on this score, by becoming more “Lutheran” and less clericalist. We should reject false definitions of the unity of the church, and recognize its actual unity on the ground, which underlies all the legitimate congregational forms and their modes of denominational association. We must also recognize the liberty of the Christian people to freely gather around the Word as center, without artificial ecclesial borders being enforced and policed by a clergy claiming a divine right authority. If the Smith family has good reason to be at St. Adiaphoron Lutheran Church, and their neighbors the Jones family has good reason to be at Putting Green Presbyterian across the street from it, so far from being a scandal, this is actually a fine thing.

    Where all of this practically takes us is what many political scientists and historians have described as the culture of persuasion. We do not look to a political institution or other coercive power to artificially provide unity and certainty. There is no magic “key” to unity in external diversity. Rather, we respect the rights of conscience and seek to persuade others through the right use of reason and Biblical exegesis, confident that freedom and charity lead to the only unity worth having.

  289. re: #287

    That is, the argument from Rome’s side never is, “the doctrine is (a) because the Scripture says (a)”. The argument from Rome’s side is always “the doctrine is (b) even though the Scripture says (a) because ‘the Church’ has the ‘interpretive authority’ to make it (b)”.

    1. The line of argument assumes sola scriptura, thus it begs the question.

    2. I have never found one Catholic dogma that goes anything remotely like:
    “the doctrine is (b) even though the Scripture says (a)”

    When I started studying Catholicism, that is what I expected to find. In fact, this is one of the fundmental problems with Protestantism and sola scriptura. In order to prove the Catholic wrong, the Protestant (in many cases) must say that because the Bible seems silent on “b”, that we cannot know “b”. However, that judgement in and of itself goes beyond the contents of Scripture — which is to defy the principle of sola scriptura. The judgment from silence, not the Scriptures, becomes the final arbiter. If Scripture is to be the final arbiter, then it must only speak for what its contents actually say.

    3. Lastly, one could simply let the Arminians and Calvinists go round and round with this line of argument until the cows come home — never to convince the other. Why does the Catholic even need to get involved (which we do, nonetheless)? What that means is that even within those groups that claim to be Protestant — or namely “not Catholic” — there is not sufficient agreement or even hope for eventual agreement that would give us rational grounds to imagine that through some discursive dialog on doctrine “a”, all men of good will and common intelligence would agree on it. And, of course, this discursive dialog would be a far cry from the irenic composition of someone like St. Ireneaus; think something more along the lines of a proof-textathon or exegesis-all-nighter.

    As a Protestant, I enjoyed the unity of 1500 years of history, and assumed this unity came through Scripture alone. However, in just 450+ years, those claiming to be “Bible Alone” Christians have nearly thrown off every imaginable, “non-negotiable” doctrine of Christendom. Albiet, there are Catholic theologians that have followed suit or even led the way. Nevertheless, all represent the formal cause of the Reformation: the primacy of the individual conscience. And, of course, it was (former) Catholics who started that as well.

  290. Brent (289): 1. The line of argument assumes sola scriptura, thus it begs the question.

    Since part of the discussion has been focusing on method, I’d like to challenge this. This really is a backward way of looking at it. Consider this analysis from a friend about where the burden of proof lies in this discussion:

    When two people differ over a subject and come to contradictory ideas about it and then decide to discuss or debate the issue, one side often assumes the burden of proof. Logically, this must be the side that is asserting something positive. It cannot be the side that is denying something.

    The reason for this is obvious: it is impossible (with rare, usually contrived or otherwise uninteresting exceptions) to prove a negative proposition. That is because in order to prove a negative, you must have universal knowledge, something no finite person has….

    [So] let us examine the issue of Sola Scriptura in the debate between Protestants and Catholics. I assert that Sola Scriptura is true. At first glance, then, it appears that I have the burden of proof since I am the one asserting something. But it turns out that this is a grammatical fluke.

    Sola Scriptura is defined thus: “The Bible is the sole infallible and sufficient rule of faith for Christians.” This is a very specific definition. It means that the Bible is the only such standard for Christians.

    At this point, a Catholic apologist may claim, “You are saying Sola Scriptura is valid, so the burden of proof is on you.”

    The problem is that Sola Scriptura is actually a negative statement. We can look at the passage this way: “There exist no other infallible rules of faith for Christians other than the Bible.” By saying “Scripture Alone” the Protestant is really saying, “Nothing else, just Scripture.” As such, the burden of proof cannot be on the Protestant.

    Back to the definition of Sola Scriptura. If I said, “The Bible is the only infallible and sufficient rule of faith for Christians” and a Catholic said, “You are wrong! Tradition and the Church are also infallible” who would hold the burden of proof? That’s right—the person asserting the infallibility of the Church and Tradition. The Protestant says there is no other infallible rule of faith, and the Catholic says there is.

    This is easily seen in another way. If I said, “The Bible is the only infallible and sufficient rule of faith for Christians” and a Mormon said, “You are wrong! The Book of Mormon and the First Presidency are also infallible” once again, the burden of proof would be upon the Mormon, and not the Protestant. That is because the Protestant’s statement is a negative.

    Therefore, in debates on Sola Scriptura, it is improper for Catholics to demand the Protestant prove there are no other infallible sources of authority because that would be a logical impossibility….

    The Protestant need only prove the Bible is authoritative, infallible, and sufficient and after that, his burden of proof ends. If the Catholic cannot prove the infallibility and sufficiency of the Church, then his position is unproven no matter what the Protestant believes. The Catholic is the one asserting a positive statement in this debate—that the Catholic Church is infallible. Protestants are taking the negative on that issue. Therefore, the burden of proof is upon Catholics, not Protestants.

    This, of course, is very common in these types of discussions. Whether or not a Protestant provides a definition of “sola Scriptura”, the Roman Catholic completely disregards that definition and argues as you have done here: setting up a straw man and beating on that.

    Yes, it is true, “We may be moved and induced by the testimony of the Church to an high and reverent esteem of the holy Scripture…” (WCF 1.5). However, it is clear that my friend is accurately stating “sola Scriptura” when he says “the Protestant is really saying, “Nothing else, just Scripture.”

    Thus: “The whole counsel of God, concerning all things necessary for his own glory, man’s salvation, faith, and life, is either expressly set down in Scripture, or by good and necessary consequence may be deduced from Scripture: unto which nothing at any time is to be added…” (WCF 1.6).

    This comports with Luther’s statement at Worms: “Unless I am convinced by proofs from Scriptures or by plain and clear reasons and arguments …” – this means, “Unless I am convinced by proofs from Scriptures or by plain and clear reasons and arguments that Tradition and Magisterium also have the same “divine authority” as Scripture has, I won’t believe them.

    The church at Rome found itself in a leading place, but it does not have “proofs from Scriptures or by plain and clear reasons and arguments” that Tradition and Magisterium (as they are defined now) also have the same ‘divine authority’ as Scripture has.

    Now, when I present evidence to the effect that the concept of “apostolic succession” as a concept was articulated in the mid second century (and I understand Bryan’s objection to this and I intend to talk about it in more detail), it undermines the claim [which I view as unsupported] that the Roman Catholic church makes to place both “Tradition” and “Magisterium” on the same level as Scripture. That is the shape of my argument.

    The Roman Catholic argument should be dependent upon some sort of “divine institution” of these things, and while Scripture itself makes the claim that it is “the Word of God”, nothing else has that force.

  291. John (290),

    From your last comment, I’m to gather that sola scripture is a negative statement, and as such has no positive quality to it. Therefore, since it is a negative statement, you or I would have to have universal knowledge to falsify it. However, this argument does not work. Let me explain to you why.

    If I said that “Barbara is my sister”, this does not imply that Barbara is my only sister. The positive statement, “Barbara is my sister”, does not also entail that she is my only sister. If from “Barbara is my sister”, you claimed that “Barbara is my only sister” (Scripture is the Word of God, ergo, the Word of God is the sole infallible and sufficient rule for the Christian), it would not be true that the only burden of proof would be on me to prove that I had other sisters. I agree, as you claim, that the Roman Catholic Church should demonstrate that Tradition and the Teaching Office of the Church have an authoritative part to play in the rule of the Church. However, that does not completely negate the necessity of you offering warrant for the claim that “Barbara is my only sister.”

    The problem is compounded, when the Catholic shows you his other two sisters — so to speak –and you say, “you don’t have other sisters because you only have one sister”. Again, the Catholics shows you his two others sisters — explaining how the existence of the one sister is actually more reasonable given the other (and shows you various problems with positing only one sister — given the three dressers in his room, for example), and you still admit only one. So, given that you reject his two other sisters the onus is on you to not just disprove his two other sisters, but also to prove that given all the data the “one sister theory” works.

    You then proceed to charge me with setting up a straw man. But, like you I’m sure, I have no use for straw men. If anything, at worst I would be guilty of a red herring. At best, you would be guilty of a straw man yourself. So, I’m not sure that your blockquoted comment proves your point, nor am I aware of the straw man I allegedly created.

    Now, when I present evidence to the effect that the concept of “apostolic succession” as a concept was articulated in the mid second century (and I understand Bryan’s objection to this and I intend to talk about it in more detail), it undermines the claim [which I view as unsupported] that the Roman Catholic church makes to place both “Tradition” and “Magisterium” on the same level as Scripture. That is the shape of my argument.

    Unfortunately, a part of your argument proves too much. Thus, its shape becomes deformed.

    The Roman Catholic argument should be dependent upon some sort of “divine institution” of these things, and while Scripture itself makes the claim that it is “the Word of God”, nothing else has that force.

    You are saying that if the Church and the Tradition could claim for themselves something like “Word of God” status, then you would accept them as something on equal footing with Scripture (or haven some authoritative relationship to it). Don’t you see how this begs the question? You are saying that if I can show you two more of my sisters, who look just like Barbara (in fact they must be named Barbara), you will believe that I have two more sisters. That begs the question — which means my argument is no straw man.

  292. John Bugay,

    Can you be more clear as respect to Brent’s ‘straw man?’ Describe how either Brent’s or anybody else’s definition of SS is a straw man.

  293. John, as a long time Protestant lurker, I want to thank you for your recent contributions. You used to contribute more frequently years ago and your return is very welcome. I also read many of your comments and posts about JJS and I know that you see the eternal weight of conversations like this. I hope you (and others like you) continue to engage and bring to light the flaws some of us are having a harder and harder time seeing. Thank you. At the same time, I continue to applaud the conversation here. Thank you to the moderators who have done an amazing job keeping the dialogue here fruitful, charitable, and irenic. We may not agree, but your work does not go unnoticed.

  294. John Bugay (#287-88):

    You wrote the following three paragraphs, which I number sequentially:

    1. The Roman claim to authority is (and today is very much used as) an attempt, with one statement, to avoid argumentation on any other point of Scripture or doctrine.

    2. That is, the argument from Rome’s side never is, “the doctrine is (a) because the Scripture says (a)”. The argument from Rome’s side is always “the doctrine is (b) even though the Scripture says (a) because ‘the Church’ has the ‘interpretive authority’ to make it (b)”.

    3. I’ve commented a number of times where I think this impulse comes from: it is clearly recognizable in Imperial [secular, “not the church”] Rome, and it exists outside of what you think might be included in the “interpretive paradigm”…

    Both (1) and (2) are demonstrably false. I’ll get to (3) after showing as much.

    As to (1), Catholic theologians have long debated among themselves, as well as with non-Catholics, about various points of Scripture and doctrine, and continue to do so today. Aside from the usual, universal standards of scholarly inquiry, the only norm governing such debates for Catholic theologians is that they may never contradict, or maintain theses that entail contradicting, interpretations and defintions that have been set forth with the Magisterium’s full authority. But the “Roman claim to authority” has never inhibited ample debate within the boundaries set by that norm; indeed, such debate often helped to shape magisterial decisions. To criticize Catholic theologians for observing said norm would simply be to criticize them for being Catholic–in itself an empty criticism, for theology is a confessional discipline, and the confession in this case is Catholicism. To get any traction, your criticism would first have to show that the Catholic’s formal, proximate object of faith (FPOF)–i.e. Scripture, Tradition, and Magisterium–is not as well suited to preserving, transmitting, and explicating divine revelation as the FPOF you uphold, namely sola Scriptura (on whichever definition you prefer). In short, you would have to show on a priori, philosophical grounds that the conservative-Protestant IP is rationally preferable to the Catholic IP for the purpose stated. That’s the issue my article addressed explicitly, and that’s where the real debate lies.

    Your (2) grossly mischaracterizes the role that Scripture plays in Catholic theology and doctrine. Ever since the biblical canon began to coalesce in the 2nd century, Catholic theologians, starting with Irenaeus, have repeatedly sought, as a matter of course, to support various Catholic doctrines from Scripture–the most obvious being those of the Trinity and the Incarnation, which received definitive formulation at the councils of Nicaea I, Constantinople I, Ephesus, and Chalcedon. St. Athanasius, who sought and got needed support from Rome, argued that Nicene orthodoxy could be derived from Scripture–a judgment that most Reformed theologians share today. The sense in which that judgment is true is unimportant for the moment; the mere fact that it was made is enough of a counterexample to (2). Moreover, medieval Catholic theologians generally spent the bulk of their time on scriptural exegesis, and took for granted that distinctly Catholic doctrines could and should be supported in that way. No orthodox Catholic theologian would ever say, nor has the Magisterium ever said, that the Church’s interpretation of Scripture must be believed instead of Scripture itself. Rather, as the voice of the Church, the Magisterium’s use of Scripture has been what Bryan Cross said in one of his responses to Michael Horton:

    Recognizing an authoritative interpreter of Scripture does not subordinate Scripture to the divinely-established interpreter; it subordinates the unauthorized persons’s interpretation of Scripture to that of the divinely authorized interpreter, as Korah’s interpretation was subordinate to that of Moses. The unauthorized persons’s interpretation of Scripture should not be confused with or treated as Scripture itself.

    You are one of those unauthorized interpreters who confuse their interpretation of Scripture with Scripture itself.

    Your (3) is simply an instance of the genetic fallacy. You interpret the historical data to argue that the See of Rome’s claims to authority were motivated by a desire for quasi-imperial power, and then infer that such a motive discredits those claims. But they do not. Even if the See of Rome had been motivated entirely as you say, which it was not, it would not logically follow that Rome’s claims to specifically ecclesial authority are false. What would follow at most is that what caused the bishops of Rome to want to make such claims are not reasons for actually believing those claims. That hardly rules out their being such reasons, and many Catholic scholars have provided them.

    Addressing me, you go on:

    …your choice of “leaving it to mere human opinion about how to interpret sources that have been alleged to transmit divine revelation”, or choosing the method that you eventually adopt, is a false dilemma. It is not “either-or” (either “an infallible interpreter” or “mere human opinion”.

    That just evinces a misunderstanding of the state of the question. I argue that the Catholic IP offers “a principled distinction between divine revelation and human opinion.” You do not dispute that such a distinction is necessary, nor do you dispute that the Catholic IP offers one. What we disagree about is whether the IP you prefer offers a better one. On that score, my argument was that a sola scriptura IP, on which Scripture is both inerrant and perspicuous enough to establish a comprehensive orthodoxy, is rationally inferior to the Catholic, because once ecclesial infallibility is rejected, we are left only with scholarly opinions about what belongs in the biblical canon in the first place, and about how to interpret the Bible.

    You cannot rebut that argument by objecting either that Scripture needs no interpretation–which you occasionally do, saying it’s “plain”–or by repeating that “Scripture interprets Scripture.” Even Mathison and Horton acknowledge that Scripture needs interpretation, and everybody–Protestant, Catholic, and Orthodox–uses some scriptural passages to interpret others. But that leaves open the questions which interpretations are true, how they should be arrived at, and why we should believe that any interpretations are more than just provisional opinions, rather than altogether reliable conveyances of divine revelation.

    This is why your trotting out Kruger–your latest scholarly enthusiasm–is beside the point. Even without having read him, I’m quite willing to concede that he’s made a strong case that the 27-book NT canon is the one we should regard as the biblical canon. After all, the early Church eventually reached the same conclusion. But when left at the level of contemporary scholarship, such conclusions are always and of necessity provisional: they rely both on incomplete historical data and limited theological perspectives. Once ecclesial infallibility is eschewed, scholarship cannot rule out change in light of further, hitherto undiscovered data and/or more illiminating perspectives. Hence to argue, as you do, that the Protestant canon is “the extent and limit of divine revelation we have today” is necessarily to argue from ignorance: using scholarly methods alone, nobody can present such a conclusion as divinely granted knowledge rather than plausible opinion. And that holds even if, as many Catholic theologians have held, Scripture is “materially sufficient,” in the sense that it somehow contains, explicitly or implicitly, every datum of divine revelation. Without an authorized, infallible interpreter, Scripture can contain every truth God communicates for our salvation without being able, just by itself, to guarantee the correct interpretation thereof. On that point, I strongly recommend you read Ray Stamper’s superb comment made yesterday in another thread.

    Moreover, your methodology does not even engage the claim that sola scriptura is “self-defeating.” The view that Scripture alone suffices to interpret Scripture simply cannot be established by Scripture itself, for bolstering that view itself requires a particular method of interpreting Scripture, when the question is precisely whether such a method amounts to more than one scholarly option among others. To answer that question affirmatively and securely, you’d have to show that there is no other rationally plausible option. As I explained in my article, that would entail showing that your approach is “rationally unassailable.” But it is not.

    You write:

    For Protestants, the “authority” that the church has is the kind of authority that Moses and the judges of Israel held in the Old Testament.

    Surely you mean only some Protestants, i.e. those who reject solo in favor of sola. To rule out Protestants who disagree with you would simply beg the question. And on the matter of the solo-sola distinction, I’m sure you’ve read how Bryan Cross and Neal Judisch rejected Keith Mathison’s upholding of that distinction, and how I upheld their criticism. Since your view of the role of church authority depends on maintaining a principled distinction between solo and sola that is actually unavailable, you need to focus your efforts on upholding that. Good luck.

    In my article, I had written and you quote:

    …the question fairly arises: How to explain the fact that many baptized, churchgoing people don’t agree about what the plain sense of Scripture is, or even that it’s always and necessarily inerrant even when agreed to be plain? If the proximate, formal object of faith can be clearly identified by a rationally unassailable set of inferences from the pertinent early sources, the primary one of which is assumed to be inerrant, does that tell us that those who don’t find that set rationally unassailable are either unlearned or willfully irrational?

    You replied:

    This too is a false dilemma, unless you want to call God himself “either unlearned or willfully irrational” in setting up the paradigm he set up with Moses and the Israelites. God posits his own word as “plain”.

    Frankly, that’s just silly. Not only did the Jews themselves have oral traditions that predated the writing of the OT and contributed to it; they developed other such traditions that helped to interpret their scriptures (ever hear of the Talmud?). If the scriptures were altogether perspicuous, there would have been no point in a Talmud, and no need for judges, prophets, and those “sitting in the seat of Moses.” Moreover, Jesus’ way of interpreting the Scriptures never did seem plausible to most Jewish scholars in the first century. Are you prepared to deny that they were either unlearned or willfully irrational? If you are, then you’re logically committed to denying that the Scriptures were perspicuous enough to enable them to see the culmination of divine revelation.

    You write:

    … the Roman paradigm is guilty of exceeding what God has done with regard to “interpretive paradigms”.

    That’s about as question-begging as it gets. The “Roman paradigm” is guilty of what you say only if your approach to Scripture is best–which is precisely what’s at issue.

    Finally, you quote a conclusion drawn by Steven Wedgworth:

    We do not look to a political institution or other coercive power to artificially provide unity and certainty. There is no magic “key” to unity in external diversity. Rather, we respect the rights of conscience and seek to persuade others through the right use of reason and Biblical exegesis, confident that freedom and charity lead to the only unity worth having.

    That’s only a brief restatement of your paradigm–with the added disadvantage that the last sentence precludes any principled distinction between solo and sola, and describes a confidence that history amply shows to be unrealistic. I’ve already explained the problem with that.

    Best,
    Mike

  295. John, (re:290)

    Your friend’s argument doesn’t seem to hold any water because we aren’t talking strictly of the appeals that Catholics and Protestants make to one another. We are speaking of the Church’s witness to an unbelieving world. Therefore the Catholic AND the Protestant SHARE a common burden of proof in their efforts to evangelize the world. On one hand, the Catholic presents to the world a faith complete with a means of exercising Christ’s authority due to its appeal to Scripture, Tradition and the Magisterium. Whereas, the Protestant offers to the world an incomplete philosophical system incapable of rendering definitions concerning the very faith it claims to share. Protestantism, therefore, finds itself in an inescapably relativistic state. This is why it can be said that a Protestant may very well believe in Christ. But it’s the Catholic who believes in both Christ AND His teachings.

    This is why, I imagine, when someone asked Walker Percy why he’d been received into the Catholic Church he responded, saying “What else is there?”

    Peace to you, John. I am happy to see you engaging the writers here at Called to Communion!

    herbert

  296. John,

    I forgot to address your #290. I shall focus on its last two paragraphs.

    You write:

    Now, when I present evidence to the effect that the concept of “apostolic succession” as a concept was articulated in the mid second century (and I understand Bryan’s objection to this and I intend to talk about it in more detail), it undermines the claim [which I view as unsupported] that the Roman Catholic church makes to place both “Tradition” and “Magisterium” on the same level as Scripture. That is the shape of my argument.

    I’m glad you called that the “shape” of your argument, because it draws attention in brief, convenient form to your faulty premises.

    You claim that the Catholic Church places Tradition and the Magisterium on the same level as Scripture. That’s an altogether inaccurate summary of the Catholic formal, proximate object of faith (FPOF). A true summary is to be found here:

    Sacred tradition and Sacred Scripture form one sacred deposit of the word of God, committed to the Church. Holding fast to this deposit the entire holy people united with their shepherds remain always steadfast in the teaching of the Apostles, in the common life, in the breaking of the bread and in prayers (see Acts 2, 42, Greek text), so that holding to, practicing and professing the heritage of the faith, it becomes on the part of the bishops and faithful a single common effort.

    But the task of authentically interpreting the word of God, whether written or handed on, has been entrusted exclusively to the living teaching office of the Church, whose authority is exercised in the name of Jesus Christ. This teaching office is not above the word of God, but serves it, teaching only what has been handed on, listening to it devoutly, guarding it scrupulously and explaining it faithfully in accord with a divine commission;and with the help of the Holy Spirit, it draws from this one deposit of faith everything which it presents for belief as divinely revealed.

    It is clear, therefore, that sacred tradition, Sacred Scripture and the teaching authority of the Church, in accord with God’s most wise design, are so linked and joined together that one cannot stand without the others, and that all together and each in its own way, under the action of the one Holy Spirit, contribute effectively to the salvation of souls (Dei Verbum §10; footnotes omitted, emphasis).

    Two things are readily inferable from that. First, the Church sees Tradition and Scripture as together forming “one sacred deposit of the Word of God” because Scripture, far from being a source above Tradition, is in reality a record of what was “handed on”– albeit the most normative record, because it is divinely inspired. The truth expressed in Scripture predates that written expression, flowing from the person of Jesus Christ, the primordial Word of God, to the Apostles who in turn “handed it on” to the Church not only in Scripture but also in Tradition more generally. We thus receive the “Tradition,” the overall truth handed down from its source, Jesus Christ, partly by means of Scripture and partly by other means. To object that this puts Tradition “on the same level as Scripture” is either to misunderstand the actual relationship between the two as understood by the Catholic Church, or to beg the question against the Church. On the Catholic account, Tradition is all that comes to us from God through the Apostles and the Church. Scripture expresses that in so unique and powerful a way as to be unsurpassable. But it’s not all there is to what’s been handed on.

    By its own account, the Magisterium is not “on the same level” as “the sacred deposit of the Word of God” formed by Scripture and Tradition. Unlike them, the Magisterium is not a “source” of divine revelation: it does not add to the deposit or make things up. Rather, it “serves” the Word by virtue of being its sole “authentic” interpreter. But because the Magisterium is that interpreter, neither Scripture nor Tradition can be pitted against it when it’s teaching with its full, divinely commissioned authority. And that is why Scripture-Tradition-Magisterium forms one FPOF, in which no element can “stand without the others.” It’s how the Holy Spirit promised by the risen Jesus “leads” us “into all truth.”

    As a Protestant you will of course want to reject such a characterization of the FPOF. But it would behoove you to characterize it correctly first. You did not do that.

    You concluded:

    The Roman Catholic argument should be dependent upon some sort of “divine institution” of these things, and while Scripture itself makes the claim that it is “the Word of God”, nothing else has that force.

    I agree that the Church can only claim authority by divine institution. But on the Catholic account of how Scripture, Tradition, and the Magisterium are interrelated as elements of the FPOF, the evidence for that institution cannot be proven from Scripture and/or Tradition interpreted in isolation from the Magisterium. For there is only one “authentic” interpreter of the deposit formed by Scripture and Tradition, namely the Magisterium itself. Accordingly, an apologetical argument for the truth of the Magisterium’s claim for itself cannot, even in principle, use Scripture and Tradition alone, or even those elements in conjunction with standard historical data. It can only present an interpretive paradigm using the all three elements of the FPOF, one that makes some sense in itself and is also rationally preferable to the alternatives. And so a philosophical argument, not a merely exegetical or historical argument, is needed to show that the Catholic IP is rationally preferable. That’s why I generally argue as I do.

    Your alternative IP is of course sola scriptura, where the Protestant canon is taken to be both inerrant and perspicuous. As a philosopher, I see no reason to believe that Scripture is perspicuous in the sort of way your IP requires; and as a Catholic, I see no reason to believe that it’s either the Word of God or inerrant save by the conjoint authority of Tradition and the Magisterium. So I’d suggest that you keep your argument philosophical as well as your characterizations accurate.

    Best,
    Mike

  297. Brent 291, and Sean 292:

    this is one of the fundmental problems with Protestantism and sola scriptura. In order to prove the Catholic wrong, the Protestant (in many cases) must say that because the Bible seems silent on “b”, that we cannot know “b”. However, that judgement in and of itself goes beyond the contents of Scripture — which is to defy the principle of sola scriptura. The judgment from silence, not the Scriptures, becomes the final arbiter. If Scripture is to be the final arbiter, then it must only speak for what its contents actually say.

    I’ll give you an example of how this works in practice: Mary’s “Immaculate foot”, from Ineffabilis Deus:

    These ecclesiastical writers in quoting the words by which at the beginning of the world God announced his merciful remedies prepared for the regeneration of mankind — words by which he crushed the audacity of the deceitful serpent and wondrously raised up the hope of our race, saying, “I will put enmities between you and the woman, between your seed and her seed”[13] — taught that by this divine prophecy the merciful Redeemer of mankind, Jesus Christ, the only begotten Son of God, was clearly foretold: That his most Blessed Mother, the Virgin Mary, was prophetically indicated; and, at the same time, the very enmity of both against the evil one was significantly expressed. Hence, just as Christ, the Mediator between God and man, assumed human nature, blotted the handwriting of the decree that stood against us, and fastened it triumphantly to the cross, so the most holy Virgin, united with him by a most intimate and indissoluble bond, was, with him and through him, eternally at enmity with the evil serpent, and most completely triumphed over him, and thus crushed his head with her immaculate foot.

    It is not “begging the question” to “assume Sola Scriptura”, nor is it a “judgment from silence” by which the Protestant observer objects to Roman Catholic statements like this.

    There are positive commands, given as principles, in Deuteronomy, for example, not to look outside of God’s word for [for lack of a better word] your “formal, proximate object of faith”:

    “And now, O Israel, listen to the statutes and the rules that I am teaching you, and do them, that you may live, and go in and take possession of the land that the Lord, the God of your fathers, is giving you. You shall not add to the word that I command you, nor take from it, that you may keep the commandments of the Lord your God that I command you.

    When the Lord your God cuts off before you the nations whom you go in to dispossess, and you dispossess them and dwell in their land, take care that you be not ensnared to follow them, after they have been destroyed before you, and that you do not inquire about their gods, saying, ‘How did these nations serve their gods?—that I also may do the same.’ You shall not worship the Lord your God in that way, for every abominable thing that the Lord hates they have done for their gods, for they even burn their sons and their daughters in the fire to their gods. Everything that I command you, you shall be careful to do. You shall not add to it or take from it.

    “Sola Scriptura” has some very positive commands behind it – In effect here, God is saying “put nothing on par with my words to you”. Apart from that, he does not see fit to provide a “canon” – God himself assumes that “Everything that I command you” is self-attesting. At a very fundamental level, no interpreter is required.

    It does seem incumbent on the Roman Catholic, rather, to provide the explanation of why this principle is not adhered to, for example, in the Dei Verbum selection that is given.

    To do this requires not talk of “sisters”, but of the complex of interactions between how the Apostles were involved in Christ’s life and their role as eyewitnesses to “the radiance of the glory of God and the exact imprint of [God’s] nature” that he was. The interactions between the Rabbinic “traditions” that Jesus decried; the “tradition” that Paul spoke of in his letters; how they worked; how the “traditions” became written down; other methods by which the “traditions” were “transmited” (or not).

  298. Brent #272:

    You said:

    Let me give you an example using your argument against Apostolic Succession — at least one particular leg of the argument. You would have me to hold that because “succession” is a “concept” that doesn’t emerge until the 2nd century and only in anti-Gnostic literature (scary!), that I should reject it as a novelty. On your view, the apparent novelty of it confirms it as a mere assertion of Rome. However, if I were to take this principle and apply to elsewhere, you would have me to deny the “concept” of “Trinity” because it is clearly from the second or third century (mostly third), and comes to us only in anti-Adoptionist, Sabellian and Arian literature. Therefore, on this view, “Trinity” is a mere assertion of Rome.

    This is inaccurate. Here is why. Broadly, there are two ways that doctrines may be said to develop. And if we want to explore things at a granular level, I’m sure there could be said to be more. However, for the purpose of this comment (in the spirit of discussion “interpretive paradigms”, let’s just talk about these two. Newman used the same word/concept to confuse the two, (and here is more on the concept). Here is just a brief summary of that notion:

    My own reasons for not becoming Roman Catholic have not changed. It was precisely the problem of doctrinal development that I found unsatisfactory. I believe that J. B. Mozley’s The Theory of Development provides the decisive critique of [John Henry] Newman on development of doctrine. Mozley argues that Newman commits a logical fallacy of amphiboly by not distinguishing between two different kinds of development. Newman is correct that there is genuine development in the early church….the “development” of incarnational and Trinitarian doctrine that takes place at Nicea, Chalcedon, etc., is really simply the necessary logical unfolding of what is already clearly present in the New Testament. If Jesus is fully God, then he must “of the same substance” as God. If the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit are equally God, and yet there is only one God, then God must be three persons in one nature….

    Mozley speaks of this kind of development in terms of what I will call “Development 1.” Development 1 adds nothing to the original content of faith, but rather brings out its necessary implications. Mozley says that Aquinas is doing precisely this kind of development in his discussion of the incarnation in the Summa Theologiae.

    There is another kind of development, however, which I will call “Development 2.” Development 2 is genuinely new development that is not simply the necessary articulation of what is said explicitly in the Scriptures.

    Classic examples of Development 2 would include the differences between the doctrine of the theotokos and the dogmas of the immaculate conception or the assumption of the Blessed Virgin Mary. In the former, Marian dogma is not actually saying something about Mary, but rather something about Christ. If Jesus Christ is truly God, and Mary is his mother, then Mary is truly the Mother of God (theotokos). She gives birth, however, to Jesus’ humanity, not his eternal person, which has always existed and is generated eternally by the Father. The doctrine of the theotokos is a necessary implication of the incarnation of God in Christ, which is clearly taught in the New Testament. However, the dogmas of the immaculate conception and the assumption are not taught in Scripture, either implicitly or explicitly. They are entirely new developments.

    The same would be true, of course, for the doctrine of the papacy. The New Testament says much about the role of Simon Peter as a leader of the apostles. It does not say anything explicit, however, about the bishop of Rome being the successor to Peter. The Eastern fathers, e.g., Cyprian, interpret the Petrine passages that Rome has applied to the papacy as applying to all bishops.

  299. John, (re: #297, 298)

    You wrote:

    It is not “begging the question” to “assume Sola Scriptura”

    In logic the phrase ‘begging the question’ has two meanings, one of which is to use the conclusion of one’s argument as one of the premises in that argument. That form of begging the question is internal to the argument, i.e. a relation of premises to conclusion. Another form of begging the question is external to the argument itself; it is a dialectical form of begging the question, between two persons or two paradigms. This occurs when you defend your position to your interlocutor by way of an argument that uses premises your interlocutor does not accept. This form of begging the question does not necessarily beg the question in the first sense, because the argument’s conclusion need not be used in the premises of the argument. But it does beg the question in the dialectical sense, because one or more premises of the argument are part of or presuppose precisely what is in dispute between you and your interlocutor. In this case one’s argument presupposes something that belongs to one’s own paradigm and does not belong to one’s interlocutor’s paradigm. So this dialectical sense of begging the question involves using what is in dispute between you and your interlocutor to support or defend your position against that of your interlocutor. Most introductory logic courses teach only the internal sense of begging the questions, where the conclusion of an argument is included in the premises. But for this dialectical sense of begging the question see Doug Walton’s book devoted to this particular fallacy: Begging the Question: Circular Reasoning as a Tactic of Argumentation (Greenwood Press, 1991).

    So, given that Protestants hold sola scriptura, and Catholics do not, and given what I just wrote regarding the dialectical sense of begging the question, it follows that in any dialogue aimed at unity in the truth between a Protestant and Catholic, any argument that assumes the truth of sola scriptura begs the question against the Catholic interlocutor and against the Catholic paradigm.

    As for the passages from Deuteronomy, you are interpreting them to mean that there can be no divinely authorized oral Tradition alongside what is written in Scripture, and that there can be no divinely authorized Magisterium to provide the divinely authorized interpretation of Scripture. But another possible interpretation of those verses is that they are prohibiting adding to or subtracting from divine commands. And the existence of a divinely authorized oral Tradition and Magisterium is fully compatible with that interpretation of these passages. So when you say, “It does seem incumbent on the Roman Catholic, rather, to provide the explanation of why this principle is not adhered to, for example, in the Dei Verbum selection that is given,” you are presupposing your interpretation of these verses. And that begs the question against the Catholic position, because you have no authority to stipulate with divine authority that these verses must be interpreted so as to rule out the Catholic way of understanding them. (If you did, you would in effect be contradicting yourself, by exercising magisterial authority in order to assert that only Scripture has divine authority, or that these verses must be interpreted to be saying that only Scripture has divine authority.) You are treating your interpretation of these verses, as it were no interpretation at all, apparently because you do not realize that there are other possible ways of interpreting them.

    Also, the quotation from Witt in #299 does not show that apostolic succession was even a development, let alone an accretion.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  300. As much as I like my view from the bleachers, I’d like to jump in here. From my perspective, the standard Catholic response to a Protestant challenge here is something to the effect of, “nope, can’t argue that, it’s off limits due to (insert fallacy).” I’m curious what, from a Catholic perspective, would demonstrate the Catholic faith is false? As in, if the given Protestant challenges are always breaking the rules, what type of challenges would not break these rules? From the bleachers it can look like the “game” never get of the ground because someone is always calling a foul. (I’ll scurry back to the bleachers now)

  301. Bryan 299:

    any argument that assumes the truth of sola scriptura begs the question against the Catholic interlocutor and against the Catholic paradigm.

    Where, even, to begin? First, I apologize for not knowing the definition of “begging the question in the dialectical sense”.

    It is very clear that we begin with different assumptions. I will begin by stating that I do not accept “the Catholic paradigm”, and given my long term investigation into these things, the diligence with which (I believe) I have wrestled with these issues, I am not likely to do so. Further, I would hope that you (and your readers) would understand that, given both my own personal history, and the backdrop of all of Christian history, that I do have reasons for accepting sola Scriptura and not accepting the Catholic paradigm. Whether or not I can state them with the philosophical precision you require is another matter.

    That said, I have made an effort to discuss these differences within the context of a discussion of “interpretive paradigms”. In the midst of that, given my limitations of time, I am asked other questions [in this thread] which seem to require less time and effort to respond to. In good faith, I make the attempt to respond to these questions in general terms — with the understanding that this is not a classroom, and I am not being held to scholarly rigor, but only to communicate my understanding of these things in general terms (but with specifics attached), which is a level that most of the readers here will understand things.

    … it follows that in any dialogue aimed at unity in the truth between a Protestant and Catholic, …

    The very definition of “unity” may be discussed. I have posted an article this morning which discusses a clarification on the definition of unity, and precisely the kind of “unity” that Paul is talking about in different instances. Do you have any comments on that?

    As for the passages from Deuteronomy, you are interpreting them to mean that there can be no divinely authorized oral Tradition alongside what is written in Scripture, and that there can be no divinely authorized Magisterium to provide the divinely authorized interpretation of Scripture. But another possible interpretation of those verses is that they are prohibiting adding to or subtracting from divine commands. And the existence of a divinely authorized oral Tradition and Magisterium is fully compatible with that interpretation of these passages.

    Being “fully compatible with” does not demonstrate where, in history, this existed, or how it functioned. Nor does it demonstrate how such hypothetical “divinely authorized oral Tradition and Magisterium” in the Old Testament became translated (or “developed” somehow) into a “divinely authorized oral Tradition and Magisterium” either in the New Testament or in later church history. Nor, finally, do you say where, precisely, in Roman Catholic doctrine and dogma, these things are articulated. Perhaps you have a link to that.

    So when you say, “It does seem incumbent on the Roman Catholic, rather, to provide the explanation of why this principle is not adhered to, for example, in the Dei Verbum selection that is given,” you are presupposing your interpretation of these verses. And that begs the question [in the dialectical sense, I assume] against the Catholic position, because you have no authority to stipulate with divine authority that these verses must be interpreted so as to rule out the Catholic way of understanding them. (If you did, you would in effect be contradicting yourself, by exercising magisterial authority in order to assert that only Scripture has authority.) You are treating your interpretation of these verses, as it were no interpretation at all, apparently because you do not realize that there are other possible ways of interpreting them.

    It seems as if you are requiring me to begin by “presupposing the Catholic position”, a thing I will not do. I will, for the sake of argument, not object if you clarify that position for me, but if you (and your readers) continue to ask me questions in good faith, requiring that I “presuppose the Catholic position”, how will I be able to respond?

    I freely admit to having no authority at all. And no philosophical training. Are you more interested that I am able to articulate precisely the two definitions of “begging the question”? Or do you (and your readers) genuinely want to know what I think about a given topic? I am merely an inquirer who, with my own simple reading of the Scriptures and an understanding that “those things which are necessary to be known, believed, and observed, for salvation, are so clearly propounded and opened in some place of Scripture or other, that not only the learned, but the unlearned, in a due use of the ordinary means, may attain unto a sufficient understanding of them”, sees “contradictions” shall we say, and is seeking to operate within a “culture of persuasion”, as I quoted Steven Wedgeworth above.

    Thus, I know of those (i.e., the early “Protestants”) who rejected Roman Catholic claims to authority, and without being able to come here and articulate a complete and thorough systematic theology, such as that of Bavinck, for example. Steve Hays has noted, “As a practical matter, no one has explored every nook and cranny [of theology and history]. Rather, everyone hires a guide to scout out the territory and show him the shortcuts…. In that event, you check out the guide rather than the trail to make sure he’s not going to lead you astray”.

    Having gone some distance down the trail, and having seen the “apparent contradictions” that Newman wrote about, and that you have written about, I do not choose to accept that “somehow, my own interpretation is wrong, and what “the Church” teaches is somehow correct, even though I don’t see it”. For a time in my life — some 35 or more years, I would say, I accepted Roman Catholic authority, but then, perceiving far too many of these “difficulties”, I have “checked out the guide”, multiple guides, in fact, and I have chosen (not in authority, but based upon a simple reading) to reject one particular guide (the “Roman Catholic guide”) as being trustworthy.

    Also, the quotation from Witt in #299 does not show that apostolic succession was even a development, let alone an accretion.

    I was not using the Witt quote to show that apostolic succession was either a development or an accretion, merely to illustrate a principle which seems to make a lot of sense. How is it that you are suggesting that I intended it to mean that?

    By the way, hi Salvador (300), thank you for your encouragement.

  302. Salvador,

    How about this:

    Pax,

    Ray

  303. John, (re: #301)

    There is no need to apologize for anything. In my paragraph (in #299) about begging the question I was only trying to make sure we all (not just you) understand what it means to beg the question. It is important, if we are to make any progress, that we’re all on the same page with respect to these basic rules of reasoning and fallacies, etc.

    I understand that you do not begin with the Catholic paradigm. And I hope you realize that I surely don’t expect you to begin your discussion here by assuming the truth of the Catholic paradigm. Of course not. So, it is clear, on the table, that you are standing within, and beginning from a Protestant paradigm, and I (and presumably any other Catholic participants in this discussion) are standing within, and beginning from a Catholic paradigm.

    So the challenge (for both of us) is finding a way to adjudicate between the two paradigms, without begging the question in the dialectical sense I described above.

    You asked if I had any comments on your article on unity. You won’t find me disagreeing with you on this point, at least on the point that no one should compromise what he believes to be true, for the sake of unity. So, I think you should not compromise anything you believe to be true, for the sake of unity with, say, Catholics. And likewise, I shouldn’t compromise anything I believe to be true, for the sake of unity. So, in my opinion, the ecumenical dialogue between Protestants and Catholics should never carry with it any assumption that either or both sides should compromise what they believe to be true. I wrote about that in 2009, in (if I remember correctly), the first thing I wrote for CTC — a post titled “Two Ecumenicisms.”

    When I say “unity in the truth” (in comment #299) I simply mean agreement regarding the truth. When we (i.e. Catholics and Protestants) discuss here the Catholic-Protestant disagreements, we all are engaged in an activity aimed at agreement regarding the truth. You think that attaining that goal looks like all of us agreeing on the truth of Protestantism, and we (Catholics) think that attaining that goal looks like all of us agreeing on the truth of Catholicism. But nevertheless, the goal when entering into this sort of dialogue is still unity in the truth, i.e. agreement regarding the truth.

    Regarding my reply to your citation of verses from Deuteronomy, yes, my reply does not show where in history the oral Tradition and Magisterium existed, or how it functioned, or any continuity between the oral Tradition under the Old Covenant, and the oral Tradition under the New Covenant, or any relation between the prophetic and priestly authorities of the Old Covenant, and the Magisterium of the New Covenant. Nor did my reply show where in Catholic doctrine and dogma these things are articulated. Explaining all those things wasn’t my intention. I merely intended to point out that there are different ways of interpreting those passages in Deuteronomy, and that at least one of those ways is compatible with Catholic doctrine. Therefore, it would be question-begging (in the dialectical sense) to appeal to those passages as though they are incompatible with the teaching of Dei Verbum regarding the role and relation of Scripture to the Tradition and the Magisterium.

    You wrote:

    It seems as if you are requiring me to begin by “presupposing the Catholic position”, a thing I will not do.

    No, I’m not requiring that of you. I don’t expect you to do that. I’m asking of you only what I ask of myself when I enter these discussions, namely, that I try to avoid begging the question when I present my arguments. That’s not easy to do, and I’m not implying that I always avoid doing so. (I know I don’t.) But, I do know that we cannot resolve the disagreement between Catholics and Protestants by exchanging question-begging arguments against each other’s positions.

    I do agree with the quotation you cite from Hays. No one has investigated every theological and historical nook and cranny. We all rely on guides, to various degrees, and in various areas. There are certain guides you trust more than others, and the same is true for me, that I trust certain guides more than others. But, I think it is safe to assume that we do not trust all the same guides, at least not to the same degree. And when that is the case, how do we resolve our disagreement? Here’s what won’t work. You appeal to your authorities, and I appeal to mine. At that point, we would be at a stalemate, precisely because you don’t accept my authorities, and I don’t accept yours. It would be question begging, at that point, if we each kept simply appealing to our respective authority. So, in such a situation, we must step back and either (a) examine the respective positions, and the evidence and argumentation for each, and/or (b) examine the respective evidence and argumentation for the reliability and authority of the guides to which we are appealing, if we are to make progress toward unity in the truth (i.e. agreement concerning the truth).

    You wrote:

    I was not using the Witt quote to show that apostolic succession was either a development or an accretion, merely to illustrate a principle which seems to make a lot of sense. How is it that you are suggesting that I intended it to mean that?

    Ok, maybe I misunderstood you. In #272 Brent argued that the line of reasoning you were using against apostolic succession proves too much. You responded in #298 by quoting Brent’s argument, and then replying with the Witt quotation. So, it seemed to me that you were claiming implicitly that the distinction Witt makes (drawing from Mozley) between these two senses of the term ‘development’ somehow refutes Brent’s argument. If you didn’t intend the Witt quotation to do that, then I misunderstood you.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  304. Hi Salvador,

    I think understand what you’re saying. As Catholics, we’re allowed to argue about every issue of scriptural, historical, theological, and philosophical importance. But some arguments against the Catholic faith either have serious problems which must be addressed up front to avoid a never-ending discussion (think about circularity, confusion of terms, assuming the conclusion, making a bald assertion without backing it up, etc), while other arguments against the Catholic faith are so far removed from the post under discussion that discussing them “early”, so to speak, would prevent the issue currently being discussed from ever being settled. In particular, I think there are several reasons why the CTC team frequently refocuses questions in the way you described:

    (1) The argument someone has proposed to them has a serious logical problem at its core. For example, if someone said: “It doesn’t make sense to believe in Jesus Christ, because there is no evidence for any of his supposed miracles in early non-Christian writings, and even insufficient evidence that he existed in the earliest non-Christian writings,” what would you say? You would probably be tempted to say: “Yes, there is at least some evidence that he existed in the earliest non-Christian writings,” and then you would be tempted (but not give in!) to say “and this evidence in non-Christian writings also implicitly admits that he is divine,” and so forth. But wouldn’t it make more sense to say: “Well, before we discuss this issue, let’s settle one thing first: there is no reason that non-Christian writings should settle this issue. To assume a priori that all Christian writings are dishonest would . . . ” and so on. This is the kind of thing that people in the CTC team have to do a lot. And rightly so, since to avoid making these kind of points out of misguided charity would produce a discussion so full of logical problems that it would be a greater miracle than Fatima for anyone to learn anything from it.

    (2) Not all Protestant interlocutors do this, but some make statements like: “the following one verse of scripture implies that Catholicism is false because this verse mentions the following theological concept, but when it mentions that concept, it doesn’t use the words Catholics use to describe it.” Look, this is at best one step removed from the kind of logical problems that I mentioned above. The Church has never claimed that scripture directly implies by formal logic the explicit doctrinal content of every paragraph in the Catechism. We don’t believe that formal logic applied only to the content of scripture, without the conscious use of any other material or beliefs, implies very much about any of the problems at issue between the Reformed and Catholics. What we do believe is that that scripture clearly implies the content of Catholicism when scripture is rightly understood. And in order for scripture to be thus rightly understood, there will have to be some kind of metric applied to it; both to help iron out scripture’s many apparent contradictions in a systematic way, and also so that scripture is understood continuously with the earliest traditions of Christianity (whose precious content the early Christians also died in order witness to, and maintain, and pass on to their descendents). Now, considering this difference in our paradigms, every Protestant must ask themselves: “how will saying ‘But Jesus didn’t explicitly mention the formula of absolution when He gave the apostles the ability to forgive sins!’ move the dialogue towards truth? Might it not be more useful to address the difference in paradigms before I point out something that could not possibly be convincing to someone who does not use my own (Protestant paradigm)?”

    (3) The point already in question needs to be answered before another supposed contradiction or fault in Catholic theology and doctrine is discussed.

    (4) The new supposed problem already has been discussed on another thread, and needs to be discussed there.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  305. Salvador,

    I should add that there are of course lots of options for useful contributions that question whether the Catholic church’s claims could possibly be true:

    (1) Show that the Catholic claims are self-contradictory.
    (2) Show that the Catholic claims are not only insufficiently implied by the scriptures (see above), but that they are actually directly and clearly contradicted by the scriptures.
    (3) Show that the majority of the Patristic evidence explicitly contradicts the Catholic claims.
    (4) Show that the Catholic claims, if true, ought to have been explicitly mentioned in Patristic evidence; then show that these claims are not mentioned in Patristic evidence.
    (5) Show that even if the patristic and scriptural evidence does not explicitly rule-out Catholicism, it makes some other kind of “ism” more likely than Catholicism is.

    Now, I think the unique consistency of the Catholic universe with scripture and tradition (and itself) is so mind-bendingly awesome that none of these five are going to defeat the Church by a long-shot — in fact, searching to see if any of these five are defeaters for the Church is as good a way as any to talk yourself into being a Catholic! :)

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  306. John,

    I think Bryan has sufficiently defined for you what I mean by “begging the question.”

    Apart from that, he does not see fit to provide a “canon”

    If God did not see fit, then “self-attestation” does not get us a canon. If God did not see fit to give us a canon, we don’t have one.

    This is inaccurate. Here is why. Broadly, there are two ways that doctrines may be said to develop. And if we want to explore things at a granular level, I’m sure there could be said to be more. However, for the purpose of this comment (in the spirit of discussion “interpretive paradigms”, let’s just talk about these two. Newman used the same word/concept to confuse the two, (and here is more on the concept).

    I’ve read and studied Newman’s use of the term development, and he goes out of his way to differentiate between an organic development and an art-ful one (artificial — something genuinely adding to the deposit of faith — a corruption). Moroever, the definition of Development 1 and 2 as an argument in favor of Development 1 begs the question because it assumes “that which is not simply the necessary articulation of what is said explicitly in the Scriptures” is the only valid Development as it relates to dogma. It begs the question, however, because what is in question is precisely that definition as an argument in favor of Development 1. On Mozley’s view, Development is merely the weight of logic working itself inevitably out. As thus, the history of Christian dogma is the history of the mathematician of theology. The deposit of faith, again on this view, is not an inestimably rich treasure — but a pot quickly running out of the gold of rationally unassailable adducible principles.

    (Salvador, I’m not merely claiming “foul”, for logic’s sake. I’m claiming “foul” for truth’s sake. An argument that would “get off the ground”, would be one that could demonstrate (1) why Development 1 and 2 are non-compatible, (2) why we should prefer Development 1 to Development 2, and (3) on what grounds is Development 2 impermissible .)

  307. Gentlemen:

    I’d like to augment what Brent just said about Mozely’s distinction between Development 1 and Development 2. I shall simply argue a bit more explicitly that said distinction presents a false dilemma.

    According to the conservative-Protestant IP that, e.g., Mozely, John Bugay and Dr. William Witt employ, the only legitimate sort of development is D1, by which the “necessary implications” of various Scripture passages are drawn out more fully by later theologians and the Church. Now when I see that word ‘necessary’ used in such a context, as a philosopher I immediately think deductive necessity. In a deductively valid argument, the conclusion follows from the premises necessarily as a matter of logical form. For instance, the argument

    1. All men are mortal
    2. Socrates is a man
    3. Ergo, Socrates is mortal

    is deductively valid, because we can easily recognize it as of the form universal instantiation: “All As are B; s is A; ergo, s is B,” which is valid for every substitution-instance. Of course that is only one of many valid logical forms; every one exhibits the deductive necessity of their substitution-instances. Many of those could be operative in exegesis. So, if by “necessary implications” the adherents of the conservative-Protestant IP mean deductive necessity, then according to them, the only legitimate form of doctrinal development is that which shows how the doctrines in question follow by deductive necessity from a set of propositions to be drawn from Scripture.

    When it occurs, such development simply draws out and makes explicit what’s already there in the sources–Scripture, or on some accounts, Tradition more broadly–and thus does not add anything to the deposit of faith given “once for all to the holy ones.” That’s because valid deductive arguments in general supply us with no more information than the premises already contain at least implicitly. And on Mozely’s conservative-Protestant IP, any other alleged “development” which goes beyond that gets dumped into the bin labeled ‘D2’ and trashed for adding, illegitimately, to the Word of God contained fully in the deposit of faith.

    But there is a third alternative. It’s unfortunate that Newman’s “organic” metaphor of development was introduced a century before the discovery of DNA, because that discovery affords theologians a perfectly clear example of the sort of development Newman was defending, in which DD is neither mere logical deduction nor illegitimate addition. Rather, the developments in question are natural without being logically necessary.

    To see why, suppose you’re a new biology student studying a molecule of DNA under a microscope. It would be a pretty double-helix, but you wouldn’t know exactly how all the sequenced strands in the helix relate to each other functionally; you would just observe their spatial arrangement. To learn something more about how the nucleic-acid strands are related, you’d rely on the careful work done by scientists to label and “map” their amino-acid building blocks according to letters A, C, G, and T. Then you would learn that DNA strands and sequences of different types give rise to different organisms and parts of organisms. So far, so good.

    But the crucial point is this: Without knowing in advance what sorts of creatures various instances of DNA give rise to, you could never logically deduce, from the building-blocks and the structure of DNA itself, just what sorts of creatures they give rise to. That just these DNA molecules give rise to just those sorts of creatures is not a matter of deductive necessity. The development instructions encoded in strands of DNA, and in the genes and chromosomes built up out of them in turn, follows laws of nature that supervene on, rather than logically arise from, the base-level organic matter. One might argue that the necessity is physical rather than logical, and that could well be true. We could then have a nice philosophy-of-science debate about the sense in which, and the degree to which, biological laws are deterministic. The truth is by no means obvious. What is obvious, though, is that the development of mature organisms from DNA is a natural development, bringing out what’s already there in germ, without also being a matter of logical necessitation.

    Now supposing for argument’s sake that distinctively Catholic doctrines are true, they are developments more like that of organisms from DNA than like the conclusions of deductively valid arguments. All the necessary information is there from the beginning, but its presence and nature is by no means clear until the development occurs and matures. Then we can see in retrospect how the development from the original “deposit of faith” is natural according the law of the analogia fidei and the other criteria Newman formulates.

    Of course the conservative Protestant will object here that this is all very speculative, and even ad hoc. For it did not generally occur to Catholic theologians to make a big deal out of doctrinal development until it became undeniable that distinctively Catholic doctrines could not simply be deduced, logically, from Scripture and other documentary sources from the first few centuries of Church history. But consider this: if the Magisterium’s claims for itself are true, and the Catholic FPOF is what Dei Verbum says it is, then there is just no way that a comprehensive orthodoxy can be logically deduced from Scripture and other documentary sources from the first few centuries of the Church. For the Magisterium exercises the charism of being the “sole authentic intepreter” Scripture and Tradition, so that the sources of divine revelation can be reliably understood and received and deduced from only in conjunction with the Magisterium’s interpretations thereof. If, on the other hand, the conservative-Protestant IP were true, there would be no need for a charismatic magisterium; we would need only an academic magisterium to reliably receive and understand divine revelation through its sources. I leave it to our readers’ study of history to judge how reliable academic magisteria are on such matters.

    The upshot of my DNA metaphor is that it enables us to see how Newman presents a theory of development which is neither D1 nor D2, but a D3 whose results can only be ruled out if we reject the idea of a charismatic magisterium to adjudicate its products.

    Best,
    Mike

  308. Michael Liccione #294:

    Not only did the Jews themselves have oral traditions that predated the writing of the OT and contributed to it; they developed other such traditions that helped to interpret their scriptures (ever hear of the Talmud?).

    Yes, Michael, I’ve heard of the Talmud. Let me elaborate.

    In his section on “Rabbinic Literature”, Everett Ferguson (“Backgrounds of Early Christianity”, Grand Rapids, MI and Cambridge, UK: Wm. B. Eerdmans Publishing Co, © 1987, 1993, 2003) notes the following:

    Rabbinic literature developed in two major periods: after the collapse of the Bar Kokhba revolt in the 130s [AD], and after the establishment of a Christian empire under Constantine and his successors in the fourth century. To the former period belong the formation of the Mishnah and the earliest Midrashim (second-third centuries),to the latter the compilation of the Talmuds (fifth-sixth centuries). Our treatment of this literature will not follow a strictly chronological order but will group the writings by their compilations and literary types.

    At the beginning of the first century the two leading rabbis were Hillel (c. 50 B.C.-AD 10) and Shammai, and their schools dominated the pharisaic interpretation of the law until A.D. 70. The school of Shammai prevailed in the reorganization of Judaism and so assumed the ascendancy in Jewish life. In general, the school of Shammai adhered to a stricter interpretation of the law, so that the Mishnah takes special note of those instances where they were more lenient than the school of Hillel. When similarities to the attitude of Jesus are found in rabbinic literature, one should remember that this literature reflects the later development when the more lenient views of Hillel prevailed and that the stricter views of Shammai prevailed during Jesus’ ministry (490-491).

    We should keep in mind what Jesus thought of this “oral tradition”. Oscar Cullmann notes (“The Tradition”, in “The Early Church”, London, UK: SCM Press Ltd, ©1956) “Jesus rejected in a radical manner the paradosis of the Jews” (pg 60). Consider how Jesus put it:

    So for the sake of your tradition you have made void the word of God. You hypocrites! Well did Isaiah prophesy of you, when he said: “‘This people honors me with their lips, but their heart is far from me; in vain do they worship me, teaching as doctrines the commandments of men.’”

    So it’s interesting you should bring up “the Talmud” in defense of “oral traditions” that “predated the writings of the OT and contributed to it”. Your timing is a bit off.

  309. Michael Liccione #294:

    Not only did the Jews themselves have oral traditions that predated the writing of the OT and contributed to it; they developed other such traditions that helped to interpret their scriptures (ever hear of the Talmud?).

    Here’s a bit more, from Ferguson, on the Talmud and its function:

    The authoritative compilation of the oral law in the Mishnah [predecessor of the Talmud] was the achievement of Rabbi Judah the Patriarch (or Prince) at the end of the second century. He was the great-great-grandson of Gamaliel the Elder and is often cited simply as “Rabbi.” ….

    Rabbi Judah’s compilation of the oral law in written form and with a few minor additions is the Mishnah, a topical collection of legal rulings. The word comes from a verb meaning “to repeat,” and so means “study.” That Tannaim (lit. “repeaters”) were the rabbinic scholars of the first and second centuries whose interpretations are collected in the Mishnah. More specifically, the Mishnah is a codification of the Halakah (Pl. Halakoth). The verb Halak means “to walk,” and halakah referred to an authoritative legal decision on how one was to conduct himself according to the law. (Note the frequency of “to walk” in the practical, ethical selections of the New Testament Epistles – e.g. Gal 5:26; Eph 4:1, 17; 5:2, 8, 15; Col 4:5; 1 Thess 4:1).

    The process of interpreting the Scriptures, the written law, was called midrash (exposition). Whereas Mishnah was the law codified in topical forms, midrash was commentary that stated rabbinic interpretation of the laws are arranged according to the order of the biblical text. Not all midrash was halakic, or legal; it also includes haggadah, which refers to all biblical interpretation that is nonhalakic, that is, all edifying and informative commentary.

    When the Mishnah itself was commented upon, the result was Talmud, derived from a word for “study,” or “instruction”. The commentary on the Mishnah [within the Talmud] was called Gemara, from the verb gemar (“to complete”), the Amoraim (“speakers”) were commentators on the Mishnah of Rabbi Judah.

    So the Talmud is a commentary upon a commentary upon the Law. It was produced later than the 2nd century, and perhaps as late as the sixth century.

    You said:

    If the scriptures were altogether perspicuous, there would have been no point in a Talmud, and no need for judges, prophets, and those “sitting in the seat of Moses.” Moreover, Jesus’ way of interpreting the Scriptures never did seem plausible to most Jewish scholars in the first century. Are you prepared to deny that they were either unlearned or willfully irrational? If you are, then you’re logically committed to denying that the Scriptures were perspicuous enough to enable them to see the culmination of divine revelation.

    Let me ask you the question: do you stand with “most Jewish scholars in the first century” in thinking that “Jesus’ ways of interpreting the Scriptures” were not plausible?

    The Mishnah and the Talmud, in Jesus’s day, had not yet been written down. These were largely the repetition (“repeaters”) of legal decisions and also the exposition of Scripture. Jesus’s comment upon this system of “tradition” (before it had been written down) was: “for the sake of your tradition you have made void the word of God”.

  310. I’m continuing to address Michael Liccione #294:

    Not only did the Jews themselves have oral traditions that predated the writing of the OT and contributed to it; they developed other such traditions that helped to interpret their scriptures (ever hear of the Talmud?).

    You mentioned, with some derision, “your latest scholarly enthusiasm”, and then you asked me, “ever hear of the Talmud?” So I feel quite justified in demonstrating for you some of my other “scholarly enthusiasms”, some of which you would do well to pay attention to, and also, to let you (and other readers here) know what I know on the subject of “Talmud”, “oral tradition”, and how these related, specifically, in early church history.

    In two previous comments, I’ve gone to some length describing (a) how Jewish “oral tradition” worked, (b) what the different kinds of Jewish oral tradition were (Mishnah, the Halakah, midrash, the Gemara, etc.), (c) what Jesus thought about Jewish “oral tradition”, and (d) the fact that the various forms of Jewish “oral tradition” was actually written down at some point.

    The notion is that in the earliest church, there was a parallel situation. For example, there was not simply “oral tradition”; this was comprised in part of “apostolic tradition” and, for the sake of simplicity, “non-apostolic traditions”.

    Oscar Cullmann is very careful to articulate this difference.

    Regarding the first, he notes that Paul writes in various places, especially 1 Corinthians 11:23, “I received (the tradition) from the Lord” (“ἀπὸ τοῦ κυρίου”). This means, he says, “I received it through a chain of tradition which begins with the Lord”. 1 Cor 15:3 and 1 Thess 2:15, for example, also describe a part of this “apostolic tradition” which is “from the Lord”.

    Why “from Kyrios”? Why not “from the Church”?

    This passage is usually, but wrongly, treated in isolation, and has given rise to two different interpretations. The one maintains that the passage is not concerned with tradition in the usual Jewish sense, which would necessitate the presupposition of a chain of successive human intermediaries, from whom Paul received the account, but that is a question of a direct, immediate revelation from the Lord. This came to Paul in a vision, just as in Galatians 1.12 he asserts that he has not received the Gospel from men, but by a direct revelation, an apokalypsis–an obvious reference to Christ’s appearing on the road to Damascus (60).

    Cullmann himself takes a second view: that Paul does have in mind “tradition in the usual Jewish sense”, but with a whole new content. Not the “halakic” content, but instead, a new tradition “from the Lord”.

    I shall show that, seen in this perspective, the designation Kyrios (1 Cor 11:23) can be understood as not only pointing o the historical Jesus as the chronological beginning and the first link of the chain of tradition, but to the exalted Lord as the real author of the whole tradition developing itself within the apostolic church (62).

    This, according to Cullmann, “best explains St. Paul’s direct identification of the apostolic paradosis with Kyrios: the Lord himself is at work in the transmission of his words and deeds by the church; he works through the church” 62).

    Cullmann is very careful at this point to outline the rest of his argument:

    The course of our argument in this chapter will now be as follows. In the first section we shall undertake to show that for Paul the paradosis, in so far as it refers to the confession of faith and to the words and deeds of Jesus, is really Church tradition which has a parallel in the Jewish paradosis. [Cullmann notes here in a footnote that “this point seems important because J. Danlielou (his Roman Catholic interlocutor) is inclined to reserve the word ‘tradition’ for the post-apostolic tradition, and to call the apostolic tradition “from the Lord” [spoken of here] as ‘revelation’. While justifiable to a certain extent in principle, this use of the words seems to me to lack precision. The objective “revelation” is the person and work of the incarnate Christ”.]In the second section we shall bring out the relation of this tradition to the direct apokalypsis of the Lord to the apostles. In the third section we shall examine this conception of paradosis against the background of Pauline theology and see if it is paralleled in Johannine thought. Finally, in the fourth section, we shall discuss the relation between this tradition and the apostolic office (62-63).

    Some of this should not be in question for either side: Jesus rejected Jewish tradition; Christ himself (“the exalted Lord”) is the real author of the whole tradition developing itself within the apostolic church. This concept of “tradition” is “attested in the rest of the New Testament”. After an analysis of John 14:26 and 16:13 he suggests is precisely concerned with “the relation between the historical Jesus and the risen Lord … “The Holy Spirit, whom the Father will send in my name, he will teach you [men in front of me] all things, and bring to your remembrance all that I said to you” (that is, you men who are sitting here in front of me: apostles whom I have chosen and whom I will send). (71).

    Crucial, however is “the relation between this tradition and the apostolic office”. This promise (and I’ve heard “infallibility” defended based on John 16:13) was not made to “the Church” which came after the Apostles.

    Christ himself distinguished “these men sitting in front of me” both here (“all that I said to YOU”), and in John 17:20 (“I do not ask for these only, but also for those who will believe in me through their word…”

    Without getting too long here, there was an “apostolic tradition”, the content of which was “from the Lord”.

    Fourthly, he discusses “the relation between this (apostolic) tradition (“from the Lord”) and the apostolic office”.

    For those who are squeamish about challenges to “the Catholic paradigm”, feel free to tune out here.

    Yes, there was “apostolic” tradition (“from the Lord”). But, there was also a non-apostolic tradition – in the words of Cullmann, “ecclesiastical” traditions. Here, he asks, “Does this favorable estimate of the apostolic paradosis justify the attribution of the same normative import to later ecclesiastical paradosis? The Catholic Church claims that it does; and this is because it identifies the authority of the post-apostolic Church which preserves, transmits and interprets the apostolic message with the authority of the apostles”. He cites his interlocutor, above, J. Danielou, as saying “In this transmission and interpretation of the message, the Church enjoys a divine, infallible authority as did the apostles as recipients of Revelation”. (Of course, note that he wrote this prior to the time when Dei Verbum was written).

    But is this identification justified? In order to answer this question we must inquire into the relation of the apostolic office to the Church.

    The problem of the relationship between scripture and tradition can be viewed as a problem of the theological relationship between the apostolic period and the period of the Church. All the other questions depend on the solution that is given to this problem. The alternatives—co-ordination or subordination of tradition to scripture—derive from the question of knowing how we must understand the fact that the period of the Church is the continuation and un-folding of the apostolic period.

    Here he acknowledges that (as a Lutheran) he takes a very “Catholic” view of Church and sacraments. “In fact, I would affirm very strongly that the history of salvation is continued on earth (through the Church). I believe that this idea is present throughout the New Testament, and I should even consider it the key to the understanding of the fourth Gospel”. (He later wrote a work entitled “Salvation History”).

    Nevertheless, he says,

    The time within which the history of salvation is unfolded includes the past, the present, and the future. But it has a centre which serves as a vantage-point or norm for the whole extent of this history, and this centre is constituted by what we call the period of direct revelation, or the period of the incarnation. It comprises the years from the birth of Christ to the death of the last apostle, that is, of the last eye-witness who saw the risen Jesus and who received, either from the incarnate Jesus or the risen Christ, the direct and unique command to testify to what he had seen and heard. This testimony can be oral or written (76).

    Richard Bauckham, in his “Jesus and the Eyewitnesses: The Gospels as Eyewitness Testimony” (Grand Rapids, MI and Cambridge, UK: Wm B Eerdmans Publishing Co, ©2006) confirms this account at great length.

    Bauckham concludes, “In this book, I have followed Samuel Byrskog in arguing that the Gospels, though in some ways a very distinctive form of historiography, share broadly in the attitude to eyewitness testimony that was common among historians in the Greco-Roman period. These historians valued above all reports of first-hand experience of the events they recounted. Best of all was for the historian to himself have been a participant in the events (direct autopsy). Failing that (and no historian was present at all the events he needed to recount, not least because usually some would be simultaneous, they sought informants who could speak from firsthand knowledge and whom they could interview (indirect autopsy). This, at least, was historiographic best practice, represented and theorized by such generally admired historians as Thucydides and Polybius (479).

    Thus, as a cut-off point, the concept of “history still within living memory” “was the only point of history that should, properly speaking be attempted” (479).

    The value of getting history from “participant eyewitness testimony” was thus a key in the production, especially, of the Gospels.

    He uses “the Holocaust”, and the eyewitness testimony of the survivors,to say, “the testimonies of the survivors of the Holocaust are in the highest degree necessary to any attempt to understand what happened. The Holocaust is an event whose reality we could scarcely begin to imagine if we had not the testimonies of survivors”.

    “Authentic testimony from participants is completely indispensable to acquiring real understanding of historical events” (499). And, “the exceptionality of the event means that only the testimony of participant witnesses can give us anything approaching access to the truth of the event” (501).

    This is why Cullmann is (and others are) able to “cut off” the period of “revelation” at the death of the last of the apostles.

    Papias knew this. He said that he preferred oral testimony. But in describing some very bad “oral traditions” that Papias was relating, Cullman wrote, “Above all there is the obscene and completely legendary account [in Papias’s oral tradition] of death of Judas Iscariot himself.”

    The period about 150 is, on the one hand, relatively near to the apostolic age, but on the other hand, it is already too far away for the living tradition still to offer in itself the least guarantee of authenticity. The oral traditions which Papias echoes arose in the Church and were transmitted by it. For outside the Church no one had any interest in describing in such crude colours the death of the traitor. Papias was therefore deluding himself when he considered viva vox as more valuable than the written books. The oral tradition had a normative value in the period of the apostles, who were eye-witnesses, but it had it no longer in 150 after passing mouth to mouth (Cullmann, 88-89).

    This is why, after this period, the only “apostolic tradition” that existed was that which was written down. This is Kruger’s “canonical core” – written documents which reliably carried the “apostolic witness”, the “apostolic tradition” which came “from the Lord”. “Oral tradition” was not sufficient to guarantee it.

    Even the Jews, in writing down “the Talmud” (and other sources prior to it), knew that “oral tradition” that “repeating”, was not sufficient to guarantee that the correct message was being “handed on”. It had to be written down, and only written sources from the Apostles and their immediate representatives (i.e., Luke, Mark) could accurately recount that message.

    By that point, the value of “oral tradition” had ceased.

    It was not about “authority”. It was about “the validity of the testimony about the life, death, and resurrection of Jesus Christ”.

  311. John,

    I confess that much of the recent back and forth between you and Michael goes a bit over my head. I understand the need for academic precision and nuance, but I suspect that many Protestant lurkers such as myself have trouble keeping up. I do appreciate your thorough contributions. I think that one of my chief difficulties with the Protestant IP is its apparent inability to objectively distinguish between orthodoxy and heresy, and to even define schism. If we all gather around the Word to hear it read, but we disagree on what it means, does anyone have the authority to judge which meanings are true and which are false? For example, I just don’t see how anyone can read the Bible and the early writings of the Church and come away with any conclusion other than that our salvation is in some way dependent on our works of love. It seems to me that Luther just got that one wrong. And on issues of human sexuality and abortion Protestants are all over the place, with no obvious means of judging the orthodox position on these issues. I need a simple explanation of how the Protestant IP can lead to objective orthodoxy in these and other cases, or a simple explanation of why I am asking too much (or just misunderstand the issues at hand).

    Thanks,

    Burton

  312. Hi Burton, I understand the care you are taking to think this through. I was a cradle Catholic from a fairly devout family — I cared about it — I heard the Protestant “gospel” as a teen; left the RCC, but came back in my early 20’s. But by my late 30’s (just after the two ECT’s), after looking thoroughly, I decided I could not any longer remain a Roman Catholic. Couple of quick comments on your comments:

    I understand the need for academic precision and nuance, but I suspect that many Protestant lurkers such as myself have trouble keeping up. I do appreciate your thorough contributions.

    Christian history is 2000 years long — Biblical history much longer than that. There’s truly a lot to have to comprehend. I have used history as a kind of “framework”, upon which I can hang other things, like different doctrines from similar time periods. That much helps me at least to keep everything straight. A book like Gregg Alison’s “Historical Theology” traces the individual doctrines across time (in a fairly non-detailed way.

    I think that one of my chief difficulties with the Protestant IP is its apparent inability to objectively distinguish between orthodoxy and heresy, and to even define schism. If we all gather around the Word to hear it read, but we disagree on what it means, does anyone have the authority to judge which meanings are true and which are false?

    If we all gather around the Word and hear it read, is the thing we all come away with going to be hugely different? Especially if we’re all interested in hearing and understanding what’s said. I understand a need for precision, but as Calvin noted, God accommodates our weaknesses in Scripture. There is a very real reason why the form of communication in the Pentateuch, for example (the culture, etc) seems so different to us. God was speaking to a different culture, at a different time, and accommodating His message to the specific needs of a group of people in the Ancient Near East. You don’t have to have “authority” to “judge”. God has all the authority. True, some know more than others; some are better teachers than others. But there’s so much of God’s word which requires no “judgment”.

    For example, I just don’t see how anyone can read the Bible and the early writings of the Church and come away with any conclusion other than that our salvation is in some way dependent on our works of love. It seems to me that Luther just got that one wrong.

    I’ve done some studies (some of which are mentioned here) to the effect that the Apostolic fathers, for instance, got many things wrong (note what I said about Papias and Clement just in this thread). Irenaeus and Tertullian were better theologians, because they had more of Scripture readily available to them (Kruger’s “canonical core”). The 4th and 5th century theologians were better still. Hilary of Poitiers and Ambrosiaster (who wrote a commentary on Romans) made some very Protestant-like statements on Justification. Chrysostom and Augustine were better still (while being hindered by their “ecclesiology”). Things got muddy during the middle ages, but Luther was really the first person who totally relied on Scripture, and he was the first person to get it right.

    And on issues of human sexuality and abortion Protestants are all over the place, with no obvious means of judging the orthodox position on these issues.

    I need a simple explanation of how the Protestant IP can lead to objective orthodoxy in these and other cases, or a simple explanation of why I am asking too much (or just misunderstand the issues at hand).

    Consider that God trusts you, and he doesn’t require that you come to a systematic theology that’s “infallibly correct” in every jot or tittle. Consider that God didn’t require such a thing from Israel. Consider that the “early church” may not have been Protestant denominationally, but they certainly were not unified geographically (with many differences from location to location). (Consider Cyril vs Nestorius; consider filioque vs non-filioque. Consider that most conservative Protestants aren’t that far apart on their core doctrines; (at that link, see too how Protestant doctrines compare with the Roman Catholic notion of “the deposit of faith”). Consider that “unity” is God’s job, not ours.

  313. John,

    Please forgive my obtuseness, but I didn’t see an answer to my question in your response. Specifically, on what basis does the Protestant paradigm (Sola Scriptura) objectively distinguish heresy from orthodoxy, and how does it define schism versus unity? My sense from your answer is that if we really want to hear what the Bible has to say, we be able to recognize orthodoxy for ourselves (each individual). How can I trust your assessment of which church fathers got it right, especially if I disagree with you?

    Unity, it seems from your answer and the link, is not something that we should expect prior to Christ’s return, so schism has no real meaning until then? Am I understanding you correctly?

    Burton

  314. John Bugay –

    If you believe this…

    Consider that God trusts you, and he doesn’t require that you come to a systematic theology that’s “infallibly correct” in every jot or tittle. Consider that God didn’t require such a thing from Israel. Consider that the “early church” may not have been Protestant denominationally, but they certainly were not unified geographically (with many differences from location to location). (Consider Cyril vs Nestorius; consider filioque vs non-filioque. Consider that most conservative Protestants aren’t that far apart on their core doctrines; (at that link, see too how Protestant doctrines compare with the Roman Catholic notion of “the deposit of faith”). Consider that “unity” is God’s job, not ours.

    … then why are you here?

    If God doesn’t care if we are systematically correct, and if God doesn’t care that our differences matter, and if it is God’s job to maintain unity and not yours, than why have you been posting on these things here and elsewhere on the internet? Surely you must believe we are either in heresy or schism and that this matters.. How do you make this determination?

  315. Burton (313), I appreciate your question. You asked:

    Specifically, on what basis does the Protestant paradigm (Sola Scriptura) objectively distinguish heresy from orthodoxy, and how does it define schism versus unity?

    I’m not going to answer it again, but again, in the spirit of Michael Liccione’s search for paradigms, I’ll give you some insight into how I answer it myself. As Sherlock Holmes has famously said, and “Young Spock” famously quoted him, “How often have I said to you that when you have eliminated the impossible whatever remains, HOWEVER IMPROBABLE, must be the truth?”

    Quoting Steve Hays:

    sola scriptura doesn’t exist in a vacuum. It functions in conjunction with a doctrine of God’s special providence. It is God’s will that his people believe certain things. So, in practice, everything we believe isn’t revisable. Providence introduces a principle of stability into doctrine.

    Now, we don’t know in advance what might be revisable. And each up-and-coming Christian generation must personally appropriate the Christian faith. Everything is subject to reexamination, but that doesn’t mean everything is actually revisable–for reexamination can (and often does) confirm or refine preexisting doctrine.

    With that in mind, I produced (above) Steve’s short answer on how we effect this re-examination:

    Steve Hays has noted, “As a practical matter, no one has explored every nook and cranny [of theology and history]. Rather, everyone hires a guide to scout out the territory and show him the shortcuts…. In that event, you check out the guide rather than the trail to make sure he’s not going to lead you astray”.

    Of this quote, Bryan said (#303):

    I do agree with the quotation you cite from Hays. No one has investigated every theological and historical nook and cranny. We all rely on guides, to various degrees, and in various areas. There are certain guides you trust more than others, and the same is true for me, that I trust certain guides more than others. But, I think it is safe to assume that we do not trust all the same guides, at least not to the same degree. And when that is the case, how do we resolve our disagreement? Here’s what won’t work. You appeal to your authorities, and I appeal to mine. At that point, we would be at a stalemate, precisely because you don’t accept my authorities, and I don’t accept yours. It would be question begging, at that point, if we each kept simply appealing to our respective authority. So, in such a situation, we must step back and either (a) examine the respective positions, and the evidence and argumentation for each, and/or (b) examine the respective evidence and argumentation for the reliability and authority of the guides to which we are appealing, if we are to make progress toward unity in the truth (i.e. agreement concerning the truth).

    If you are looking for “ultimate authority”, let me ask you, how are you progressing on the “filioque / no-filioque” question? For centuries, that question has not been solved, all the while using the “here’s what won’t work” process that Bryan outlined in the bolded section above.

    Based on the experiences of the two “one true churches” over the centuries, I decided some time ago at least not to take uncritically everything that they say at face value. In fact, over time, this is where I have come to see the Holmsian “impossibility” and ruled it out. The Roman Catholic Church posits that you must accept, or reject their authority in toto. You can’t just accept the doctrines you’ll accept, and reject the ones you don’t like. It’s all or nothing. So I have rejected it in toto.

    Bryan said something a bit different here:

    From a Catholic point of view, we never assume as part of our theological methodology that a prima facie contradiction within the Tradition is an actual contradiction. Out of humility toward the Tradition, we instead assume as a working hypothesis that the appearance of a contradiction is due to our own ignorance or misunderstanding. So from a Catholic point of view, if we have at hand an explanation that integrates the apparently conflicting pieces of evidence, we already have a good reason to accept it rather than conclude that there is an actual contradiction.

    I will admit up front, I am a bit less sanguine about this process than Bryan is. I wrote yesterday about the start of my process – looking first at the Marian doctrines (themselves seemingly just “appeals to authority”, not in any way based on historical truth or facts. And I continued along that path).

    My optimism lies rather within the locus of the following: (a) God exists, and he has a plan; (b) God, being God, has a tremendous ability to communicate with us, and (c) God, being God, also created our ability to receive what God communicates to us. After all, God is God. God speaks “and there was light”, “and there was light. He said, “Let there be an expanse … and it was so”. Things like that. It’s tremendously personal, maybe you’ve experienced it. (And then again, maybe not … not everyone hears from God in this way. You are right to be skeptical that I and others have, and also, it is fair to ask, why are there many others who haven’t?)

    But I’m going to give you another reason not to be skeptical, but hopeful. And it is the fact that the Bible is, in spite of all the rampant skepticism, becoming more and more verified and verifiable in its accounting of history. Ancient Egyptian chariots are found under the Red Sea. There is more archaeological evidence than ever for King David and what the Biblical accounts say about him. And Darrell Bock, a New Testament scholar from Dallas Theological Seminary, notes in his 2007 Commentary on Acts notes, “(1) classical historians respect Luke as a historian as they use him (Nobbs 2006) and that (2) a careful look at the details of Acts shows that, where we can check him, Luke is a credible historian” (pg 6).

    What does this mean? As Bock also says, one should not read Acts “and rule the role of its key player (God) out of bounds before Luke starts to string together the events and their circumstances in ways that point to God’s or Jesus’s presence and action … “ “This also shows the crucial importance of doing careful work in backgrounds, especially Jewish and Greco-Roman sources. More NT scholars” are benefitting than ever before – and we are benefitting from their labors –at being “equipped in Second Temple Jewish study and classical literature”.

    There was a time when “critical scholarship” was (rightly) criticized for being too critical. But what we are seeing is something we would not expect to see: Critical scholarship is confirming, not debunking, the life, death and resurrection of Christ, and the missions of the Apostles to spread that message.

    On the other hand, what Critical scholarship is debunking is the historical story that Roman Catholicism had been telling about itself for centuries. I grew up Roman Catholic, and I grew up believing that Peter was the first pope, that there was a second pope, and a third pope, all with the same jurisdictional authority down through time. Recently, I’ve done two studies on this historical topic, one with the moniker House Churches in Ancient Rome and The Nonexistent Early Papacy, and neither of them supports the historical account I learned growing up, not by a long stretch.

    One line that I’ve seen Bryan write a lot is that this fact or that fact “is not inconsistent with Roman Catholic doctrine” (and all roads seem to lead to Rome, that is, to the seat of Roman Catholic authority). However, when you add up all the facts (and yes, they can be and have been checked against one another), the prevailing Roman Catholic history about its own authority has come up sorely lacking.

    I’ll go you one further. Growing up, I never heard about “the college of apostles, with Peter as its head”. I never heard about (what you hear about all the time today, and that is, a “Petrine ministry”). I’m far more willing to believe that, given some of the things I’ve been writing about, Ut Unum Sint was more a concession to the historical pressures (the discrepancy between Vatican I on the papacy and the historical research of the next century) than it was an overture to ecumenism.

    I’m more willing to concede that where there is “consistency” with Roman Catholic doctrine about “the Church” and the actual facts, it is because those who “after the fact” have crafted Roman Catholic doctrine, have been fortunate enough to have the benefits of time and hindsight in crafting their message. More than anything, they had the opportunity to tie up loose ends.

    In the end, “truth” has more authority than anything. “What’s true” is normative. “The truth shall set you free”. This truth, however, more than ever, speaks of the genuine truthfulness of both the nation of Israel of the Old Testament, and the life, death, and resurrection of Jesus Christ within the context of the world as articulated and understood by the Old Testament scriptures. As Bock said, “we must read Acts open to such a balanced view of its historical approach – in terms of its poetry, history, and cultural setting – as well as to the option of divine activity”.

    It’s that “divine activity” that’s the key to everything. Is God real? And is he really working in the pages of Scripture? If so, he will really work with you on that as well.

  316. Fr Bryan (314):

    why are you here?

    If God doesn’t care if we are systematically correct, and if God doesn’t care that our differences matter, and if it is God’s job to maintain unity and not yours, than why have you been posting on these things here and elsewhere on the internet? Surely you must believe we are either in heresy or schism and that this matters.. How do you make this determination?

    There are other categories beside “heresy or schism” and if you looked at my comment above to Burton, I believe that the most important category is “what’s true”. Not “what’s true” in the sense that “after further review”, the Roman Catholic Church can come up with a version of its own doctrine that is “not inconsistent” with history. My overriding interest is to understand the broad sweep of what God is actually doing in history – Old Testament and New Testament (and of course, in Church History as well).

    Your statement “If God doesn’t care if we are systematically correct” is actually a bit of a mischaracterization of what I said. While I don’t believe He requires that the individual comes to a systematic theology that’s “infallibly correct”, that’s not to say that there aren’t better or worse theologies, or that we ought not to strive for what’s better. We do need to approach Him in faith, and that does require a substantially correct understanding of who He is and what He has done for us. What I would say to Burton is that even though he has been exploring this for years, God is not pressuring him.

    Why have I been posting? Because, while I do have an overriding interest to understand what God is doing in history, I’m convinced that the Roman Catholic “development of” and “accounting of” its own “authority” (specifically the papacy, but other components of it as well) is one of the greatest and most harmful hoaxes in history, and I’m interested in doing what I can do to propagate the truth about such things.

    Not that I rely on my own accounting of things. No, I’m tying together threads from historical and theological research. My story very closely approximates Calvin’s account of things in his Institutes, and it incorporates (as others have noted) other “scholarly enthusiasms” that I’ve picked up over the years. The names of the scholars I appreciate include Oscar Cullmann, T.F. Torrance, Peter Lampe, Eamon Duffy, Raymond Brown, John Meier, Larry Hurtado, Thomas Schreiner, G.K. Beale, R.T. France, John Nolland, Douglas Moo, D.A. Carson, Michael Horton, Carl Trueman, R.Scott Clark, John Frame, James Anderson, Michael J. Kruger, and yes, there are many others. Not all of these individuals specifically address Roman Catholicism, but some of them do, and where they do, there is a remarkably consistent story. If you’ve been following this thread, you’ve seen hints of it.

    Now, to call Roman Catholicism a “hoax” is not to say that all Roman Catholics are going to hell. We have a way of saying this in our circles, and it is: “they’ll get to heaven in spite of their Roman Catholicism, not because of it”.

    Regarding the “hoax” factor again, and why I am specifically “here”, I knew Jason Stellman several years ago, and I knew what Bryan was writing about before this site came up. I think Bryan is tremendously gifted, and I know a bit about his background, and not only do I believe he is deceived by the hoax, but that he himself is propagating it. I know too that I myself have “come home to Rome” in the past, and that further down the line, people who at first embrace Rome, do cycle out of it, too.

    In terms of “unity”, I think as more study on Scripture and church history becomes generally available, more people will come to a “unity in the truth” such as that embraced by, say James White the Reformed Baptist and Turretinfan, the staunch Presbyterian and even by the Embryo Parson, a Traditional Anglican (who started his journey as Reformed, spent 13 years in Eastern Orthodoxy and now has returned to Traditional Anglicanism), than there is, say, between even two staunch conservative Roman Catholics of the type that James Swan writes about in his series “Blueprint for Anarchy”.

  317. John Bugay.

    Again, I don’t have much time to answer everything but I do want to remind you that you have been making your historical appeals and scholarship appeals for years and we’ve answered many or all of them in various places as have others.

    You said, about the church fathers:

    I’ve done some studies (some of which are mentioned here) to the effect that the Apostolic fathers, for instance, got many things wrong (note what I said about Papias and Clement just in this thread). Irenaeus and Tertullian were better theologians, because they had more of Scripture readily available to them (Kruger’s “canonical core”). The 4th and 5th century theologians were better still. Hilary of Poitiers and Ambrosiaster (who wrote a commentary on Romans) made some very Protestant-like statements on Justification. Chrysostom and Augustine were better still (while being hindered by their “ecclesiology”). Things got muddy during the middle ages, but Luther was really the first person who totally relied on Scripture, and he was the first person to get it right.

    What you are saying is that church fathers are ‘muddy’ or ‘wrong’ where they disagree with your theology and ‘better’ or ‘close’ or ‘good’ when they agree with your theology. Its that simple. In my opinion your approach to the fathers is the same way you approach modern scholarship of the early church. You latch onto anything that you feel contradicts the claims of the Catholic Church but scholars who don’t follow those conclusions are ‘wrong’ and ‘muddy.’ Similarly when the same scholars you rely upon end up on the opposite sides of issues that you hold, you reserve the right to disagree with those scholars and say they are wrong.

    It’s worth repeating that for all the bluster of the scholarship you present you are still unable to answer the challenge:

    Can you name one piece of historical evidence that meets these two conditions:

    (1) it shows that there was no monarchical bishop in Rome until the second half of the second century, and;

    (2) it is stronger evidence than is the list of St. Irenaeus (Against Heresies III.3.3)

    (Please show why it is stronger evidence than is St. Irenaeus’ list.)

    That we presented here.

  318. John Bugay –

    I hear you, and I want you to know that I have appreciated your contributions to the discussion here. Your love of truth is admirable, and I wish other Christians took these discussions as seriously as you do.

    If I understand your last paragraph correctly, you believe that God intended for unity in his Church to increase through time the more people study history and scripture. Certainly these are important things to study (as is philosophy) and truly proper study of them can help us towards unity, but I just don’t see evidence that it has worked as a defining principle. Sola Scriptura has proven itself to be completely incapable of maintaining unity and I assert that Christianity has become more fragmented – not less fragmented – as the acceptance of Sola Scriptura has spread. It seems like the thing that drives unity in the Sola Scriptura world is not the truth found after widespread study of scripture, but charismatic pastors and music.

    But that is beside the point. The greatest reason I find Protestantism to be unworkable is what it would mean if God intended Christianity to be built on Sola Scriptura (I’ve made this point in other threads and its gone largely ignored, which might mean that its difficult to answer or so stupid that people don’t want to waste their time with it. If its the latter, please let me know so I can stop sounding like a fool). If God intended doctrinal disputes to be resolved by scripture alone then, it seems to me, as though every Christian ultimately needs to be a scripture scholar in order to locate orthodox doctrine. If not, they are more likely to be deceived by something such as a really good (but false) teacher or an awesome (pseudo) Christian Rock Band.Here is a good blog post that drives home the point of what I mean, written by a a guy who is discerning a move to Catholicism after years as a baptist.

    In other words, to me it seems that if God intended our doctrinal disputes to be resolved by the scripture alone then he designed a rather chaotic, confusing system and very cumbersome system in which most of the Christian world at any given time is in serious error and the only way for us to not be deceived is to become experts in Greek, Hebrew, and a variety of other disciplines. Seeing as how most of the world lives in poverty, this system would inherently favor the rich despite the fact that Jesus came to bring glad tidings to the poor.

    If the Catholic Church is the Church he established then there is something different at work. Christ established a Church that cannot err in doctrine, so in order to lead souls away from truth and unity with Christ and each other, the devil created some counterfeits and some very good ones at that. He can’t corrupt the truth, but he can make it more difficult for us to find.

    The main difference, for me, between the Catholic and Protestant paradigms is not that there is different degrees of confusion. Rather, it is that in the Protestant paradigm God is responsible for the confusion whereas in the Catholic paradigm Satan and individual human sins like pride are responsible for the confusion.

  319. John,

    #312 “If we all gather around the Word and hear it read, is the thing we all come away with going to be hugely different? Especially if we’re all interested in hearing and understanding what’s said.”

    Certainly, in order for this statement to have any significant meaning, one has to redefine what huge differences mean. It seems that the Lutheran conception of the Sacraments, most especially Baptism, is hugely different from the Reformed. What of those Christian groups that believe that it is possible to lose salvation and those Christian groups that hold that you can’t lose salvation?

  320. John,

    As best as I can tell from your long answer, there is no objective principled means of defining orthodoxy or schism using the Protestant IP. That’s cool. Maybe God did intend for us individually to come to the Truth by His Spirit, such that any who find the Truth simply know it in their hearts. While this stance does not seem to be rationally defensible, it may nonetheless be true. If it can be conclusively shown or even with reasonable certainty shown that the RCC claims are invalid, then that is what I am left with . I do think it would be helpful and more intellectually honest for you to straightforwardly acknowledge that it is not possible as a Protestant to define schism and that orthodoxy cannot be defined in any way so as to bind the conscience of other Christians (or anyone who believes that they are a Christian). In other words, as a Protestant, it orthodoxy is whatever I deem it to be so long as I read the Bible with a heart open to the leading of the Holy Spirit.

    I did read the link to your article over at Beggars All. Thanks for that. When I have more time I would like to ask you some questions about it.

    Burton

  321. John.

    Really quick, I noticed you said this on Triablogue:

    By the way, this post and my previous post were both submitted as comments over there, and both seem to have been published. I’m really amazed at how much of what I’ve had to say has been let through.

    Don’t be amazed that we let comments through. Honestly, very little does not get approved. In that rare instance of a comment not getting approved the reason would be a blatent violation of the posting guidelines. Other than that, its fair game. We like good discussion and even tough questions. Spread the word.

  322. Sean – (317), you said:

    What you are saying is that church fathers are ‘muddy’ or ‘wrong’ where they disagree with your theology and ‘better’ or ‘close’ or ‘good’ when they agree with your theology. Its that simple.

    No it’s not. The studies I’ve followed and reported on are done by leading, respected theologians. They are very clear about what they say. T.F. Torrance did a significant study on the use of the word “grace” in the Apostolic Fathers, for example. He was not a schlock. And his study was a thorough one. He compared the various uses of the word charis, used (a) in Greek culture, (b) as a translation of the Old Testament concept of hesed (God’s “lovingkindness”, and (c) in the New Testament. Here is Torrance’s assessment of Clement:

    Clement definitely thinks of charis as referring to a gift of God without which the Christian would not be able to attain to love or salvation. But there is little doubt that this is held along with the idea of merit before God; for grace is given to those who perform the commandments of God, and who are worthy. He may use the language of election and justification, but the essentially Greek idea of the unqualified freedom of choice is a natural axiom in his thoughts, and entails a doctrine of “works” as Paul would have said. In all His dealings with men, God is regarded as merciful; but the ground for the Salvation He gives is double: faith and … [ellipses in original].

    Clement “thinks of God’s mercy as directed only toward the pious” (55)

    That concept of being rewarded for being worthy before God is not a concept Paul used; later writers would call that “Pelagian”. But here is “Pope” Clement, a Pelagian before Pelagius. But it wasn’t just Clement whom Torrance analyzed. He analyzed all the writers who wrote during this period, and there was widespread evidence of this phenomenon.

    Cullmann agreed with this assessment, and expanded upon it.

    Both of these men, especially, are widely regarded by both Protestants and Catholics (Barth had joked that Cullmann, who was one of the few Protestant theologians selected to be an observer at Vatican II, was “an advisor to three popes”), and it is far, far more likely that they “tell it like it is” than that they were writing to support my supposed prejudices. It is unfortunate that their work didn’t get a wider hearing, but the events of Vatican II overshadowed the writings of theologians.

    * * *

    You said:

    It’s worth repeating that for all the bluster of the scholarship you present you are still unable to answer the challenge:

    Can you name one piece of historical evidence that meets these two conditions:

    (1) it shows that there was no monarchical bishop in Rome until the second half of the second century, and;

    (2) it is stronger evidence than is the list of St. Irenaeus (Against Heresies III.3.3)

    (Please show why it is stronger evidence than is St. Irenaeus’ list.)

    Your challenge, too, is a silly one. Consider the process by which history is written. It’s not about a piece of evidence or two that meets some arbitrary conditions, and therefore it overshadows a whole body of research. It’s about the weight of research supporting and building a broad understanding of what was happening in that day. And the account that is being written not by one man, but by a whole body of thought, which is now the prevailing understanding. It’s simply not the case that one piece of evidence gets to trump a whole body of work.

    Just as an example of all of this, you must have read Eusebius. Eusebius writes at some length about a pair of letters — one from Abgar (a historical Syriac ruler of the kingdom of Osroene, located at Edessa) to Jesus, the other from Jesus to Abgar.

    Two things are evident:

    1. Eusebius is so completely convinced of the reliable historicity of these letters that he cites them verbatim as history.

    2. The letters are so obviously not authentic that Schaff calls them “a worthless fabrication” and even the 1912 Catholic encyclopedia dismisses them as having no historical value and the “authenticity” “disproved”; these are “legends” with dates established centuries after Christ.

    Now, wasn’t Eusebius, one of the earliest historians of Christianity, a confidante of that emperor-convert Constantine, worthy of being believed in this case? In many cases, he is our best source, And yet, this very reliable early testimony is completely discounted via critical means.

    So critical methods must be employed, even in assessing such an early and generally (but not totally) reliable source as Eusebius.

    We have gone round and round about the value of Irenaeus as a historian

    First off, his value as a historian is diminished by his statement that the church at Rome was “founded and established by Peter and Paul”. This statement looks impressive but it cuts two ways: (a) he is clearly wrong about Paul, who neither founded nor set up the church at Rome. The only chance that Peter would have had to visit Rome would have been the vague mention in Acts 12:17, when he “went to another place”. But in that case, if (as in another Eusebian “whopper”), the “other place” had been Rome, then he would have had to travel, in that world, from Jerusalem to Rome and back for the Jerusalem council in just the space of a few years. That is highly unlikely, given that he was documented to be in other places during those years. Barrett posits an “itinerant ministry”. Marshall, who wrote a commentary on Acts, suggests that accounts that put Peter in Rome during that time are “highly fanciful”.

    Aside from that, the whole purpose of the 2nd half of Acts was to talk about how Paul got to Rome. Do you think that if Peter had gotten there first, that it would have been far more important to Luke to note that Peter was there? Yet Paul’s arrival there was the entire focus of the book.

    Look at Romans 16:7. What is being said here?

    Greet Andronicus and Junia, my fellow Jews who have been in prison with me. They are outstanding among the apostles, and they were in Christ before I was.

    In fact, it is very likely that someone like Andronicus and Junia (Rom 16:7) “in Christ before me”, had traveled from Jerusalem to Rome shortly after Pentecost and established one of many house churches there. That Paul mentions that they were “apostles”, but more, they were “outstanding among the apostles”, and also, they were “in Christ before me”. That latter phrase opens a space of about a year before the conversion of Paul, and as “apostles”, it is quite likely that Andronicus was the first (or, at the very least, an early)“bishop” of a Roman church. Thus, contra Irenaeus, it is far more likely that Andronicus and Junia “founded and established” a church at Rome.

    Second, even if it Irenaeus’s list does have the names of presbyters from Roman history, its “neatness” betrays the tumult of that era in that city. The Shepherd of Hermas, for example, speaks of “the elders (presbuteroi) who preside (proistamenoi – plural leadership) over the church.” (all at the same time – Vis 2.4). This is a primary source document from within the city of Rome that provides support for all of the “scholarship” that you decry, the “snippets” which speak of a “gap” in the “unbroken succession within the first century of the church”. But this is not all there is. Later, Hermas reiterates the structure of this leadership, and the fact that they are not leading, but rather that they fight among themselves. He calls them “children”.

    Now, therefore, I say to you [tois – plural] who lead the church and occupy the seats of honor: do not be like the sorcerers. For the sorcerers carry their drugs in bottles, but you carry your drug and poison in your heart. You are calloused and do not want to cleanse your hearts and to mix your wisdom together in a clean heart, in order that you may have mercy from the great King. Watch out, therefore, children, lest these divisions of yours [among you elders] deprive you of your life. How is it that you desire to instruct God’s elect, while you yourselves have no instruction? Instruct one another, therefore, and have peace among yourselves, in order that I too may stand joyfully before the Father and give an account on behalf of all of you to your Lord.” (Vis 3.9)

    That makes it far more likely to believe Irenaeus’s list is an after-the-fact “construct” created from names known to the community, than that it was some sort of on-going list maintained as an on-going record.

    And third, the list is offered as evidence that “teaching” at Rome had been “preserved and transmitted” to that time. There was no hint that Irenaeus believed that it would be some kind of “continuous line of succession until the end of time”. There is no warrant for that at all in Irenaeus.

  323. John, (re:#322)

    Where in St. Clement’s epistle do you think he advocates Pelagianism?

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  324. Bryan, re 323:

    Your comment, asking where I think Clement actually *advocates* Pelagianism, is sort of reading more into my comment than I actually have there.

    You’ll note that I used the conditional, in referring to Torrance’s description of Clement. Here is what Torrance said: “grace is given to those who perform the commandments of God, and who are worthy”,

    Do you think Torrance’s description of Clement is incorrect? (I don’t have my copy of Torrance in front of me, but it should be easy to look up. I gave the reference, page 55 in his work.)

    I said that “later writers would call” that sort of thing “Pelagian”. Are you suggesting that my use of the word “Pelagian” is incorrect here? Are you suggesting that my use of the word “Pelagian” negates Torrance’s analysis?

  325. John, (re: #324)

    I’m puzzled by your statement in #322:

    That concept of being rewarded for being worthy before God is not a concept Paul used; later writers would call that “Pelagian”. But here is “Pope” Clement, a Pelagian before Pelagius.

    I’m wondering where in St. Clement’s epistle you think he advocates what would later be called ‘Pelagianism.’ I’ve read St. Clement’s epistle numerous times, and I’ve never seen Pelagianism in it. Which paragraphs in the epistle do you find to be Pelagian or to contain an endorsement of Pelagianism?

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  326. My comment about “Pelagianism” was based on and referring to Torrance’s analysis of the word “grace” as it’s used by Clement (and other “apostolic fathers”). As I said, I don’t have Torrance in front of me right now. But I will be happy to reproduce longer selections of his argument illustrating that comment when I get a chance.

    Cullmann (whose work I have with me) also says that these writers (Clement, the Homily assigned to Clement, the epistle of Barnabas, the Shepherd of Hermas, the epistle of Polycarp), “despite their theological interest, are at a considerable distance from New Testament thought, and to a considerable extent relapse into a moralism which ignores the notion of grace, and of the redemptive death of Christ, so central to” what Cullman describes as “apostolic theology”.

    Again, he relies on Torrance, but I’m not aware of any later works that disagree with Torrance’s analysis.

  327. John.

    Thanks for your response. I hate to be so quick here but duty calls. If I had time to type out a longer response it would largely reflect these following comments from the ‘challenge’ thread:

    David Pell’s Sept 5th, 2010 1:15PM

    Francis Beckwith’s Sept 5th, 2010 4:06PM

    Michael Liccione’s Sept 6th, 2010 1:41PM

    And, many other comments in that thread. Wish I had more time. Maybe I should have just stayed out of this one given my current circumstance ; 0 )

  328. Sean 327, I noticed I myself commented approximately 20 times in a comment thread where there were more than just a few people asking questions. I’ll be happy to respond to these three comments (they were early in the thread, I can’t believe I didn’t touch on them in my 20 comments). But that is not something I can get to at the moment either.

  329. John, (re: #326)

    As much as I respect Torrance, an assertion by him that St. Clement held a Pelagian view of salvation or grace wouldn’t be sufficient evidence to show that St. Clement held a Pelagian view of salvation or grace, because Torrance was not infallible. If we’re going to be putting absolute trust in people, it might as well be the magisterium in succession from the Apostles, including St. Clement himself, who (according to Tertullian, Prescription Against Heretics, c. 32) the Church at Rome claimed had been ordained by St. Peter himself. So, to support your claim that St. Clement held a Pelagian view of salvation or grace, you would need to show it from St. Clement’s epistle. Otherwise, if you are resting your accusation entirely on the authority of Torrance (and/or Cullman), you are in effect merely following another magisterium, consisting of those academics who say what you want to hear (since I know patristic scholars who would deny that St. Clement held a Pelagian position). That’s why your accusation needs to be backed up with evidence from the text itself, not merely appeals to Torrance or Cullman.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  330. Bryan — (329): Torrance does not use the word “pelagian”. Did I fail to make that clear (in my further comments 324 and 326)? If so, I apologize. I am the one who used that descriptor, based on Torrance’s description, which is: “grace is given to those who perform the commandments of God, and who are worthy”. That certainly seems “Pelagian” to me, but hey, I don’t even call myself a theologian, much less, profess to be “infallible”.

    So, let me take the word “Pelagian” off the table. Let me simply reproduce Torrance’s argument as thoroughly as is possible here (when I am able). Torrance interacts at great length with 1 Clement, and in very great detail. If we take the word “Pelagian” out of the mix, then what we are left with is Torrance’s analysis. I don’t believe Torrance uses the word “pelagian”. Of course, Torrance’s analysis does not claim to be infallible, and does not need to be “infallible”, IMO. It is very thorough, very convincing (to me), and I’m sure there will be ample opportunity for you to to interact with it on a point-by-point basis. (But for you to simply dismiss what Torrance says because it is not infallible, becomes one instance of an appeal to an authority, which, as you pointed out in comment #303, “won’t work”.)

    Torrance’s analysis is very thorough. As I said, he reproduces the various uses of the word “grace”, as it appears in a variety of cultural sources (in Greek culture, and as a translation for the Hebrew word and concept “hesed” (which is the LXX translation for “lovingkindess” in the Hebrew text), and in ways that the New Testament used the word). He also analyses the various instances of how Clement (and the other writers) use that word, and in what sense they use it. Then, in interacting with Torrance, on the topic of Clement, I’m sure you would have much more to interact with than my own comment here.

    It will then give your readers an opportunity to identify within Torrance’s analysis any prima facie contradictions with with “the Tradition”, and show how these prima facie contradictions are not “actual contradictions”. Such a process should be very enlightening for both of us as well as your readers.

    (And, given your focus on this Clement/Torrance issue, is it safe for me to assume that you are pretty much ok with the other things I wrote in comment #322?)

  331. John, (re: #330)

    I understand that Torrance doesn’t use the word ‘Pelagian,’ and that you were the one who used this word. I’m simply trying to understand where in St. Clement’s epistle you think he presents or defends a Pelagian understanding of salvation. If you want to present Torrance’s case, that’s fine with me.

    (And, given your focus on this Clement/Torrance issue, is it safe for me to assume that you are pretty much ok with the other things I wrote in comment #322?)

    No. :-) It is just that my time is limited, and I think it is more profitable to focus on one thing at a time, rather than trying to deal with many different points at the same time.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  332. John,

    In your comment # 322 you made an attempt to explain why the preponderance of the evidence suggests that Irenaeus was wrong about the existence of one primary Bishop in Rome before 180 A.D.

    There are several problems that you need to confront if you wish to analyze evidence in a way that will be convincing to those who do not already agree with you.

    (1) You wrote that “It’s simply not the case that one piece of evidence gets to trump a whole body of work.” This is false. In fact, frequently one piece of good evidence is far more useful than many pieces of bad evidence. As a case in point, consider a whole body of work based on very small non-random samples that makes the claim that on average children do just as well with non-biological parents as they do with their biological parents. Then suppose that someone collects a very large random sample, and in this very large random sample, we see that on average children do much worse with non-biological parents than they do with their biological parents. That one piece of evidence easily trumps a whole body of previous work. You therefore need to add to your discussion an analysis of the quality of different pieces of evidence. Only then can you decide whether one piece of evidence can trump three other pieces of evidence, or vis versa.

    (2) One of the most important markers of the quality of a piece of evidence is its directness. Suppose that in 10,000 years scholars compared two pieces of evidence about the nature of the authority of the U.S. presidency. One was the U.S. Constitution, the other was a transcript of a heated conversation the president had with one of his aids. In the former, we have a clear direct proclamation of the President’s duties and powers. In the latter, we have one phrase: “you can’t do that Mr. President, I won’t let you do it!”. Suppose that the majority of scholars, for whatever reason, decided that the second piece of evidence implied that the President had some kind of primacy of honor, but no real authority over even his aids. What would you say to them? You would probably say: “The second piece of evidence does not directly address the President’s constitutionally-based authority. The second piece of evidence could mean many things, and since it doesn’t directly address the issue at hand, we shouldn’t place too much weight on arguments from silence or other extrapolations from this conversation. Instead, let’s put the most weight on the surviving manuscripts of the U.S. Constitution, which directly address this issue.” And you would be right: direct evidence is far less likely to mislead us than indirect or tangentially-related evidence that is ambiguous at best and completely unrelated to the question at worst. In light of this point, the fact is that Irenaeus is the only person who directly addresses the question of whether or not there was always a ruler of the Church of Rome that could be called a Bishop. It is simply a fact that none of the fathers who you have quoted even address this question; they write about leadership more generally, and in a way perfectly consistent with how I talk about the leadership of my diocese today with my friends: such as “the leaders of the disocese here tend to think that the liturgy is best celebrated. . .” and “the leadership in this other diocese is not as unified as it could be. . .”

    (3) Mistakes in the Fathers: I believe that most of what Irenaeus wrote was correct. You have pointed out that you believe he made some mistakes, as did Clement. But there are two things you need to show for this to matter in our discussion of their witness. I’ll address the first in this bullet point, and the second in the next bullet point. First, you need to make sure that the supposed mistakes are really mistakes, and not just you interpreting their words in the most unlikely way in order to turn them into a mistake if you possibly can. So, for example, on this first issue, you need to show that Clement meant that Peter and Paul were the first Christians in Rome, and they they largely never left Rome again because they were administrating it in person for the rest of their lives. I think he just meant that they were the most important Christian leaders that the Roman Christians ever got to experience, and that they did more than any other apostles did to build up the Christian faithful in Rome. How would my interpretation of his words contradict any piece of historical evidence we have?

    (4) Probabilities. Second, you need to show that the majority of what Irenaeus wrote was false. If the majority of what we wrote was true, then that makes his assertion that Rome has always had a Bishop to be more likely than not. In order to show that the majority of what Irenaeus wrote was false, you need to take a sample of the subset of his statements that can be tested with other, better evidence, and see how his statements stack up. I realize that some of his statements don’t withstand the scrutiny of other, better evidence. But we both know that the majority of his statements stand up just fine. That means that he is more likely to be right about the Bishops than he is to be wrong.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  333. John,

    One other thought on your comment #315. You stated, quoting Sherlock Holmes:

    “How often have I said to you that when you have eliminated the impossible whatever remains, HOWEVER IMPROBABLE, must be the truth?”

    By this, I think you meant that even if the Protestant IP has its apparent deficiencies, once we realize that the RCC’s claims are invalid, what is left (Protestant IP) must be true. Keith Mathison used a similar argument in his response to the Sola/Solo essay. He expressed this as the necessity to take off one’s “Rome colored glasses” before the truth of Sola Scriptura could be seen and understood. I got the same general sense from his argument that I have gotten from yours: a lengthy explanation of why the RCC cannot be (on historical and exegetical grounds) what it claims to be, but very little solid positive argumentation for the Protestant IP, especially on philosophical grounds. I asked for a short and simple positive argument for the Protestant IP (specifically how it objectively defines for all Christians orthodoxy versus heresy and schism versus unity) because I have noticed that well-read and seasoned apologists on both sides tend to veer into long-windedness when they don’t have a straightforward answer.

    Burton

  334. Burton 333: Christ didn’t ascend and simply leave the apostles with a “straightforward argument” that they could make. They had to report on an event in history, within a historical context. Similarly, the Reformation didn’t occur in a vacuum; there was a historical context. We, too, live in a historical context. The further we get from year 33, the more historical context we have to sift through.

    On the other hand, I have been spending quite a bit of time at T-Blog, working (with the help of Hurtado’s work “The Lord Jesus Christ”, Kruger’s work, and others) to understand and reconstruct the Christian world as it existed during New Testament times, and the times immediately following. It seems more relevant to me to ask “what did they know and when did they know it?” And then to build forward from that point.

  335. Tom Riello 319:

    Just wanted to address you briefly here.

    … one has to redefine what huge differences mean …

    I have addressed this briefly with my citation of a Steven Wedgeworth comment, and also in this post (check the pictures).

  336. John, (re: #322)

    It is easy to broaden the challenge Sean refers to in #317 to include multiple pieces of evidence. So consider the challenge to be the following:

    Provide one or more pieces of historical evidence that singularly or cumulatively meet the following two conditions:

    (1) show that there was no monarchical bishop in Rome until the second half of the second century, and;

    (2) are stronger evidence than is the list of St. Irenaeus (Against Heresies III.3.3)

    (Please show why this is stronger evidence than is St. Irenaeus’ list.)

    Regarding St. Irenaeus, you write:

    First off, his value as a historian is diminished by his statement that the church at Rome was “founded and established by Peter and Paul”. This statement looks impressive but it cuts two ways: (a) he is clearly wrong about Paul, who neither founded nor set up the church at Rome.

    As K. Doran noted above in #332, it is important to understand what St. Irenaeus means by “founded and established” [Greek. “θεμελιωσειςηϛ καί κατασταθείσης” Latin: “fundatae et constitutae“]. It does not mean that Sts. Peter and Paul were the first Christians there. St. Irenaeus thinks like a Catholic, one who believes in (a) a hierarchy of authority, (b) that particular Churches have to be founded by that hierarchy, that (c) an apostolic Church was founded and established by the Apostle who established that Church’s episcopal seat and personally ordained and/or catechizes that Church’s first bishops/presbyters.

    Elsewhere I wrote:

    When St. Irenaeus says that St. Peter and St. Paul laid the foundation for the particular Church at Rome, he doesn’t mean that they were the first Christians there, or that only when Sts. Peter and Paul arrived did the Christians meet together. Only persons who didn’t believe in (or know about) apostolic succession would think that’s what St. Irenaeus meant. He means, of course, establishing the Church at Rome as an apostolic Church, and thus having bishops ordained by an Apostle. It could not be a Church until either an Apostle was present, or a bishop was established there by an Apostle, or by bishops having succession from the Apostles. (from comment #68 here)

    As for your claim that St. Irenaeus was “clearly wrong about Paul, who neither founded nor set up the church in Rome,” I will address that below.

    You wrote:

    The only chance that Peter would have had to visit Rome would have been the vague mention in Acts 12:17, when he “went to another place”. But in that case, if (as in another Eusebian “whopper”), the “other place” had been Rome, then he would have had to travel, in that world, from Jerusalem to Rome and back for the Jerusalem council in just the space of a few years. That is highly unlikely, given that he was documented to be in other places during those years.

    Given the historical and Scriptural evidence we have, nothing makes it impossible for St. Peter to have been in Rome from AD 42 – 49 (when Claudius expelled the Jews from Rome), and then again in Rome from AD 54-57 (during which time the Gospel of Mark was written), and then again from AD 62-67 (during which time he wrote his epistles, and referred to Rome as ‘Babylon’).

    You wrote:

    Aside from that, the whole purpose of the 2nd half of Acts was to talk about how Paul got to Rome. Do you think that if Peter had gotten there first, that it would have been far more important to Luke to note that Peter was there? Yet Paul’s arrival there was the entire focus of the book.

    St. Luke’s focus on St. Paul’s missionary journeys makes perfect sense in light of the fact that St. Luke traveled with St. Paul. If St. Luke’s purpose in writing the book of Acts was to lay out a history of the Church at Rome, then we would expect to see a reference to Peter’s presence there. But St. Luke’s purpose was not to lay out the history of the Church at Rome, but to give an account of the acts of the Apostles, according to his own eyewitness testimony as St. Paul’s companion. He specifically states at the end of the book of Acts that St. Paul was there for two whole years (presumably AD 60-62), during which time he welcomed all who came to him, and preached the kingdom of God and taught about the Lord Jesus Christ “quite openly and unhindered.” (Acts 28:30-31) According to tradition he was subsequently released, and then was again in Rome from AD 65-67, at which time he was beheaded by Nero. During all that time in Rome (four to five years) he undoubtedly taught those who were or would become the bishops/elders of the Church at Rome. And all of that is fully compatible with what St. Irenaeus says. So contrary to your claim, nothing in the New Testament or in the evidence from history shows that St. Irenaeus was “clearly wrong about Paul, who neither founded nor set up the church in Rome.”

    You wrote:

    Look at Romans 16:7. What is being said here?

    Greet Andronicus and Junia, my fellow Jews who have been in prison with me. They are outstanding among the apostles, and they were in Christ before I was.

    In fact, it is very likely that someone like Andronicus and Junia (Rom 16:7) “in Christ before me”, had traveled from Jerusalem to Rome shortly after Pentecost and established one of many house churches there. That Paul mentions that they were “apostles”, but more, they were “outstanding among the apostles”, and also, they were “in Christ before me”. That latter phrase opens a space of about a year before the conversion of Paul, and as “apostles”, it is quite likely that Andronicus was the first (or, at the very least, an early)“bishop” of a Roman church. Thus, contra Irenaeus, it is far more likely that Andronicus and Junia “founded and established” a church at Rome.

    It would be entirely speculative to claim that “it is very likely” that apostles like Andronicus and Junia (but not Peter) came to Rome shortly after Pentecost. Speculation of that sort in no way discredits St. Irenaeus, precisely because it is entirely speculative. So is your claim that “it is quite likely that Andronicus was the first (or, at the very least, an early)“bishop” of a Roman church.” I could ask you to demonstrate that the likelihood is greater than 2%, but I won’t do so, because I know you can’t demonstrate such a thing. Speculation on your part in no way discredits St. Irenaeus or his value as a historian. You are using your mere speculations as if they are evidence that “diminish” St. Irenaeus’s value as an historian. You don’t seem to realize that your speculations about what could or might possibly have happened, are not historical evidence, and do not in the least bit diminish St. Irenaeus’ value as an historian, or falsify anything he said.

    Next you wrote:

    Second, even if it Irenaeus’s list does have the names of presbyters from Roman history, its “neatness” betrays the tumult of that era in that city. The Shepherd of Hermas, for example, speaks of “the elders (presbuteroi) who preside (proistamenoi – plural leadership) over the church.” (all at the same time – Vis 2.4). This is a primary source document from within the city of Rome that provides support for all of the “scholarship” that you decry, the “snippets” which speak of a “gap” in the “unbroken succession within the first century of the church”.

    What the text of Shepherd of Hermas says here is fully compatible with what St. Irenaeus says. When St. Irenaeus gives the list of bishops, he isn’t intending to give an account of the history of the relations of all the presbyters in the Church at Rome from AD 67 to AD 180. That’s just not his purpose. So he doesn’t “betray” anything by listing the succession of bishops without describing any “tumult.” The presence of a plurality of presbyters does not indicate the chronic non-existence of a singular bishop, since that bishop too is a presbyter in the broader sense of the term, and they all together, under the authority of the bishop, preside over the Church. In fact we know from history that on occasion such contention for the episcopal seat occurred between the death of a bishop and the election of his successor, since even the heretics (e.g. Marcion) attempted to gain the episcopal seat, before they were excommunicated. So, again, what Hermas says here is fully compatible with what St. Irenaeus says.

    Nowhere does the Shepherd of Hermas claim that there is a first century “gap” in the succession of bishops in the Church at Rome. So, again, nothing here discredits or diminishes St. Irenaeus testimony concerning the history of bishops in the Church at Rome.

    Next you wrote:

    Later, Hermas reiterates the structure of this leadership, and the fact that they are not leading, but rather that they fight among themselves. He calls them “children”.

    Now, therefore, I say to you [tois – plural] who lead the church and occupy the seats of honor: do not be like the sorcerers. For the sorcerers carry their drugs in bottles, but you carry your drug and poison in your heart. You are calloused and do not want to cleanse your hearts and to mix your wisdom together in a clean heart, in order that you may have mercy from the great King. Watch out, therefore, children, lest these divisions of yours [among you elders] deprive you of your life. How is it that you desire to instruct God’s elect, while you yourselves have no instruction? Instruct one another, therefore, and have peace among yourselves, in order that I too may stand joyfully before the Father and give an account on behalf of all of you to your Lord.” (Vis 3.9)

    That makes it far more likely to believe Irenaeus’s list is an after-the-fact “construct” created from names known to the community, than that it was some sort of on-going list maintained as an on-going record.

    I don’t agree, because everything Hermas says about the condition of those presbyters is fully compatible with the truth of what St. Irenaeus says about the succession of bishops. And it is better not to assume a contradiction when there is no need to assume a contradiction. Undoubtedly there were some presbyters who were ambitious and hard-hearted, but none of this is incompatible with what St. Irenaeus says actually being true, and therefore it in no way diminishes his historical value or credibility.

    You added:

    And third, the list is offered as evidence that “teaching” at Rome had been “preserved and transmitted” to that time. There was no hint that Irenaeus believed that it would be some kind of “continuous line of succession until the end of time”. There is no warrant for that at all in Irenaeus.

    I think there is much more than a hint. He writes:

    Since, however, it would be very tedious, in such a volume as this, to reckon up the successions of all the Churches, we do put to confusion all those who, in whatever manner, whether by an evil self-pleasing, by vainglory, or by blindness and perverse opinion, assemble in unauthorized meetings; [we do this, I say,] by indicating that tradition derived from the apostles, of the very great, the very ancient, and universally known Church founded and organized at Rome by the two most glorious apostles, Peter and Paul; as also [by pointing out] the faith preached to men, which comes down to our time by means of the successions of the bishops. For it is a matter of necessity that every Church should agree with this Church [i.e. the Church at Rome], on account of its preeminent authority. (Against Heresies, III.3.2)

    It would be false that it is a matter of necessity that every Church should agree with the Church at Rome, if the Church at Rome could fall into heresy or apostasy. The very idea that every other Church should necessarily agree with the Church at Rome, on the basis of its preeminent authority, depends upon there being some special divine gift of unique authority given by Christ to the Church at Rome, and thus to the Apostolic founder of the Church at Rome. It would be preposterous for St. Irenaeus to claim that every Church should necessarily agree with the Church of Rome, because the interpretation of Scripture held and taught at the Church at Rome agrees with his own. In saying this about the Church of Rome he therefore has to be appealing to some other basis of its authority than that the Church at Rome happens to agree with his own interpretation of Scripture.

    St. Irenaeus would undermine his argument against the Gnostics if he were claiming on the basis of his own interpretation of Scripture that that the apostolic churches merely happen to have preserved the apostolic tradition. I explained how that would undermine his argument, in the “Apostolic Succession” section of my reply to Michael Horton:

    First, it is worth noting that according to St. Irenaeus it is necessary that “every Church should agree with this Church,” meaning that every particular Church (e.g. Jerusalem, Antioch, Corinth, Ephesus) must agree with the particular Church at Rome on account of its “preeminent authority” due to its having been founded by St. Peter and St. Paul. But, St. Irenaeus is also saying here that the faith comes down to his time by means of “the succession of bishops.” He is not saying that the faith merely happens to have been preserved in the succession of bishops; he is making a much stronger claim than that. He is saying that the succession of bishops is the normative means by which the deposit of faith can be determined, precisely because the authority of stewardship of this deposit was entrusted to these lines of bishops by the Apostles. His whole argument against the Gnostics would be undermined if he was claiming only that it presently happens to be the case that the genuine deposit of faith is found in the succession of bishops. In that case, it would be pointless to bring up the succession of bishops, for it would offer no more (or less) assurance of finding the genuine deposit of faith there than among the Gnostics.

    Your willingness to claim that St. Clement, for whom the voice of the Apostles was still “echoing in his ears” (Against Heresies III.3.3), had already fallen into Pelagianism, shows that there is no a priori basis, apart from a divine promise, to reject even the most radical sort of ecclesial deism, including even the Mormon notion that the Apostles themselves fell into heresy and apostasy before they died. The Gnostic version is simply that further revelation was given secretly, and preserved among the Gnostics. In both versions, episcopal succession in union with the successor of St. Peter ceases to be a guarantee or reliable indicator of the possession and preservation of the full truth of the gospel of Jesus Christ. In the ecclesial deism version, the deposit has been corrupted in the line of succession. In the Gnostic version, the deposit has been supplemented by additional divine revelation and thus the teaching found in the line of episcopal succession is outdated and incomplete. Either way, the succession is not a reliable sign of the apostolic deposit.

    But St. Irenaeus’ argument that the deposit is found in the succession of bishops from the Apostles, has as one of its premises that it is a matter of necessity that each Church agree with the Church at Rome. And this argument is a sound argument only if (a) the whole and complete deposit was entrusted to the Apostles and (b) there is a divine gift, a charism of truth, by which that deposit is faithfully preserved in the succession of bishops from the Apostles.

    That’s much more than a hint that the succession is divinely intended to endure until Christ returns. If at any time that succession could become unreliable, then it could have been unreliable from the very beginning, in which case there isn’t even the possibility of a good likelihood argument (i.e. that the truth of Jesus Christ is merely more likely to be found in the third generation successors from the Apostles than in the Gnostics), as your willingness to peg St. Clement a Pelagian demonstrates. If St. Irenaeus’s argument defeats Gnosticism, then it defeats ecclesial deism, in which case it rests upon the indefectibility of the Church in her magisterium.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  337. Bryan, #336, I’ll certainly respond to all of this, but for now, it would be instructive, I think, to see your bibliography, because very much of what you say here is just really, well, not anything I’ve seen in a reputable history book.

  338. I’ll go out on a limb, too, and point out that your saying that a thing “is not incompatible with…” your version of history is quite different from saying what actually did happen and why and how it happened, and how we know that it happened. Marshall used the phrase “Suggestions that [Peter] went to Rome [at Acts 12:17] are quite fanciful”. Your account here also strikes me as “quite fanciful’.

  339. John,

    There are no arguments from academic authority here, at least when the data set involved is so small as the apostolic fathers. This is where the academic authorities need to make their arguments, not where we merely cite them. Bryan has explained how you have tried to let speculation compete with direct evidence, and why in that competition it is speculation that has to fail. You need to make a positive argument in response to this. In fact, I have also pointed out four important problems that you need to address in order to convince people of the fairly convoluted Protestant argument about the early Church of Rome and its supposed lack of Bishops.

    You need to either acknowledge that evidence varies in quality or explain why it doesn’t. You need to either acknowledge that direct evidence has higher quality than ambiguous tangentially-related evidence, or explain why it doesn’t. You need to either acknowledge that Irenaeus directly asserts that there have always been Bishops of Rome, or explain why he doesn’t. You need to either acknowledge that your arguments about Peter’s travels are speculation or explain why they aren’t. And you need to either acknowledge that any random statement of Irenaeus is more likely to be true than false or explain why it isn’t.

    Many of the people who write or comment for this site have very good reasons not to be impressed with an academic’s argument merely because it was made by an academic: for one thing, a lot of us are academics. So just continue with the data itself. All of the people here, whether academics or not, can see the data for ourselves, without any stamps of authority attached to it. And then we can see whether the case against the existence of Bishops in Rome is based on some kind of direct evidence (“all of our presbyters are equal”, or “we don’t have a bishop”, or “we first got a bishop about 150 years after Our Lord’s birth”) or just a bunch of speculation about ambiguous red herrings, like the stuff I criticized in my comment #332 above.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  340. John, (re: #337-338)

    I did not make any appeal to academic authority as evidence for the truth of what I said in #336, so I don’t need to provide any “bibliography.” My evidence is drawn from the primary texts themselves, in relation to what you claimed. And I’m not even making a positive case here for the truth of St. Irenaeus’s writing; I’m merely pointing out that nothing you have said demonstrates that what St. Irenaeus wrote concerning the Church at Rome is false. And you have the burden of proof, for the reason I explained in comment #18 here:

    When a party goes out from the Catholic Church, as Protestants did in the sixteenth century on the basis of their own interpretation of Scripture, and that party seeks to justify its actions by making a case against the Catholic Church, that party has the burden of proof, just by the fact that they are the ones who went out from the Church. The benefit of the doubt in any such dispute rests with the Church. Any heretic or schismatic can claim to be the Church, and claim that everyone else went out from him. But if it is enough to claim to be the Church, then the “went out from us” criterion would be worthless. So, the visible Church in continuity with the Apostles must have at least the benefit of the doubt in such disputes.

    Today is the Solemnity of Sts. Peter and Paul, a very ancient feast celebrated in Rome on the anniversary of their martyrdom and/or the transfer of their relics. It is also quite relevant to our discussion regarding what St. Irenaeus says concerning the “founding and establishing” of the Church at Rome by the two most glorious Apostles. I have included below an excerpt from Pope Benedict’s homily today.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

    In front of Saint Peter’s Basilica, as is well known, there are two imposing statues of Saint Peter and Saint Paul, easily recognizable by their respective attributes: the keys in the hand of Peter and the sword held by Paul. Likewise, at the main entrance to the Basilica of Saint Paul Outside the Walls, there are depictions of scenes from the life and the martyrdom of these two pillars of the Church. Christian tradition has always considered Saint Peter and Saint Paul to be inseparable: indeed, together, they represent the whole Gospel of Christ. In Rome, their bond as brothers in the faith came to acquire a particular significance. Indeed, the Christian community of this City considered them a kind of counterbalance to the mythical Romulus and Remus, the two brothers held to be the founders of Rome. A further parallel comes to mind, still on the theme of brothers: whereas the first biblical pair of brothers demonstrate the effects of sin, as Cain kills Abel, yet Peter and Paul, much as they differ from one another in human terms and notwithstanding the conflicts that arose in their relationship, illustrate a new way of being brothers, lived according to the Gospel, an authentic way made possible by the grace of Christ’s Gospel working within them. Only by following Jesus does one arrive at this new brotherhood: this is the first and fundamental message that today’s solemnity presents to each one of us, the importance of which is mirrored in the pursuit of full communion, so earnestly desired by the ecumenical Patriarch and the Bishop of Rome, as indeed by all Christians.

    In the passage from Saint Matthew’s Gospel that we have just heard, Peter makes his own confession of faith in Jesus, acknowledging him as Messiah and Son of God. He does so in the name of the other Apostles too. In reply, the Lord reveals to him the mission that he intends to assign to him, that of being the “rock”, the visible foundation on which the entire spiritual edifice of the Church is built (cf. Mt 16:16-19). But in what sense is Peter the rock? How is he to exercise this prerogative, which naturally he did not receive for his own sake? The account given by the evangelist Matthew tells us first of all that the acknowledgment of Jesus’ identity made by Simon in the name of the Twelve did not come “through flesh and blood”, that is, through his human capacities, but through a particular revelation from God the Father. By contrast, immediately afterwards, as Jesus foretells his passion, death and resurrection, Simon Peter reacts on the basis of “flesh and blood”: he “began to rebuke him, saying, this shall never happen to you” (16:22). And Jesus in turn replied: “Get behind me, Satan! You are a hindrance to me …” (16:23). The disciple who, through God’s gift, was able to become a solid rock, here shows himself for what he is in his human weakness: a stone along the path, a stone on which men can stumble – in Greek, skandalon. Here we see the tension that exists between the gift that comes from the Lord and human capacities; and in this scene between Jesus and Simon Peter we see anticipated in some sense the drama of the history of the papacy itself, characterized by the joint presence of these two elements: on the one hand, because of the light and the strength that come from on high, the papacy constitutes the foundation of the Church during its pilgrimage through history; on the other hand, across the centuries, human weakness is also evident, which can only be transformed through openness to God’s action.

    And in today’s Gospel there emerges powerfully the clear promise made by Jesus: “the gates of the underworld”, that is, the forces of evil, will not prevail, “non praevalebunt”. One is reminded of the account of the call of the prophet Jeremiah, to whom the Lord said, when entrusting him with his mission: “Behold, I make you this day a fortified city, an iron pillar, and bronze walls, against the whole land, against the kings of Judah, its princes, its priests, and the people of the land. They will fight against you; but they shall not prevail against you – non praevalebunt -, for I am with you, says the Lord, to deliver you!” (Jer 1:18-19). In truth, the promise that Jesus makes to Peter is even greater than those made to the prophets of old: they, indeed, were threatened only by human enemies, whereas Peter will have to be defended from the “gates of the underworld”, from the destructive power of evil. Jeremiah receives a promise that affects him as a person and his prophetic ministry; Peter receives assurances concerning the future of the Church, the new community founded by Jesus Christ, which extends to all of history, far beyond the personal existence of Peter himself.

    Let us move on now to the symbol of the keys, which we heard about in the Gospel. It echoes the oracle of the prophet Isaiah concerning the steward Eliakim, of whom it was said: “And I will place on his shoulder the key of the house of David; he shall open, and none shall shut; and he shall shut, and none shall open” (Is 22:22). The key represents authority over the house of David. And in the Gospel there is another saying of Jesus addressed to the scribes and the Pharisees, whom the Lord reproaches for shutting off the kingdom of heaven from people (cf. Mt 23:13). This saying also helps us to understand the promise made to Peter: to him, inasmuch as he is the faithful steward of Christ’s message, it belongs to open the gate of the Kingdom of Heaven, and to judge whether to admit or to refuse (cf. Rev 3:7). Hence the two images – that of the keys and that of binding and loosing – express similar meanings which reinforce one another. The expression “binding and loosing” forms part of rabbinical language and refers on the one hand to doctrinal decisions, and on the other hand to disciplinary power, that is, the faculty to impose and to lift excommunication. The parallelism “on earth … in the heavens” guarantees that Peter’s decisions in the exercise of this ecclesial function are valid in the eyes of God.

    In Chapter 18 of Matthew’s Gospel, dedicated to the life of the ecclesial community, we find another saying of Jesus addressed to the disciples: “Truly I say to you, whatever you bind on earth shall be bound in heaven, and whatever you loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven” (Mt 18:18). Saint John, in his account of the appearance of the risen Christ in the midst of the Apostles on Easter evening, recounts these words of the Lord: “Receive the Holy Spirit. If you forgive the sins of any, they are forgiven: if you retain the sins of any, they are retained” (Jn 20:22-23). In the light of these parallels, it appears clearly that the authority of loosing and binding consists in the power to remit sins. And this grace, which defuses the powers of chaos and evil, is at the heart of the Church’s mystery and ministry. The Church is not a community of the perfect, but a community of sinners, obliged to recognize their need for God’s love, their need to be purified through the Cross of Jesus Christ. Jesus’ sayings concerning the authority of Peter and the Apostles make it clear that God’s power is love, the love that shines forth from Calvary. Hence we can also understand why, in the Gospel account, Peter’s confession of faith is immediately followed by the first prediction of the Passion: through his death, Jesus conquered the powers of the underworld, with his blood he poured out over the world an immense flood of mercy, which cleanses the whole of humanity in its healing waters.

    Dear brothers and sisters, as I mentioned at the beginning, the iconographic tradition represents Saint Paul with a sword, and we know that this was the instrument with which he was killed. Yet as we read the writings of the Apostle of the Gentiles, we discover that the image of the sword refers to his entire mission of evangelization. For example, when he felt death approaching, he wrote to Timothy: “I have fought the good fight” (2 Tim 4:7). This was certainly not the battle of a military commander but that of a herald of the Word of God, faithful to Christ and to his Church, to which he gave himself completely. And that is why the Lord gave him the crown of glory and placed him, together with Peter, as a pillar in the spiritual edifice of the Church.

  341. K Doran, 332 and 339 – It’s not that I don’t have a response to the things you say here, but as Bryan said, time is limited, and I am going to spend some time with Torrance and Clement.

    I do want to comment on this though:

    There are no arguments from academic authority here, at least when the data set involved is so small as the apostolic fathers. This is where the academic authorities need to make their arguments, not where we merely cite them. Bryan has explained how you have tried to let speculation compete with direct evidence, and why in that competition it is speculation that has to fail.

    I don’t make arguments from academic authority here, and the things I have said roughly have been descriptive of my position, and not (generally) arguments in favor of it. I have more than 300 blog posts now at Triablogue, and 170 or so at Beggars All, most of which provide plenty of “positive argument in response to this”. On any given topic that’s been mentioned here, even the comments that Sean said I never responded to, I’ve probably written thousands of words, often making arguments from primary sources, or evaluating what other writers have said on a given topic.

    I’m not merely trying to impress anyone with academic authority. And as for the “academic authorities” making their arguments, this, I understand, is accomplished in the form of the books and journal articles which I cite. I am merely summarizing here so that folks can get a flavor of where I’m coming from.

    I consider myself a reporter of what people [usually scholars who study the ancient church] are saying, and I’m trying to weave our modern understanding of the ancient world, using all of the tools we have at our means (and I think the medieval who built the universities would have appreciated this sentiment).

    Torrance, I think, has done an exceptional job of understanding and explaining the Apostolic Fathers. The letter of 1 Clement, to be sure, can be cited directly. But there was a world around him, a culture, that tells us what he was doing.

    Here’s just one example. Someone like Adrian Fortescue might read 1 Clement, assuming all the things that you assume about him, and write the words (rough quote here from memory) “Clement commands the Corinthians with the same authority from which any modern pope commands”. (Pg 66 if you want to look it up).

    Critical scholarship, which reads not simply the words of Clement, but knows of literary genres of that world, (“letter writing”, specifically), and who understands the culture, the political discussions, have understood the very form of the letter to be a “letter of political persuasion”, a “symboleutic” letter. Careful study of the grammar points not to “commands”, but to “persuasion”.

    In the light of this, it’s very possible not only that Clement was not “commanding”, but also, that he did not even perceive himself as having the authority to command. That, too, is not inconsistent with the facts, and there are other facts that attest to what I’ve just said here.

  342. John Bugay,

    On any given topic that’s been mentioned here, even the comments that Sean said I never responded to, I’ve probably written thousands of words.”

    Just to be clear, I did not mean to say that you have not tried to answer the challenge. I only mean to say that the challenge has not been met (or the revised challenge that Bryan outlined above).

    The point of the challenge, for me, is that extant data is way more important than speculation derived from an ‘historical critical’ method 2,000 years later. This goes not only with the look of the very early church but also many other important marks of Christianity such as the authorship of the gospels. As you know, there are many extremely well accomplished and studied theologians and historians that conclude, for instance, that the gospels are not eye-witness accounts based on the same methodology that is used by some to conclude that the Linus did not really succeed Peter even though the first accounts that mentioned it say that he did.

    What really drove it home for me when I was studying the matter as a Protestant was the fact that not only does the earliest extant data that speaks on the matter confirm sacramental apostolic succession but in those early centuries and after there was no outcry of invention from, well, anybody.

    And, I am not saying that the historical critical model has no value. But, the method certainly has a tendency to view any extant ‘first instance’ of something in the record as an invention.

  343. Sean: So you are on board with Eusebius’s reporting of written communication between Jesus and Agbar (from my comment #322)? You think Eusebius is correct and the later “critical” opinions are rather more speculative?

  344. Sean: (342): Also, you said:

    As you know, there are many extremely well accomplished and studied theologians and historians that conclude, for instance, that the gospels are not eye-witness accounts

    “Who” is making the argument is much less important than “what the argument is”. Would you agree with that statement?

  345. John (re: #341),

    You wrote:

    I have more than 300 blog posts now at Triablogue, and 170 or so at Beggars All, most of which provide plenty of “positive argument in response to this”. On any given topic that’s been mentioned here, even the comments that Sean said I never responded to, I’ve probably written thousands of words, often making arguments from primary sources, or evaluating what other writers have said on a given topic.

    Of the approximately 470 posts you have written documenting and compiling evidence against the truth of the Catholic Church, could you pick what you believe to be the very strongest, most damning piece of evidence, and either show how it falsifies some Catholic dogma, or at least how it justifies being in schism from the Catholic Church, and not in full communion with the bishop of the Church at Rome? Thanks.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

    Feast of The First Martyrs of the See of Rome

  346. John,

    You wrote:

    K Doran, 332 and 339 – It’s not that I don’t have a response to the things you say here, but as Bryan said, time is limited

    I am going to call you out. I don’t think you have a response to what I said. I’ll believe it when I see it.

    I want to see an argument for why I should believe that it is more likely that there wasn’t a Bishop of Rome than that there was. This argument needs to avoid red herrings. The argument needs to explain why each piece of evidence it considers is either directly addressing the question, or indirectly addressing it. And then the argument needs to attach more weight to evidence that directly addresses the question.

    Some academic fields are intellectually corrupt, but most use the points I made above to discipline their analysis of evidence. If a sociologist tried to use cruddy, tangentially-related, and ambiguous “evidence” to over-turn direct, gold-standard, large-sample evidence, her colleagues would laugh her off the stage. So show me some direct evidence that there were no Bishops in Rome before the time of Irenaeus. And then show me that this direct evidence is more significant than the evidence in favor of Bishops. And if you don’t have that evidence, join us in the pursuit of truth by being courageous enough to admit it.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  347. Bryan, you misunderstand my purpose, if you think my purpose is to come up with “damning evidence”.

    My purpose is to foster an understanding of the true history of Christianity, “earliest Christianity” especially, but also “Reformation-era Christianity”. I have six kids and I see this effort of mine as the best thing I can do to (a) help them understand the world they live in, and (b) make it a better world. And the truth about this world, I’m convinced, is that “In the beginning, God created the heavens and the earth”, and that “That which was from the beginning, which we have heard, which we have seen with our eyes, which we have looked at and our hands have touched —this we proclaim concerning the Word of life. The life appeared; we have seen it and testify to it, and we proclaim to you the eternal life, which was with the Father and has appeared to us. We proclaim to you what we have seen and heard, so that you also may have fellowship with us. And our fellowship is with the Father and with his Son, Jesus Christ”, and that “He who testifies to these things says, “Yes, I am coming soon.”.

    Within that true account, there is no requirement “to be in full communion with the bishop of the Church at Rome”. Such a thing may be and must be rejected as extraneous.

    I agree that “critical scholarship” has been a very difficult phenomenon for Christianity to deal with, but at this point in the “life cycle” of “critical scholarship”, it is very evident to me that we know more truthful and factual information than ever about “earliest Christianity” — that even skeptics of “traditional” Christianity such as Bart Ehrman and Harvey Cox affirm the life, death, and the “testified-to” resurrection of Christ. As I’ve quoted Herman Pottmeyer recently, “the historical facts are not in question” (This is from his contribution to the Puglisi work on the “ecumenical discussions” surrounding the “Petrine ministry”. The historical facts of New Testament Christianity are largely agreed upon by those who really study them.

    On the other hand, you folks here feel threatened by and dismissive of “critical scholarship”. That’s because they are also saying true things about the history of (not the doctrine of) the supposed requirement “to be in full communion with the bishop of the Church at Rome”.

    The same “critical” process is doing both things: affirming the historicity of Christ, and showing just how unimportant Roman notions of authority are to the historicity of Christ.

    There is no one “most damning fact”. There is truth, and there is fiction, and in a world where all kinds of information can be shared around the world, instantaneously, it’s just easier to see the difference between the two.

  348. K Doran, 346: I am going to spend the time it takes to reproduce the evidence that Torrance provides from Clement.

    Meanwhile, call all you want. Everything I have ever said is available for you to publicly scrutinize. Please, go through it and find the cowardly and untruthful things I have said. I wish you would point out such things to me. It will make me a better man.

    By the way, I have invoked your name over there, and evidently it has come up in a Steve Hays post, too. Maybe those are good places to start.

  349. John, (re: #347),

    You wrote:

    On the other hand, you folks here feel threatened by and dismissive of “critical scholarship”. That’s because they are also saying true things about the history of (not the doctrine of) the supposed requirement “to be in full communion with the bishop of the Church at Rome”.

    I think it is better not to attempt to divine or presume concerning our feelings. Speaking for myself, if you want to know, in no way do I feel threatened by, or dismissive of “critical scholarship.” What I have found in my study of critical scholarship regarding Church history, is what I found in my study of critical scholarship regarding Scripture, namely, that among the good scholarship, there is also bad scholarship that makes use of philosophical and theological assumptions to reach conclusions purported to be entirely objective and scientific, but is in actuality resting on those philosophical and theological assumptions in order to reach its conclusions. And, as I have shown in my comments above in this thread, and in the “Modern Scholarship” thread to which Sean referred earlier, the critical scholarship that seeks to dismiss, for example, the authenticity and veracity of St. Irenaeus’ list of bishops in the Church at Rome, is shoddy and based on certain question-begging presuppositions that do not even justify their conclusion. So when you, following such scholarship, dismiss, the requirement “to be in full communion with the bishop of the Church at Rome,” I simply point back to the yet-to-be-debunked statement of St. Irenaeus, bishop of Lyon, written in AD 180:

    Since, however, it would be very tedious, in such a volume as this, to reckon up the successions of all the Churches, we do put to confusion all those who, in whatever manner, whether by an evil self-pleasing, by vainglory, or by blindness and perverse opinion, assemble in unauthorized meetings; [we do this, I say,] by indicating that tradition derived from the apostles, of the very great, the very ancient, and universally known Church founded and organized at Rome by the two most glorious apostles, Peter and Paul; as also [by pointing out] the faith preached to men, which comes down to our time by means of the successions of the bishops. For it is a matter of necessity that every Church should agree with this Church [i.e. the Church at Rome], on account of its preeminent authority. (Against Heresies, III.3.2)

    If you can’t falsify this (and all the other patristic evidence testifying to the preeminent authority of the bishop of Rome, as laid out in, for example, Chapman’s Studies on the Early Papacy ), then since as I explained in #340 you have the burden of proof, the obligation to be in full communion with the bishop of the Church at Rome still stands.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  350. John,

    re your series of responses.

    History is in interest of mine, albeit that I am not a scholar.

    In 1529 Luther and Zwingli met in the Marbury Colloquy. They agreed to disagree. This meeting, it should noted, did not involve the Catholic Church. This is easily checked history and reveals the real problem in the Protestant doctrinal ethic because the disagreement they maintained was over a minimal portion of one item.

    Luther did not back off. Zwingli did not back off. The factions led by Luther and Zwingli have virtually no resemblance to one another at this point in time; and it might be fairly commented that the Lutherans do not much resemble Luther since at least a portion of Calvin’s positions have found a home in Lutheranism. What Zwingli’s progeny look like is outside of my scope of interest at this point in time.

    You wrote that you have approximately 470 posts antagonistic to the Roman Catholic Church. I think I found at least that many on my way to the Roman Catholic Church. Most weren’t worth the ink used to publish them. A few found a bit of purchase until I worked through them. However I was looking for the mind of Christ, which was not expressed at the Colloquy, and found It in the Church Jesus founded, which is now headquartered at Rome, in the Vatican, where Peter’s successor is resident.

    However, be of good cheer. Saul of Tarsus held something like your position, until God corrected him.

    Cordially,

    dt

  351. John Bugay,

    Sean: So you are on board with Eusebius’s reporting of written communication between Jesus and Agbar (from my comment #322)? You think Eusebius is correct and the later “critical” opinions are rather more speculative?

    Do you grant that there is a huge difference between Eusebius thinking the Agbar letters to be genuine and apostolic succession?

    I mean, if the Agbar letter was foundational to the ecclesiology of the Church and repeated and relied upon for 2,000 years spanning the geography of the known world then maybe you would have an argument. If, in addition to what you call Augustine being hampered by his bad ecclesiology you could argue that he was hampered by accepting and relying upon the Agbar letter then maybe we’d have something to talk about.

    Thus, that you can show that this father here or that father there held something that kind of sticks out as unreliable does not even compare to apostolic succession. In fact, that these things are aberrations prove that, to the fathers, apostolic succession was no aberration.

  352. John Bugay (re #308-310):

    Those three comments of yours were offered in response to my #294. In that comment and in #296, I had rebutted many of your previous points and corrected a few of your misimpressions about what the Catholic Church teaches concerning her own authority. In your three-part reply, pretty much the only point of mine you address is this one, from #294:

    Not only did the Jews themselves have oral traditions that predated the writing of the OT and contributed to it; they developed other such traditions that helped to interpret their scriptures (ever hear of the Talmud?).

    I’ve held off replying till now because I was expecting you to address my other points. But as I see that you’re being kept very busy here, I shall proceed on the assumption that you weren’t planning to do so.

    Some of what you offer are facts which I do not dispute, but which are fully compatible with Catholic doctrine and exegesis. What I dispute are your interpretations of the facts–a few of which you adopt from scholars you quote, and a few of which you offer on your own.

    In #308, you write:

    Oscar Cullmann notes (“The Tradition”, in “The Early Church”, London, UK: SCM Press Ltd, ©1956) “Jesus rejected in a radical manner the paradosis of the Jews” (pg 60). Consider how Jesus put it:

    “So for the sake of your tradition you have made void the word of God. You hypocrites! Well did Isaiah prophesy of you, when he said: “‘This people honors me with their lips, but their heart is far from me; in vain do they worship me, teaching as doctrines the commandments of men.’”

    So it’s interesting you should bring up “the Talmud” in defense of “oral traditions” that “predated the writings of the OT and contributed to it”. Your timing is a bit off.

    My timing is in no way off. You have simply misunderstood the import of what I said. It goes without saying that the Talmud is written, and that it began to be written both after the Mishnah and after the time of Jesus. What you’ve overlooked, though, is that the extra-scriptural writing in the Mishnah and the Talmud was recording things that had been said by Jewish figures in the past–in many cases, long in the past. All that had entered into oral tradition, and was eventually written down for that very reason.

    Now you do not deny that such things constituted a paradosis, a “tradition,” for the Jews. What you rather claim is that Jesus rejected that paradosis. But neither the facts you cite, nor Cullmann’s interpretation thereof, demonstrate that Jesus rejected Jewish oral or even written “tradition” tout court. Indeed, if Jesus had done so, he could not have urged his followers to observe whatever those who “sit in the seat of Moses” would have them believe and do (Mt 23). The Catholic interpretation, rather, is that Jesus was rejected only the use of tradition to get in the way of love, mercy, and the essence of the Law. Nothing you’ve presented shows otherwise.

    Accordingly, when you conclude #309 by writing:

    The Mishnah and the Talmud, in Jesus’s day, had not yet been written down. These were largely the repetition (“repeaters”) of legal decisions and also the exposition of Scripture. Jesus’s comment upon this system of “tradition” (before it had been written down) was: “for the sake of your tradition you have made void the word of God”.

    you are simply going beyond the facts, and presenting an unauthorized interpretation that is far from being rationally unassailable.

    In #294, I had written:

    If the scriptures were altogether perspicuous, there would have been no point in a Talmud, and no need for judges, prophets, and those “sitting in the seat of Moses.” Moreover, Jesus’ way of interpreting the Scriptures never did seem plausible to most Jewish scholars in the first century. Are you prepared to deny that they were either unlearned or willfully irrational? If you are, then you’re logically committed to denying that the Scriptures were perspicuous enough to enable them to see the culmination of divine revelation.

    To that, you responded by asking me:

    …do you stand with “most Jewish scholars in the first century” in thinking that “Jesus’ ways of interpreting the Scriptures” were not plausible?

    That you could even pose such a question indicates that you totally misunderstood my point. I am a Christian, not a Jew; of course I accept Jesus’ hermeneutic of the Jewish scriptures. The point of my observation was that, if the Jewish scriptures had been as perspicuous as you imply, then Jesus’ contemporaries among Jewish scholars should have been able to just read their Scriptures and see that his hermeneutic was correct. But they read the Scriptures, diligently, and did not find there what Jesus said was there; so, if their Scriptures were all that perspicuous, only illiteracy or ill will on the part of most Jewish scholars could explain why they rejected Jesus’ hermeneutic. That’s why I posed to you the question I did–a question which, I note, you answered only with another question that’s completely off base.

    Your treatment gets a bit more interesting in #310. After quoting Cullmann at some length, you write:

    Jesus rejected Jewish tradition; Christ himself (“the exalted Lord”) is the real author of the whole tradition developing itself within the apostolic church. This concept of “tradition” is “attested in the rest of the New Testament”.

    That posits a radical discontinuity between Jewish tradition and the revelation in Jesus Christ. But none of the facts Cullmann presents necessitate such a conclusion. Given the same facts, and indeed something Jesus himself had said, one could equally well say that what Jesus “handed on” to the Church was the fulfillment of both the Jewish scriptures and what was good in extra-scriptural Jewish tradition, rather than their total displacement. Thus, the apostolic Church could, and I believe did, receive Jesus’ deeds and teachings in conjunction with Jewish scripture and tradition, re-interpreting them in ways that few Jews–certainly not the Apostles–could have anticipated before the Christ-event itself.

    Turning to the relationship between the “apostolic period” and “that of the Church,” you note that “Cullmann is (and others are) able to “cut off” the period of “revelation” at the death of the last of the apostles.” Of course, the Catholic Church too has always held that public revelation ended with the death of the last of the apostles. So this is not a problem. The problem arises when, having noted that Papias and others were too enthusiastic about some oral traditions circulating in the Church, you quote Cullmann thus:

    The oral tradition had a normative value in the period of the apostles, who were eye-witnesses, but it had it no longer in 150 after passing mouth to mouth.

    That conclusion is simply a non-sequitur. All that follows from the facts and observations you present is that, once all the eyewitnesses to the apostolic period had died, oral tradition was acceptable only insofar as it was consistent with the writings the Church accepted as authentically apostolic. Nobody disputes that. So this issue is a red herring.

    The same goes for the remarks with which you finally conclude:

    By that point, the value of “oral tradition” had ceased. It was not about “authority”. It was about “the validity of the testimony about the life, death, and resurrection of Jesus Christ”.

    That first sentence does not follow from the facts presented, and the second and third posit a false dilemma. As St. Irenaeus made clear after 150 AD, accepting the authority of the Church was necessary for recognizing the “validity” of testimony, whether written or oral, from the apostolic period.

    Best,
    Mike

  353. John,

    You said that you wish I would point out some problems because that would help you. I’m going to take you at your word, and give you the following advice about how to construct an empirical argument that is convincing to me:

    (1) The argument should lay out the data. If there are four quotations that make up the data, then let’s see them.

    (2) the argument should distinguish the data that directly addresses the question at hand from the data that does not directly address the question at hand.

    (3) the argument should then commence, placing more weight on data that directly addresses the question at hand from data that does not directly address the question at hand.

    (4) the argument should avoid: begging the question; introducing red herrings; mistaking speculation for empirical evidence; ad hominems (such as “Doran is incredibly pompous and in credibly wrong in this comment”); or an appeal to academic authority without a willingness to defend the argument from the data yourself.

    Many many academics take the above four points extremely seriously in their work and in their evaluation of other people’s work. When they do, I approve of them. Of course, some academics don’t take any of the above seriously. I completely agree with what Bryan writes below, and I thank him for stating it so succinctly:

    Speaking for myself, if you want to know, in no way do I feel threatened by, or dismissive of “critical scholarship.” What I have found in my study of critical scholarship regarding Church history, is what I found in my study of critical scholarship regarding Scripture, namely, that among the good scholarship, there is also bad scholarship that makes use of philosophical and theological assumptions to reach conclusions purported to be entirely objective and scientific, but is in actuality resting on those philosophical and theological assumptions in order to reach its conclusions. And, as I have shown in my comments above in this thread, and in the “Modern Scholarship” thread to which Sean referred earlier, the critical scholarship that seeks to dismiss, for example, the authenticity and veracity of St. Irenaeus’ list of bishops in the Church at Rome, is shoddy and based on certain question-begging presuppositions that do not even justify their conclusion.

    Now, I invite you again, to please present in a succinct combox-style comment a convincing argument for why it is more probable than not that Rome had no Bishops before the time of Irenaeus.

    The burden of proof is on you, for the reasons Bryan stated above in comments 18 and 340. But to give you a sense of what is needed, here is a summary of an empirical argument for why it is more probable than not that there were Bishops overseeing the Church of Rome before the time of Irenaeus. I have tried to discipline my own thinking according to the points I made above.

    (1) The earliest direct evidence we have on this question is Irenaeus. I hesitate to even list anything else in the dataset, since everything other piece of early “evidence” is so indirect at best. But one could also consider Ignatius of Antioch, Clement, and the Shepherd of Hermas in the early data set.

    (2) Irenaeus clearly believes that there have always been Bishops overseeing the Church of Rome, and he is reasonably clear on what a Bishop is.

    (3) Potential Objection #1: are there contradictions in the other early evidence? Reply: All of the other early evidence is completely indirect on this question, and yet it is perfectly consistent with Irenaeus, for the reasons Bryan explained in 336 above. The closest a piece of non-Irenaeus evidence comes to being direct on this question is the datapoint obtained by combining Ignatius of Antioch’s two statements: (a) The Church of Rome is a Church, and (b) without bishops priests and deacons, “it cannot be called a church.”

    (4) Potential Objection #2: perhaps Irenaeus is usually wrong when we check up on him? Reply: Of the statements which Irenaeus wrote which can be explicitly checked from other higher quality sources, the majority are accurate. Therefore, any random statement which he makes, in the absence of strong evidence to the contrary, is more likely to be correct than incorrect. (side note: why should we be surprised that he usually checks out, by the way, considering he learned his doctrine from Polycarp who learned it from St. John the Evangelist and Apostle?).

    (5) Potential Objection #3: is the conclusion robust to expanding the size of the dataset to include more years of data? Reply: Everyone after Irenaeus who wrote about Bishops in Rome also believed and attested that there had always been Bishops overseeing the Church of Rome, so no counter-evidence is to be found by adding more years to the dataset.

    (6) Therefore, the empirical evidence indicates that it is more likely than not that there had always been Bishops overseeing the Church of Rome.

    I’ve read the attempts to argue otherwise by Protestants and other rebellious Catholics, but they always suffer from wild speculation, strange arguments from silence, and plentiful red herrings. They are not disciplined in their use of data, and so they have not convinced me. If you believe that in reality the arguments are high quality, then please present one, doing your best to avoid wild speculation, strange arguments from silence, and red herrings, disciplining your argument according to the points I made above. Then I will tell you what I think of it. This is a productive way to mutually come to the truth.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  354. What’s up Josh! It is very interesting hearing/reading this conversion story. I never knew any of that about you. Thanks for being open about things. That vulnerability will help you in your continuing journey!
    About your story, I had a couple of questions.

    1) You said that there was no certainty of authority in Protestantism because the certainty was left upon the shoulders of individual men pitted against other men. In other words, how do we know who is right? You followed this with the fact that you found the Catholic Church to be right. How would that be any different for a Protestant? Or more specifically, did you not commit the same error by individually using your own intellect to read Horton, Berkhof, Bavinck, etc., to read Aquinas? Does that make sense? How did you find certainty in the Catholic Church using the EXACT same method you used to reject Protestantism? How did you go from one group of men that thought they were sent by God to just another group of men that thought they were sent by God?
    2) You critique the Reformers for being a product of current philosophies, but do you see that this is the way it is for all peoples at all times and in all places, including the forming of the Catholic Church as well?
    3)I think it a little misleading to head this article with the fact that you were a Westminster Seminary student who went Catholic when upon coming to Westminster you were basically functionally agnostic. Thoughts?

    Lastly Josh, you made a comment that, within Protestantism, if one person disagreed with the confession that they could just go to a different congregation. How would this be different in the Catholic Church if someone disagreed? Would they not just go to another church, such as a Protestant one?

    Looking forward to your clarifying thoughts!

  355. Bryan, #349, it is interesting that you quote Irenaeus on a highly debated Latin text. What Greek translation would you give for “potiorem principalitatem”? Controversy over this exact thing should cause one to not use it as the overarching argument, mainly since in the previous and following sections there is no mention of preeminence of the Roman Bishop. Lastly, what would you do with Ignatius’ admonition that no bishop has authority over another bishopric?

  356. Hi Chad,

    Thanks for the comment. I will do my best to answer your questions.

    1) You said that there was no certainty of authority in Protestantism because the certainty was left upon the shoulders of individual men pitted against other men. In other words, how do we know who is right? You followed this with the fact that you found the Catholic Church to be right. How would that be any different for a Protestant? Or more specifically, did you not commit the same error by individually using your own intellect to read Horton, Berkhof, Bavinck, etc., to read Aquinas? Does that make sense? How did you find certainty in the Catholic Church using the EXACT same method you used to reject Protestantism? How did you go from one group of men that thought they were sent by God to just another group of men that thought they were sent by God?

    The lack of certainty in Protestantism is fundamentally tied to the idea that Scripture (as interpreted by me) is the final authority. In other words, even if a denomination or tradition does hypothetically have the true interpretation of Scripture regarding justification, for instance, there is no sure way of knowing with certainty that this group’s interpretation is correct–there is no one who can tell the less-educated lay person that such-and-such an interpretation is infallibly correct and therefore demands fiducial assent. Even before I was convinced that the Catholic Church is the Church instituted by Christ, I realized that within a Protestant framework–apart from any reference to Rome–it is impossible to know that a given reading of justification is the correct one. The problem seems to be exacerbated, not clarified, when one begins to appeal to the original languages and the original historical/cultural context of Second Temple Judaism. To put it differently, whether Catholicism is true or not, I don’t see any reason to believe that Protestantism is true. Against the argument that I’m seeking illegitimate certainty, I don’t think that it is illegitimate to want to be certain that my understanding of salvation is what was declared by Christ and the apostles and not based upon an arbitrary tradition of man (in distinction from Apostolic tradition). In other words, any uncertainty in matters of faith should be on my part and not on the part of what is proposed as true and binding. But given the lack of any sort of Magisterial teaching office in Protestantism, it is impossible to distinguish divine teaching from human opinion.

    It was upon realizing the impossibility of knowing revealed truths with certainty (i.e., as divinely revealed rather than merely being human opinion) within a Protestant paradigm that initially opened me up to the possibility of the verity of the Catholic Church’s claim. I suppose the best way to describe how I became convinced of the Catholic Church’s claim is not that I investigated all of her teachings according to my understanding of Scripture to see whether I could agree with them or not (this would be a Protestant approach to the issue). Rather, I put myself in the shoes of a Catholic and asked myself, first, whether the Catholic faces the same issues concerning authority, and, second, whether the various Protestant objections on historical or Scriptural grounds present a necessary argument against Catholicism. In other words, I assessed the Catholic Church on her own terms rather than on Protestant terms (just as I assessed Protestantism on its own terms, not on Catholic terms) and ultimately came to the conclusion that Protestant objections against Catholicism, especially the historical ones, if worked out consistently, ultimately render any form of faith in Christianity itself impossible. This decision, of course, did involve, on one level, the aspect of private judgment. I must first be convinced of the authority of the Church before I submit–and that much I am willing to concede. But the question is whether private judgment characterizes one’s submission to divine authority–I think it necessarily must for the Protestant on the ground of sola scriptura. For the Catholic private judgment is initially necessary, but once one submits to the teaching authority of the Church, certain issues or no longer open to question–that is simply what divine authority entails. Once the disciples accepted Christ’s authority, they were not constantly checking to see if everything he was saying was ‘biblical,’ rather, they assumed, a priori, that since he is Jesus Christ, the Son of the living God, he has divine authority in his person and they corrected their false understanding of Scripture according to Christ’s teaching, not vice versa.

    The Catholic understanding of the Church provides a fundamentally different paradigm of authority. I don’t submit to what I believe the Church should teach, but what the Church actually teaches. I don’t submit to a church based upon whether it conforms to my understanding of Scripture, but I submit to the divine authority established by Christ himself. Even if you don’t acknowledge that the Catholic Church is divinely established, I don’t think it is difficult to recognize a fundamental difference in approaches to authority.

    2) You critique the Reformers for being a product of current philosophies, but do you see that this is the way it is for all peoples at all times and in all places, including the forming of the Catholic Church as well?

    Of course everyone uses philosophy. Yet this fact was rejected by Protestants, such as Luther, who associated philosophy with a theologia gloriae thereby rending philosophical knowledge from theological knowledge all the while functioning on his own unstated philosophical assumptions. I don’t think Calvin’s attitude towards philosophy was fundamentally different from Luther’s, it was (and is) more or less part of the Protestant ethos to look upon philosophy (‘vain speculation,’ as Calvin called it) with a great degree of suspicion–without realizing that this view of philosophy’s relation to theology was itself a result of certain philosophical assumptions.

    3)I think it a little misleading to head this article with the fact that you were a Westminster Seminary student who went Catholic when upon coming to Westminster you were basically functionally agnostic. Thoughts?

    I don’t think this is right. While I was studying at Westminster I tried very hard to make sense of Reformed theology and had something of an implicit faith in the Magisterial Reformers and the Protestant Scholastics. While I struggled with agnosticism, I did this while still assuming that Reformed theology was somehow correct in their understanding of Scripture. In other words, I assumed that there were solutions to the problems that I was dealing with. It was only after three years of intensive reading and conversing with professors and students that I began to realize that maybe there was no solution to the various problems that I was dealing with. So no, I wasn’t functionally an agnostic in the sense that I had already given into agnosticism–I was resisting it with all my might. In all honesty, there was no point in all of this that I actually wanted to become agnostic; it was more that I did not see any reason, from a Protestant perspective, not to be.

    Lastly Josh, you made a comment that, within Protestantism, if one person disagreed with the confession that they could just go to a different congregation. How would this be different in the Catholic Church if someone disagreed? Would they not just go to another church, such as a Protestant one?

    A Protestant who disagrees with a given confession or tradition on biblical grounds and so moves to a different community is being a consistent Protestant. A Catholic who disagrees with the Catholic Church, or even thinks that the dogmatic teachings of the Church are to be believed based upon invidiual preference is not a consistent Catholic, but is behaving like a Protestant.

  357. Bryan (336). You wrote:

    It would be entirely speculative to claim that “it is very likely” that apostles like Andronicus and Junia (but not Peter) came to Rome shortly after Pentecost. Speculation of that sort in no way discredits St. Irenaeus, precisely because it is entirely speculative. So is your claim that “it is quite likely that Andronicus was the first (or, at the very least, an early) “bishop” of a Roman church.” I could ask you to demonstrate that the likelihood is greater than 2%, but I won’t do so, because I know you can’t demonstrate such a thing. Speculation on your part in no way discredits St. Irenaeus or his value as a historian. You are using your mere speculations as if they are evidence that “diminish” St. Irenaeus’s value as an historian. You don’t seem to realize that your speculations about what could or might possibly have happened, are not historical evidence, and do not in the least bit diminish St. Irenaeus’ value as an historian, or falsify anything he said.

    You are missing something. In Romans 16:7, we have a direct statement in Scripture that Andronicus (a) was in Rome, (b) was “in Christ before” Paul, (c) was “outstanding among the apostles”.

    To the effect that you are saying Peter was even in Rome, we have no such thing. Look at your statement from above:

    nothing makes it impossible for St. Peter to have been in Rome from AD 42 – 49 (when Claudius expelled the Jews from Rome), and then again in Rome from AD 54-57 (during which time the Gospel of Mark was written),

    There is, the small matter, that (a) Andronicus IS attested in Rome, by a direct statement from Paul, and (b), there is no direct attestation that Peter was there, neither in 42-49, nor 54-57.

    To the contrary, there is evidence that he was not there in both of those periods. During the years 42-47, he is attested in other places (Corinth, Antioch), but no contemporary seemed to think it was important enough to mention that Peter was in Rome during those years. Thus your assertion that he could have been there is an argument from silence. Also, Paul, writing in Romans (dated very accurately to the years 54-57) mentions dozens of people in Rome, but does not greet Peter. If he were there, that would be very bad form on Paul’s part. And again, your argument that “it wasn’t impossible” for him to be there, doesn’t actually locate him there. Again, you make an argument from silence.

    Whose statement is more speculative? Mine, to the effect that Andronicus was in Rome, was a leader “outstanding among the apostles””? Or yours, to the effect “it’s not impossible he was there during those times”. I can’t believe you can make this argument.

    There actually was church activity going on in Rome during those years. I’ve outlined that very thoroughly in my series on house churches in Rome.

    Acts 16:13-15, Acts 17:5-9, Acts 18:1-3, Acts 18:5-8, 1 Corinthians 16:16, 1 Corinthians 16:19, Colossians 4:15, Philemon, and Romans 16 all speak of multiple churches meeting in multiple homes. It is not at all speculative of me to talk about House Churches in Ancient Rome.

  358. Sean (351) your comparison is worth noting:

    Do you grant that there is a huge difference between Eusebius thinking the Agbar letters to be genuine and apostolic succession?

    I mean, if the Agbar letter was foundational to the ecclesiology of the Church and repeated and relied upon for 2,000 years spanning the geography of the known world then maybe you would have an argument. If, in addition to what you call Augustine being hampered by his bad ecclesiology you could argue that he was hampered by accepting and relying upon the Agbar letter then maybe we’d have something to talk about.

    Thus, that you can show that this father here or that father there held something that kind of sticks out as unreliable does not even compare to apostolic succession. In fact, that these things are aberrations prove that, to the fathers, apostolic succession was no aberration.

    No, I do not grant that there is “a huge difference” between the Eusebius/Agbar fiction and Irenaeus’s account of “apostolic succession”. It is just as easy to dismiss Irenaeus’s account. Here’s why.

    K. Doran (353) also refers to this passage “The earliest direct evidence we have”, and, if it is (to use Sean’s words) “foundational to the ecclesiology of the church” and “the earliest direct evidence we have”, then it is not very valuable as evidence, and indeed, should be challenged and dismissed.

    Michael Kruger, in a recent blog post, pointed out that the number of manuscripts provide important physical evidence of relative use and popularity of certain works. Thus he says:

    The physical remains of writings can give us an indication of their relative popularity. Such remains can tell us which books were used, read, and copied. [The notion here is that important works were copied and re-copied, whereas unpopular works were not.] When we examine the physical remains of Christian texts from the earliest centuries (second and third), we quickly discover that the New Testament writings were, far and away, the most popular. Currently we have over sixty extant manuscripts (in whole or in part) of the New Testament from this time period, with most of our copies coming from Matthew, John, Luke, Acts, Romans, Hebrews, and Revelation. The gospel of John proves to be the most popular of all with eighteen manuscripts, a number of which derive from the second century (e.g., P52, P90, P66, P75). Matthew is not far behind with twelve manuscripts; and some of these also have been dated to the second century (e.g., P64-67, P77, P103, P104).

    During the same time period, the second and third centuries, we possess approximately seventeen manuscripts of apocryphal writings such as the Gospel of Thomas, the Gospel of Mary, the Gospel of Peter, the Protevangelium of James, and more. The Gospel of Thomas has the most manuscripts of all, with just three.

    The implications of this numerical disparity has not been missed by modern scholars.

    By comparison, a work such as “Shepherd of Hermas”, which appeared in some early canonical lists, and which was very highly regarded in some circles, “has not been well preserved”, according to Michael Holmes (“The Apostolic Fathers: Greek Texts and English Translations”, Third Edition ©2007), notes that “Only four incomplete Greek manuscripts and several small fragments have been discovered.” In all, he lists about 22 different manuscript sources (many of which are Latin) in which this work appears.

    On the other hand, Irenaeus, whose “Against Heresies” is claimed to be a superb piece of evidence, was not so highly regarded. Note what Eric Osborn says in his study of Irenaeus:

    The original Greek text of Irenaeus’ Against Heresies is found only in fragmentary form, while [only one] complete Latin translation prepared about the year 380 has survived (emphasis added). There are three early manuscripts of the Latin translation, the oldest of which (Clareomontanus) dates from the tenth or eleventh century. The others are later (Leydensys, Arundelianus). Erasmus’ edition princeps of Irenaeus (1526) contains some readings not represented by any of these three manuscripts and the sources from which his variants may dreive have since disappeared (pg 1).

    No complete text exists, and only two other manuscript sources from prior to the 10th century exist. Thus, in a period (2nd-10th centuries) when literally thousands of New Testament manuscripts exist, including many complete manuscripts of both the OT and the NT, we have only three extant manuscripts of Against Heresies. Thus, Irenaeus’s account was neither “repeated and relied upon for 2,000 years” nor did it “span the geography of the known world” during that time.

    The fact that only three manuscript sources existed is an important piece of evidence against the notion that Irenaeus’s beliefs were widespread. In fact, that’s a very important piece of evidence that actually quite provincial.

    Moreover, in addition to the paucity of texts, what text we do have, as Chad Brewer (#356) noted, is “a highly debated Latin text”.

    Especially debated (as J.N.D. Kelly notes) is the passage in question. He says:

    To illustrate his argument Irenaeus singled out, in a famous and much debated passage, the Roman church; its greatness, its antiquity, its foundation by the apostles Peter and Paul, the fact too that it was universally known, made it an apt example.Ad hanc enim ecclesiam, so the surviving Latin translation runs, propter potentiorem principalitatem necesse est omnem convenire ecclesiam, hoc est eos qui sunt undique fideles, in qua simper ab his qui sunt undique conservata est ea quae est ab apostolic traditio. If convenire here means ‘agree with’ and principalitas refers to the Roman primacy (in whatever sense), the gist of the sentence may be taken to be that Christians of every other church are required, in view of its special position of leadership, to fall into line with the Roman church, inasmuch as the authentic apostolic tradition is always preserved by the faithful who are everywhere. This interpretation, or some variant of it, has been accepted by many, but it is awkward to refer in qua to hanc … ecclesiam, and [it is] anachronistic to attribute such thinking to Irenaeus (J.N.D. Kelly “Early Christian Doctrines”, pg 193).

    The anachronism he speaks of here is more pronounced, given the date (380) of that Latin manuscript. This was during the papacy of “pope” Damasus, whose mission as a “pope” is widely regarded to have worked diligently to enhanced the status of the papacy. Eamon Duffy notes (“Saints and Sinners”, ©2001 edition), “The Romanization of the papacy was more than a matter of external decoration. Self-consciously, the popes began to model their actions and their style as Christian leaders on the procedures of the Roman state”.

    However, whereas we may safely say that Eusebius’s “goof” regarding Agbar was a simple error, it is possible to attribute an active kind of tampering to this passage from Irenaeus (again, the Latin manuscript is dated 380).

    Why do I say this? Roger Collins has noted, writing of the Symmachan forgeries”, describes these “pro-Roman” “enhancements” to history:

    So too would the spurious historical texts written anonymously or ascribed to earlier authors that are known collectively as the Symmachan forgeries. This was the first occasion on which the Roman church had revisited its own history, in particular the third and fourth centuries, in search of precedents That these were largely invented does not negate the significance of the process. Forgery is an emotive word, and it should not necessarily be assumed that the documents, including the acts of two synods, were cynically concocted to justify a particular claim. Some of the periods in question, such as the pontificates of Sylvester and Liberius (352-366), were already being seen more through the prism of legend than that of history, and in the Middle Ages texts were often forged because their authors were convinced of the truth of what they contained. Their faked documents provided tangible evidence of what was already believed true.

    Thus, he says, “It is no coincidence that the first systematic works of papal history appear at the very time the Roman church’s past was being reinvented for polemical purposes.” (Collins, “Keepers of the Keys of Heaven,” pgs 80-82).

    Thus it is “not inconsistent” with the facts as we know them, and in fact, it is possible to suggest that there is a high degree of probability, given that there is no complete Greek text, and a “translation” of the text dating to 380, during the time when Damasus was beginning to work to enhance Rome’s status vis-à-vis actual history, that this “controversial text” was doctored to enhance Rome’s status.

    (The fact that it was a “known enhancement” would also speak to the fact that so few manuscript copies were produced early on).

    So, in response to K. Doran’s list of stipulations about evidence (353), all of these things must temper the kind of, and the amount of enthusiasm we have, for regarding Irenaeus’s text as a “key piece of evidence”.

    While it’s possible to say that this passage from Irenaeus is not quite so fictional as the letters between Jesus and Agbar, it is still very possible to challenge the authenticity of the passage on the basis of both available manuscripts, the text itself, and the things we know of the Roman and papal cultures of the times.

  359. John #358,

    If Irenaeus’ list was so unimportant and so scant and so forgettable in the mind of the church, why did the belief of apostolic succession manifest itself so plainly throughout the centuries?

    To quote Frank Beckwith from a comment in the ‘challenge’ thread:

    John, to whom are you going to file your grievance in order to remedy this great historical wrong, a wrong that extended over the entirety of Christendom from (if you’re right) the 3rd century until the 16th?

    Both East and West apparently fell into precisely the same error, assimilating into its ecclessial DNA an understanding of itself that came into being out of whole cloth one afternoon in the 3rd century. And to make matters worse, no one really noticed, not Nicea, not Chalcedon, not Orange, though these councils presupposed the authority you claim is a forgery. The hoodwinking was so clever, so sublime, so sophisticated, and so diabolical that it developed in such a way as to fit seamlessly with the Church, its doctrinal development, its liturgy, its councils, and its declarations on the canonicity of Scripture. The deception was so well done–by the Enemy, of course–that it displays an elegance that makes it seem to be, in retrospect, just how one would expect the Church to have developed.

    Perhaps it was the green men after all.

    You say that Irenaeus lied and made up this list for polemical reasons. You say that in the mind of the church, based on a few manuscripts extant, that it must not have been very important.

    However, the fact is that apostolic succession is attested to at nearly every stage in church history by a vast and far reaching spread of witnesses.

    What makes more sense? A lie spreading like that to the point that you proclaim that St Augustine had ‘bad ecclesiology’ or that apostolic succession really is a mark of the Church and has always been so?

  360. John, (re: #357)

    You wrote:

    You are missing something. In Romans 16:7, we have a direct statement in Scripture that Andronicus (a) was in Rome, (b) was “in Christ before” Paul, (c) was “outstanding among the apostles”.

    I recognize and affirm those three things, but everything I said in #336 is compatible with the truth of those three things.

    To the effect that you are saying Peter was even in Rome, we have no such thing.

    On the contrary, we have a great deal of patristic evidence to that effect. F.F. Bruce even says that the patristic evidence is “unanimous” that Peter was in Rome. This includes testimony by St. Clement of Rome (AD 90-99), St. Ignatius (d. AD 107), St. Dionysius (AD 166-174), St. Irenaeus, Caius (AD 198), St. Clement of Alexandria (AD 200), Tertullian (AD 200), St. Hippolytus (AD 225), Origen, St. Cyprian (AD 251), Firmilian of Caesaria (AD 257), Bishop Peter of Alexandria (AD 306), Lactantius (AD 318), Eusebius, Council of Sardica (AD 342), St. Athanasius (AD 358). Jurgens lists at least thirty distinct patristic references to Peter having been in Rome. And there is archaeological evidence as well for his presence in Rome. See The Bones of St. Peter.

    You wrote:

    To the contrary, there is evidence that he was not there in both of those periods. During the years 42-47, he is attested in other places (Corinth, Antioch),

    Please provide the evidence demonstrating that St. Peter was in Corinth or Antioch (or anywhere other than Rome) during the years 42-47.

    You wrote:

    but no contemporary seemed to think it was important enough to mention that Peter was in Rome during those years.

    Both Eusebius and St. Jerome wrote that St. Peter’s episcopate in Rome was 25 years, which most likely began in AD 42, and ended at his martyrdom in AD 67. They did not mean, of course, that he was there in Rome during the entire 25 years.

    You wrote:

    Thus your assertion that he could have been there is an argument from silence.

    Assertions are not arguments. You had written that “The only chance that Peter would have had to visit Rome would have been the vague mention in Acts 12:17.” I’m pointing out that Peter could have been there in Rome from 42 – 49, 54-57, and 62-67. Feel free to demonstrate that he couldn’t have been there during those years. If you can’t, then your claim that “The only chance that Peter would have had to visit Rome would have been the vague mention in Acts 12:17,” is a mere assertion, and you have no evidence to support it.

    Also, Paul, writing in Romans (dated very accurately to the years 54-57) mentions dozens of people in Rome, but does not greet Peter. If he were there, that would be very bad form on Paul’s part.

    How do you know that Romans couldn’t have been written between 53-54, while St. Peter was not at Rome?

    And again, your argument that “it wasn’t impossible” for him to be there, doesn’t actually locate him there. Again, you make an argument from silence.

    Again, a claim is not an argument. In #336 I wasn’t making a positive case for Peter’s presence in Rome; I was refuting your assertion that “The only chance that Peter would have had to visit Rome would have been the vague mention in Acts 12:17.” All I have to do, to refute that claim, is show that it is possible for him to have been there for significant stretches of time between AD 42 and AD 67.

    Whose statement is more speculative? Mine, to the effect that Andronicus was in Rome, was a leader “outstanding among the apostles””? Or yours, to the effect “it’s not impossible he was there during those times”. I can’t believe you can make this argument.

    You’re misunderstanding, because you’re not seeing the difference between what is required to support a positive claim (of the sort claiming that there is no chance for x) and what is required to falsify such a claim. To falsify your claim that Peter had no chance to be in Rome, all I have to do is show that he did have a chance to be in Rome. I don’t have to prove that he was in Rome. And I’m pointing out that given the Scriptural and patristic data, he had multiple opportunities to be in Rome for extended periods of time. My claim (which is a claim, not an argument) that “it’s not impossible he was there during those times” is based on all the Scriptural and patristic evidence. I’m pointing out that from all the data we have, none of it taken individually or collectively shows it to be impossible for St. Peter to have been in Rome during those times. That’s not speculation; that’s based on the data. And it shows that he did have a chance to be in Rome. If you think the Scriptural or patristic data shows that he had no chance to be in Rome, then please show how the Scriptural or patristic data makes it impossible for him to have been in Rome during the times I mentioned. You claimed that “The only chance that Peter would have had to visit Rome would have been the vague mention in Acts 12:17.” And, as I said above, all I have to do, to refute that claim, is show that it is possible for him to have been there for significant stretches of time, between 42-67. And that is what have done.

    Your statements that Andronicus was in Rome when St. Paul’s letter to the Romans was written, and that he was oustanding, are not speculative. What is entirely speculative were your claims that,

    “it is quite likely that Andronicus was the first (or, at the very least, an early)“bishop” of a Roman church. Thus, contra Irenaeus, it is far more likely that Andronicus and Junia “founded and established” a church at Rome.”

    You wrote:

    There actually was church activity going on in Rome during those years. I’ve outlined that very thoroughly in my series on house churches in Rome.
    Acts 16:13-15, Acts 17:5-9, Acts 18:1-3, Acts 18:5-8, 1 Corinthians 16:16, 1 Corinthians 16:19, Colossians 4:15, Philemon, and Romans 16 all speak of multiple churches meeting in multiple homes.

    I fully affirm that. But that is all compatible with what I said in #336 being true.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

    UPDATE: On house churches in Rome, see the video below:

  361. John Bugay –

    I’ve actually never really seen too many arguments that Peter wasn’t in Rome. I’ve known that they are out there, but I’ve never taken the time to look through them. So, since this is new to me, please forgive me if I say something stupid or miss something obvious.

    But you seem to be arguing that “Peter was not in Rome because there is no evidence that Peter was in Rome.” But that can’t be your argument, can it? I must have missed something obvious in this thread. Surely you realize the weakness of an argument from silence in this case.

    In order to prove your point you just can’t point to a lack of evidence. Instead, you need to provide evidence that Peter was someplace else the entire time. Here is what I mean. We could say, “There is no evidence Peter was in Athens, so he must not have been in Athens. There is also no evidence that Peter was in Jerusalem at that time, so we can conclude that he was not in Jerusalem. There is no evidence that Peter was in Bethany, so therefore Peter wasn’t in Bethany…. and we could say this over and over and over until every single place in the entire world is eliminated. But certainly, Peter was somewhere wasn’t he?

    In order to demonstrate Peter wasn’t in Rome, you must tell us where he was and present stronger evidence that he was there than the evidence Bryan lists that testifies he was in Rome.

    If you pointed out that evidence that he was somewhere and I missed it, I apologize, but if you could direct me to the comment, please let me know (this thread is long and I’ve been trying hard to follow along, but some comments always slip through and going back and reading everything, as you know is time consuming).

  362. John,

    In 358 you explain why you believe that Irenaeus’ writings have been “doctored”, or were in any case “provincial” opinions which were not “widespread.”

    There are a lot of problems with the details of what you wrote, which I can respond to if you wish. But first let me point out a fundamental problem with your understanding of how to test a hypothesis with respect to empirical evidence. Let us suppose for the moment, for the sake of argument, that we had proof that Irenaeus’ writings were doctored (we don’t have this proof, but let us suppose it for a moment). That would push forward the date of the earliest evidence we have that could directly inform the question of whether or not there were always Bishops overseeing the specifically Roman Church. This would mean that we would have no evidence which directly informed the question of whether or not there were always Bishops overseeing the Church of Rome from before the time of Tertullian.

    What does it mean to have no evidence which directly informs our question? It does not mean that we know that there were no Bishops in Rome. It does not mean that we know that there were Bishops in Rome. It does not mean that it is more likely than not that there were no Bishops in Rome. It does not mean that it is more likely than not that there were Bishops in Rome. It simply means that, using this evidence, we don’t know. That means we need to expand the pool of evidence in order to determine what the evidence can say on this question.

    So let’s summarize your argument as far as I can outline it so far:

    Catholic: “If you take all the direct pieces of evidence that we have on the following questions, it is clear that at the very least a substantial majority of the Church Fathers believed in: Baptismal Regeneration; in Churches that must be ruled by Bishops, priests, and deacons; in a requirement that only Bishops ordain Bishops; in a substantial doctrinal authority in the Roman Church; in a real presence of Christ in the Eucharist; in the power of the Church to forgive sins in Jesus’ name; and, finally, a dominical or apostolic origin for these beliefs. Protestants should therefore believe in them also.”

    Protestant: “Ah, but if you look at the really early data, you can see that the Church did not believe in any of these things, at least in the way Catholics believe in them. Therefore, being Catholic is ahistorical, and you should become Protestant.”

    Catholic: “We have lots of direct evidence of belief in these things. What direct evidence do you have in the really early data which is so contradictory of our beliefs that it should make us discount all of the direct evidence we have that points in our direction?”

    Protestant: “Well, for example, the Shepherd of Hermas says that groups of Presbyters were arguing with each other in Rome: this means that there was no Bishop overseeing the Roman Church! If there were no bishops overseeing the Roman Church, that means the Papacy is a later invention. In the early years, we have this kind of evidence for all of the beliefs you care about, and a lot more of this kind of evidence about the papacy in particular.”

    Catholic: “Wow, that is spectacularly unconvincing. I was talking about direct evidence, like someone in 100AD saying: ‘We don’t have a Bishop overseeing Rome, even though all those Asian churches do.’ Or maybe someone in 150AD saying: ‘Our Bishop is Freddius Maximus, and he is our first Bishop.’ Do you have any direct evidence that points in your direction? Because we have very early direct evidence that points in our direction on this question from Irenaeus, who learned his doctrine from Polycarp, who learned his doctrine from John.”

    Protestant: “Well, it is possible that Irenaeus’ writings were doctored, because historians have proved that Roman bishops in the late 300s were corrupt people, and the earliest manuscript we have of Irenaeus is from that exact period. Also, we don’t have as many manuscripts of Irenaeus as we do of some other writings. Therefore, we shouldn’t place much weight on Irenaeus.”

    Catholic: “I don’t believe your argument about doctoring, and a lack of manuscripts could mean all kinds of things, but in any case, suppose that Irenaeus is junk. That just means that we have no direct evidence informing the question until Tertuallian (a younger man than Irenaeus). But Tertullian, like all the post-‘Against Heresies’ evidence which directly informs this question, says that the Roman Bishops were established by the apostles (meaning that they existed from the earliest times). So this still leaves all of the direct evidence pointing in our direction. Can you find some direct evidence pointing in the other direction?”

    So that’s where we seem to be as of now. I have to warn you that there is so much direct evidence pointing in the Catholic direction, you will need to get a big pile of direct evidence in the Protestant direction to make your argument (that history makes our doctrines unlikely) convincing. But I am interested in any direct evidence you have.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  363. I only have time for a couple of miscellaneous comments here at the moment.

    Fr Bryan 361:

    I’ve actually never really seen too many arguments that Peter wasn’t in Rome. I’ve known that they are out there, but I’ve never taken the time to look through them. So, since this is new to me, please forgive me if I say something stupid or miss something obvious. But you seem to be arguing that “Peter was not in Rome because there is no evidence that Peter was in Rome.” But that can’t be your argument, can it? I must have missed something obvious in this thread. …

    I had talked about Andronicus being in Rome, being greeted in the Letter to the Romans, and I had “speculated” that it was more likely he, as a figure “outstanding among the apostles” and “in the Lord before [Paul]”, and also, in Rome before Paul, was a leadership figure. He is, after all, attested in the New Testament.

    But I was not saying “Peter was never in Rome”. I was saying that the New Testament never places him in Rome (unless you think the New Testament is so perspicuous that “Babylon” means “Rome”). By the way, I have not intended not to respond to your comments earlier, except that I’m getting questions from a lot of different people at this point, and my time and attention are limited.

    Bryan 360: my quick comment to you is similar to what I said to Fr. Bryan just above here. In 357, I was pointing out that we have greater New Testament attestation that Andronicus was (a) in Rome and (b) in a leadership position(and not considering Patristic evidence). And not believing that you could call a case “speculative”. When I said “we have no such thing” with respect to Peter, what we don’t have is “a direct statement in Scripture that Andronicus (a) was in Rome, (b) was ‘in Christ before’ Paul, (c) was ‘outstanding among the apostles’.”

    By the way, Torrance does use the word “Pelagian” in his work, not with reference to Clement, but with reference to Shepherd of Hermas. He says “any idea that that grace demands the surrender of attempts to reach purity or singleness of heart from the side of the human will is quite foreign to him. As a matter of fact, behind his whole position there are elements which clearly anticipate a Pelagian doctrine of man. Such a sentence, for example, is revealing: “If you lay it down as certain that the commandments can be kept, you will easily keep them and they will not be hard. But if it comes into your heart that they cannot be kept by man, you will not keep them (Mand 12:3). As I mentioned above, my hope is to spend some time with Torrance’s treatment of Clement.

    And also, perhaps you can tell the folks here how it is that you are able to cite F.F. Bruce for me, without actually believing everything that Bruce says.

    Michael Liccione (#352), nor was I intending not to follow up with you, but again, time …

    K. Doran (362 and others):

    So that’s where we seem to be as of now. I have to warn you that there is so much direct evidence pointing in the Catholic direction, you will need to get a big pile of direct evidence in the Protestant direction to make your argument (that history makes our doctrines unlikely) convincing. But I am interested in any direct evidence you have.

    Keep in mind that I’ve come here and been asked questions on a bunch of topics, and I haven’t begun to really make my argument, and your summary is really just a caricature of patchwork things you’ve perceived that I’ve said.

    Let’s look at this, for example: You said (in your hypothetical discussion) “I was talking about direct evidence, like someone in 100AD saying: ‘….’ Or maybe someone in 150AD saying: ‘….’ Do you have any direct evidence that points in your direction?

    Of course I do. If I had to begin at the beginning, (and I appreciate your search for “direct evidence”), I’d say that Larry Hurtado’s “Lord Jesus Christ” makes the best case I’ve seen for what “earliest Christianity” believed, and he takes it right from the pages of the New Testament. Very much can be assembled about Christology, for example (which is his primary topic) and also the leadership structures that were evident, and which we can piece together inferentially from New Testament works. (If you go to this link, and start from the bottom, you’ll see in roughly chronological order the case that Hurtado makes regarding “earliest Christianity”.)

    Interestingly, Hurtado put up a blog post today in which he discusses his method. Consider this:

    So, even the old history-of-religions school granted an “early high christology”, and very early, not in the 40s or thereafter but within the first few years at most. The remaining question, however, is whether Bousset was correct to judge that this devotion to Jesus as sharing in divine honor did not erupt first in the earliest circles of Jewish believers and in an authentically Jewish setting such as Jerusalem.

    Perhaps most extensively in a couple of chapters in my book, Lord Jesus Christ (2003, pp. 79-216), I’ve analyzed in detail the data relevant to this question, and have concluded that by all accounts in fact the sort of Jesus-devotion reflected and affirmed in Paul’s letters seems to have characterized also Jewish-Christian circles of the very first years. Moreover, quite a number of other scholars have reached essentially the same conclusion over recent decades. I think, therefore, there is a certain moral ground on which to ask that those who wish to reach other conclusions should demonstrate an equivalent analysis of the data.

    Of course, earliest Christian discourse did not refer to Jesus and God in the terms that later became common, such as divine “essence” and divine “persons”. We can’t read the christological/theological discourse of the 3rd-4th centuries back into the first years. Indeed, it appears that the vocabulary and the questions of “ontology” weren’t a part of the discourse that earliest believers used. Note: It isn’t that they considered such language and rejected it; instead, it simply wasn’t a part of their discourse-world. So, they referred to Jesus as sharing and reflecting the glory of God, as bearing/sharing the divine name, etc., and this is pretty heady stuff. Most significantly, I have argued, they also included Jesus in their devotional practice in ways that were without precedent in Jewish tradition and that were otherwise reserved for God. Crucially, all indications are that this was not an issue between Paul and Jerusalem.

    Hurtado is talking about the years from 30-50. Similar such studies have come up with great detail on, for example, Paul’s leadership models (from his letters). This is the kind of thing – an historical reconstruction from the ground up, which just makes me shake my head when I see comments like Bryan’s, suggesting “During [Paul’s] time in Rome (four to five years) he undoubtedly taught those who were or would become the bishops/elders of the Church at Rome. And all of that is fully compatible with what St. Irenaeus says.” In Hurtado-style reconstructions of the Pauline world of “authority”, which analyze “all the data relevant data”, there is nothing that looks like Roman Catholicism in there.

    So “direct evidence” in 100 AD or 150 AD seems a lot less important than what the New Testament can describe for us. Especially given that, during those years, there IS that dearth of direct evidence that you had mentioned. (A mention of Peter in 1 Clement, two mentions in Ignatius, another one about 60 years later – that does not seem all that convincing to me).

    If I were to tell you what my general argument would be (if I were to make it), it would be to address the phrase you see a lot around here to the effect that “we’ve discovered ‘the Church that Christ Founded’”. There is much that we know about that church from the pages of the New Testament and from writers like Hurtado – if you start from that church, instead of working backward (Newman-style) from today’s Roman Catholic structure and reading today’s structures back into that church, you’d come up with two completely different pictures.

    A theologian like Francis Sullivan can say “most Catholic scholars agree that the episcopate is the fruit of a post New Testament development” and further “that this development was so evidently guided by the Holy Spirit that it must be recognized as corresponding to God’s plan for the structure of his Church”.

    I would agree with the first part of that statement, but reject the second part of that statement. And to do so, I would look to Bavinck’s analysis of a “superadded gift” with respect to special revelation. Or the lack of such a thing, according to Protestants. The upshot is, “oral tradition” did not have “supernatural protection”. The canon of Scripture was the determining factor in ongoing “orthodoxy” (beginning with Irenaeus and Tertullian, in the way that Cullmann explains it), and yes, “Scripture alone” was God’s intended method for seeing to it that the gates of hell do not prevail against the church.

    We have not begun to go there. And all the disparate details I’ve brought up here are simply unrelated markers along that path.

  364. John (#363),
    You seem to suggest that the Roman Church sees herself as being born fully as she appears and exists in the current day like Athena from Zeus’ skull. That is not the truth, and I know of no one who seriously contends such a thing.

    You said:
    “The canon of Scripture was the determining factor in ongoing ‘orthodoxy’ (beginning with Irenaeus and Tertullian, in the way that Cullmann explains it), and yes, ‘Scripture alone’ was God’s intended method for seeing to it that the gates of hell do not prevail against the church.”

    An assertion so far without evidence.

    You said:
    “So ‘direct evidence’ in 100 AD or 150 AD seems a lot less important than what the New Testament can describe for us. Especially given that, during those years, there IS that dearth of direct evidence that you had mentioned. (A mention of Peter in 1 Clement, two mentions in Ignatius, another one about 60 years later – that does not seem all that convincing to me).”

    It really doesn’t matter. Produce direct evidence that Peter was not, in fact, in Rome by showing that he was elsewhere. Otherwise, this is an argument from silence. As you yourself note, we have mentions of Peter being in Rome, but none to contradict them. Telling, no?

    You write:
    “In Hurtado-style reconstructions of the Pauline world of ‘authority’, which analyze ‘all the data relevant data’, there is nothing that looks like Roman Catholicism in there.”

    That assumes that Hurtado’s reconstructions are accurate and is, again, an argument from silence.

    You say:
    “Of course I do. If I had to begin at the beginning, (and I appreciate your search for ‘direct evidence’), I’d say that Larry Hurtado’s ‘Lord Jesus Christ’ makes the best case I’ve seen for what ‘earliest Christianity’ believed, and he takes it right from the pages of the New Testament. Very much can be assembled about Christology, for example (which is his primary topic) and also the leadership structures that were evident, and which we can piece together inferentially from New Testament works.”

    Irrelevant. Rome does not deny the New Testament’s attestations to all these topics. Neither does Rome deny the use of Patristic data to tell us about the early Church. Also, you have yet to produce such direct evidence that Peter was not the first bishop of Rome (like a reference to there being another bishop or a statement to the effect that, “we don’t have a bishop”), as K. Doran requested. Also, demonstrate *with direct evidence* from the NT and the Fathers how Hurtado’s synthesis of early Church worship, Christology, etc. is contradictory to Catholicism (and to the rest of apostolic Christianity: Eastern Orthodoxy, Oriental Orthodoxy, and the Assyrian Church of the East)

    You write:
    “But I was not saying ‘Peter was never in Rome’. I was saying that the New Testament never places him in Rome (unless you think the New Testament is so perspicuous that ‘Babylon’ means ‘Rome’).”

    Again, irrelevant. You’re speculating on silence and begging the question. Produce your direct evidence, please.

    You say:
    “By the way, Torrance does use the word ‘Pelagian’ in his work, not with reference to Clement, but with reference to Shepherd of Hermas. He says ‘any idea that that grace demands the surrender of attempts to reach purity or singleness of heart from the side of the human will is quite foreign to him. As a matter of fact, behind his whole position there are elements which clearly anticipate a Pelagian doctrine of man. Such a sentence, for example, is revealing: ‘If you lay it down as certain that the commandments can be kept, you will easily keep them and they will not be hard. But if it comes into your heart that they cannot be kept by man, you will not keep them (Mand 12:3). As I mentioned above, my hope is to spend some time with Torrance’s treatment of Clement.”

    A Pelagian before Pelagius? Talk about reading themes back onto a work.

  365. John Bugay –

    But I was not saying “Peter was never in Rome”. I was saying that the New Testament never places him in Rome (unless you think the New Testament is so perspicuous that “Babylon” means “Rome”). By the way, I have not intended not to respond to your comments earlier, except that I’m getting questions from a lot of different people at this point, and my time and attention are limited.

    Thanks for the clarification. Don’t worry about not responding to the comments yet, but thanks for acknowledging it. I understand the difficulty of responding to as many people as you are. I would rather wait for a well thought out response than get something written in haste. In fact, I’d rather not be answered at all than have to read something written in haste.

    Thanks for spending time here.

  366. Fr Bryan, did I see somewhere that you said you were Anglican?

    Have you seen this site?

  367. John Bugay –

    Nope, not Anglican. Proudly born and raised Roman. I am a pretty bad writer, though, so I wouldn’t be surprised if I’ve confused a few people on a number of issues, my own faith included.

  368. Garrison (#364):

    You seem to suggest that the Roman Church sees herself as being born fully as she appears and exists in the current day like Athena from Zeus’ skull. That is not the truth, and I know of no one who seriously contends such a thing.

    The Roman Church did teach that, all the way through the 17th century. At the very least, the Council of Trent, believed and taught such a thing. That’s what the phrase semper eadem was all about. It was only after the Reformation and the enlightenment began to point out certain discrepancies, that someone like Newman was required to address “certain apparent variations in teaching”, among other things. At one time, the Roman Church did see itself as being born fully, and in “essence”, Bryan and others here have argued that absolutely nothing was lacking in “the Church that Christ founded”. That’s what it means to say Christ “founded a visible church”. Open up an acorn, and you can see a fully-formed tiny baby tree in there, with all the things it will have as an adult tree.

    You [JB] said:
    “The canon of Scripture was the determining factor in ongoing ‘orthodoxy’ (beginning with Irenaeus and Tertullian, in the way that Cullmann explains it), and yes, ‘Scripture alone’ was God’s intended method for seeing to it that the gates of hell do not prevail against the church.”

    An assertion so far without evidence.

    It’s argued strenuously by Cullmann, whose entire work I have not reproduced here. If I could, I would. That is his conclusion. My first comment here was to recommend the work of Michael Kruger, Canon Revisited. I’ve placed Kruger’s conclusions in juxtaposition with the 1962 Joseph Ratzinger essay “Primacy, Episcopacy, and Successio Apostolica”, where then-theologian Ratzinger says, at some length:

    We should not deceive ourselves: the existence of New Testament writings, recognized as being “apostolic”, does not yet imply the existence of a “New Testament” as “Scripture”—there is a long way from the writings to Scripture. It is well known, and should not be overlooked, that the New Testament does not anywhere understand itself as “Scripture”; “Scripture” is, for the New Testament, simply the Old Testament, while the message about Christ is precisely “spirit”, which teaches us how to understand Scripture.” The idea of a “New Testament” as “Scripture” is still quite inconceivable at this point—even when “office”, as the form of the paradosis, is already clearly taking shape” (Ratzinger, 25).

    Kruger’s point, however, (which has been examined and confirmed from different viewpoints by such scholars as Oscar Cullmann and Richard Bauckham) is this (as I’ve summarized him):

    “My Sheep Hear My Voice”. Thus, Kruger begins his chapter outlining what he calls the “Canon as Self-Authenticating” model. It is noteworthy that he re-affirms what Calvin said of Scripture in his Institutes. “God alone is a fit witness of himself in his Word….Scripture is indeed self-authenticated.” (from Institutes 1.7.4-5). He cites also Reformed writers such as Francis Turretin and Herman Bavinck:

    Herman Bavinck reminds us that the church fathers [who had no official certification from Rome] understood Scripture this way: “in the Church Fathers and the Scholastics … [Scripture] rested in itself, was trustworthy in and of itself (αὐτοπιστος), and the primary norm for church and theology” (Kruger, pg 90, citing Bavinck, “Reformed Dogmatics”, Vol 1, pg 452).

    Kruger provides the definition of the term he is working with:

    …for the purpose of this study, we shall be using the phrase self-authenticating in a broader fashion than was typical for the Reformers. We are not using it to refer only to the fact that canonical books bear divine qualities (although they do) but are using it to refer to the way the canon itself provides the necessary direction and guidance about how it is to be authenticated. In essence, to say that the canon is self-authenticating is simply to recognize that one cannot authenticate the canon without appealing to the canon. It sets the terms for its own validation and investigation. A self-authenticating canon is not just a canon that claims to have authority, nor is it simply a canon that bears internal evidence of authority, but one that guides and determines how that authority is to be established (91).

    Of course he will look to external criteria as well. But as he says, “The canon, as God’s word, is not just true, but the criterion of truth. It is an ultimate authority … thus, for ultimate authorities to be ultimate authorities, they have to be the standard for their own authentication. You cannot account for them without using them” (91).

    So, Sola Scriptura is in the Bible. Among other things, the New Testament canon “speaks for itself” (159).

    Now, it takes him several hundred pages to make his case. I’ve gotten half way through the book, if you’re really interested in interacting with Kruger’s supposed “argument from silence”. Just because I haven’t reproduced the whole thing here doesn’t mean that it’s an argument that Roman Catholicism doesn’t have to contend with. And no, I’m not going to say that it’s a slam-dunk, but it definitely changes the terms of what has been a 500-year-old disagreement.

  369. Garrison (#364):

    You [JB] said:
    “So ‘direct evidence’ in 100 AD or 150 AD seems a lot less important than what the New Testament can describe for us. Especially given that, during those years, there IS that dearth of direct evidence that you had mentioned. (A mention of Peter in 1 Clement, two mentions in Ignatius, another one about 60 years later – that does not seem all that convincing to me).”

    It really doesn’t matter. Produce direct evidence that Peter was not, in fact, in Rome by showing that he was elsewhere. Otherwise, this is an argument from silence. As you yourself note, we have mentions of Peter being in Rome, but none to contradict them. Telling, no?

    Of course not. I’ve noticed a pattern in your response. I don’t reproduce hundreds of pages of Protestant arguments here, and so when I come here and report their conclusions, you dismiss them as “an argument from silence”.

    I’ve already noted, I wasn’t arguing that Peter wasn’t in Rome. I’m arguing that in Andronicus, we already have an apostolic presence in Rome [“outstanding among the apostles”], who was “in Christ before” Paul, who was the leader of a house church. That is real history. We are talking a period from, say, 30 to 49 AD, and perhaps beyond, someone “founding and establishing” a church at Rome.

    To the contrary, Bryan said “During [Paul’s] time in Rome (four to five years) he undoubtedly taught those who were or would become the bishops/elders of the Church at Rome. And all of that is fully compatible with what St. Irenaeus says.”

    Now, what Bryan says is speculative on two counts. It’s speculative as to what, precisely Paul was teaching them during that time. Bryan wants to assume it was Roman Catholic concepts (or such things in seed form) of episcopacy, hierarchy and priesthood. But that’s a mere assumption. “Not inconsistent”

    It was also a matter of speculation that he was teaching them at that time. Robert Jewett’s commentary on Romans, for example, argues at length that Paul, upon being freed (at the end of Acts), then traveled further to Spain, before returning to Rome. And we also have Clement’s testimony that Paul traveled to Spain. It seems he was more interested in spreading the Gospel where it had not been heard before, than staying in Rome and “building on someone else’s foundation”. Look at what Paul says:

    It has always been my ambition to preach the gospel where Christ was not known, so that I would not be building on someone else’s foundation. Rather, as it is written:

    “Those who were not told about him will see,
    and those who have not heard will understand.”

    It seems far more likely, based on Paul’s own words, that (a) he doesn’t stay in Rome, and (b) in Romans 16 he is listing the actual “foundation” upon which he doesn’t want to build, in the form of 23 other individuals in Romans 16, none of whom is Peter, and among them, Andronicus, “outstanding among the apostles”. Isn’t it “speculative” to suggest that that’s Peter’s “foundation”, when Paul’s own words paint a different picture?

  370. Garrison (#364):

    You [JB] said:
    “In Hurtado-style reconstructions of the Pauline world of ‘authority’, which analyze ‘all the data relevant data’, there is nothing that looks like Roman Catholicism in there.”

    That assumes that Hurtado’s reconstructions are accurate and is, again, an argument from silence.

    I don’t have any question that Hurtado’s reconstructions are accurate. Perhaps you’d care to interact with them on a point-by-point basis and show me where they’re not.

    Anyhow, it’s not just Hurtado who’s writing about that period. Bryan cited F.F. Bruce, and I cite him extensively on the transistion from the Synagogue leadership structure to that found in the early church in the eastern half of the church, before the year 100. Notice that there’s not an “argument from silence” in these links, but rather, an analysis of what “Second Temple Judaism” held as a leadership structure, and how the early church picked that up (as evidenced within Paul’s letters and Acts, for example):

    Elders Chairs Prologue Florilegia

    Elders Teachers Chairs 1

    Elders Teachers Chairs 2

    Elders Teachers Chairs 3

    Elders Teachers Chairs 4

    This is all quite a different leadership model from that which was found in Rome, in the form of the Roman concept of paterfamilias and the household structure which is attested, again, throughout the New Testament and 1 Clement.

    I wouldn’t expect you to read all of these links, but on the other hand, you’d learn a lot if you did.

    Also, demonstrate *with direct evidence* from the NT and the Fathers how Hurtado’s synthesis of early Church worship, Christology, etc. is contradictory to Catholicism

    Here is a summary that Hurtado produced on the topic of “worship in the New Testament church”, for “The New Interpreter’s Dictionary of the Bible”, ed. Katharine Doob Sakenfeld (Nashville: Abingdon Press, 2006-2009), 5: 910-23.

    He cites plenty of “direct evidence”.

  371. John Bugay,

    That is his conclusion. My first comment here was to recommend the work of Michael Kruger, Canon Revisited.

    Some of us have read “Canon Revisted” and we’ll produce a review of it in the not-too-distant future.

    Just one quick observations from your response to Garrison. As I think you are talking past eachother on this point.

    “I’m arguing that in Andronicus, we already have an apostolic presence in Rome [“outstanding among the apostles”], who was “in Christ before” Paul, who was the leader of a house church.

    It does not follow that because Andronicus was in Rome and a leader of the early Roman Church that Peter was never in Rome and did not establish the Roman epsicopy.

  372. John (#368),

    You wrote:
    “The Roman Church did teach that, all the way through the 17th century. At the very least, the Council of Trent, believed and taught such a thing. That’s what the phrase semper eadem was all about. It was only after the Reformation and the enlightenment began to point out certain discrepancies, that someone like Newman was required to address ‘certain apparent variations in teaching’, among other things.”

    I could find nothing like what you assert in your citation of Trent. And no, the Catholic Church has never taught that she must always and in exteriors look the same, but that she must always teach correctly as in, she can do no other. Bryan and the others are right to assert that all dogmas of the Church are contained, at least implicitly, in Scripture and Tradition from the earliest days.

    You wrote:

    “It’s argued strenuously by Cullmann, whose entire work I have not reproduced here. If I could, I would. That is his conclusion. My first comment here was to recommend the work of Michael Kruger, Canon Revisited. I’ve placed Kruger’s conclusions in juxtaposition with the 1962 Joseph Ratzinger essay ‘Primacy, Episcopacy, and Successio Apostolica’, where then-theologian Ratzinger says, at some length:”

    I’ve read debates on Sola Scriptura in the Fathers, and I must say I’m not convinced by your case. I’m also not convinced by your quotation of Kruger that merely states your conclusion. I’m not expecting you to give me book length responses in a web-based format, but you could summarize his points and/or proof.

    You wrote:
    “Now, what Bryan says is speculative on two counts. It’s speculative as to what, precisely Paul was teaching them during that time. Bryan wants to assume it was Roman Catholic concepts (or such things in seed form) of episcopacy, hierarchy and priesthood. But that’s a mere assumption. ‘Not inconsistent’ ”

    No. That’s history. We have this evidence (citations) of Peter being in Rome and being a bishop there, but we have no contemporary evidence against it nor questioning of that previous positive evidence. That is, in fact, how we do this. The burden is upon you to bring direct evidence that Peter himself was not in Rome. Showing that Andronicus was in Rome does not show that Peter was not. Yours, so far, is an argument from silence. Again, I do not expect you to reproduce hundreds of years of Protestant writers denying this point. I do expect you to produce your evidence or summarize what you think are the best points.

    You wrote:
    “Here is a summary that Hurtado produced on the topic of ‘worship in the New Testament church’, for ‘The New Interpreter’s Dictionary of the Bible’, ed. Katharine Doob Sakenfeld (Nashville: Abingdon Press, 2006-2009), 5: 910-23.

    He cites plenty of ‘direct evidence’.”

    Again, I don’t see any contradictory evidence. All of it seems pretty familiar to what I’ve experienced both in Mass and Divine Liturgy (multiple Scripture readings, hymns, faith confessions, worship of Jesus, the Eucharist, etc.). I found his summary fascinating and illuminating concerning the roots of our worship, but again, I don’t see how any of this stands against what is found in modern Catholicism, Eastern Orthodoxy, Oriental Orthodoxy, or the Assyrian Church of the East. Show me instead of telling me to comb through multiple pages of text to find what you consider to be direct evidence against the apostolic Churches.

  373. John (#370),

    Also, Hurtado has this to say about early Christian worship in his conclusion:

    Moreover, we can sense something of the atmosphere of worship: the intimacy and sense of being personally known to the other participants facilitated by the typical domestic setting, the experience of Spirit-phenomena such as prophecy, and a sense of being participants in actions of transcendent and eschatological significance in which heavenly realities were reflected and ultimate
    ones were prefigured.

    This sounds exactly (minus prophecy) like what the Church teaches about what the Mass and Divine Liturgy are. It describes nothing like what I’ve heard concerning Protestants understanding of their worship.

  374. John,

    You said in 363 the following in response to me:

    So “direct evidence” in 100 AD or 150 AD seems a lot less important than what the New Testament can describe for us. Especially given that, during those years, there IS that dearth of direct evidence that you had mentioned. (A mention of Peter in 1 Clement, two mentions in Ignatius, another one about 60 years later – that does not seem all that convincing to me).

    I think that you have lost track of what we are arguing about. You and I are arguing about whether the empirical evidence is more indicative of the Roman Church always having been governed by a Bishop, or the empirical evidence is more indicative of the Roman Church inventing a history of Bishops around the end of the second century. Your argument about Peter is with Bryan (no, I don’t agree with what you have to say about Peter either, but I see no reason why you should have to carry on the same analysis twice with two different people, so there is no reason to start debating the Peter issue with me).

    You also do not seem to be aware of what I mean by direct evidence about a question. When I refer to direct evidence about a question, I am talking about something that is capable of informing that question with as few extra assumptions as possible. For example, here is a fake piece of direct evidence on the question which you and I are arguing about:

    “We in the Roman Church are ruled by a council of Presbyters, and we have decided not to allow one of these to be the overseer of the others, as the Asian churches do.” — Fake Church Father Petronius Maximus, around 117AD.

    Here is an actual piece of direct evidence on the question which you and I are arguing about:

    “The blessed apostles, then, having founded and built up the Church, committed into the hands of Linus the office of the episcopate. Of this Linus, Paul makes mention in the Epistles to Timothy. To him succeeded Anacletus; and after him, in the third place from the apostles, Clement was allotted the bishopric. This man, as he had seen the blessed apostles, and had been conversant with them, might be said to have the preaching of the apostles still echoing [in his ears], and their traditions before his eyes. Nor was he alone [in this], for there were many still remaining who had received instructions from the apostles. In the time of this Clement, no small dissension having occurred among the brethren at Corinth, the Church in Rome dispatched a most powerful letter to the Corinthians, exhorting them to peace, renewing their faith, and declaring the tradition which it had lately received from the apostles, proclaiming the one God, omnipotent, the Maker of heaven and earth, the Creator of man, who brought on the deluge, and called Abraham, who led the people from the land of Egypt, spoke with Moses, set forth the law, sent the prophets, and who has prepared fire for the devil and his angels. From this document, whosoever chooses to do so, may learn that He, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, was preached by the Churches, and may also understand the tradition of the Church, since this Epistle is of older date than these men who are now propagating falsehood, and who conjure into existence another god beyond the Creator and the Maker of all existing things. To this Clement there succeeded Evaristus. Alexander followed Evaristus; then, sixth from the apostles, Sixtus was appointed; after him, Telephorus, who was gloriously martyred; then Hyginus; after him, Pius; then after him, Anicetus. Soter having succeeded Anicetus, Eleutherius does now, in the twelfth place from the apostles, hold the inheritance of the episcopate. In this order, and by this succession, the ecclesiastical tradition from the apostles, and the preaching of the truth, have come down to us.” — Actual Church Father Irenaeus, around 180AD.

    What makes a piece of evidence directly inform the question is not the direction in which it points. The first piece of direct evidence above points in the direction of the conclusion that the early Church of Rome was governed by a college of equal presbyters, while the second piece of direct evidence above points in the direction of the conclusion that the early Church of Rome was governed by a Bishop. What makes the piece of evidence directly inform this question is that you don’t need to assume a whole bunch of extra stuff in order to get the evidence to tell you anything about this question. Indirect evidence, on the other hand, only informs us about a question if we make a whole bunch of additional assumptions.

    For example, here is a piece of evidence which indirectly informs us about who was governing the Roman Church: “But you yourself will read it to this city [Rome], along with the elders (presbuteroi) who preside over the church.” This statement, from the Shepherd of Hermas, tells us nothing about whether or not one of the elders was more important than the others, fulfilling the role of Bishop, without an extra assumption not in the text: namely, that all of the elders being referred to were equal in authority. That is why this is indirect evidence on this question: one needs an extra assumption to make it inform this question.

    Your general strategy has been to take many pieces of indirect evidence and combine them together to form a foundation, and build upon that foundation an anti-Catholic historical apologetic. Unfortunately, while you advertise this apologetic as using history to demonstrate that Catholicism is unhistorical, the actual foundation of your claim is the extra assumptions you are using to try turn that indirect evidence into direct evidence. Note that I am not suggesting that there is no kind of evidence which would demonstrate that the Catholic claims are unhistorical; rather, I am suggesting that only direct evidence is useful for the foundation of such a claim.

    What, then, is indirect evidence useful for? Indirect evidence is useful for building on the foundation of direct evidence. For example, the only direct evidence we have about the question which you and I are discussing points in the Catholic direction (i.e., there are lots of quotes like the one from Irenaeus, and none like the fake one from Petronius Maximus). Therefore, the direct evidence suggests that it is more likely that there were always Bishops governing the Roman Church than that there were not always Bishops governing it. But the indirect evidence, such as that from the Shepherd of Hermas, can then be used to build on that foundational knowledge: this indirect evidence implies that it is more likely than not that all of the ruling clerics once referred to themselves as elders, including the Bishop.

    It takes courage and perseverance to face the data no matter what it says. So, I invite you again to take a look at the evidence that could potentially inform the following question:

    Is it more likely than not that the Church of Rome was always governed by Bishops?

    Is there any direct evidence that informs this question in the New Testament? If not, then we should not use the New Testament to ground our historical analysis of this question.

    If we can discuss this issue using sensibly disciplined empirical analysis, then far from from going in circles, the discussion can lead to a mutual understanding of the truth.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  375. K. Doran (374): You seem to think “direct evidence” in terms of some kind of first-hand report that travels something like “from God’s mouth to my ear”. Here is what you said:

    When I refer to direct evidence about a question, I am talking about something that is capable of informing that question with as few extra assumptions as possible. For example, here is a fake piece of direct evidence on the question which you and I are arguing about:

    “We in the Roman Church are ruled by a council of Presbyters, and we have decided not to allow one of these to be the overseer of the others, as the Asian churches do.” — Fake Church Father Petronius Maximus, around 117AD.

    Here is an actual piece of direct evidence on the question which you and I are arguing about: [and then the quote from Irenaeus]…

    But with respect to “evidence”, nothing could be further from the truth. Before this word from Irenaeus gets to you, you must first understand the world in which Irenaeus lived. You must understand how it is that he understood history. You must understand the world that he was talking about. This is where “Andronicus” is important. Irenaeus completely disregarded “the actual founding” of “the church at Rome”, quite possibly because he did not know about it. That fact alone does not speak of “infallibility” to me. [“Infallibility” itself is an after-the-fact concept read back onto church history; it was created in just such a way as to allow for such discrepancies as this]. It speaks of huge gaps in his knowledge, which, to use the phrase that has been used here frequently, while what he says may be “not inconsistent” with what’s reported in Scripture or what we know from history, but neither is it consonant with what we know. It may not be true, or it may (likely, IMO) be conditioned in ways I’ve mentioned here already. In some way, it is distorted.

    But aside from gaps in Irenaeus’s knowledge prior to the time he wrote, there was also the present situation to which he addressed himself: all the heretical notions that were floating around, especially in Rome [still the capital city] at that time. And we’ve discussed this here before: the use of the concept of “an unbroken succession of teachers” was a concept that was prevalent in the culture. No doubt the Christian church had the practice of naming worthy men as elders. But the first worthy elder, Andronicus, is completely ignored. This in itself undermines his principle.

    After Irenaeus wrote, as I’ve mentioned, this document did not get copied in its Greek form, but was copied in the year 380, into Latin, where, as I’ve mentioned again, the translation featured a very inconclusive phrase (which you have picked up on).

    You seem to want to use Irenaeus as an “aha” that your story about the papacy is correct. I dismiss it for these and other reasons.

    * * *

    Speaking of “direct evidence”, the New Testament is full of direct evidence, from which we can and do (inductively) build our understanding of church history – “earliest” history. Not church history starting at 100 AD. There was a world of activity between the years 26 AD and 96 AD.

    Saying a thing is “not inconsistent” with Roman Catholic teaching, is quite different from saying what a thing actually was.

    This goes back to what Bryan said about Paul, having been released from prison in the 60’s. Bryan posited that he was teaching in Rome during that time; but Paul’s own words in Romans posit a different scenario: that Paul continued on to Spain, and Clement confirms that he went to Spain.

    Thus, there is an actual disjunction between what Bryan says, and what the book of Romans says, and what 1 Clement says about Paul. There is no “assumption” to say that Paul went to Spain. That is something that has very good attestation. And if he went to Spain, he wasn’t in Rome “founding and establishing” a church there.

    * * *

    The reason this matters, is because Christianity is based in historical facts. “The Gospel” for Paul and the other apostles, as it is reported in the New Testament, is the repetition of an eyewitness account:

    “ “Fellow Israelites, listen to this: Jesus of Nazareth was a man accredited by God to you by miracles, wonders and signs, which God did among you through him, as you yourselves know. This man was handed over to you by God’s deliberate plan and foreknowledge; and you, with the help of wicked men, put him to death by nailing him to the cross. But God raised him from the dead” … God has raised this Jesus to life, and we are all witnesses of it.

    This, too, is an account (along with all of its parts – by that, I mean the New Testament) that has undergone incredible scrutiny of the type that we (briefly) subjected Irenaeus above. However, whereas every element of this account has withstood intense scrutiny, (the supernatural elements affirmed by the truthfulness of the historical account), Irenaeus’s account, because he is not a reliable witness to the historical situation, may also be said to be a less-than-reliable witness when it comes to this particular passage.

    This is not to say he is totally unreliable. Darrell Bock, in “Missing Gospels”, has noted that he was a very good reporter of the beliefs of his contemporaries, but he just doesn’t have it when he’s talking about history of 150 years ago. And that’s understandable. How many folks know what’s happening this year in major league baseball? But how many can talk about who the original 8 National League teams are? Or who the owners were, or the players who made them up, etc.

    But this goes back to Eusebius and Abgar, as well. In both of these instances, we need to look at the writings of these individuals with a historical-critical eye, in order to know what we can learn from them, and what we can’t.

    I’m saying the value of your “direct evidence” is not what it appears to be.

  376. John (#370)

    Anyhow, it’s not just Hurtado who’s writing about that period. Bryan cited F.F. Bruce, and I cite him extensively on the transistion from the Synagogue leadership structure to that found in the early church in the eastern half of the church, before the year 100. Notice that there’s not an “argument from silence” in these links, but rather, an analysis of what “Second Temple Judaism” held as a leadership structure, and how the early church picked that up (as evidenced within Paul’s letters and Acts, for example):

    Like I said about Hurtado’s summary of early Church worship, it’s all very fascinating and informative, but here’s where we differ: your view is that this “development” is an accretion (and a bad one at that); mine, however, is that such a structure grew naturally and uncontroversially in the Church’s history. Hurtado himself admits there is some confusion between the words “presbyteros” and “episkopos”. That certainly does not prove your case, but it works with ours because we continue to say that not every presbyter is an episkopos, but every episkopos is a presbyter. So quoting studies at me showing that the structures present immediately after Christ’s ascension were not exactly like what we see within less than a hundred years (!) after that in an attempt to convince me those “later” structures were evil, really isn’t doing it for me. We can go ’round and ’round all day offering interpretations of the facts, but as long as the Roman Church has not explicitly contradicted previously defined dogma, she is what she says she is. That being said, I think this particular point of the conversation is finished.

    Sorry to butt in on the conversation with K. Doran (#375), but there are some problems with your assertions:

    This is where “Andronicus” is important. Irenaeus completely disregarded “the actual founding” of “the church at Rome”, quite possibly because he did not know about it. That fact alone does not speak of “infallibility” to me… It speaks of huge gaps in his knowledge, which, to use the phrase that has been used here frequently, while what he says may be “not inconsistent” with what’s reported in Scripture or what we know from history, but neither is it consonant with what we know. It may not be true, or it may (likely, IMO) be conditioned in ways I’ve mentioned here already. In some way, it is distorted.

    Yikes. That’s a pretty big leap there. Question: did Irenaeus have access to a copy of Paul’s letter to the Romans? I think it’s pretty safe to assume he did. So your comment about “gaps in his knowledge” may be overstated. (Your statement about infallibility is a bit off, too; no one claims Irenaeus is infallible.) Also, your comment assuming his ignorance of events 150 years earlier is a stretch. Irenaeus isn’t just some schmoe off the streets, and the foundation of the Church in Rome isn’t even comparable to the history of the MLB. He is writing a brief history of the apostolic succession of the Church in Rome. So this argument falls flat. It is beyond likely Irenaeus had access to the same historical material (Romans) you have been continually harping on in addition to material you don’t have access to. Therefore, there is another (I think most likely) option among those you presented: Irenaeus is correct in what he says. Ultimately, yours is indirect evidence (a small quote in Romans showing only Peter’s absence at that particular point in time) that you are trying to make say things in such a way as to make Rome’s claims false when there is direct evidence (and not just Irenaeus) explicitly contradicting your claims. We can interpret the evidence so that both are consonant with each other.
    You, sir, are entitled to your interpretation of the facts, but you are not entitled to your own facts.

  377. John,

    You wrote:

    You seem to think “direct evidence” in terms of some kind of first-hand report that travels something like “from God’s mouth to my ear”.

    Actually, I think direct evidence is something that tells us the answer to a question without forcing us to make use of question-begging assumptions in the process. I gave several examples of direct evidence. Did any of those involve “from God’s mouth to my ear”?

    You wrote:

    Before this word from Irenaeus gets to you, you must first understand the world in which Irenaeus lived.

    This is a good idea. The question is: how will you understand his world: by making question-begging assumptions, or by merely making disciplined use of empirical evidence?

    You say:

    This is where “Andronicus” is important. Irenaeus completely disregarded “the actual founding” of “the church at Rome”, quite possibly because he did not know about it.

    John, how do you know Irenaeus completely disregarded the actual founding of the Church at Rome? Do you have direct evidence of who the actual founders of the Church of Rome were?

    You go on to say:

    It speaks of huge gaps in his knowledge, which, to use the phrase that has been used here frequently, while what he says may be “not inconsistent” with what’s reported in Scripture or what we know from history, but neither is it consonant with what we know. It may not be true, or it may (likely, IMO) be conditioned in ways I’ve mentioned here already. In some way, it is distorted.

    Here is where we get to a major problem in your analysis of empirical data. The fact is, that you have no direct evidence about who founded the Church of Rome with your Andronicus quote. We do not know that Andronicus founded the Church at Rome in any sense whatsoever, let alone in the sense that Irenaeus and others of his era would have considered a founding.

    You have a very serious and speculative assumption about what that Andronicus quote means. You then use that assumption as the foundation of an argument, rather than letting direct empirical evidence on the questions that concern you serve as the foundation of an argument.

    The problem with using indirect evidence as the foundation of an argument is that your assumptions are really doing the work that empirical evidence is supposed to do. To demonstrate that this is the case, I will present your Andronicus argument for you:

    (1) Paul indicates that Andronicus may have been in Rome before Paul himself.
    (2) Therefore Andronicus (or someone else other than Paul) founded the Church at Rome
    (3) Irenaeus writes that Rome has always been ruled by Bishops
    (4) Irenaeus did not include Andronicus in his list of Bishops, but he does say that Peter and Paul founded the Church
    (5) Therefore, Irenaeus’ account of the leadership of the Roman Church is missing its initial leader
    (6) Therefore, we can ignore Irenaeus’ direct attestation that the Roman Church was always governed by bishops
    (7) For some reason, we can also ignore Tertullian and all other later evidence, which leaves us with the Shepherd of Hermas
    (8) The Shepherd of Hermas mentions a group of presbyters governing the Church
    (9) Therefore Rome was not always governed by Bishops

    Now, I don’t have a problem with (1), (3), and (4) above. If (2) was true then (5) would follow as well. But how do you get (2) and (6)? I think that you can only get (2) by adding lots of assumptions to Paul’s mention of Andronicus. And even if you got (2) and (5), it would not give you (6), let alone (7) and (8) and (9) as well!

    Here is Romans 16:7 again so all of us can see the type of evidence that you use as the foundation of your argument:

    Greet Andronicus and Junias, my relatives who have been in prison with me. They are outstanding among the apostles, and they were in Christ before I was.

    If someone asked me to use this quote in order to get even from (1) to (2), I would have to add substantial assumptions to the quote. Then the conclusion would not be an empirical conclusion, but rather the result of my assumptions.

    But perhaps I have mischaracterized your argument. If I have, please explicitly edit it so that it matches the logic you are actually using. The argument needs to end with (9) above. If your own assumptions do all the work in this argument, then it is not an empirical argument. But, if the empirical evidence does the work in the argument, because the empirical evidence involved is direct evidence on the question we are discussing, then it will be a convincing argument, and I would be happy to believe in it.

    All you have to do is edit the argument to your satisfaction so that we can see what is doing the work: empirical evidence that directly informs the question, or ad hoc speculation.

    You also said:

    That fact alone does not speak of “infallibility” to me.

    You and I are not arguing about infallibility, so do not change the subject.

    Sincerely,

    K. Doran

  378. John:

    Greet Andronicus and Junias, my relatives who have been in prison with me. They are outstanding among the apostles, and they were in Christ before I was.

    I confess that to me, also, it appears you are placing a weight on this quote that it cannot bear. It tells us that Paul believes Andronicus was a Christian earlier than Paul – and that Paul believes he is in Rome now, at the time of writing. It does say that he was, in some sense, an Apostle, albeit clearly not one of the Eleven, but then neither is Paul. It tells us that he is in some sense related to Paul.

    How in the world it means he either was in Rome before Peter, or founded the Church there, or … well, or anything but what I said, is a mystery to me.

    jj

  379. Greet Andronicus and Junias, my relatives who have been in prison with me. They are outstanding among the apostles, and they were in Christ before I was.
    Romans 16:7

    JTJ, you write:

    this quote … tells us that Paul believes Andronicus was a Christian earlier than Paul – and that Paul believes he is in Rome now, at the time of writing. It does say that he was, in some sense, an Apostle, albeit clearly not one of the Eleven …

    The Eastern Orthodox and the Oriental Orthodox can explain in “what sense” Andronicus was an Apostle. In the EO and OO tradition, Andronicus is considered to be one of the Seventy Apostles:

    The seventy disciples or seventy-two disciples (known in the Eastern Christian tradition as the seventy apostles) were early followers of Jesus mentioned in the Gospel of Luke 10:1–24

    Ref: Wikipedia Article: Seventy disciples

    *****************************

    The Synaxis of the Seventy Apostles was established by the Orthodox Church to indicate the equal honor of each of the Seventy. They were sent two by two by the Lord Jesus Christ to go before Him into the cities He would visit (Luke 10:1).

    Besides the celebration of the Synaxis of the Holy Disciples, the Church celebrates the memory of each of them during the course of the year:

    … Andronicus (May 17 and July 30) …

    ******************************

    Andronicus of Pannonia (Greek: Ανδρόνικος) was a 1st century Christian mentioned by the Apostle Paul …Andronicus was a kinsman of Paul and a fellow prisoner at some time, particularly well-known among the apostles, and had become a follower of Jesus Christ before Paul’s Damascus road conversion. It is generally assumed that Junia was his wife, but they could have been brother and sister, or father and daughter, or no close relation to each other, but to Paul as kinsmen. …

    In the Eastern Orthodox and Oriental Orthodox traditions, Andronicus was one of the Seventy Apostles. Andronicus was made Bishop of Pannonia and preached the Gospel throughout the whole of Pannonia─together with Junia. … In the Eastern Orthodox tradition, Andronicus died as a martyr. He and Junia are commemorated in the Eastern Orthodox Church on May 17.

    In the Oriental Orthodox tradition, Andronicus departed in peace one day before the departure of Junia. He is commemorated on 22 Pashons in the Coptic Orthodox Church.

  380. Garrison, #370, Couple of things at this point, regarding “the facts”:

    “Three” manuscripts is direct evidence that Irenaeus’s work wasn’t widely known or accepted before the tenth century.

    I didn’t bring up Infallibility to say that Irenaeus was infallible. But you need him to be accurate historically in order for the story to hold together. And again “infallibility” was a concept introduced to the church, probably in the 8th century through Muslim influence, and wasn’t seriously discussed as a doctrine till the eleventh century. (I don’t have a citation on that off the top of my head, but I know I’ve cited it somewhere in the past).

    The Roman Catholic Church has had ample time to put together an after-the-fact definition of “infallibility” that takes into account all the little not-pretty historical things that might challenge it. And so, someone says, “the Church can’t be infallible, because of “x”, and all you have to say is, “well, that’s not part of the definition”. That’s an easy one. Too good to be true, I’d say.

    Regarding the portion of this Irenaeus quote that purportedly contains the phrase “every church should agree”, Klaus Schatz, “Papal Primacy”, allows “there are a number of problems surrounding the original meaning of the passage quoted above, occasioned in large part by the fact that we know only the Latin translation and not the Greek original of the text. We must always reckon with the possibility that the Latin text as we have it is corrupt”. (Pgs 8-9).

    He’s one of your guys (like Bryan citing F.F. Bruce to me). Schatz received a doctorate degree from Rome’s Gregorian University; he taught church history at the St. Georgen School of Philosophy and Theology in Frankfurt, Germany. So contrary to what you’re saying here, at a minimum Schatz and all his Roman Catholic students, adhering to “the Catholic paradigm”, acknowledge the possibility that the Latin text has been corrupted”.

    Consider, too, the New Testament Scholar John Meier, who is currently a professor of New Testament at Notre Dame: “A papacy that cannot give a credible historical account of its own origins can hardly hope to be a catalyst for unity among divided Christians.” (“Petrine Ministry in the New Testament and in the Early Patristic Traditions”, in James F. Puglisi, ed, “How Can the Petrine Ministry Be a Service to the Unity of the Universal Church?”, Eerdmans 2010).

    Beyond that (and quite current), Meier is another one of those disdained scholars (disdained by you, but not disdained by the powers that be) who holds that catechesis about the papacy should “speak of God’s providential guidance of the church, leading by a series of steps to the emergence of the bishop of Rome as a center and servant of church unity and apostolic faith”. Whether or not you like Meier or Schatz, these men are Roman Catholic priests whose interest is in defending the papacy where it’s historically defensible. From them, I have corroboration in my historical account, even if I don’t hold with them that the papacy is a result of “God’s providential guidance”.

    As I’ve mentioned above, there is no reason for any Protestant to accept either the authority of a pope or a bishop as some kind of “divinely instituted” office. Especially not in light of the corruptions at the time of the Reformation, and the events and doctrines following that period.

  381. John (#380),

    That this all seems “too good to be true” to you is really irrelevant to me and is irrelevant to the discussion if Rome’s claims are true. It is either true or no; anything else is a rhetorical flourish. As has been mentioned before, there can be many reasons why manuscripts do not survive, but it is not solely on Irenaeus that Rome asserts her claims. It may very well be that the text is a corruption, but that is not certain, is it? As K. Doran mentioned, we also have Tertullian and the Shepherd of Hermas in addition to St. Augustine among other Church Fathers.

    As for Meier and Schatz, I know neither of these men. I don’t know why you bring them up. I never defended the Latin text as being authentic. I defended Irenaeus against the charge you brought against him: that he is not credible as a witness in this matter. As for Meier’s quote, I agree with him, but no one seems to have had a problem (and still don’t) with saying Rome was founded by Peter and Paul before Luther et al. decided they wanted to jettison that, too.

    As for convincing you of anything, all anyone can do is present facts, you must decide what to do with them and on you alone is that responsibility as it is for everyone. You know full well that the Church has never taught that any pope or bishop has been impeccable. Nor has anyone denied that corruption and abuse were rampant in the Church before the Reformation. Then again, such has always occurred and still occurs both within the Church and outside her and will till Christ returns. We can mudsling all day for all the good it does. As for what happened after that time, I can just as easily spin this around and charge Luther, Calvin, Zwingli, etc. with introducing theology (heresy, even!) unknown to the Church for fifteen centuries. Even if I believe that (and I do), simply saying that gets us nowhere.

    Apologies again to you and K. Doran for butting in. Peace to you both.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  382. Michael Liccione (#352):

    You write:

    Now you do not deny that such things constituted a paradosis, a “tradition,” for the Jews. What you rather claim is that Jesus rejected that paradosis. But neither the facts you cite, nor Cullmann’s interpretation thereof, demonstrate that Jesus rejected Jewish oral or even written “tradition” tout court. Indeed, if Jesus had done so, he could not have urged his followers to observe whatever those who “sit in the seat of Moses” would have them believe and do (Mt 23). The Catholic interpretation, rather, is that Jesus was rejected only the use of tradition to get in the way of love, mercy, and the essence of the Law. Nothing you’ve presented shows otherwise.

    First, I want to point out that your own use of “the seat of Moses” – you cite “the Catholic interpretation” of this as “Jesus was rejected only the use of tradition to get in the way of love, mercy, and the essence of the Law. Nothing you’ve presented shows otherwise”.

    The “Catholic interpretation” of this is wrong.

    The point in contention here is whether or not, as Cullmann said, “Jesus rejected the paradosis of the Jews” only when it got in the way of “love, mercy and the essence of the law”. With words such as “a little leaven leavens the whole lump”, and “you don’t put new wine in old wineskins”, it can clearly be shown that Jesus rejected the Jewish paradosis in toto, in all of its facets.

    Look at where “the seat of Moses” is located. Matt 23:1, this is the period of time when Jesus is in Jerusalem, in fact, “in the temple courts” beginning in Matt 21:

    “Jesus entered the temple courts, and, while he was teaching, the chief priests and the elders of the people came to him. “By what authority are you doing these things?” they asked. “And who gave you this authority?” … When the chief priests and the Pharisees heard Jesus’ parables, they knew he was talking about them. They looked for a way to arrest him, but they were afraid of the crowd because the people held that he was a prophet.

    So you can see here, this section is all about authority: two kinds of authority.

    Matthew 23 is Jesus’s lengthy discourse against the Scribes and the Pharisees, and Matt 24:1 then says, “Truly I tell you, not one stone here will be left on another; every one will be thrown down.”

    In this, I’ll follow the argument of (and quote from” David E. Garland, “Reading Matthew”, who also draws here upon his own article, The Intention of Matthew 23, NovTSup 51 [Leiden: Brill, 1979]).

    First, Garland notes that Matthew 23 is “specifically addressed to the disciples (Matt 23:1 and 8-12) and not to those who are accused. Why do the disciples need to be instructed about the scribes and Pharisees (see Matt 16:1-12)?

    Let’s look at these verses before moving on:

    Matthew 23:1: Then Jesus said to the crowds and to his disciples

    Compare this:

    Matthew 16:1-12: The Pharisees and Sadducees came to Jesus and tested him by asking him to show them a sign from heaven. He replied, “When evening comes, you say, ‘It will be fair weather, for the sky is red,’ and in the morning, ‘Today it will be stormy, for the sky is red and overcast.’ You know how to interpret the appearance of the sky, but you cannot interpret the signs of the times. A wicked and adulterous generation looks for a sign, but none will be given it except the sign of Jonah.” Jesus then left them and went away.

    When they went across the lake, the disciples forgot to take bread. “Be careful,” Jesus said to them. “Be on your guard against the yeast of the Pharisees and Sadducees.”They discussed this among themselves and said, “It is because we didn’t bring any bread.” Aware of their discussion, Jesus asked, “You of little faith, why are you talking among yourselves … How is it you don’t understand that I was not talking to you about bread? But be on your guard against the yeast of the Pharisees and Sadducees.” Then they understood that he was not telling them to guard against the yeast used in bread, but against the teaching of the Pharisees and Sadducees.

    The Pharisees and Saducees “cannot interpret the signs of the times”. This is how “Scripture interprets Scripture”, by the way. What is said in one verse is said in another verse.

    Garland continues, that “The scribes and Pharisees provide forbidding examples of sins that are a present danger to disciples. And Garland identifies “the disciples” as individuals who need to be particularly aware of the danger to them – They are “scribes of the kingdom”:

    Matt 13:51-52 (to the disciples): “Have you understood all these things?” Jesus asked. “Yes,” they replied. He said to them, “Therefore every teacher of the law who has become a disciple in the kingdom of heaven is like the owner of a house who brings out of his storeroom new treasures as well as old”

    Matt 23:34: (to the “scribes and Pharisees): “I am sending you prophets and sages and teachers” …

    The point is, these new scribes of the kingdom” have real authority in teaching and discipline (13:52; 16:19; 18:18; 28:18). And (with Cullmann), these “disciples” were (a) to put forth the “new” teaching” as “new wine in new wineskins”.

    Note how the authority within the church is weaved together with the warnings to the Scribes and Pharisees, who are guilty of a desire for “first places”:

    Matthew 23:6: they love the place of honor at banquets and the most important seats in the synagogues

    Regarding this, see also:

    Matthew 20:20-28: Then the mother of Zebedee’s sons came to Jesus with her sons and, kneeling down, asked a favor of him.

    “What is it you want?” he asked.

    She said, “Grant that one of these two sons of mine may sit at your right and the other at your left in your kingdom.”

    “You don’t know what you are asking,” Jesus said to them. “Can you drink the cup I am going to drink?”

    “We can,” they answered.

    Jesus said to them, “You will indeed drink from my cup, but to sit at my right or left is not for me to grant. These places belong to those for whom they have been prepared by my Father.”

    When the ten heard about this, they were indignant with the two brothers. Jesus called them together and said, “You know that the rulers of the Gentiles lord it over them, and their high officials exercise authority over them. Not so with you. Instead, whoever wants to become great among you must be your servant, and whoever wants to be first must be your slave—just as the Son of Man did not come to be served, but to serve, and to give his life as a ransom for many.”

    This, by the way, is as good a Scriptural condemnation as any of the papacy. It provides a general rule of “how to be first” or “how to be greatest”. Consider the juxtaposition in the recent photos of the butler serving the pope. But in its most foundational sense, it is a condemnation of the Scribes and Pharisees, and a warning to the early leaders of the church.

    With Scribes and Pharisees, there is a discrepancy between outer appearances and inner reality:

    Matt 23:25-28: “Woe to you, teachers of the law and Pharisees, you hypocrites! You clean the outside of the cup and dish, but inside they are full of greed and self-indulgence. Blind Pharisee! First clean the inside of the cup and dish, and then the outside also will be clean.

    “Woe to you, teachers of the law and Pharisees, you hypocrites! You are like whitewashed tombs, which look beautiful on the outside but on the inside are full of the bones of the dead and everything unclean. In the same way, on the outside you appear to people as righteous but on the inside you are full of hypocrisy and wickedness.

    Regarding the link between outside righteousness and inner hypocrisy and wickedness, see this:

    Matt 7:15 “Watch out for false prophets. They come to you in sheep’s clothing, but inwardly they are ferocious wolves.

    On hypocrisy, see further:

    Matt 7:5: You hypocrite, first take the plank out of your own eye, and then you will see clearly to remove the speck from your brother’s eye.

    Matt 6: “Be careful not to practice your righteousness in front of others to be seen by them. If you do, you will have no reward from your Father in heaven.

    “So when you give to the needy, do not announce it with trumpets, as the hypocrites do in the synagogues and on the streets, to be honored by others. Truly I tell you, they have received their reward in full. But when you give to the needy, do not let your left hand know what your right hand is doing, so that your giving may be in secret. Then your Father, who sees what is done in secret, will reward you.

    “And when you pray, do not be like the hypocrites, for they love to pray standing in the synagogues and on the street corners to be seen by others. Truly I tell you, they have received their reward in full. But when you pray, go into your room, close the door and pray to your Father, who is unseen. Then your Father, who sees what is done in secret, will reward you….

    “When you fast, do not look somber as the hypocrites do, for they disfigure their faces to show others they are fasting. Truly I tell you, they have received their reward in full. But when you fast, put oil on your head and wash your face, so that it will not be obvious to others that you are fasting, but only to your Father, who is unseen; and your Father, who sees what is done in secret, will reward you.

    These things are all evoked, Matthew having written them out earlier in Jesus’s ministry, and now, in Matt 23, these are all images Jesus is re-invoking about the Scribes and the Pharisees.

    And again, after Matthew 23 comes Matthew 24, and the note that Jesus was a prophet, and that “not one stone here will be left on another”. We have the image of a “foundation” upon which nothing else remains. It is a tout courtrejection if ever there was one.

    According to Garland, these are not merely Jesus’s words to the Scribes and Pharisees. These are Matthew’s warnings to the existing church leadership (i.e. roughly 70 AD). Garland says, “the warning for the church is that they had better not be found false stewards like the scribes and Pharisees; for if God did not spare a defiant Jerusalem and its temple, God will just as surely not spare an unfaithful church.

    And it is clear, at the Reformation, the leadership structure was rightfully cast down.

  383. Irenaeus is offered up as “direct evidence”. I question that evidence up above, especially his reporting of history, but citing Darrell Bock, who said that Irenaeus was a faithful reporter of the Gnostic heresies against which he was discoursing, I allowed that it may also be possible to allow that Irenaeus was a faithful reporter of what the church believed at the time.
    In this vein, it is interesting that immediately before Irenaeus says anything about either “succession” or “Rome”, he talks about the Scriptures, and echoes these warnings from Matthew: the notion that the Apostles had a totally new message, that this message itself was the bearer of its own power, and that those who did not keep it properly were subject to “the worst calamity”:

    The Lord of all gave his apostles the power of the Gospel, and by them we have known the truth, that is, the teaching of the Son of God.

    Not the leftover teaching of the Jews. Per Cullmann, this is Paul’s paradosis “from the Lord” (1 Cor 11:23 etc).

    To [the Apostles], the Lord said, “He who hears you hears me, and he who despises you despises Him who sent me”. For we have known the “economy” for our salvation only through those through whom the Gospel came to us [only through the Apostles]; and what they first preached they later, by God’s will transmitted to us in the Scriptures so that would be the foundation and pillar of our faith (“Against Heresies, 3 Pr.).”

    So here, in the words of Irenaeus, before there is a promise of an “unbroken succession”, we have the Apostles carrying the message, and the message being written down, and what is written, to Irenaeus, is “the foundation and pillar of our faith”.

    He continues:

    It is not right to say that they preached before they had perfect knowledge …

    That is, the apostles had “perfect knowledge” which they preached and set down. This speaks to Irenaeus’s understanding of “development”, too, as some [Gnostics] venture to say,

    boasting that they are correctors of the apostles. For after our Lord arose from the dead and they were clad with power from on high by the coming of the Holy Spirit, they were filled concerning everything and had perfect knowledge. They went forth to the ends of the earth proclaiming the news [the message] of the good gifts to us from God and announcing heavenly peace to men. Collectively and individually they had the Gospel of God.

    They had the message and it was written down. It is the written records that are “by God’s will transmitted to us”. Not “the succession”. Here, Irenaeus describes what Kruger called “the canonical core”. This, too, before any mention of “succession”:

    Thus Matthew published among the Hebrews a gospel written in their language, at the time when Peter and Paul were preaching at Rome and founding the church there. After their death Mark, the disciple and interpreter of Peter, himself delivered to us in writing what had been announced [the message] by Peter. Luke, the follower of Paul, put down in a book the Gospel preached by him. Later John the Lord’s disciple, who reclined on his bosom, himself published a Gospel while staying at Ephesus in Asia.

    Note, this is in contrast to the process that Joseph Ratzinger outlined in his work “Primacy, Episcopacy, and Successio Apostolica” (which I’ve cited above):

    “The concept of [apostolic] succession was clearly formulated, as von Campenhausen has impressively demonstrated, in the anti-Gnostic polemics of the second century; [and not in the first century] its purpose was to contrast the true apostolic tradition of the Church with the pseudo-apostolic tradition of Gnosis” (pgs 22-23).

    The idea of a “New Testament” as “Scripture” is still quite inconceivable at this point—even when “office”, as the form of the paradosis, is already clearly taking shape” (Ratzinger 25).

    We should not deceive ourselves: the existence of New Testament writings, recognized as being “apostolic”, does not yet imply the existence of a “New Testament” as “Scripture”—there is a long way from the writings to Scripture. It is well known, and should not be overlooked, that the New Testament does not anywhere understand itself as “Scripture”; “Scripture” is, for the New Testament, simply the Old Testament, while the message about Christ is precisely “spirit”, which teaches us how to understand Scripture.” The idea of a “New Testament” as “Scripture” is still quite inconceivable at this point—even when “office”, as the form of the paradosis, is already clearly taking shape” (Ratzinger, 25).

    This open situation of the existence of recognized New Testament writings without the existence of any New Testament principle of Scripture or any clear notion of the canon lasted until well in the second century—right into the middle of the period of the conflict with Gnosticism. Before the idea of a “canon” of New Testament Scripture had been formulated, the Church had already developed a different concept of what was canonical; she had as her Scripture the Old Testament but this Scripture needed a canon of New Testament interpretation, which the Church saw as existing in the traditio guaranteed by the successio (Ratzinger, 25-26).

    This notion is reproduced in CCC 83:

    83 The Tradition here in question comes from the apostles and hands on what they received from Jesus’ teaching and example and what they learned from the Holy Spirit. The first generation of Christians did not yet have a written New Testament, and the New Testament itself demonstrates the process of living Tradition.

    Note that Irenaeus here contrasts with both Ratzinger and the CCC at this point. Irenaeus provides us “direct evidence”, in K. Doran’s usage, that what the Apostles preached, and then what they “put down” was, actually, “the Scriptures” which “would be the foundation and pillar of our faith”.

    Cullmann’s whole premise is to say that there is a sharp disjunction between the “oral transmission” of the message, and the need to write it down in a fixed, canonical form.

    Irenaeus has said all of that before he talks about Rome. At this point, too, there is an echo of the warnings of Matthew 23:

    Thus the tradition of the apostles [now written down as “Scriptures”] manifest in the whole world, is present in every church to be perceived by all who wish to see the truth. We can enumerate those who were appointed by the apostles as bishops in the churches as their successors even to our time, men who taught or knew nothing of the sort that [the Gnostics] madly imagine. If however the apostles had known secret mysteries that they would have taught secretly to the “perfect,” [as the Gnostics were teaching – those who could somehow improve on the Apostles’ message, perhaps through some process of “development”], they would certainly have transmitted them especially to those to whom they entrusted the churches. For they wanted those whom they left as successors, and to whom they transmitted their own position of teaching, to be perfect and blameless in every respect [1 Tim 3:2). If these men acted rightly it would be a great benefit, while if they failed it would be the greatest calamity.

    What we have in Matthew 23 is echoed here in Irenaeus. It is not the promise of some future “unbroken succession, but as evidence that a faithful transmission has occurred to this point. It is a warning against “improving upon” the message (rather, the need to keep it faithfully” and also that warning (in the light of the destruction of the temple) that those, in the “succession”, “if they failed it would be the greatest calamity”.

    This is not a promise for the future, but an echo of Matthew’s warning of destruction to church leadership that was not faithful.

  384. On the topic of the New Testament writings as “Scriptures” (contra CCC 83), see Hurtado’s entry on “worship in the earliest church” to which I linked above:

    1 Tim 4:13 urges maintenance of the practice of public reading (anagn sis) in worship, along with exhortation and teaching, and it is usually thought that the readings in view here were OT scriptures. A number of other NT texts refer to the reading of Christian texts as well in the gathered ekklesia. In the earliest of these references, 1 Thess 5:27, Paul orders that his letter be read out “to all the brethren,” and, indeed, it is commonly accepted that all his letters (at least those whose authorship is not contested by scholars) were intended to be read in a gathering of the particular church addressed. This seems to be reflected in his references to the intended and unintended responses of churches to his letters (e.g., 1 Cor 5:9-13; 2 Cor 1:13; 10:9-10). In Col 4:16, we have a reference to a further developing practice of copying and sharing Paul’s letters among churches. Whatever its authorship, Colossians is certainly evidence that this practice was underway at some point in the first century. Indeed, 2 Pet 3:15-16 seems to reflect a collection of Pauline letters, and, strikingly, also refers to the use of Pauline letters as scripture (v. 16). Whatever the authorship and date of 2 Peter (e.g., ca. 70-120 CE), it is an important early witness to an authoritative role of Pauline epistles in Christian circles, a Pauline letter collection the likely embryo [“canonical core”] of the subsequent NT canon.

    The fleeting exhortation in Mark 13:14, “let the reader [ho anagin sk n] understand,” is probably also to be taken as reflecting an intended reading of the
    Gospel of Mark publicly among gathered believers. This would suggest also that the other Evangelists as well primarily intended their accounts of Jesus to be read out in corporate worship. Thus, Justin’s reference to the liturgical reading of the apostolic “memoirs . . . which are called Gospels” (1 Apol 66) would only reflect the later regularization of a practice that had its beginnings at least several decades earlier than when he wrote. Indeed, at least in the first two centuries CE, the reading of texts in corporate worship is probably the clearest indication of those texts functioning as scripture.

  385. John,

    # 383.
    You said, Irenaeus provides us “direct evidence”, in K. Doran’s usage, that what the Apostles preached, and then what they “put down” was, actually, “the Scriptures” which “would be the foundation and pillar of our faith”.
    Everything Irenaeus says about the scriptures that you quoted is understood, by Irenaeus, in the context of the Church. That is not ‘sola scriptura.’ Irenaeus describes the Church and then talks about scripture. You can’t present him as upholding scripture, which is right and true, and remove it from what he said about the church.

    I’ve seen others do this countless times with various fathers and it’s maddening. I don’t mean ‘maddening’ as in, I am angry. I mean ‘maddening’ as in it’s a really bad argument and not even slightly convincing.

    I’ve seen these conversations played out hundreds of times. Church father A is quoted by protestant speaking positively about the inspiration of Sacred Scripture. Protestant says, “Look, that is sola scriptura.” Catholic responds saying, “I don’t disagree with any of that but look at what the same father says about the authority of the Church.” Protestant says, “Well, the father was wrong about that but look what he says about scripture!”

    Its hand waving. When taking Irenaues, in total, we see plainly that he believes in the authority of the Catholic Church and he describes that Church as having succession of the apostles. He also upholds that Sacred Scripture is God’s word and the message of the gospel written down. As a Catholic I say AMEN!

    I mean, what is to stop you from taking the passages of ‘De Verbum’ about scripture such as this statement…

    Those divinely revealed realities which are contained and presented in Sacred Scripture have been committed to writing under the inspiration of the Holy Spirit.

    …and arguing that “De Verbum” is advocating sola scriptura?

    Earlier in this conversation when pressed for direct evidence against the early church’s belief in apostolic succession you fell back on the *New Testament*. You could not provide any extant evidence, apart from the New Testament, against the early church’s belief and positive statements about apostolic succession.

    Now you are telling us with one side of your mouth that Irenaeus cannot be trusted with what he says about the church but what he says about scripture is basically sola scriptura! Huh?

    *Obviously, falling back on the New Testament, as if the New Testament is somehow a silver bullet against the claims of the Catholic Church is begging the question. A) it assumes ‘sola scriptura’, B) the Catholic Church has always seen in the NT the nascent church as the same Holy Catholic Church that stands today, C) nothing in the New Testament does violence to the claims of the Catholic Church.

  386. Sean:

    Everything Irenaeus says about the scriptures that you quoted is understand, by Irenaeus, in the context of the Church

    Not true. The question — as it is posited by Ratzinger in 1961 — is that “office” and “tradition” are coming before Scripture. However, it’s widely known and argued that “early catholicism” wasn’t known before Ignatius.

    So when you say “in the context of the Church” — here is where you are positing something that has no “direct evidence” before Irenaeus (and I’ve contested that).

    In Irenaeus’s account, the order of events is: Christ commissioned the apostles; the apostles were “perfected” from on high; the apostles preached a perfect Gospel, the apostles wrote down their perfect gospel, then they commissioned men to teach. And woe to those men who “failed” to “act rightly”. It would mean “the greatest calamity”.

    That’s the way it happened in Hurtado’s account, too: The apostles writings were authoritative, they were expected to be read in public worship, they were collected [into that “canonical core”] and shared, and only at some later point was there concern about how a “succession” would be ordered.

    That first century church had no conception at all of itself being anything but the recipient of the Apostles’ message.

    If there was any concept at all, it was that the Apostles’ message — the Gospel — had “divine institution”. The understanding that somehow “the Church” had some “divine commissioning” from the beginning.

    The New Testament gives us (as per Hurtado) a very clear picture of what was believed and what was practiced. What’s evident from later writers — and I’ve also brought up Clement and Ignatius in this thread, first of having misunderstood the New Testament concept of “grace”, and also, not having had the concept of “succession” that Irenaeus had — all of these things are wholly consonant with each other, and not in any way consonant with the notion that there was “a bishop” in Rome, with authority over the whole church. Such a thing is a later concept, superimposed upon the history of the first century church. It was “after the fact” and it was “not totally inconsistent with” the actual history, but it was not the way it happened, either.

    In fact, from this perspective, it is easy to see how the papacy was “the greatest calamity” upon the church, up to the point when the 16th century Reformation brought a renewal of the Gospel message.

    Now you are telling us with one side of your mouth that Irenaeus cannot be trusted with what he says about the church but what he says about scripture is basically sola scriptura! Huh?

    I prefaced my comment to the effect that Irenaeus is not good with history, but a better reporter of current beliefs (of the Gnostics, per Bock).

    I do not hold Irenaeus anywhere near the kind of authority figure with which I hold the Scriptures. That’s why I show Hurtado’s account here in juxtaposition with both the Ratzinger account of things, and the account of Irenaeus.

    We absolutely need to exercise critical methods. Having an “interpretive paradigm” which basically agrees with everything the current Roman Catholic Church teaches is a “fail”. Schatz and Meier agree with that, Hurtado would not permit such a thing. And Hurtado gives Scripture references, “the apostolic letters were read in the worship services”, “the apostolic letters themselves were regarded as scriptures”, “they were collected” — all of these things from Hurtado have Scripture citations. All were in place prior to 100 AD.

  387. Sean,

    I would like to just add that Apostolic Succession can be directly inferred from Scripture:

    A. Jesus established the model of the Christian church
    B. Jesus called disciples and “sent them” (John 20:21)
    C. There is no evidence in the New Testament that Jesus commanded the disciples to write anything down
    D. There is evidence that Jesus called disciples and “sent them”
    E. (From A-D) Therefore, it can be inferred that the disciples would have naturally followed Christ’s explicit example, and that the writing of the N.T. was an action inspired by the Holy Spirit through the Apostles and not per the explicit command of Christ.
    F. Even more, there is direct evidence in Scripture of St. Paul following Christ’s example of handing off His ministry (St. Timothy).
    G. Therefore (from E & F), the disciples called their own disciples, laid hands on them, and sent them.

    Do we see this in the years following the Apostles? Yes.

    “He that hears you hears me; and he that rejects you rejects me; and he that rejects me rejects him that sent me.” -Luke 10:16

    If Apostolic Succession is true, then by extension, what is at stake is very grave.

  388. Brent.

    #387, agree completely. When I first had the inkling of a pull towards the Catholic Church it came not from reading church history but from reading New Testament.

    Tim went into considerable detail in Holy Orders and the Sacrificial Priesthood.

  389. John.

    Don’t have much time, again, so sorry if brief. But quickly, our rub is not about the scriptures.

    You said, “ And Hurtado gives Scripture references, “the apostolic letters were read in the worship services”, “the apostolic letters themselves were regarded as scriptures”, “they were collected” — all of these things from Hurtado have Scripture citations. All were in place prior to 100 AD.

    We don’t disagree with any of that. I really fail to see your point about scripture. None of this is disputed. The Church has always identified scripture as that which came from the apostles and that which was read in liturgies.

    What we’re disputing is whether the apostles had successors that were held in succession via the sacrament of Holy Orders. We aren’t disputing whether the early church used scripture in their worship or recognized various letters as having apostolic origin. The full canon that was universally set came a little later but nobody disputes that the early Church used scripture in their worship and copied it/protected it etc.

  390. John.

    Just re-read your comment.

    I had said, …”Everything Irenaeus says about the scriptures that you quoted is understand, by Irenaeus, in the context of the Church…”

    You responded, “Not true. The question — as it is posited by Ratzinger in 1961 — is that “office” and “tradition” are coming before Scripture. However, it’s widely known and argued that “early catholicism” wasn’t known before Ignatius.”

    Maybe I misunderstand you. Are you saying that scripture came before the church? Is that your argument?

  391. Sean Patrick you write:

    I’ve seen these conversations played out hundreds of times. Church father A is quoted by protestant speaking positively about the inspiration of Sacred Scripture. Protestant says, “Look, that is sola scriptura.” Catholic responds saying, “I don’t disagree with any of that but look at what the same father says about the authority of the Church.” Protestant says, “Well, the father was wrong about that but look what he says about scripture!”

    Its hand waving. When taking Irenaues, in total, we see plainly that he believes in the authority of the Catholic Church and he describes that Church as having succession of the apostles. He also upholds that Sacred Scripture is God’s word and the message of the gospel written down. As a Catholic I say AMEN!

    Exactly! When the Early Church Fathers are read as a whole, anyone can easily see that the Early Church Fathers believed in doctrines that the original Protestant “Reformers” rejected (Purgatory, Mary, the Intercession of the Saints, the canon of scripture, the authority of the church, etc). Which means that when the children of the Reformers cherry pick the writings of the ECFs to find support for Luther’s novelty of sola scriptura, these modern day Protestants are quoting sources that they have already determined to be unreliable sources for the transmission of orthodox Christian doctrine. The Protestants that are cherry picking the ECFs are assuming that the original “Reformers” are reliable sources of what constitutes orthodox Christian doctrine, and then declaring that the Early Church Fathers are orthodox only to the extent that they agree with the “Reformers”. The whole thing is just one big exercise of question begging.

    Brent you write:

    I would like to just add that Apostolic Succession can be directly inferred from Scripture …

    Quite right. Jesus personally founded his own church; a church with offices that need to be filled when they become vacant. That truth isn’t just inferred from the scriptures, that truth is explicitly stated in the New Testament. Even if the Catholics have to infer the doctrine of apostolic succession from the scriptures, what of it? The Catholics have never claimed that the scriptures are the only inerrant source of doctrine that they possess.

    The sola scriptura confessing Protestants need to defend Luther’s doctrine of sola scriptura by showing exactly where that doctrine is explicitly taught in their Protestant bible. After all, it is the Protestants, and not the Catholics, that are claiming that their Protestant bible is the only source that they have that is guaranteed by God to be inerrant about matters of Christian doctrine. But the Protestants can’t do that, because there are no verses in the Protestant bible that teach Luther’s novelty of sola scriptura!

    The Protestants have no explicit scriptural argument to defend a fundamental doctrine upon which the Reformation either stands or falls. To defend Luther’s sola scriptura novelty to Catholics, Catholics are supposed ignore the fact that there are no verses in the Protestant bible that teach sola scriptura, and listen instead to convoluted arguments from Protestants based on their cherry picking of quotes from the Early Church Fathers. And again, the Catholics are supposed ignore the fact that the Protestants consider the Early Church Fathers to be unreliable sources of what constitutes Christian doctrine. Sean Patrick expresses my own thoughts when he writes:

    I’ve seen others do this countless times with various fathers and it’s maddening. I don’t mean ‘maddening’ as in, I am angry. I mean ‘maddening’ as in it’s a really bad argument and not even slightly convincing.

  392. John (#386)

    The New Testament gives us (as per Hurtado) a very clear picture of what was believed and what was practiced. What’s evident from later writers — and I’ve also brought up Clement and Ignatius in this thread, first of having misunderstood the New Testament concept of “grace”, and also, not having had the concept of “succession” that Irenaeus had — all of these things are wholly consonant with each other, and not in any way consonant with the notion that there was “a bishop” in Rome, with authority over the whole church. Such a thing is a later concept, superimposed upon the history of the first century church. It was “after the fact” and it was “not totally inconsistent with” the actual history, but it was not the way it happened, either.

    You begin your paragraph by assuming the doctrine of sola scriptura in arguing that the New Testament is a witness to all that the Apostles and the early Church believed. You can’t have it both ways. For you, either there was a succession of teachers teaching with an essentially oral tradition (by which the concept of grace was “misunderstood”) or there was no such thing and Irenaeus, Clement, Ignatius, etc. all had access to the books of the New Testament and knew exactly what they were writing.

    Is it not exceedingly arrogant to assume you know better than the men who learned from the Apostles themselves (who were most certainly not heretics) what the concept of grace was? Irenaeus rejected such pride! And again, you attack a strawman of what Rome believes about her authority. It has been repeatedly explained what is meant by development of doctrine as well as infallibility. You can argue against both of those (as they are formulated!) if you wish, but do not keep saying apostolic succession did not exist for Clement or Ignatius without citing direct evidence of such. All the direct evidence we have is positive, therefore, our position is stronger. As for your comment about Irenaeus not being good with history, you have yet to prove that. You have not responded to the arguments against said position.

    As for the papacy being the “greatest calamity” to befall the Church, that is highly debatable, as is your claim that the Reformation “brought a renewal to the Gospel message”. Both are unproven assertions and should be dropped. It is easy to substitute “Reformation” for “papacy” and “Trent” for “the Reformation”, but I would simply be making an unsubstantiated assertion for the purposes of this comment thread.

  393. Sean (re:#385),

    You wrote to John Bugay:

    Everything Irenaeus says about the scriptures that you quoted is understood, by Irenaeus, in the context of the Church. That is not ‘sola scriptura.’ Irenaeus describes the Church and then talks about scripture. You can’t present him as upholding scripture, which is right and true, and remove it from what he said about the church.

    I’ve seen others do this countless times with various fathers and it’s maddening. I don’t mean ‘maddening’ as in, I am angry. I mean ‘maddening’ as in it’s a really bad argument and not even slightly convincing.

    I’ve seen these conversations played out hundreds of times. Church father A is quoted by protestant speaking positively about the inspiration of Sacred Scripture. Protestant says, “Look, that is sola scriptura.” Catholic responds saying, “I don’t disagree with any of that but look at what the same father says about the authority of the Church.” Protestant says, “Well, the father was wrong about that but look what he says about scripture!”

    Its hand waving. When taking Irenaues, in total, we see plainly that he believes in the authority of the Catholic Church and he describes that Church as having succession of the apostles. He also upholds that Sacred Scripture is God’s word and the message of the gospel written down. As a Catholic I say AMEN!

    I can only say “Amen” as well, to St. Irenaeus’s words about Sacred Scripture, and (in a lesser way but still) to your above words about the frustrating nature of the *highly selective* usage of the Church Fathers by *some* of our Protestant brothers and sisters– especially when those particular brothers and sisters deny that “consistent Catholics” are even Christians!

  394. Amen to St. Irenaeus’s words about Sacred Scripture *and* the Church, that is…!

  395. John,

    I have been listening to the debate go back and forth now for, it seems like a few weeks. I will state as Sean did in # 390 that it makes no sense that the Scriptures came before the Church. It was members of the Church that wrote the Scriptures ( New Testament). It was the Church that took many years, centuries in fact, to discern those writings as Scripture. I think you have the cart before the horse in this case. Irenaeus would have been a full fledged card carrying member of the Church and maybe using the writings of the Apostles as a base for his teachings. But the teachings would have been Church teachings. What you claim he was using as Scripture wasn’t even considered Scripture in his time or at least was only beginning to be thought about then.

    Blessings
    NHU

  396. Christopher,
    Where in Irenaeus do we see him claiming that the authority of God is found in the office of the Church? Does he say that the message of the apostles is not the authority?
    Second, are you arguing that we should not be selective with the Church Fathers? In other words, what they say is right? Were they spokesmen for the Church itself? Where is their authority?
    Thanks for thinking about these things and responding! ;)

  397. Josh Lim,
    Thanks for your response. It is very helpful to see your thinking. I have a few more questions if you are willing.

    Can you explain how differing Protestant views neccisarily leads to absolute uncertainty? In your response, does James 1:5 play into the picture as being outside of church authority and bases the knowledge received as being a private interpretation?

    Is everything the Catholic Church teaches binding for all peoples in all places and at all times? If so, how do we account for the differences? If not, how is this different from Protestant thinking?

    Thank you do your time and I look forward to your response!

  398. Christopher.

    Thanks.

    …”especially when those particular brothers and sisters deny that “consistent Catholics” are even Christians”

    I am not sure if that is John’s position and wouldn’t want to assume that it is his position. I am not sure if you were saying that but just speaking in generalities but just saying.

  399. I too have seen the same cherry picking. I’ve asked people how it is that they confidently embrace some ideas of a particular Church Father, but discount other ideas and I’m not really given an answer. This does leave me scratching my head. If I could be sure that their decisions were supported in scripture, I’d feel better, but what I believe that I am finding( and I’m not sure), is a dislike of certain practices that Protestants are not comfortable with.
    Christian asceticism is a big issue. Finding that such things as fasting prayer, self-denial, works of piety were in the early church is difficult for a Protestant to assimilate. How does one account for it when works are not necessary for salvation? I find it difficult myself, but I do see these things in scripture and have never been taught that they are to be utilized. We all just sorta say, “that’s cool” or “that’s weird” and that’s about it. I went to the Puritans looking for some example of spiritual life and it helped, but if I spent too long absorbed in the idea, I would be nicely scolded for “navel gazing”. This made my prayer life and my “doing works from gratitude” difficult because of morbid introspection to make sure that I wasn’t doing anything in order to merit salvation. I was frightened that Christ was angry at me for feeling delight in doing a good thing for another person, because it meant that I was robbing Him of His glory. This cycle was/is making me crazy. I kept wondering if I were trusting in Christ alone for my salvation, when before I became Reformed, I never doubted that I did. I still can’t figure out how to know that I have a true faith when even being “in Christ” is only a fiduciary arrangement.
    Now that I am searching for the true visible church on earth, I am treated like I don’t love the gospel and that I am adding to Christ’s finished work, but at the same time Protestants are hard pressed to define what the nature of sanctification actually is.

    I am finding that consistency is very important, and I am happy that there are extra-biblical records of Jesus and early Christians, even if scant. Looks like there is much support very near the first century for Peter being in Rome.

    Gaius: “It is recorded that Paul was beheaded in Rome itself, and Peter, likewise, was crucified, during the reign [of the Emperor Nero]. The account is confirmed by the names of Peter and Paul over the cemeteries there, which remain to the present time. And it is confirmed also by a stalwart man of the Church, Gaius by name, who lived in the time of Zephyrinus, bishop of Rome. This Gaius, in a written disputation with Proclus, the leader of the sect of Cataphrygians, says this of the places in which the remains of the aforementioned apostles were deposited: ‘I can point out the trophies of the apostles. For if you are willing to go to the Vatican or to the Ostian Way, you will find the trophies of those who founded this Church’” (Disputation with Proclus – 198 AD in Eusebius, Church History 2:25:5)

    ~Alicia

  400. Chad (re:#396),

    Thanks for the questions! I wish that I had time at the present moment for a longer, more personally tailored reply, and I don’t want to overwhelm you with passages from the early Church Fathers, but when one is looking into the nature of authority in early Christianity (approximately, the 1st-5th centuries A.D.), the early Church Fathers can shed quite a bit of light on the subject. The following link provides passages from St. Irenaeus and many other early Fathers on apostolic succession and Church authority:
    https://www.churchfathers.org/category/the-church-and-the-papacy/apostolic-succession/

    I will write more soon, Lord willing! Thanks again and God bless!

  401. Sean (re:#398),

    Thanks for the words of caution, brother. Perhaps I did write in haste and without sufficient care and thought. I hope not, but perhaps I did. With that said, I have a good bit of familiarity with our brother John B.’s writing and thinking from Triablogue, the Puritan Board, and other online sources. If he considers “consistent Catholics” to be Christians, I will be very happily surprised, given that he does not seem to think (from what I have read from him) that the official teachings of the Catholic Church “get the Gospel right.”

  402. Hi Chad (re: #397):

    I’ll answer your questions point-by-point.

    Can you explain how differing Protestant views necessarily leads to absolute uncertainty? In your response, does James 1:5 play into the picture as being outside of church authority and bases the knowledge received as being a private interpretation?

    I’m not entirely sure what you mean by absolute uncertainty, but I do think there is sufficient uncertainty for Protestants, whether they have gone to seminary or not, regarding what the Bible actually teaches on important issues, such as justification. I have met very few who have considered all the issues in an absolutely comprehensive manner; most of the time the case is that an individual has approached Scripture knowing a priori that her interpretation of Scripture is correct–whether she has not examined other views fairly, or has examined only several competing views, but not all other views. This, of course, would not be necessary if one’s interpretation was guaranteed to be true and infallible by the Holy Spirit, but there is no such guarantee in any Protestant denomination–not even a claim to it.

    I’m unclear what you’re asking with respect to James 1:5. How do you interpret the passage? Are you suggesting that James is saying that clarity regarding doctrine can and does come about solely through prayer? If so, why are there so many competing views on virtually every single doctrine–is this simply because certain people are not praying enough? If it comes down to prayer, what’s the purpose of getting a seminary education? These are just a few questions that come to mind… It does seem like an improper interpretation of the passage if that’s what you’re suggesting, but I’ll let you clarify what you mean and don’t mean by it.

    Is everything the Catholic Church teaches binding for all peoples in all places and at all times? If so, how do we account for the differences? If not, how is this different from Protestant thinking?

    Only what the Catholic Church teaches as binding is binding. The Church is fairly clear as to what is binding and what is not binding. If you have a particular issue in mind it might be better to speak of it specifically rather than in generalities. A Protestant confession or teaching authority has no authority to say what is binding–the only authority a pastor has is to say that he (or she) thinks that Scripture teaches that such-and-such a thing is binding, but going back to the first question, it is not always clear from Scripture whether certain things are binding or not and it ultimately comes back down to the issue of who has the authority to interpret Scripture…

    We should talk about this over a beer sometime…

    Hope that helps.

  403. I’d like to take off on something that Joshua said, and the hope is that it will have some value in showing what some of the differences are here.

    Only what the Catholic Church teaches as binding is binding. The Church is fairly clear as to what is binding and what is not binding. If you have a particular issue in mind it might be better to speak of it specifically rather than in generalities. A Protestant confession or teaching authority has no authority to say what is binding–the only authority a pastor has is to say that he (or she) thinks that Scripture teaches that such-and-such a thing is binding, but going back to the first question, it is not always clear from Scripture whether certain things are binding or not and it ultimately comes back down to the issue of who has the authority to interpret Scripture…

    This phrase caught my eye: Only what the Catholic Church teaches as binding is binding. The Church is fairly clear as to what is binding and what is not binding.

    Consider this scenario, which I offer as a summary:

    1. In the beginning, God created the heavens and the earth.

    2. God created merely by speaking things into existence. God said “Let there be…” and there was.

    a. What God says has power; it actually accomplishes things.

    b. This is the point at which the Roman Catholic insistence on “interpretation” presses itself, saying “God’s word is insufficient; therefore, you need an infallible interpreter”.

    c. Protestants accept (a), and resist (b).

    3. “God saw everything that he had made, and behold, it was very good” (Gen 1:31). I suppose you would say “this is a verse that requires interpretation”.

    a. An exegetical understanding of this verse is given in John Currid, (“A Study Commentary on Genesis”, Volume 1, Genesis 1:1-25:18, Darlington, UK an Webster, NY: Evangelical Press ©2003). “And he pronounces a verdict: ‘Behold it was very good.’ The term ‘Behold…’ [Hebrew hinneh] often serves to call special attention to a declarative statement. And when the word for ‘very’ [Hebrew meod] occurs after an adjective it is an absolute superlative. Therefore, the writer is describing God’s judgement of his own creation with great emphasis – it is perfect in every detail, even down to the very intricacies of its being.” (Currid, pg 89).

    b. Creation being “very good”, language also is “very good”.

    c. Man, as created, was also “very good”.

    i. Roman Catholic Church holds that man was somewhat less “very good” than God says he was, and introduces a donum superadditum, some kind of “superadded gift” of grace an “ontic” (or “ontological” gift) that “elevates” man into supernatural fellowship with God.

    ii. Protestants, however, accept that Man was “very good” and reject the notion of a “superadded gift” of grace. Man, in the condition in which God created him to be, was lacking nothing “ontologically” necessary to be in “fellowship” with God, and was already in a “very good” [“perfect in every detail”] fellowship with God.

    4. Man fell

    a. Roman Catholics hold that sinful man is only “wounded” in his nature – only having lost this “superadded gift” in the fall. The result of this is: “original sin does not have the character of a personal fault in any of Adam’s descendants. It is a deprivation of original holiness and justice, but human nature has not been totally corrupted: it is wounded in the natural powers proper to it, subject to ignorance, suffering and the dominion of death, and inclined to sin – an inclination to evil that is called ‘concupiscence’”.

    b. Protestants hold that sinful man is far worse than wounded:

    i. WCF: By this sin [our original parents] fell from their original righteousness and communion with God, and so became dead in sin, and wholly defiled in all the faculties and parts of soul and body.

    ii. They being the root of mankind, the guilt of this sin was imputed, and the same death in sin and corrupted nature conveyed to all their posterity, descending from them by original generation.

    5. God’s remedy:

    a. in Roman Catholicism: “Baptism, by imparting the life of Christ’s grace, erases original sin and turns a man back towards God, but the consequences for nature, weakened and inclined to evil, persist in man and summon him to spiritual battle.” God’s “grace” comes through an “infusion” [“ontological”] and man must “co-operate” with this “grace”.

    i. An imperfect metaphor of this is that “grace” is a kind of “oil” that provides for a kind of “healing”; it “enables” the parts to get moving again. But it is imperfect, of course.

    ii. Eschatologically, Cardinal Joseph Ratzinger looks at the “ontological” meaning and asserts: “we are inserted into Christ and united with him as a single subject” (“Called to Communion” Herder and Ignatius ©1991, 1996, pg 25), a “fusion of existences”; just as in the taking of nourishment the body assimilates foreign matter to itself … in the same way my “I” is assimilated to that of Jesus”.

    But as I’ll relate below, this is a misunderstanding of the eschatological end that God has in store for us.

    b. Michael Horton, in “Covenant and Salvation” (Louisville, KY and London, UK: Westminster John Knox Press ©2007), [summarizing Reformed theologians] posits that what really happened to man in the fall was not “ontic” – no “loss” of “superadded grace”, but rather, it is an “estrangement”, a broken fellowship based on a judgment of “guilty”.

    i. Man, being created “very good”, did not change ontologically in the fall; hence, God’s solution, “forensic justification”, re-enables the koinonia, or “fellowship”, that man lost with God.

    ii. This restored fellowship manifests itself not in a “fusion of existences”, but rather, a restoring of the original fellowship [again, rejecting the need for some “superadded grace”]. The “unity” of fellowship is rather a gathering together by God, and his everlasting covenant:

    This is what the Lord, the God of Israel, says: I will surely gather them from all the lands where I banish them in my furious anger and great wrath; I will bring them back to this place and let them live in safety. They will be my people, and I will be their God. I will give them singleness of heart and action, so that they will always fear me and that all will then go well for them and for their children after them. I will make an everlasting covenant with them: I will never stop doing good to them, and I will inspire them to fear me, so that they will never turn away from me. I will rejoice in doing them good and [I] will assuredly plant them in this land with all my heart and soul.

    This is very simple, I admit, again, it is only an outline, and it only contains the emphases I’d like to make here.

    The Protestant theologian Herman Bavinck (“Reformed Dogmatics”, Vol 1, Grand Rapids, MI: Baker Academic, trans. John Vriend, ©2003, pg. 359) speaks of this:

    The doctrine of a supernatural end … is integral to the entire Catholic system, which is constructed, not on the religious antithesis between sin and grace, but on the graduated scale of the good, on the ranking of creatures and virtues, on hierarchy both in a physical and an ethical sense.

    The Reformation, by contrast, had but one idea, one conception of human beings, that is, of human beings as the image bearers of God, and this was true for all human beings.

    The question comes down to, “what is God doing?” And in this, we need to be very careful to understand what he is doing, and not to “read into” what he is doing, things that he is not doing. (See Deuteronomy, as I have cited it above, says: “You shall not add to the word that I command you, nor take from it, that you may keep the commandments of the Lord your God that I command you … Everything that I command you, you shall be careful to do. You shall not add to it or take from it.”

    Bryan qualified this to say “another possible interpretation of those verses is that they are prohibiting adding to or subtracting from divine commands. And the existence of a divinely authorized oral Tradition and Magisterium is fully compatible with that interpretation of these passages.”

    Nevertheless, I would rather rely on an exegesis of the text, using a hermeneutic that seeks to understand the original meaning of the text – what the writer wrote, in the cultural context, with an eye toward understanding it as the original readers would have understood it.

    In this context, the “donum superadditum” is something that is “added” by the Magisterium; if you’re Roman Catholic, you accept it, and if you are a Protestant, it is just one more reason to ask, “how infallible is the Magisterium if it’s adding such things all the way through the Scriptures?”

    Just how “binding” should something like this be?

    [This notion of a “donum superadditum” has an element, too, that touches on the idea of “special revelation”; it is the notion that “God’s revelation is not sufficient” – in the Genesis 1 sense. What the Roman Catholic Church adds to this is something like the notion that its own “interpretation” is required as a kind of “superadded gift” because God’s own word is somehow not able to be understood properly by God’s own creation. I’ll talk more about this at some future point, Lord willing.]

  404. Sean (#390): Yes, Scripture came before the church. The whole Old Testament is a Scripture that came before the church. The Apostles knew what the Old Testament Scriptures were, and what their relationship was (as “scribes of the New Testament”), in relationship to the Old Testament. They knew (2 Peter 3:16) that what they were writing was “Scripture”.

  405. Garrison (#392):

    You begin your paragraph by assuming the doctrine of sola scriptura in arguing that the New Testament is a witness to all that the Apostles and the early Church believed. You can’t have it both ways.

    No, I (following Hurtado) begin by assuming that the New Testament writings are an accurate source of information concerning the events and beliefs of the New Testament period.

    For you, either there was a succession of teachers teaching with an essentially oral tradition (by which the concept of grace was “misunderstood”) or there was no such thing and Irenaeus, Clement, Ignatius, etc. all had access to the books of the New Testament and knew exactly what they were writing.

    Start from “the beginning”. In brief, the argument I am making is that the Apostles were commissioned by Christ in a unique position of “eyewitness”. These alone had the ability to report on the events and articulate the meaning of Christ’s life, death, and resurrection.

    Per Irenaeus (and Hurtado), this “unique message” was written down. This (in the form of the New Testament scriptures) had divine blessing. The “message ringing in their ears” also had “divine blessing”, but like the Glory of God on Moses’s face, this faded over time.

    I’m not saying that what they had gave them “the ability to infallibly posit binding doctrines” in some well-defined (though located after-the-fact) instances. I would rather argue that the concept of “the ability to infallibly posit binding doctrines” is flawed.

    I’m saying that what they had was “sufficient”. In God’s purpose, those who were in a position of church leadership during the years 100-150, Clement, Ignatius, Papias, Hermas, all had the living voice ringing in their ears, but that it had (a) faded and (b) become contaminated with other things (per Cullmann, in my comment above). This is why I am able to say they “misunderstood” some things – Grace, to be sure, and other things as well. This did not totally incapacitate them. What they had was sufficient to “turn and be healed” (Acts 28:27).

    This is consonant with the history that we know.

    Is it not exceedingly arrogant to assume you know better than the men who learned from the Apostles themselves (who were most certainly not heretics) what the concept of grace was?

    Interesting that you put it this way. I would suggest that it was “exceedingly arrogant” of Rome to insert itself the way that it did upon the church. The “donum superadditum” comment above illustrates how I believe this happened, not in the case of Rome, but in the case of one particular Roman Catholic doctrine.

    It has been repeatedly explained what is meant by development of doctrine as well as infallibility.

    And I repeatedly explain why I reject those explanations.

    do not keep saying apostolic succession did not exist for Clement or Ignatius without citing direct evidence of such.

    I’m not denying that these men understood themselves to be in a position of church leadership. What they denied was that they had anything near the “authority” that the apostles had. Consider Ignatius:

    “I do not command you as Peter and Paul: they [were] apostles. I [am] a condemned man; they [were] free, I (am) still a slave”.

    You will point to this as some example of what a “bishop” is; you will use this as some kind of affirmation of “succession” in Ignatius.

    You will say “this is not inconsistent” with what the Roman Catholic church says about the relationship of apostles and bishops today. Nevertheless, this is NOT a positive articulation of anything near to “the doctrine of succession” – and if you consider the level at which this statement locates bishops vis-à-vis the apostles, there is a huge gulf here, which you will not accept (and I will).

    The Roman Catholic doctrine today is found in Lumen Gentium 19f:

    calling to Himself those whom He desired, appointed twelve to be with Him, and these apostles … He formed after the manner of a college or a stable group, over which He placed Peter chosen from among them…That divine mission, entrusted by Christ to the apostles, will last until the end of the world …. since the Gospel they are to teach is for all time the source of all life for the Church. And for this reason the apostles, appointed as rulers in this society, took care to appoint successors…. They therefore appointed such men, and gave them the order that, when they should have died, other approved men would take up their ministry…

    This is actually an equivocation on what, actually is “that divine mission, entrusted by Christ to the apostles”…

    Ignatius has no concept of having this same mission – which Cullmann is careful to describe – how “apostles as the foundation” is completely unique and unrepeatable. Ignatius clearly recognizes this difference. He had no concept that he had been “appointed” as “a ruler” in this society. He knew of himself in a leadership position, to be sure, but also, something completely separate from what the apostles were.

    And you are the one who must provide “direct evidence” that Ignatius, in fact, was a bishop in the sense that the modern Roman Catholic Church says that bishops are bishops. Otherwise, Ignatius does not support you in that, and “development”, in this case, is a smokescreen that enables you to avoid fulfilling that obligation on that burden of proof.

  406. John.

    # 404

    “Yes, Scripture came before the church. The whole Old Testament is a Scripture that came before the church. The Apostles knew what the Old Testament Scriptures were, and what their relationship was (as “scribes of the New Testament”), in relationship to the Old Testament. They knew (2 Peter 3:16) that what they were writing was “Scripture”.

    Of course there is no disagreement that the books that would eventually comprise the ‘Old Testament’ had been written before the Incarnation and thus before the existance of the Christian Church.

    However, you say that Scripture came before the Church and that the authors of the NT knew that what they were writing was Scripture.

    Just to be clear: When Paul was writing his letter to the Romans was he a member of the Church? When Peter wrote 2nd Peter was he a member of the Church? When Luke was writing Acts was he a member of the Church?

    If yes, then you agree that the Church came before the writing of the New Testament. Agreed? I don’t know how you could disagree because for one thing the New Testament (epistles, Acts and Revelation) talk about ‘the Church’ as an empirical reality that is already there. Of course, also, the gospels tell us of Jesus’ promise to build a Church and we have Pentecost.

    To summarize: Jesus built His Church. Jesus diciples and the apostles were part of that Church. That Church existed before during the time that Paul, Luke, Peter etc were penning what would become the New Testament.

  407. Sean (406):

    Putting aside the OT, as we agree that the OT existed before the incarnation…

    You can’t do this, because the concept of “Scripture” was already in place before the incarnation. When Paul wrote the letter to the Romans, he already had this concept of “Scripture” and also, the concept of “covenant” in place (see my comment in #403 regarding the Jeremiah selection on what this “new covenant” would be all about. Paul had all of these concepts firmly in his mind as he wrote all his letters.

    Of Paul and Peter and Luke, was he a member of the Church?

    How do you suppose these individuals defined the word “church”? How did they view their own roles vis-a-vis the church, in God’s plan, in the context of God’s covenants?

    Certainly it would be anachronistic to suggest that they had the later Roman Catholic understanding of the word in mind.

    But as I’ve noted in 405, Ignatius also did not have the later Roman Catholic understanding in mind.

    My whole project, with Hurtado and Lampe and the other writers, is to understand, in very concrete terms, what the first century “church” was, what it believed about itself, in terms that would be understood at the time, not anachronistically “reading back” Roman Catholic doctrine into what these individuals said.

    My contention is that, once you see the lives these individuals actually lived, then it is impossible to attribute “development”, because we can look at both: (a) what they lived at the time, and (b) what Roman Catholicism became, and say, “there can be no “organic” “development” here, because the “elders” that Paul named “in every church” was different from “the bishop” in Ignatius to the Romans, (as I cited above), “the bishop” in Irenaeus, “the bishop” in Cyprian and the bishops of, say, the 3rd or 4th century or even in Lumen Gentium had in mind.

    These differed not in some kind of “organic development”, but the kind of authority they had differed radically, not only among these gradations, but especially in comparison with the apostles.

    At this point, the burden of proof that is yours is not simply to hide behind the “development” smokescreen, but to say specifically how and why each different step, though being different, was somehow “all the same” and beyond that, given that, say, Trent’s conception is even different from Vatican II’s conception, to account in real terms for the differences. Of this difference, Michael J Buckley says the following:

    The development from Pastor aeternus to Lumen Gentium, from speaking of the bishops as the episcopate to speaking of the bishops as “a college…or a college of bishops” (collegium … seu corpus episcoporum), is far more considerable than a simple semantic shift. “Episcopate” is somewhat more abstract than “college of bishops,” and it fails to express the dynamic relationship of the bishops among themselves… (Michael J. Buckley, S.J., “Papal Primacy and the Episcopate: towards a relational understanding,” New York: Crossroad Herder, © 1998, from the “Ut Unum Sint” series, pg 77).

    and this:

    By no means is that the only problem which the college of bishops initially poses. Lumen Gentium, no. 22, did not include in its description of the Episcopal college the local churches of which the bishops were shepherds and representatives. If one fails to place this section within the context of Lumen Gentium no. 23, one would have an understanding of the college of bishops without the simultaneous and explicit recognition of the communion of churches, indeed, without mention of local churches at all. The perspective would remain that of a universalist ecclesiology, and the college of bishops would read as if it were primarily a governing board of the whole Church (80).

    Again, Buckley is presenting only one small problem along the various links of “development” that cannot be, and should not be, just papered over with the word “development”.

    So no, when you make a blanket statement that these men were “members of the church” and therefore “the church came before the writing of the New Testament”, then no, I don’t agree, because that’s an equivocal statement.

  408. On the topic of “looking at specific steps along the path known as development”, here is another one of those “little steps” that seems to be being “re-defined” along the path of understanding “what bishops are today”:

    In Trent’s Decree on Holy Orders, Canon 6 states that there is in the Church “a hierarchy instituted by divine ordination, which consists of bishops, presbyters and ministers.” While this teaching conforms to the idea of existence of such offices from the beginning of the Church, it does not harmonize with the historical facts. The Second Vatican Council’s Lumen Gentium [28] offers a more realistic view based on a more secure historical consciousness and exegesis of Scripture. Here we read “Thus the divinely instituted ecclesiastical ministry is exercised in different degrees by those who even from ancient times (ab antiquo) have been called bishops, priests, and deacons.” Hence in no way does Vatican II affirm that the priesthood was instituted at the Last Supper in the sense understood by Trent (Edward J. Kilmartin, S.J. “The Eucharist in the West: History and Theology,” Collegeville, MN: The Liturgical Press, © 1998, 2004 by the Order of St. Benedict. Edited by Robert J. Daily, S.J. pg 378).

  409. John.

    So, you don’t deny that Paul and Peter were members of the ‘church’ which existed prior to and during the time the New Testament was being written? Or are you denying that?

    We can talk about what ‘church’ meant later. Can we just agree that the ‘church’ existed prior to the New Testament being written?

    If you don’t agree than on what basis do you deny that ‘the church’, however defined, did not exist when Paul talks about it existing?

  410. No, they were Apostles of Christ and their role went far beyond simply being “members of the ‘church’. They were foundational to it. They — because of their eyewitness testimony — played THE key role in it.

  411. I’ll just go ahead and explain where I am going with my line of questioning now as I don’t know if I’ll have time to check back later.

    There is simply no denying that Christ built a Church, unless you don’t believe what Matthew records Him saying to Peter in Matt 16:18. There is no denying that Paul, who wrote the bulk of the New Testament epistles was a member of that Church.

    Now, we know, from scripture and tradition that this Church was a visible, empirical reality. Bryan wrote about this quite extensively in Christ Founded a Visible Church. Please read it if you haven’t because its important to the discussion.

    John, you say that you want to ‘go back’ and understand what Paul and Peter and Ignatius and Clement etc meant by ‘Church.’ What do you claim they meant? We argue that they meant ‘Church’ in the visible sense. A real institution, with leadership structure that was given to the faithful for the salvation of souls.

    Here is one reason, from Bryan’s article, why we hold that the Church was visible:

    And if he refuses to listen to them, tell it to the Church; and if he refuses to listen even to the Church, let him be to you as a Gentile and a tax-gatherer. (Matthew 18:17)

    Jesus had just said in Matthew 16 that He would build His Church, a singular thing. Now here, in Matthew 18:17, through what He says about Church discipline, He shows us that the Church has a visible hierarchy, something to which we can tell things, and (perhaps more importantly) to which we can listen. This verse shows that the Church can excommunicate those in sin. (Cf. 1 Corinthians 5:1-5.) But since communication is a visible thing, only a visible hierarchy can excommunicate those in sin. For an “invisible church” to be able to excommunicate, communion would also have to be invisible.

    You said of Ignatius, “Ignatius has no concept of having this same mission – which Cullmann is careful to describe – how “apostles as the foundation” is completely unique and unrepeatable. Ignatius clearly recognizes this difference. He had no concept that he had been “appointed” as “a ruler” in this society. He knew of himself in a leadership position, to be sure, but also, something completely separate from what the apostles were. “

    But Ignatius said, “Where the bishop is, there is the community, even as where Christ is there is the Catholic Church.

    Don’t you see that Ignatius identifies, being in communion with the bishop as a mark of the Church that Christ founded? Does that sound crypto Protestant?

    He further said, “As therefore the Lord did nothing without the Father, being united to Him, neither by Himself nor by the apostles, so neither do anything without the bishop and presbyters. Neither endeavour that anything appear reasonable and proper to yourselves apart; but being come together into the same place, let there be one prayer, one supplication, one mind, one hope, in love and in joy undefiled. There is one Jesus Christ, than whom nothing is more excellent. Therefore run together as into one temple of God, as to one altar, as to one Jesus Christ, who came forth from one Father, and is with and has gone to one.

    Does that sound like he is advocating the WCOF’s conception of ‘Church?’ I don’t think so.

  412. John,

    You wrote, “No, they were Apostles of Christ and their role went far beyond simply being “members of the ‘church’. They were foundational to it. They — because of their eyewitness testimony — played THE key role in it.”

    Forgive me but I think that is an equivocation. We all know that the leaders of the Church are members of the church.

    So, ‘the Church’ existed prior to the writing of the letters and gospels that would eventually form the New Testament.

    In #411 I outlined just a hint of why that Church was a visible reality. Bryan does a great job of it in the article of his I linked.

    Make your case. Tell us what Jesus meant when he said, “I will build my Church.” Tell us what Paul meant when he told Timothy to seek out the “household of God…the church…which is the pillar and foundation of truth.” Tell us how church discipline, an imperative we get from Scripture as I outlined in #411, is even possible without a visible conception of ‘Church.’

  413. I gave you a very good indication of what I think is meant by “the church” in the New Testament. You make a whole lot of unwarranted assumptions with your last two posts. You are simply posturing.

  414. John (#382):

    With that reply, you continue to ignore most of the points I made in my previous several comments, and instead press your argument that Jesus entirely “rejected” Jewish tradition, as opposed to just fulfilling it. At this stage, the details of your argument are unimportant because it’s all too evident that your whole way of proceeding simply begs the question. As I have repeatedly argued, the fundamental and prior question is whether a Catholic or a conservative-Protestant IP is rationally preferable for the general purpose of distinguishing divine revelation from human opinions about the sources alleged to transmit it. Rather than address that question, however, all you do is continue giving your interpretive opinions on a few particular points–ones which not even all Protestant theologians would accept. That’s just evading the problem.

    I’ve read, and could of course cite, various Catholic scholars who develop interpretations opposed to yours on the points you do address. But that would just be playing by your rules. Nothing can finally be settled by such a procedure because it cannot, even in principle, yield results fit to elicit the assent of faith as distinct from that of opinion. Unless you engage that fundamental and prior issue, there’s no point in my going on about the specific topic you prefer to address.

    That said, you do gesture in the direction of addressing the paradigm difference with your #407 and #408 in reply to Sean. But you still remain with your own IP. Thus:

    My contention is that, once you see the lives these individuals actually lived, then it is impossible to attribute “development”, because we can look at both: (a) what they lived at the time, and (b) what Roman Catholicism became, and say, “there can be no “organic” “development” here, because the “elders” that Paul named “in every church” was different from “the bishop” in Ignatius to the Romans, (as I cited above), “the bishop” in Irenaeus, “the bishop” in Cyprian and the bishops of, say, the 3rd or 4th century or even in Lumen Gentium had in mind.

    These differed not in some kind of “organic development”, but the kind of authority they had differed radically, not only among these gradations, but especially in comparison with the apostles.

    Your method is to conduct a scholarly investigation into what the original actors meant and lived, and what their original audience understood. At this historical distance, however, such a procedure can yield at best only one provisional opinion among others. But as I and K Doran have pointed out, your use of evidence is inherently unconvincing, because you’re trying to establish conclusions that the limited dataset just doesn’t necessitate, even when they can be shown to be consistent with the dataset. Hence your interpretations cannot yield propositions calling for the assent of faith as distinct from that of opinion. You have not yet succeeded in engaging the fundamental issue on the level where it needs to be engaged. You’re just marching on the spot.

    Best,
    Mike

  415. John,

    I gave you a very good indication of what I think is meant by “the church” in the New Testament.

    Maybe I missed it. Did you post it here? And be sure to explain how your interpretation of the New Testament ‘church’ somehow precludes apostolic succession.

  416. Michael Liccione #414, I’m not positing anything that comes near to “interpretations” that “yield propositions calling for the assent of faith. I’m just working to understand the history of the times. And “at this distance”, as I wrote to K Doran, we have an incredible amount of information, and not only that, but I’m citing a range of Protestant AND Catholic scholars who are all coming to similar conclusions:

    … the New Testament provides for us an embarrassment of riches with respect to our knowledge of the earliest Church and antiquity. Roman Catholics like K Doran make a fundamental mistake in holding on to [the notion of] what Hurtado refers to the darkened pre-Constantinian centuries.

    What’s really happening is that, in the first 100 years of church history, we see a picture of Christ-worship and an authority structure in the earliest church that is totally turned on its head, not by “subtle issues” as Doran says, but with true violence. Not all of it was intentional, but some of the Rome-ward and Pagan-ward drift was quite intentional.

    There is no need for Protestants to make “arguments from silence” with respect either to “authority” or to what “the church that Christ founded” was really like. The Roman story – and even the Anglican story on “the episcopacy” has changed in recent years [see my comments 407 and 408] to reflect what’s now known about what he calls “the historical phenomenon” of both “Christ devotion” and the earliest church.

    Beyond this, I disagree that Jesus “fulfilled” “Jewish tradition”. He “fulfilled” the Law and the Prophets, while at the same time, condemnning “Jewish Traditions”. And I provided some pretty detailed exegesis to show why that’s the case. Which you are simply ignoring, behind your wall of “interpretive paradigm”.

  417. Sean 415: Any of the “house church” links will give you a good idea of the Greek and Roman worlds; the “Elders Chairs” links go into some detail re. the Palestinian and synagogue worlds. I will be happy to condense these when I get a chance.

  418. John (#405)

    No, I (following Hurtado) begin by assuming that the New Testament writings are an accurate source of information concerning the events and beliefs of the New Testament period.

    I nowhere assaulted the idea that the New Testament is “an accurate source of information” concerning that period. I simply reject your thesis that Clement, Ignatius, Papias, and Hermas are not.

    I’m saying that what they had was “sufficient”. In God’s purpose, those who were in a position of church leadership during the years 100-150, Clement, Ignatius, Papias, Hermas, all had the living voice ringing in their ears, but that it had (a) faded and (b) become contaminated with other things (per Cullmann, in my comment above). This is why I am able to say they “misunderstood” some things – Grace, to be sure, and other things as well. This did not totally incapacitate them. What they had was sufficient to “turn and be healed” (Acts 28:27).

    So what you’re saying is there was a massive loss of the concept of grace as the New Testament articulates it within less than a generation of John’s death and even before in the case of Clement? Such an understanding of grace is foundational to the Catholic Church and the other ancient Churches today, but we are heretical, and these men were not? Did it fade for all the world, too, for a time? There were no charges of heresy against these men, and no one condemned their writings as a “misunderstanding” of grace until the Reformation. On the contrary, the Church in Corinth read Clement’s letter to them during their liturgy! These men also had access to the written New Testament. They likely knew very well what Paul taught. Therefore, they were either heretics or true teachers whose teachings on grace are not a “misunderstanding”, but the true understanding. No. I reject your assertions and I reject your imputation of heresy on those who most truly were the successors to the Apostles. Irenaeus certainly did warn against those saying, “we know better than the Apostles.”

    Interesting that you put it this way. I would suggest that it was “exceedingly arrogant” of Rome to insert itself the way that it did upon the church. The “donum superadditum” comment above illustrates how I believe this happened, not in the case of Rome, but in the case of one particular Roman Catholic doctrine.

    Nice deflection with a tu quoque. You didn’t answer my charge. It is indeed arrogance to bring such charges against these men. To be sure, Rome has been arrogant to the point of driving away her sisters at times, but Rome does not view this as a donum superadditum, does she? No. She sees the Petrine ministry and mandatory communion with the (not “a”) visible Church within the New Testament itself. Submission to the Church is part and parcel with Christ’s teaching.

    As for a lack of an understanding of the infallibility of the Church, the Council of Jerusalem declares it has it in the Holy Spirit: “For it has seemed good to the Holy Spirit and to us to lay on you no greater burden than these requirements:” (Acts 15:28)”.

  419. Garrison 418:

    what you’re saying is there was a massive loss of the concept of grace as the New Testament articulates it within less than a generation of John’s death and even before in the case of Clement? Such an understanding of grace is foundational to the Catholic Church and the other ancient Churches today, but we are heretical, and these men were not?

    I believe I’ve said it was “a misunderstanding” of the concept of grace as it was used in the New Testament. Yes, I do think it was a serious misunderstanding.

    I’m working through Torrance’s study on Clement’s understanding of “grace”, but prior to that, there’s a whole lot of information on specifically what the different nuances of the word “grace” were, in Classical era Greek, in the Hellenistic period, and as well, different Hebrew words were translated “grace” both in the LXX and the NT. And there are other writers during those periods. I am checking my facts on this because it is such a broad concept.

    On the contrary, the Church in Corinth read Clement’s letter to them during their liturgy!

    This accounts for the “relapse into a moralism which ignores the notion of grace”, as Cullmann cited Torrance, and I’ve cited both of them in this comment thread:

    For a long time it has been noted that, apart from the letters of Ignatius, the writings of the so-called Apostolic Fathers, who do not really belong to the Apostolic age but to the beginning of the second century—[1 Clement, Barnabas, the Shepherd of Hermas]—despite their theological interest, are at a considerable distance from New Testament thought, and to a considerable extent relapse into a moralism which ignores the notion of grace, and of the redemptive death of Christ, so central to apostolic theology. [See Torrance’s “The Doctrine of Grace in the Apostolic Fathers,” 1948].

    It has also been noted that the Church Fathers who wrote after 150—Irenaeus and Tertullian—although chronologically more remote from the New Testament than the authors of the first half of the century, understood infinitely better the essence of the gospel. This seems paradoxical, but is explained perfectly by that most important act, the codification of the apostolic tradition in a canon [a “canonical core”], henceforward the superior norm of all tradition.

    The Fathers of the first half of the century wrote at a period when the writings of the New Testament already existed, but without being vested with canonical authority, and so set apart. Therefore they did not have any norm at their disposal, and, on the other hand, and on the other hand, they were already too far distant from the apostolic age to be able to draw directly on the testimony of eye-witnesses. The encounters of Polycarp and Papias with apostolic persons could no longer guarantee a pure transmission of authentic traditions, as is proved by the extant fragments of their writings.

    But after 150 contact with the apostolic age was re-established through the construction of the canon, which discarded all impure and deformed sources of information. Thus it is confirmed that, by subordinating all subsequent tradition to the canon, the Church once and for all saved its apostolic basis. It enabled its members to hear, thanks to this [“canonical core”], continually afresh and throughout all the centuries to come the authentic word of the apostles, a privilege which no oral tradition, passing through Polycarp or Papias, could have assured them (96).

    As I said, “This did not totally incapacitate them. What they had was sufficient to “turn and be healed” (Acts 28:27).” This is why someone like Augustine could, several hundred years later, so much more fully have come to his “doctrine of grace”. The Scriptures were so much more widely distributed; reliance on an untrustworthy “oral tradition” was receding (or had already receded).

    As for a lack of an understanding of the infallibility of the Church, the Council of Jerusalem declares it has it in the Holy Spirit: “For it has seemed good to the Holy Spirit and to us to lay on you no greater burden than these requirements:” (Acts 15:28)”.

    Coming to the same conclusion on the requirement in no way implies a mechanism of infallibility. It might also simply mean they got lucky. I don’t believe that, but how do you get a whole doctrine of “infallibility” out of this one instance of agreement?

  420. John (#419)

    I believe I’ve said it was “a misunderstanding” of the concept of grace as it was used in the New Testament. Yes, I do think it was a serious misunderstanding.

    A serious misunderstanding tantamount to heresy (“moralism”) that was never condemned before the Reformation. This would be a Great Apostasy, indeed.

    I’m working through Torrance’s study on Clement’s understanding of “grace”, but prior to that, there’s a whole lot of information on specifically what the different nuances of the word “grace” were, in Classical era Greek, in the Hellenistic period, and as well, different Hebrew words were translated “grace” both in the LXX and the NT. And there are other writers during those periods. I am checking my facts on this because it is such a broad concept.

    The Catholic Church has no problem with any of this. In fact, if the concept is so broad, why is there a problem with Clement’s (and the others’) understanding? You assume Paul meant only your particular understanding of grace and taught all others were wrong.

    This accounts for the “relapse into a moralism which ignores the notion of grace”, as Cullmann cited Torrance, and I’ve cited both of them in this comment thread:

    I reject this analysis absolutely. He assumes Clement and the others did not regard the writings of the New Testament to be Scripture because the canon had not yet been settled. He also states that the canon “re-established the apostolic age”. Really? Because those men who were directly taught from mouths of the Apostles (the eyewitnesses) themselves (Clement may very well be mentioned in Philippians!) are not reliable witnesses to apostolic doctrine, but later Fathers are in spite of them? That is a very shaky foundation, indeed.

    As I said, “This did not totally incapacitate them. What they had was sufficient to “turn and be healed” (Acts 28:27).” This is why someone like Augustine could, several hundred years later, so much more fully have come to his “doctrine of grace”. The Scriptures were so much more widely distributed; reliance on an untrustworthy “oral tradition” was receding (or had already receded).

    Augustine was certainly brilliant and the West, especially, is indebted to his doctrine of grace, but his is not the only understanding or formulation that is acceptable in the Catholic Church. Notice that neither Augustine in forming this doctrine, nor any Father that I know of, nor any Council declared the understanding of Clement, Ignatius, Papias, Hermas, or Polycarp to be false, anathema, what have you. Could it be that they didn’t have a problem with it? I think it far more likely than putting words into their mouths that they believed they knew better the apostolic doctrine than those who learned from the Apostles and who subsequently taught them. We have no such statements, and Irenaeus and St. Vincent of Lérins explicitly reject such an understanding.

    Coming to the same conclusion on the requirement in no way implies a mechanism of infallibility. It might also simply mean they got lucky. I don’t believe that, but how do you get a whole doctrine of “infallibility” out of this one instance of agreement?

    What are you talking about? They just got lucky? They are invoking the Holy Spirit as agreeing with what they said! There was no miraculous sign from God confirming their judgement, but they sent a letter to the Gentiles declaring that it was so anyway. How were they to know the Holy Spirit agreed with them? It was the judgement of the Council. I know of no surer sign that they thought their judgement infallible than the invocation of the Holy Spirit (which is what the Catholic Church does).

  421. John Bugay (#419),

    “..it might have meant they just got lucky…”

    First of all I am protestant so don’t take what I’m about to say against the catholics. This argument has to be the absolute weakest I’ve yet seen anyone advance for a Christian theologic position yet.

    What does the Sovereign GOD of the Universe who exists always in all places, knowing all things and “holding all things together by HIS powerful Word” have to do with Luck?

    Time + Matter + Chance (Luck) is the unholy trinity of the Naturalists….

  422. John,

    I would echo what Jeremiah said in #421 but also remind you that the Jerusalem council is really the test case of the exact thing we’re talking about. Was there a church in the apostolic age that had the authority and the spiritual gift to infallibly bind doctrine for the whole universal church? Well, yes there was.

  423. Jeremiah (#421)

    John Bugay (#419),

    “..it might have meant they just got lucky…”

    First of all I am protestant so don’t take what I’m about to say against the catholics. This argument has to be the absolute weakest I’ve yet seen anyone advance for a Christian theologic position yet.

    What does the Sovereign GOD of the Universe who exists always in all places, knowing all things and “holding all things together by HIS powerful Word” have to do with Luck?

    Time + Matter + Chance (Luck) is the unholy trinity of the Naturalists….

    I, on the other hand, am a Catholic, but don’t take this as against the Catholics, either :-)

    John Bugay is right that the fact of being right doesn’t prove infallibility. ‘Lucky’ can just mean ‘these two things coincide in history.’ It doesn’t have to imply causelessness, and nor does John believe that.

    There are two points to consider in this, however.

    The first point is that infallibility cannot be demonstrated by an inductive process. Agent A may be right 100 times. That does not prove that he will be right the 101st. In a maths exam I might get the first 9 out of 10 right. The marker is not going to skip checking the 10th, on the grounds that, statistically, it is clear that I am infallible.

    The far deeper problem is that, whereas with matters of mathematics, a competent person can check my answer. When it comes to matters of revelation, an infallible judge is needed.

    We have, to be sure, the Bible, which, we both agree, is inerrant. There is, however, no way to judge between us on many questions which we would want to know the answer to. This is the Protestant dilemma. Without an infallible judge, how does he know he understand the Bible correctly? The fact that men of good faith differ, and, at times, differ pretty fundamentally, shows that the problem is real.

    Trying to decide whether the Church is infallible is coming at the thing from the wrong angle. The question to ask is whether Christ intended an authoritative Church. If He did, I think that many things, including its infallibility as a judge – and knowing whether it has judged in a particular case – must follow. Infallibility is a necessary property of an authoritative – meaning “speaks in the Name of Christ and must be obeyed with divine faith,” not “speaks in the Name of Christ and if I think it speaks in harmony with the Bible then I will obey, otherwise not” – Church.

    jj

  424. JJ (#423)

    I really think that the context of the Council of Jerusalem issuing that sort of statement (“For it has seemed good to the Holy Spirit and to us…”) strongly implies they viewed their decision as infallible and not just right. I’m not trying to say that just because the Council was right that it was infallible. Just clearing up my purpose for citing it in this discussion.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  425. John (#416):

    You wrote:

    I’m not positing anything that comes near to “interpretations” that “yield propositions calling for the assent of faith. I’m just working to understand the history of the times.

    Most of the conclusions you draw from the “history” you’ve been constructing–which, for reasons K Doran, Bryan, and others have set forth in great detail, isn’t very credible even as history–are theological. It is patently clear that your purpose is to undermine Catholic doctrine and uphold your particular brand of Protestantism. So if your protestation is meant to suggest that your ultimate purpose is something other than to identify doctrinal truths calling for the assent of faith as distinct from that of provisional opinion, then you’re simply being disingenuous.

    You wrote:

    What’s really happening is that, in the first 100 years of church history, we see a picture of Christ-worship and an authority structure in the earliest church that is totally turned on its head, not by “subtle issues” as Doran says, but with true violence. Not all of it was intentional, but some of the Rome-ward and Pagan-ward drift was quite intentional.

    There is no need for Protestants to make “arguments from silence” with respect either to “authority” or to what “the church that Christ founded” was really like.The Roman story – and even the Anglican story on “the episcopacy” has changed in recent years [see my comments 407 and 408] to reflect what’s now known about what he calls “the historical phenomenon” of both “Christ devotion” and the earliest church.

    There’s certainly been some change in how Catholic, Anglican, and even Orthodox historical theologians relate the history of the early Church to later developments. And some of that has been for the better. But in no way would they agree that the apostolic understanding of ecclesial authority was “totally turned on its head” during the century after the Apostles, still less by “true violence”! That goes so far beyond the evidence as to amount to mere huffing and puffing. Theology aside, you would not get away with that in a secular department of religious studies. It is not to be taken seriously.

    You wrote:

    I disagree that Jesus “fulfilled” “Jewish tradition”. He “fulfilled” the Law and the Prophets, while at the same time, condemnning “Jewish Traditions”. And I provided some pretty detailed exegesis to show why that’s the case. Which you are simply ignoring, behind your wall of “interpretive paradigm”.

    As a Catholic, I’m happy to agree that Jesus rejected some Jewish traditions. That is clear in the New Testament, and you’ve provided additional evidence for it. But you’ve also been arguing that Jesus rejected all Jewish paradosis (note the singular) that was not recorded in the Jewish scriptures. The evidence simply does not support that thesis, and I’m not the only one to have explained why.

    The reason I decline to delve into the details with you–even though the details are amply provided by some Catholic and Anglican scholars–is that you are relying on your interpetive paradigm to sift the data, when the real question at issue is the prior philosophical question which IP is best suited to yielding propositions calling for the assent of faith as distinct from opinion. You cannot evade that question by continuing to march on the spot and criticize me for refusing to march with you.

    Best,
    Mike

  426. Garrison (#424)

    I really think that the context of the Council of Jerusalem issuing that sort of statement (“For it has seemed good to the Holy Spirit and to us…”) strongly implies they viewed their decision as infallible and not just right. I’m not trying to say that just because the Council was right that it was infallible. Just clearing up my purpose for citing it in this discussion.

    Absolutely agree. This, in my opinion, is all that is needed to show that the early Church believed in its own authoritative infallibility. That is, that the Church believed it had the right and duty, not merely to know whether it was right, but to command all believers to obey it.

    And I fully understand that you yourself did not at all mean that “it was right, therefore it was infallible.” What is not so clear to me is whether those who do not believe in the Church understand this, that induction can never prove or disprove infallibility – although one counter-example could be enough to disprove it (and, therewith, to disprove the whole idea of an authoritative Church – and, with it, again, in my opinion, make it impossible to know whether we have an inerrant Bible).

    So – forgive me! – I was using your comment to go off on a bit of a tangent, but one that I think is of great relevance here. So much of conversations between Catholics and Protestants appear to me to be talking past one another – the Protestant assuming that he has an infallible judge of an inerrant book – that infallible judge being himself – and the Catholic that God has given us an infallible judge, and an inerrant book, though the latter was not, strictly speaking, necessary.

    The issue between Catholics and Protestants cannot be settled by discussing a list of doctrines. It can only be settled by understanding what Jesus intended the Church to be.

    jj

  427. PS – and if – as is clearly the case – the New Testament Church considered itself infallible and authoritative, it seems to me that the burden of proof of the non-continuance of this authority is on those who deny it. It is not enough simply to say, “they were Apostles and knew Jesus and were eye-witnesses.” That would imply that natural human wisdom was enough to guarantee infallibility. That is clearly not the case, as the often-cited dispute between Peter and Paul shows. It is not personal infallibility that is claimed, nor is it in the nature of things that men would not make mistakes or even embrace false doctrine or practice – consider Judas.

    The Church of Acts 15 is acting as the Church – and claims the guarantee not of natural knowledge but of the guidance of the Holy Spirit.

    jj

  428. JJ (#426),

    Quite alright. I just wanted to make sure I hadn’t communicated something other than what I meant.

    I agree with you. It was the example of St. Francis, submitting himself to the Church even while it was corrupt and did not recognize his calling, that converted me. (That he held a great devotion to the adoration of the Blessed Sacrament also endears him to me, even if I am strongly Eastern and primarily Byzantine. :P)

    Did you convert from a Reformed denomination?

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  429. Garrison (#428)

    Did you convert from a Reformed denomination?

    Yes – indeed, we moved to the small town we now live in in order to start a Reformed church here. Succeeded, too! Conversion story, such as it is, here – or I can send you a PDF if you go to my web site and e-mail me.

    jj

  430. Michael Liccione (#425): your concept of “some clearly identifiable authority whose interpretation of the relevant data is divinely protected from error under certain conditions” does not come from Scripture, and in striving to provide some kind of certainty like this, you, humanly, work to outdo the Old Testament God and the God of the prophets.

    Look at a couple of Old Testament examples of how God “identifies the formal, proximate object of faith in four different instances.

    In his first sermon at Pentecost, Peter cites Joel 28:32:

    “‘In the last days, God says,
    I will pour out my Spirit on all people.

    And everyone who calls
    on the name of the Lord will be saved.

    This is part of a longer sermon from Joel, who first prophesies about “the day of the Lord”, saying “The Lord thunders at the head of his army; his forces are beyond number, and mighty is the army that obeys his command. The day of the Lord is great; it is dreadful. Who can endure it?”

    The earlier part of this prophecy is filled with darkness and gloom and blackness; a mighty arming coming; before them fire devours; behind them a flame blazes; nothing escapes them.

    In the midst of this, the prophet offers this opportunity that the Lord may relent:

    “Even now,” declares the Lord,
    “return to me with all your heart,
    with fasting and weeping and mourning.”
    Rend your heart
    and not your garments.
    Return to the Lord your God,
    for he is gracious and compassionate,
    slow to anger and abounding in love,
    and he relents from sending calamity.
    Who knows? He may turn and relent
    and leave behind a blessing—

    Dealing with The LORD in the Old Testament was never a matter of certainty – even a recognized prophet here could not , while “declaring the word of the LORD”, he did not offer a certainty on the “formal proximate object of faith” that was right in front of his audience. He said “do what’s right, and who knows? The Lord may relent.

    The Old Testament is full of other incidents, where not even the prophets who write the Scriptures offer the correct interpretation. They must leave “the formal proximate object of faith” in the hands of the Lord, and say they simply don’t know.

    In the book of Jonah, too, the prophet Jonah promises destruction for the land of Nineveh. The word of the Lord came to Jonah son of Amittai: “Go to the great city of Nineveh and preach against it, because its wickedness has come up before me. … Jonah began by going a day’s journey into the city, proclaiming, “Forty more days and Nineveh will be overthrown.”

    The king of Nineveh, greatly distressed that a prophet of the Lord would say this, “rose from his throne, took off his royal robes, covered himself with sackcloth and sat down in the dust”. And he said:

    Let everyone call urgently on God. Let them give up their evil ways and their violence. Who knows? God may yet relent and with compassion turn from his fierce anger so that we will not perish.”

    The passage continues, “When God saw what they did and how they turned from their evil ways, he relented and did not bring on them the destruction he had threatened.”

    Similarly Mordecai speaking to Esther: “Do not think that because you are in the king’s house you alone of all the Jews will escape. For if you remain silent at this time, relief and deliverance for the Jews will arise from another place, but you and your father’s family will perish. And who knows but that you have come to your royal position for such a time as this?”

    Even King David, when the child of Bathsheba was going to die (a prophecy he received from the lips of the prophet Nathan), in spite of this prophecy, proposed for belief by the lips of the prophet, even after the Lord had struck the child with illness, “and he became ill”, “David pleaded with God for the child. He fasted and spent the nights lying in sackcloth on the ground. The elders of his household stood beside him to get him up from the ground, but he refused, and he would not eat any food with them”.

    Then the child dies. Note what happened next:

    His attendants asked him, “Why are you acting this way? While the child was alive, you fasted and wept, but now that the child is dead, you get up and eat!”

    He answered, “While the child was still alive, I fasted and wept. I thought, ‘Who knows? The Lord may be gracious to me and let the child live.’ But now that he is dead, why should I go on fasting? Can I bring him back again? I will go to him, but he will not return to me.”

    Even when specific prophecies came up in the Old Testament, with the LORD declaring that he would do “A”, there was no “infallible interpretation” of these prophesies.

    It is said, “a book cannot guide you”. But when we deal with the word of the Lord, we are dealing directly with the Lord – a Lord who has promised destruction, and then who did or who didn’t keep that promise, according to the counsel of his own will.

    God, whose character is immutable, does not feel bound by the human need to have a mouthpiece – any mouthpiece – Old Testament Prophets or New Testament church – that is “divinely protected from error”. That just not how God rolls.

    Even C.S. Lewis noted, “Aslan is not a tame lion”.

    For you Roman Catholics who want to hide behind “some clearly identifiable authority whose interpretation of the relevant data is divinely protected from error under certain conditions”, well, you may just be setting yourself up for a big surprise.

  431. John Bugay (#430),

    your concept of “some clearly identifiable authority whose interpretation of the relevant data is divinely protected from error under certain conditions” does not come from Scripture, and in striving to provide some kind of certainty like this, you, humanly, work to outdo the Old Testament God and the God of the prophets.

    As we saw in Acts 15 with the decision of the Council of Jerusalem, this statement is false. What I get from your list of OT citations is that we cannot know anything or even trust God. Congratulations. Have fun with that. For my part, I’ll trust God fulfills His Word.

    It is said, “a book cannot guide you”. But when we deal with the word of the Lord, we are dealing directly with the Lord – a Lord who has promised destruction, and then who did or who didn’t keep that promise, according to the counsel of his own will.

    No Catholic has ever made such a statement. We would amend it to say: “the Book was not given alone as a guide”. Your interpretation makes God to be a capricious tyrant whose nature depends purely on his whims. God often did or did not fulfill His prophecies according to the repentance of those to whom the destruction was promised. But then again, the Church does not try to read the mind of God, so why He chose to do or not to do something is beyond us to determine without Him telling us.

    God, whose character is immutable, does not feel bound by the human need to have a mouthpiece – any mouthpiece – Old Testament Prophets or New Testament church – that is “divinely protected from error”. That just not how God rolls.

    Yet even more strawmen. The Church also does not claim that God is bound to provide a mouthpiece protected from error, but he did. Based on your interpretation of God’s fulfillment of prophecy or lack thereof, how can you say you have any confidence that that’s “just not how God rolls”? You misunderstand what infallibility means. It is the promise that the Church by apostolic succession cannot teach falsely. It does not mean the Church can divine the will of God in all things, so uncertainty on what God will do does not mean infallibility is false. There’s a reason divination is forbidden us; it is an attempt to control God through knowledge.

    For you Roman Catholics who want to hide behind “some clearly identifiable authority whose interpretation of the relevant data is divinely protected from error under certain conditions”, well, you may just be setting yourself up for a big surprise.

    As may you when you discover you have traded the religion of God for the traditions of men. See? It’s just as easy for me to do this as for you, but just because we assert it, it doesn’t mean it’s true. As I said before, you may very well believe it, as I certainly do, but it contributes nothing to the discussion, so let’s cease with it.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  432. John (#430):

    You’re still missing the point. As I’ve often said before, both on this site and elsewhere, it belongs to the very concept of an interpretive paradigm that no IP can be secured simply on the basis of that which is to be interpreted. An IP is something one brings to what’s interpreted, rather than something one derives from it. So when you show that one cannot establish the Catholic IP on the basis of Scripture, that is not a criticism. It is as true of the Catholic IP as of any other. Including, of course, your own.

    There is nothing in Scripture which can demonstrate, as a matter of rational necessity, that Scripture alone suffices to interpret Scripture. Because such a thing is in fact impossible, nobody does it–not even you. Otherwise there would be no need for historical, linguistic, and other studies as aids to exegesis. You strive to conduct and use such means, and rightly so. It’s necessary, albeit not sufficient, for identifying those doctrines which express divine revelation, and for understanding them to the extent that is given to us. The question is not whether we are to use extra-scriptural means for studying Scripture, but which ensemble of means are best suited for carrying out the ultimate purpose of studying Scripture.

    Nonetheless, I find it noteworthy that all your counter-examples to the Catholic IP are drawn from the Old Testament. That is just a thoroughly question-begging way of applying your own IP, rather than an apposite attempt to engage the Catholic IP. Yet, as I indicated a few years ago in my lengthy exchange with Prof. R. F. White, I agree that no OT authorities interpreted Scripture infallibly. The only infallibility exercised in the Old Testament was that secured by virtue of divine inspiration to write the Scriptures themselves. That’s because divine revelation was not yet complete; it unfolded gradually, so that it was easy even for the most pious Jews to misinterpret the ultimate meaning of their Scriptures, which was their fulfillment in Jesus Christ. And that’s why most Jewish scholars in Jesus’ day didn’t seem him as that fulfillment. Nobody could interpret the deposit of faith infallibly, even in principle, until it was given in its entirety through the “Christ-event.”

    That said, if there is still no living, visible authority on earth that Christ authorized to interpret said deposit infallibly in his name, then the question what belongs in the Bible, and how to interpret it, can only be answered with provisional opinions. If you’re content with that result, then all I can say is what I said in my article: your brand of conservative Protestantism is just “liberal Protestantism waiting to happen all over again.” Thus, when you say things like “….when we deal with the word of the Lord, we are dealing directly with the Lord,” that God’s “character” is “immutable,” and that “God rolls” as you describe, you are in no position to explain why such assertions represent anything more than one set of opinions among the many others that circulate. I studied many of those others in college, and of course they’ve proliferated since.

    That of course does not prove by itself that the Catholic IP is rationally preferable. But as I have often argued on philosophical grounds, the Catholic IP does at least supply a principled distinction between interpretations that represent divine revelation, which are thus inerrant, and merely human interpretive opinions, which might be wrong. And that distinction itself supplies a good reason to accept the Catholic IP. Your IP supplies no such distinction. And until you engage that issue on the necessary level, you’ll keep on missing the point.

    Best,
    Mike

  433. Michael Liccione (#432)

    You’re still missing the point. As I’ve often said before, both on this site and elsewhere, it belongs to the very concept of an interpretive paradigm that no IP can be secured simply on the basis of that which is to be interpreted.

    And you are holding this concept above the Scriptures themselves. It is just special pleading. Scripture doesn’t say what you need it to say, so you impose a lens that gives you (and Rome) the answer that’s required. You are looking for (and Rome is illicitly providing) a kind of certainty that God does not offer.

    An IP is something one brings to what’s interpreted, rather than something one derives from it.

    The paradigm that I hold is that God is powerful enough to have created human beings in such a way that he can communicate what he needs and intends to communicate directly through His word.

    There is nothing in Scripture which can demonstrate, as a matter of rational necessity, that Scripture alone suffices to interpret Scripture.

    There is nothing in Scripture that says that anything else is up to the task of “interpreting Scripture”. Scripture, in fact, portrays itself as “the interpretation” of the “acts”, so to speak, of God in history.

    The character of God in the Old Testament (or in the New) gives no hint that He is insufficient in this way. Nor does the Scripture relate anywhere that God’s word is lacking in any property (including the ability to be sufficient in itself). Again, as I said above, God speaks and the world comes into existence. That is how God’s word works. For you to be claiming what you are claiming is to deny God the power that he has – in this case, the power to communicate.

    Because such a thing is in fact impossible, nobody does it–not even you. Otherwise there would be no need for historical, linguistic, and other studies as aids to exegesis. You strive to conduct and use such means, and rightly so. It’s necessary, albeit not sufficient, for identifying those doctrines which express divine revelation, and for understanding them to the extent that is given to us. The question is not whether we are to use extra-scriptural means for studying Scripture, but which ensemble of means are best suited for carrying out the ultimate purpose of studying Scripture.

    The difference is “the due use of ordinary means”, or the pleading of some kind of special supernaturalism that is imposed that “always makes Roman doctrine correct, even when we perceive some kind of inconsistency”. If you are genuinely seeking the Lord, it is better to trust your own mind, — and like-minded teachers (see WCF 31, and teachers who ministerially settle controversies), than the infallible Roman paradigm which denies God’s ability to communicate with His people.

    And here’s a challenge for you: when is the first time in history that some kind of need for an “interpretive paradigm” occurred? When did Christians (of any kind) first decide that they could not trust their eyes or their own reason to understand what God was saying? Somewhere between Loyola and his Spiritual Exercises, and Newman. Bossuet (“semper eadem”) was not aware of any such thing.

    Nonetheless, I find it noteworthy that all your counter-examples to the Catholic IP are drawn from the Old Testament. That is just a thoroughly question-begging way of applying your own IP, rather than an apposite attempt to engage the Catholic IP.

    No, using the OT is a way to establish both the character of God and how He works. There is plenty more from the NT. The “Catholic IP” is rigged after-the-fact. And the way to see this is to work to understand church history from the beginning – “what they knew, and when they knew it”.

    Consider Luke 1:

    Many have undertaken to draw up an account of the things that have been fulfilled [acts of God in history] among us, just as they were handed down to us by those who from the first were eyewitnesses [of the acts of God in history] and servants of the word. With this in mind, since I myself have carefully investigated everything from the beginning, I too decided to write an orderly account for you, most excellent Theophilus, so that you may know the certainty of the things you have been taught [i.e., the acts of God in history, and their significance].

    Consider Peter in Acts 2:

    God has raised this Jesus to life, and we are all witnesses of it. Exalted to the right hand of God, he has received from the Father the promised Holy Spirit and has poured out what you now see and hear.

    Consider Paul’s response to “leadership” (and this is one of his earliest letters, c. 50 A.D – if anyone had a first-hand view of “the Church that Christ Founded™, it would be Paul). Consider Paul’s “obedience of faith” in these two instances:

    As for those who were held in high esteem—whatever they were makes no difference to me; God does not show favoritism—they added nothing to my message. On the contrary, they recognized that I had been entrusted with the task of preaching the gospel to the uncircumcised,just as Peter had been to the circumcised….

    But when Cephas came to Antioch, I opposed him to his face, because he stood condemned….

    Please don’t bring up the old canard about Peter not being “infallible” in matters not of the faith. Note the attitude toward any supposed “authority”. This is “Peter” the supposed “rock”, with “divine authority”.

    I could go on and on with this sort of thing.

    Yet, as I indicated a few years ago in my lengthy exchange with Prof. R. F. White, I agree that no OT authorities interpreted Scripture infallibly. The only infallibility exercised in the Old Testament was that secured by virtue of divine inspiration to write the Scriptures themselves. That’s because divine revelation was not yet complete; it unfolded gradually, so that it was easy even for the most pious Jews to misinterpret the ultimate meaning of their Scriptures, which was their fulfillment in Jesus Christ.

    This again is special pleading. Note Paul’s response to Peter. Paul was in possession of “complete” revelation.

    And that’s why most Jewish scholars in Jesus’ day didn’t seem him as that fulfillment. Nobody could interpret the deposit of faith infallibly, even in principle, until it was given in its entirety through the “Christ-event.”

    This again is special pleading. Note Paul’s response to Peter. Paul was in possession of “complete” revelation.

    That said, if there is still no living, visible authority on earth that Christ authorized to interpret said deposit infallibly in his name, then the question what belongs in the Bible, and how to interpret it, can only be answered with provisional opinions.

    The Jews had only “provisional opinions”, and yet, Jesus as he lived and breathed had no qualms about holding them accountable for something more definite: “not the smallest letter, not the least stroke of a pen, will by any means disappear from the Law until everything is accomplished. Therefore anyone who sets aside one of the least of these commands and teaches others accordingly will be called least in the kingdom of heaven”.

    If you’re content with that result, then all I can say is what I said in my article: your brand of conservative Protestantism is just “liberal Protestantism waiting to happen all over again.”

    This is just your opinion, and it in no way reflects the direction that conservative Protestant biblical scholarship is headed. The Bible has, over the last 200 years, undergone a far more strenuous rectal exam than anything that I’ve been saying about Roman Catholicism here; and yet, the work that conservative scholars is producing is shedding an incredible amount of light on that world and those times. Such things as Hurtado’s “Lord Jesus Christ” and Kruger’s “Canon Revisited” are shedding new light on the earliest church – the real, historical “church that Christ founded” – their beliefs and practices, the courses of their lives, the world they lived in. This is the most incredible time to be alive – seeing the first century world being brought to life.

    Some of the folks here have glommed onto the NPP and N.T. Wright. That’s foolish. Here is what Wright says about Roman Catholicism:

    In particular, Trent gave the wrong answer, at a deep level, to the nature/grace question, which is what’s at the root of the Marian dogmas and devotions which, despite contrary claims, are in my view neither sacramental, transformational, communal nor eschatological. Nor biblical.

    Meanwhile, Carson, O’Brien, and Siefrid, with their “Justification and Variegated Nomism” series, used Sanders’s method to go far beyond what he tried to do, and in doing so, they put him into perspective. Meanwhile, Dunn and Wright have both made key concessions (see Dunn’s comments in the “Justification: Five Views” volume.

    Thus, when you say things like “….when we deal with the word of the Lord, we are dealing directly with the Lord,” that God’s “character” is “immutable,” and that “God rolls” as you describe, you are in no position to explain why such assertions represent anything more than one set of opinions among the many others that circulate. I studied many of those others in college, and of course they’ve proliferated since.

    What you are saying here is that God does not, cannot, reveal himself adequately in Scripture. Lots of people have lots of views. But there is a substantially correct view, and those who prayerfully seek the face of the Lord in the Scriptures are promised that they will find Him.

  434. John (#430)
    As Garrison said in #431:

    What I get from your list of OT citations is that we cannot know anything or even trust God.

    I wonder if you haven’t got your point a little obscured here. If I understand you, just because God says it, you can’t count on it. He might say in the Bible that “whosever believes will be saved” – but He might change His mind later.

    I don’t think that’s what you meant. But I don’t see how the fact that God’s threats are conditional on non-repentance means that there cannot be an infallible interpreter of His Word. If that were true, then I don’t see how the Bible-only man can be sure what it means, either.

    I am told – don’t know if it is so – that Islam is so voluntaristic – so absolute about the fact that God wills what He wills – that He can not even be held to what He says in the Qur’an. It sounds a lot like what you are saying in #430. I don’t see that it depends on whether or not there is an infallible interpreter. Whether there is or not, according to the way I read your post, whatever God says might not actually be what He will do.

    I am sure you don’t mean quite that – but if you did, then I don’t see how having the Bible is any help to knowing His will, interpreter or not.

    jj

  435. John (@433),

    The flailing away and the incoherence of your responses make it difficult to respond to you, as has been amply demonstrated. Never the less, I shall try to penetrate:

    You write, “No, using the OT is a way to establish both the character of God and how He works. There is plenty more from the NT.”
    ***But you don’t need to go to the OT for this (assuming by God, you mean God the Father, which is what Christ always means). Christ is a Divine Person and shares a Divine nature with God the Father, which means he also shares a Divine will. What you desire to know about the Father, you can learn through the Son. And if God is immutable . . . Yours is a disastrous hermeneutic, I think. Why would you ever turn to the OT to find something out about God. The OT, as is demonstrated by the NT over and over, is always pointing to the revelation of Christ. So why not go to the source? I shouldn’t have to tell a Protestant to always go back to Christ, but here we are.

    “And here’s a challenge for you: when is the first time in history that some kind of need for an “interpretive paradigm” occurred? When did Christians (of any kind) first decide that they could not trust their eyes or their own reason to understand what God was saying?”
    ***You can’t be serious here. Christ is THE interpretive paradigm throughout the New Testament. This admittedly only puts us back one step–i.e., an interpretation of Christ–but I’ve answered your point above. If you’re not happy with that, then how about Acts 8.26-40:
    “And the Spirit said to Philip, “Go over and join this chariot.” 30 So Philip ran to him and heard him reading Isaiah the prophet and asked, “Do you understand what you are reading?” 31 And he said, “How can I, unless someone guides me?”

    Doesn’t Scripture here answer your VERY question? And hasn’t Mike kept going back to the tenor of the answer of the Ethiopian–that we need an IP– . . . over and over and over. Good lord.

    “When did Christians (of any kind) first decide that they could not trust their eyes or their own reason to understand what God was saying?”
    ***How about the road to Emmaus? Wouldn’t this answer your very question? And, GASP, it was only after the breaking of bread (certainly NOT a reference to the Lord’s Supper or communion/Eucharist) that they realized Who was there on the road. Maybe Peter in Acts 10.13-28 helps make your point here? Peter certainly wasn’t helped by turning to the OT and reading it in a straightforward manner. Who knew that clean and unclean foods were really about Jews and Gentiles. Now THAT’S an interpretive paradigm–and also Christological.

    By the way, I’m not Catholic and find much of their readings of Scripture and historical claims suspect. But I find your repeated dodges of key questions/problems presented to you tiresome. I really don’t think you have any answers to the problems Mike presents to you.

  436. John (#433),

    Your diatribe is one large strawman of what Rome actually believes. It has been explained to you exactly what Rome means when she says the Church is infallible and backs it up by citing the Council of Jerusalem, whose leaders assumed they had the authority to bind all the faithful infallibly. I myself have pointed out what Catholics do and do not believe about the power of God: that He is not bound to give us an infallible Church, but He has. This argument is not about certainty and never has been. It is about authority. If Christ instituted a Church on Peter himself and his confession, promising that the gates of Hell would never prevail against her, and gave the power of binding and loosing to Peter first(Matthew 16:18) and the rest of the Apostles later (Matthew 18:18), and that Church subsequently invoked the Holy Spirit in setting forth her decision (Acts 15:28) and considered that ruling binding, then the case is settled. Protestants deny any such authority even to their own organizations and rightly so, lest they be hypocritical. However, in doing so, they have departed from what the Church has understood herself to be from the beginning. You yourself admit the radical individualism and antinomianism present in the very core of Protestantism! This is dangerous and lawless.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  437. John Thayer Jensen#434:

    Much of how that works is explained in this article by Richard Pratt.

    John Frame says of this article, “Pratt distinguishes (1) prophecies qualified by conditions, (2) prophecies qualified by assurances, and (3) predictions without qualifications, and he analyzes each group most helpfully”.

  438. I mentioned, just above, that Dunn and the NPP were no friend to Roman Catholicism. This is because its “method” is consonant with the kind of exploration I am making into “earliest Christianity”, while it is uncovering things that are harmful to what Roman Catholicism says about itself and its “divine origins”.

    And I pointed to James Dunn’s selection in the Bielby and Eddy work “Five Views on Justification”. Here is what Dunn says (for example):

    As the Maccabean rebelion in effect defined “Judaism” as “not-Hellenism,” so Ignatius in effect defined “Christianity” as “not-Judaism”. This is the start of the phenomenon of the Christian anti-Judaism and later of Christian anti-Semitism, which has so besmirched the history of Christian Europe. It was not simply that “supercessionism,” the belief that Christianity had superceded Judaism, had taken over Israei’s status as “the people of God,” and had drained all the substance leaving “Judaism” only the husk. It was more that the continuing existence of Judaism was regarded as in effect an anomaly and a threat to Christianity (pgs 178-179).

    Rome, of course, referred to this as “religious anti-Judaism”, which it completely distinguished in every way from the “racial anti-Semitism” of Nazi Germany.

    This is such a self-serving distinction that it is incredible that people take it seriously, but they do.

    You Roman Catholics want to say that because Ignatius spoke deferentially to Rome (the capital city of the empire), that somehow this meant that the Roman church of the day held some kind of primacy. Yet on the other hand, Ignatius is regarded as a key source of “anti-Judaism”, well, that doesn’t comport well with the IP, so we may safely disregard that factoid.

    Dunn goes on to say that “a case can certainly be made that Sanders overreacted in his polemical response to the traditional Christian portrayal of rabbinic Judaism”. In fact, such a case was made by (as I mentioned) Carson, O’Brien, and Siefrid in their “Justification and Variegated Nomism”. What’s interesting is that Carson, O’Brien and Siefrid did not rely on some kind of “interpretive paradigm” to overturn what Sanders was saying. They simply did a better job using the same method that Sanders used.

    And so too with the work of Michael Kruger. His intention is not specifically to address Roman Catholicism (though he does this). He is rather interacting with “critical scholars” who hold to some form of remnant of “the Bauer thesis”. However, Kruger doesn’t defeat the critical scholars by claiming some sort of “foul” against an “interpretive paradigm”. Kruger digs deeper and marshalls more facts and puts together a better understanding of what was really going on than did Bauer (and his modern day followers).

    True, he points to “divine origins” — but he clearly explains why he does so (and in what context — this is to suggest that there is epistemological justification for believers to accept the 27-book canon — he does not in any way suggest he is offering a “proof” that all Critical scholars should accept his version.)

    Beyond this, though, he is incredibly thorough at investigating the things that all critical scholars would investigate — apostolic origins, the methods of letter-writing, biography-writing, distribution, book production, etc — all factual details that have deep roots in secular/scientific as well as biblical disciplines — and he out-does even at a critical level what the “critical scholars” do in analyzing the “messiness” of canon development.

    In other words, he only brings “interpretive paradigm” in after he has done the best job he can do at discussing the work critically.

    Those of you, however, who won’t discuss factual details because they don’t comport with your “interpretive paradigm” are guilty of avoiding the heavy-detail work that is entailed in this type of study. You want to claim “infallibility” based on some kind of “divine institution” alone.

    This is especially disingenous when “divine institution” used to be a claim based on historical facts. Now that we know the history a little better, and history not only shows “divine institution” to be very much a stretch, but it shows such a thing to be non-existent.

    This is where, at least, scholars like Raymond Brown and John Meier and Francis Sullivan and Robert Eno are all far more honest in their methodologies than you give them credit for.

  439. John Bugay wrote: And you are holding this concept above the Scriptures themselves. It is just special pleading. Scripture doesn’t say what you need it to say, so you impose a lens that gives you (and Rome) the answer that’s required. You are looking for (and Rome is illicitly providing) a kind of certainty that God does not offer.

    Actually, the definition of the scriptures came from the Church. Two Church councils can be referenced for the fact that the canon came from the Church, which had access to all kinds of items purporting to be scripture. The Holy Spirit, as guaranteed by God the Son, Jesus Himself, led the Church to that conclusion. The Scripture came from the Church, not the Church from Scripture. Everyone who believes that the Church came from Scripture can verify what happens merely by opening the Yellow Pages to Church and reading down the major subheadings. Confusion. Chaos. Division.

    Of note for Peter and Paul, when Paul could not stop the effort to Judaize (and circumcise) the non-Jewish Christians, he turned the issue over to the Church, to the pillars as he named Peter, James and John, in Jerusalem. Peter spoke first, essentially restating the revelation he had been given prior to the visit to Cornelius. The Mosaic Law was not mandatory. When the Jerusalem Council was completed, this promulgation went out, not merely to Jerusalem or to the Churches Paul had planted, it went out to all the Churches. It is the position of the universal Church. The Church, under Peter’s direction, made the decision and it was binding on all the Churches.

    I did not see that as an evangelical. My peers here who were Reformed or Presbyterian, did not see that kind of authority where they came from.

    We, my peers and me, now see it with the RCC, with Peter’s successor.

    We see more, such as “whose sins you forgive, they are forgiven them.” I never saw that in evangelicalism which effectively denied that brilliantly important bit of scripture. However the Church Jesus founded sees “whose sins you forgive, they are forgiven them” as part of its mandate. How does that work where you are at?

    Where is that direction Jesus gives to the Church, as written in scripture, upheld? I found it upheld in Catholicism, and nowhere else.

    Cordially,

    dt

  440. Gentlemen,

    Unfortunately I cannot participate in this conversation at the present, but since some of the participants have only recently begun to comment here, I think it needs to be said that we have a set of rules for comments, and I’ve noticed that some of the comments are not adhering to those rules. Among those rules are the following:

    This is to be a forum wherein unity is pursued in the context of humility, charity, respect and prayer. For that reason, ad hominems are not allowed. That means that you may not criticize or insult or belittle or judge or mock any person, his character, intelligence, education, background, or motivations. Attacking persons is fallacious and uncharitable and will not be permitted here.

    For example, calling any participants in this discussion dishonest or implying that anyone here is being disingenuous would be an ad hominem, and would be a violation of our rules. If I see any further violations, I will delete the comment with no explanation to the comment author. Fruitful and charitable ecumenical dialogue requires a self-discipline that avoids ad hominems, and focuses instead only on the positions or claims being made.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  441. Garrison (#435):

    Your diatribe is one large strawman of what Rome actually believes. It has been explained to you exactly what Rome means when she says the Church is infallible and backs it up by citing the Council of Jerusalem, whose leaders assumed they had the authority to bind all the faithful infallibly. I myself have pointed out what Catholics do and do not believe about the power of God: that He is not bound to give us an infallible Church, but He has. This argument is not about certainty and never has been. It is about authority.

    You maybe “explained exactly” what Rome means, but Michael Liccione has, in another place, to which he has directed my attention, also “explained exactly” what Rome means, and he seems to focus on the element of “certainty”. At least, that’s how I take his meaning, when he says, he is looking for “a methodology is [sufficient] for reliably identifying the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”.

    Now, if you want to say that he’s actually set up a straw man for what Rome actually believes, be my guest. But he is not making the case that “Rome authoritatively identifies the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”. He is looking for “certainty”; Protestants can’t seem to find it, so their IP isn’t good enough.

  442. John B.,

    You and Michael Liccione seem to have reached an impasse, and I have been trying to figure out why. I think that it could be that, while the two of you appear to be in agreement on his central point; i.e., that the Protestant IP yields only interpretive opinions, not conclusions for which the assent of faith is warranted, you are not agreed on the significance of this point.

    Thus, Mike points out that (paraphrasing): without an interpretive authority that is protected from teaching error when definitively stating the locus and meaning of divine revelation, every definitive statement about the (complete) locus and (synthetic) meaning of divine revelation would be only an interpretive opinion. (I have offered a brief explanation of why I think that Mike is right about this; see footnote #1 of this post).

    You do not dispute the point, but proceed to offer a bevy of interpretive opinions (often by proxy) about revealed matters, e.g., the nature of the Church, the nature of God. That is all very interesting, but it simply does not address the criticism, namely, that the doctrinal opinions of men do not warrant the assent of faith.

    On occasion, however, you say something like this:

    You are looking for (and Rome is illicitly providing) a kind of certainty that God does not offer.

    But such boldness (to speak euphemistically) in setting yourself up as the mouthpiece of God can only be received as incongruous with your interpretive modus operandi, which reduces your doctrinal conclusions to your own interpretive opinions, including a select sub-set of the opinions of a select group of scholars.

    But the reason that you are inclined, on occasion, to speak in that way is simple: The topic at hand is divine revelation, and to treat that revelation, as to its locus and meaning, as though it were a matter of mere human opinion would be at least as incongruous as an unauthorized, fallible interpreter setting himself up as the oracle of God to the Church. But that is precisely what you, the unauthorized, fallible interpreter, have to do in order to propound your interpretive opinions as something that calls for the assent of faith (“thus saith the Lord”), the latter being precisely the response that we know we should have to the doctrinal content of the word of God. Unfortunately, the Protestant IP does not allow for that response, and to see the problem inherent in the Protestant IP, all one needs to suppose is that a divine revelation has been given.

    All of the critical spade-work in the world cannot circumvent that dilemma for your IP, which is why your response to Mike is not apposite. I have appreciated your discussion with Bryan and K Doran (et al) about the interpretation of some of the sources. Nothing that Mike is saying precludes such discussions, but his point stands or falls independently of them.

    Sacred Scripture is sufficient for exactly those purposes for which it was given (2 Timothy 3:15-17). So is Tradition (2 Thessalonians 2:15). So is the Magisterium (Matthew 16:19). But if you set one or two against the other, then you lose all three, as regards the obedience of faith. That is the Catholic interpretive paradigm. It can be and has been supported by historical-grammatical interpretation of Scripture, historical studies of the ancient Church, and theological or philosophical arguments, as has the Protestant IP. But a key difference between the Catholic IP and the Protestant IP, on matters of doctrine, is that the former makes room for those who would believe, while the latter can accommodate only interpretive opinions.

    It seems that we are in agreement on that point. And I hope that the significance of the point can be duly appreciated, and that we can come to an agreement on this as well.

    Andrew

  443. Gentlemen:

    In #416, John Bugay wrote:

    I’m not positing anything that comes near to “interpretations” that “yield propositions calling for the assent of faith. I’m just working to understand the history of the times.

    In my #425, I quoted that and replied:

    It is patently clear that your purpose is to undermine Catholic doctrine and uphold your particular brand of Protestantism. So if your protestation is meant to suggest that your ultimate purpose is something other than to identify doctrinal truths calling for the assent of faith as distinct from that of provisional opinion, then you’re simply being disingenuous.

    Thanks to the subsequent discussion, and especially to Andrew P’s #442, I now see that the antecedent of my conditional statement just above is false, and with it the consequent. John’s purpose is not to “identify doctrinal truths calling for the assent of faith as distinct from that of provisional opinion,” but simply to argue that the historical data show that the Catholic doctrine of ecclesial authority is false. As to the wider question which doctrines call for the assent of faith, as distinct from that of opinion, he does not argue that his use of scholarship successfully identifies such doctrines. He just takes for granted that the Protestant canon is divinely inspired even though, on his showing, interpretations thereof can themselves qualify only as provisional opinions.

    Now K Doran, Bryan, and others have already made clear in detail why one cannot infer, from such facts as John presents, that Catholicism is false. There are just too many leaps beyond evidence and logic. It just isn’t empirically plausible to say that finally, after all these centuries, scholars have dug up enough solid information about the early Church to actually prove that the Catholic (or, for that matter, the Orthodox) doctrine of ecclesial authority is false. If the eminent Catholic scholars John cites thought so, they would have doffed their priestly collars and ceased to profess Catholicism–which none of them have done. But that is itself a secondary problem.

    A more important problem is that John sees no need to set his own and others’ studies to the task that’s necessary if the study of Scripture is to repay the effort, namely, that of distinguishing propositions expressing divine revelation itself from those expressing provisional human opinions. Andrew P explains why that is such a problem:

    …Mike points out that (paraphrasing): without an interpretive authority that is protected from teaching error when definitively stating the locus and meaning of divine revelation, every definitive statement about the (complete) locus and (synthetic) meaning of divine revelation would be only an interpretive opinion. (I have offered a brief explanation of why I think that Mike is right about this…

    You do not dispute the point, but proceed to offer a bevy of interpretive opinions (often by proxy) about revealed matters, e.g., the nature of the Church, the nature of God. That is all very interesting, but it simply does not address the criticism, namely, that the doctrinal opinions of men do not warrant the assent of faith.

    On occasion, however, you say something like this:

    “You are looking for (and Rome is illicitly providing) a kind
    of certainty that God does not offer.”

    But such boldness (to speak euphemistically) in setting yourself up as the mouthpiece of God can only be received as incongruous with your interpretive ‘modus operandi, which reduces your doctrinal conclusions to your own interpretive opinions, including a select sub-set of the opinions of a select group of scholars.

    And that shows what the ultimate problem is for John: the cognitive dissonance between, on the one hand, the extreme confidence with which he gives his historical and theological opinions and, on the other, his denial that anyone can ever be preserved from error about such things.

    Of course, that would not be a problem if the subject matter were that of a purely human discipline, such as mathematics or natural science, in which we can attain knowledge of facts without any assurance of infallibility. But the subject matter of divine revelation, which is supernatural, is not like that. On that subject, our knowledge must ultimately be based on divine authority, not human reason, and divine authority must be infallible. So if there’s no divinely commissioned, infallible human teaching authority, and every human authority could always be wrong about which propositions express divine revelation–e.g., the proposition that “The Bible is the Word of God”—then we have not identified divine revelation as such, and thus have not received divine revelation at all. It is not that we thereby fail to attain an degree of psychological certitude that would in any case be unrealistic; people being what they are, doubts will always surface here and there. It is simply a matter of being able to identify the subject matter in the first place, i.e., what’s fit to be an object for the assent of faith. John has not managed to do that, because his IP cannot do that. As Newman said: “No revelation is given, unless there be some authority to decide what it is that has been given.”

    Best,
    Mike

  444. John (#441),

    You maybe “explained exactly” what Rome means, but Michael Liccione has, in another place, to which he has directed my attention, also “explained exactly” what Rome means, and he seems to focus on the element of “certainty”. At least, that’s how I take his meaning, when he says, he is looking for “a methodology is [sufficient] for reliably identifying the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”.

    Now, if you want to say that he’s actually set up a straw man for what Rome actually believes, be my guest. But he is not making the case that “Rome authoritatively identifies the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”. He is looking for “certainty”; Protestants can’t seem to find it, so their IP isn’t good enough.

    Yes, there is greater epistemic certainty in the Catholic paradigm, but as JJ pointed out, that’s not actually an argument that the Church is, in fact, infallible, but a benefit of said paradigm. This is why I think it better to argue on the basis that Christ intended to found an infallible Church through the attestation of Scripture and the understanding of the Church throughout the ages that she has the power to rule decisively and authoritatively on matters pertaining to all the faithful, that she can declare for all of them what constitutes a break from communion with the Church. Michael’s argument is good to defend the Church’s paradigm from her detractors, but it is not the basis of that paradigm.

    The descendants of the Reformation, however, have no such power (to bind and loose) and cannot claim it because they have rejected that anyone has the authority to do so. Because they have done all this, they show themselves not to be the true heirs of the apostolic doctrine as they fundamentally reject the mechanism by which the Church establishes what is and is not of the Faith. You have admitted as much here: “If you are genuinely seeking the Lord, it is better to trust your own mind, — and like-minded teachers (see WCF 31, and teachers who ministerially settle controversies), than the infallible Roman paradigm which denies God’s ability to communicate with His people.” This doesn’t actually do anything. Truth is truth regardless of whether you deny it or not. As I said before, if Christ did found a visible Church and promised that she would not fail (He did), and if the Church believed she could, with the protection of the Holy Spirit, bind all the faithful with her rulings (she did), then Protestantism is dead wrong.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  445. Michael Liccione (#443:

    John’s purpose is not to “identify doctrinal truths calling for the assent of faith as distinct from that of provisional opinion,” but simply to argue that the historical data show that the Catholic doctrine of ecclesial authority is false.

    Yes, I believe I have not been shy about my intentions in any way.

    As to the wider question which doctrines call for the assent of faith, as distinct from that of opinion, he does not argue that his use of scholarship successfully identifies such doctrines. He just takes for granted that the Protestant canon is divinely inspired even though, on his showing, interpretations thereof can themselves qualify only as provisional opinions.

    I take for granted that the Bible is “divinely inspired”, and thanks to Michael Kruger’s work, “Canon Revisited”, I understand that “the narrow question of whether Christians have a rational basis (i.e., intellectually sufficient grounds) for affirming that only these twenty-seven books rightfully belong in the New Testament canon” is “an unqualified yes”. Or put differently, “the Christian belief in the 27-book canon of the New Testament is justified (or warranted)”.

    [No, I have not reproduced his argument here. If you want to contend with it, you should read the book, because he presents it so much better, and in so much more detail, than I could. According to Sean, someone from here is going to write a review of it].

    Now K Doran, Bryan, and others have already made clear in detail why one cannot infer, from such facts as John presents, that Catholicism is false. There are just too many leaps beyond evidence and logic.

    In one sense, this is true. Roman Catholicism has written its doctrines in such a way that it’s just plain difficult to find the “defeaters”. One might think, there is just no way to falsify it. There is no way one can check under God’s robes to see if, for example, the Holy Spirit proceeds from the Father only, or from the Father and the Son. No one was there when Mary was conceived, and no one was there (that we know of) who saw Mary “Assumed” into heaven. And on some questions, such as that Mary really had other children (i.e., “James the brother of the Lord”), well, the “interpretive paradigm” says that “οἱ ἀδελφοὶ” really doesn’t mean “brothers”. It would just be a “leap beyond evidence and logic” to suggest that “adelphoi” means “brothers”.

    This is just for example. There are other instances like this.

    It just isn’t empirically plausible to say that finally, after all these centuries, scholars have dug up enough solid information about the early Church to actually prove that the Catholic (or, for that matter, the Orthodox) doctrine of ecclesial authority is false. If the eminent Catholic scholars John cites thought so, they would have doffed their priestly collars and ceased to profess Catholicism–which none of them have done. But that is itself a secondary problem.

    I have also been honest about this. In 363 I say:

    A theologian like Francis Sullivan can say “most Catholic scholars agree that the episcopate is the fruit of a post New Testament development” and further “that this development was so evidently guided by the Holy Spirit that it must be recognized as corresponding to God’s plan for the structure of his Church”.

    I would agree with the first part of that statement, but reject the second part of that statement. And to do so, I would look to Bavinck’s analysis of a “superadded gift” with respect to special revelation. Or the lack of such a thing, according to Protestants. The upshot is, “oral tradition” did not have “supernatural protection”. The canon of Scripture was the determining factor in ongoing “orthodoxy” (beginning with Irenaeus and Tertullian, in the way that Cullmann explains it), and yes, “Scripture alone” was God’s intended method for seeing to it that the gates of hell do not prevail against the church.

    This is an honest disagreement, and we can honestly discuss this sort of thing. Again, this is where I think that theologians like Brown, Sullivan, Meier et. al. are doing a greater service for honesty and “unity” than you are – they are not hiding behind some “IP” that fixes the rules of the game. They are dealing honestly with the historical facts as they are very generally agreed upon these days.

    And of course, “after all these centuries”, yes, we are in a position know more about “Second Temple Judaism”, and the peculiar mix of Hellenistic and Palestinian cultures – the histories that led to the shaping of that particular world, and the imposition of the Roman Empire on that world. We know what the synagogue structure was like – we have archaeologically uncovered synagogues, and we have, through the writings of the time, come to understand what the synagogue worship and synagogue leadership structure was like. So when Acts tells us that Paul spoke in the synagogue, and then he later ended up forming a church in someone’s house, we know how the leadership structure was set up. We know what an elder was in a synagogue. We know how the Roman and Greek households were structured (from “direct evidence” accumulated inductively, the way all history is understood), and so when Paul says “ἐν οἴκῳ θεοῦ” (“the household of God”, in 1 Tim 3:15 for example), we know what kind of imagery is being pictured here, and it is does not comport with the official explanation given in Lumen Gentium 8.

    When you start pulling on threads like this, they come loose. And when you talk about “divine authority”, it is really God who has the real “divine authority”. Some of you may have heard the phrase, “words mean things”, and words like “household” and “brother” refer to certain definite things, and at some point, the weight of just simply the words whose meanings must be fudged to allow for Catholic dogma (consider Mary’s “Immaculate foot” in Gen 3:15 – to consider just one thing that’s “rationally unassailable”) makes the whole system look more like “wishful thinking” than anything else.

    So no, I do not choose to believe that Almighty God empowers (in any way) people who “deduce” “Mary’s Immaculate foot” from the text of Gen 3:15, and then authoritatively make that into dogma.

    I didn’t start off the great quest of my life saying, “Gee, Protestantism looks like it has an ‘interpretive paradigm’ that just is going to set the world on fire”. I began by looking at all the inconsistencies in Roman Catholicism, and the accumulative weight of them all, and saying, “God does not empower an infallible church to authoritatively do this”. This is where the true weight of the “leaps beyond evidence and logic” lie.

  446. Andrew Presslar (#442):

    while the two of you appear to be in agreement on his central point; i.e., that the Protestant IP yields only interpretive opinions, not conclusions for which the assent of faith is warranted, you are not agreed on the significance of this point.

    First off, some folks here use the phrase “binding and loosing” as if Christ, at Matthew 16 and 18, gave “the Roman Catholic Church” some power to “bind consciences” in the form of “dogma”. But this is not the slam-dunk you think it is, and in fact, in the spirit of “words mean things”, let’s look at the words.

    It should be noted that, temporally, the events described in Acts and in Paul’s letters occurred [in time], that is, before Matthew wrote his gospel. And so if we assume Matthew is the Apostle Matthew (and I’m not going to argue against that assumption), we can assume at least that Matthew was (a) present for Jesus’s teaching, (b) aware of the intervening history, and (c) addressing some present audience in some situation (in the 60’s AD).

    He is writing his Gospel. As a person who is literate and who is going to write, he is aware of other “biographies” that are written about other founding figures of philosophical schools, “something like a charter document which can provide definition for the movement involved and provide a point of entry for those who might wish to align themselves with the movement” (Nolland Commentary on Matthew, 19). Given the technology involved (i.e., quills and parchments”), he knows this is a major undertaking. He has done some research to know, for example, the genealogy he recounts at the beginning of the Gospel. He is aware of Jesus’s preaching about the Kingdom of heaven. He himself became a follower. He experienced Jesus’s teaching first-hand. He saw the events in Jerusalem; he may have seen the crucifixion. He definitely saw the Risen Lord. He was present at Pentecost. He was an eyewitness to Peter’s first sermon, and likely the events at least through Acts 8:1. He likely, too, was around for the conversion of Cornelius (Acts 10), Peter’s arrest and release in Acts 12.

    We know he was very careful in the writing of his Gospel. Nolland notes, “the complexity of the patterns of cross reference within the Gospel itself reveal themselves only to those who give patient and repeated attention to the text. Matthew seems to have understood himself to be creating a foundational text to which people would feel the need to return again and again”.

    The Gospel of Matthew is, in itself, a literary masterpiece of the ancient world.

    The major issue of that time was the admission of the gentiles into the church, and how that was to be accomplished. Nolland writes:

    Matthew tells the story of Jesus, but he writes for a situation in the early church which belongs after the death and resurrection that brought Jesus’ ministry to an end. The disciples of Matthew’s day do not live directly within the story of Jesus. There are, necessarily, adjustments involved in moving from the one situation to the other. For the new situation Matthew wants to emphasize that what was gained with the presence of Jesus is not lost. The Twelve are authorized and empowered to replicate Jesus’ preaching and therapeutic ministry. Peter as their leader will have in his hand the keys of the kingdom, and along with other disciples he will be in a position to bind and loose: to prohibit and command in a manner that is backed by God himself. Only in Matthew of the Gospels does Jesus directly anticipate the (postresurrection) formation of a church with its corporate life; otherwise only the structured life of the Twelve anticipates this future. And Jesus promises to continue to be with the disciples in their corporate life and in their mission to all nations (pg 43)

    At this point in the life of the early church (and the apostles), the admission of the Gentiles into the church was a far more important issue than the creation of dogmas. Matthew does not introduce the concept of “binding and loosing” to be applied to the creation of dogmas many years down the road. “Binding and loosing” had a very specific meaning; “the kingdom of heaven” had a very specific meaning. It is a major event – the major event of the times – that the admission of the Gentiles to the very Jewish (at the time) church, is the breaching of a major barrier. Matthew is telling his largely Jewish audience that, in “the church that Christ founded”, Peter has the authority to let “the nations” (i.e. “the Gentiles”) into the Kingdom.

    We know this is the issue that is going on at the time, because (as Scripture interprets Scripture), it is cross-referenced all through Acts and Paul’s letters. Consider Ephesians 2:

    Therefore, remember that formerly you who are Gentiles by birth and called “uncircumcised” by those who call themselves “the circumcision” (which is done in the body by human hands)— remember that at that time you were separate from Christ, excluded from citizenship in Israel and foreigners to the covenants of the promise, without hope and without God in the world. But now in Christ Jesus you who once were far away have been brought near by the blood of Christ.

    For he himself is our peace, who has made the two groups one and has destroyed the barrier, the dividing wall of hostility, by setting aside in his flesh) the law with its commands and regulations. His purpose was to create in himself one new humanity out of the two, thus making peace, and in one body to reconcile both of them to God through the cross, by which he put to death their hostility [between Jews and Gentiles] (Eph 2:11-16).

    In commenting on this text, Harold Hoehner writes:

    “The prepositional phrase ‘in his flesh’ refers to the crucified Christ and is parallel with the phrase ‘”by the blood of Christ’ in verse 13 and ‘through the cross’ in verse 16…It was only in his flesh that the law was rendered inoperative. It shows the locale of this accomplishment.” (374)

    “In the present context kainos (“new”, v. 15) is used to show that Christ has created a whole new person entirely different from the two former persons, namely, Jews and Gentiles. It is not that Gentiles become Jews as Gentile proselytes did in pre-NT times, nor that Jews become Gentiles, but both become “one new person” or “one new humanity,” a third entity” (378-379).

    “The new corporate person, who is called “one body” in verse 16, refers to the church…Later in 4:13, Paul does picture the two groups, Jews and Gentiles, as a single individual of a mature person… [The phrase “the fullness of Christ” in this verse means “maturity,” a concept which is also found in other places in the New Testament, notably Hebrews 6.] This is a new body of Christians who make up the church. This creates unity among believers in the church, for they are in Christ. It is this community to which Jesus made reference when he said to Peter, “I will build my church” (Matt 16:18)” (379-380).

    The “keys of the kingdom”, and the effect of “binding and loosing” referred to this phenomenon. They have a specific meaning at a specific time, for the accomplishing of specific events.

    In the world of “direct evidence”, who here thinks that Matthew, writing these words, talking of Peter’s role, and Peter’s acts, has in mind the specific situation that is talked about here, in his lifetime? And who can imagine, when one has in mind the specific acts here, that some promise of some future authority to create dogmas is just mere speculation?

    How can Matthew possibly have in mind the kinds of things you are talking about, as here:

    Thus, Mike points out that (paraphrasing): without an interpretive authority that is protected from teaching error when definitively stating the locus and meaning of divine revelation, every definitive statement about the (complete) locus and (synthetic) meaning of divine revelation would be only an interpretive opinion.

    Matthew is talking about the specific events of his lifetime – the coming together of Jews and Gentiles in “the church that Christ founded”, and you are the one actually who is speculating about some future “interpretive authority that is protected from teaching error”.

    As Nolland “fallibly” relates, “the present keys imagery has as its starting point the need for the gates of the kingdom of heaven to be opened if people are to find entry”. And of course, this is a leading Protestant interpretation. Peter used the keys to admit the Gentiles into the Kingdom of heaven.

    Does it make sense to say that Matthew is working to solve some present conflict in the church (i.e., admitting the Gentiles for the first time)? How then do these words (as you’ve alluded) have anything at all to do with “the Magisterium”?

    You do not dispute the point, but proceed to offer a bevy of interpretive opinions (often by proxy) about revealed matters, e.g., the nature of the Church, the nature of God.

    What I’ve offered here, in this comment, is far more consonant with what the Scriptures say; and what Rome offers about these verses somehow bolstering its authority, is what’s speculative.

    the reason that you are inclined, on occasion, to speak in that way is simple: The topic at hand is divine revelation, and to treat that revelation, as to its locus and meaning, as though it were a matter of mere human opinion would be at least as incongruous as an unauthorized, fallible interpreter setting himself up as the oracle of God to the Church. But that is precisely what you, the unauthorized, fallible interpreter, have to do in order to propound your interpretive opinions as something that calls for the assent of faith (“thus saith the Lord”), the latter being precisely the response that we know we should have to the doctrinal content of the word of God.

    Look at the “method” that I have employed in this comment. The actual words that are used draw their meaning from the historical context in which they are written. Is there some medieval style “fourfold meaning” to the text? If there is, that “meaning” is totally disconnected from the historical context in which they are written. If there is some connection between what Matthew is writing and “the Magisterium”, it is merely allegorical interpretation. It cannot be exegeted from the text.

    You are waxing lyrical about “the locus and meaning” of “divine revelation”, and my own supposed fallibility, but given all the emphasis that’s put on “direct evidence” who, really, is dealing more directly with the evidence in the text here?

    Keep in mind the paradigm of Acts 2: we are (Peter is) reporting on events that you have seen with your own eyes. Scripture itself provides the interpretation of these acts of God in history.

  447. John B. (#445 & 446),

    On my own spiritual journey with Christ, I began by looking at all the inconsistencies in Protestantism, and the accumulative weight of them all, and saying, “God is not the author of confusion. Neither is Scripture alone able to weed out the differences” (nor did it in Protestantism — either a charismatic leader or academic magisterium did). I also noticed that we all have traditions to which we subscribe, and all of us acted like popes unto ourselves. This is where the true weight of the “leaps beyond evidence and logic” and hypocrisy lie. John, there is no empirical evidence that the early Church was Protestant — and by that I mean doctrinally and ecclesiastically Protestant, and I could find no true difference between competing Protestant systems other than by appealing to some kind of “bosom burning” for one particular tradition. For the Protestant, the canon of Scripture becomes the prime example of this; wherein “self-attestation” (bosom burning) does ALL the heavy lifting (and this happens in Kruger’s book as well, because rational justification won’t get you to dogma any day). It’s also this pernicious assumption (rational justification for “x” doctrine means I ought to believe “x”) that portends the kind of intellectual snobbery I find so often amongst Reformed apologists. I mean, if it is so plain obvious, I must be an idiot or a devil. So, one gets treated as either (albeit you’ve done good job here of avoiding that, thank you sir).

    Ironically, John, when I read your commentary, I’m reminded of my own former reading of Church history. I sounded just like you. Though, upon examination, it is not the evidence that leads to the conclusion. It is the conviction, the assumption, that our particular point of view regarding Scripture is correct, and then a reading back into history to “discover” confirmation of our system and “corruption” when there is something for which we disagree. This, of course, is seductive to any historian, for it grants them great power over the facts — and I can see no reason why it wouldn’t even seduce a Catholic historian. So, for example, your conclusion regarding St. Clement of Rome — one that I shared with you and is a part of my 65 page thesis I wrote 12 years ago (namely, his doctrine of grace constitutes a kind of corruption — I reading Torrance and others of course). It works like this: Torrance exegetes Paul. Clement disagrees with Torrance. Clement represents a corruption. Repeat ad nauseam.

    The question that gets left unanswered in Kruger’s system (and any Protestant “canon” response) is how a group of Christians, guided by the Spirit, could get the “canonical core” right (not to mention the import of casually dismissing part of the canon as “non-core”), but get everything else so wrong. Why trust that they got the canon right and not doctrine right? Why not a “doctrinal core”? It would be ad hoc to argue that God deigned that his people would *know* the canon but not what its contents mean in such a way that there would be some kind of “doctrinal core” in the first few centuries (like the canon) of the Church. Of course, this kind of reading into history only makes sense when you are looking to confirm what you already believe. God acts providently only when what occurs aligns with your conviction; the rest of the stuff is corruption.

    Lastly, I, too, began to examine the veracity of the claimed “inconsistencies in Roman Catholicism”. I found those claims wanting. At the least, I found the Catholic responses to each particular claim at the least as intellectually convincing as the Protestant claim — meaning I would have just as much rational warrant for the Catholic response as the Protestant claim to the contrary.

    John, no one here is afraid of or against the historical evidence. What we are against is your methodology, and a list of scholars who agree with you only (a) adds to the list we disagree with and (b) opens you up to the real possibility that academia will change their mind at some point later and you will have to explain why their new methodology or piece of evidence that disagrees with your conclusion is a corruption. That is the point of Garrison, K. Doran, and others comments. Don’t confuse them with some type of trepidation with regards to the facts. As you already know, two men can conflict about the conclusion to be drawn regarding the same facts forever if they do not fundamentally agree about the methodology to acquire that conclusion. In other words, it would be a waste of our time to argue about the conclusion from the facts if we cannot first agree about the methodology for procuring the disagreed upon conclusion.

    Peace to you on your journey,

    Brent

  448. John B.,

    In #442, I argued that divine revelation, by its very nature, calls for the assent of faith, and that the Protestant IP does not provide warrant for such assent with respect to the locus and doctrinal content of divine revelation. Your response does not address that argument.

    Instead, you offer speculative opinions on the scope of Matthew 16:19 re the exercise of the keys. Matthew is reporting the words of Jesus. Given who Jesus is, and that he intended his Church to endure to the eschaton, we would expect his promise to include, but not be limited to, the Magisterial acts of the first century. Thus, the “world of direct evidence” includes the entirety of Church history (cf. R.E. Aguirre’s post, The Primacy of Peter in the New Testament: and the Principle of Historical Fulfillment).

    Finally, a cursory reading of the letters of St. Paul shows that the admission of the Gentiles into the Church should not be set in contrast to new definitions of dogma. The former was precisely the occasion for the latter.

    Andrew

  449. Brent (#447),

    your question:

    The question that gets left unanswered in Kruger’s system (and any Protestant “canon” response) is how a group of Christians, guided by the Spirit, could get the “canonical core” right (not to mention the import of casually dismissing part of the canon as “non-core”), but get everything else so wrong. Why trust that they got the canon right and not doctrine right?

    is, in my opinion, a key question. We protestants really do behave as though the canon just fell out of heaven like a brick from the blue or that it was dug up like the fabled lead plates.

    I suppose, upon reading the ECF’s one can, seeing how freely they offer their own opinions on such things, assume that one has the same right to put forward one’s own opinion on the same subject matter. I am working through Schaff’s “History of the Christian Church” right now and he does exactly that over and over again. But why does Schaff think that he has the same footing as Augustine to assess Augustine’s conclusions? Is it the amount of study he has performed which gives Schaff that right? What gives any of us the right to draw conclusions regarding theology? Is it our reason(intelligence), our effort, or is it something more? I think this is the problem with John Bugay’s arguments, he starts off assuming he actually has the right to draw conclusions regarding theology or Church History without qualifying why he has that right.

  450. John,

    I haven’t been able to participate in this conversation lately, and I won’t be able to do so until next week. But in #322 you claimed that St. Clement was “a Pelagian before Pelagius.” I asked you (in #323 and in #325, and again in #329, and again in #331) where in St. Clement’s writings he shows himself to have held a Pelagian conception of grace and salvation. But you did not provide any evidence from St. Clement’s writings demonstrating that he held a Pelagian conception of grace. Then in #386 you again asserted that St. Clement “misunderstood the New Testament concept of ‘grace’,” but you did not show from St. Clement’s writings that he did so. Then again in #405 you asserted that St. Clement “misunderstood some things – Grace, to be sure, and other things as well,” but again, you did not provide any evidence from St. Clement’s writings that he misunderstood anything about grace, or held a Pelagian conception of grace. Then again in #419 you asserted that St. Clement had a “serious misunderstanding of the concept of grace as it was used in the New Testamen,” and you offered a lengthy quotation from Cullman, but again, you did not provide any evidence from St. Clement’s own writings that he held a Pelagian conception of grace.

    So, I’ll ask again: where in St. Clement’s writings does he show himself to hold a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation? Assertions are very easy to make, including accusations of heresy. But people’s reputations are at stake when making such an accusation. That’s why it is important not to make such accusations, or propagate them, without first establishing their truth from the evidence.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  451. Jeremiah,

    I want to be careful here. You said:

    “But why does Schaff think that he has the same footing as Augustine to assess Augustine’s conclusions?”

    I think we can make conclusions from history and from textual analysis. However, what we should be careful of is the assumptions we bring to the table before we even begin making conclusions.

    “he (JB) starts off assuming he actually has the right to draw conclusions regarding theology or Church History without qualifying why he has that right.”

    I think we do have the right to draw conclusions from history. The question is do we have the right to draw conclusions from theology that *ought* to be believed by all Christians? Moreover, can we draw those conclusions and then re-read history to confirm the former? In other words, we should be critical and cognizant of the principle that is animating our decisions to disregard one piece of evidence while holding on to another.

    Peace to you on your journey

  452. Christopher Lake,
    Thanks for your response. I went to the website and read it. It seemed to bring up more questions. Ireneaus’s quote about Rome is highly contested from the Latin because of the latinized phase for “superior origin” and how it would be such an awkward phrase in Greek. Seems like a later interpolation. Thoughts?
    The other quotes allude to the fact that they were keepers of the message of Christ. It does not allude to an office of authority, but an office of stewardship. In fact Turtillian in Demurrer Against the Heretics 20 says that to be an apostolic church (which means that they were not planted by a succession but a group of people maybe??? idk) one must subscribe to the message of the gospel, and that “it is on this account only that they will be able to deem themselves apostolic, as being the offspring of apostolic churches.” Moreover, correct doctrine comes solely from ” its origin in the tradition of the apostles” (ibid. 21) How would this fit into the Roman Catholic structure?
    The succession lists are to verify succession of the correct message, not where the correct authority lies. Thoughts?
    The only modern churches, it seems, that Cyprian’s argument is against would be Evangelical Protestants.
    Thoughts?

  453. Josh Lim, we should sit down our mutual friend Josh and talk. This would be fun.
    About what you said: can a Protestant ever get a correct interpretation? How much studying of all the different views would I need to do in order to make a correct interpretation? Since you haven’t studied all the various sides of everything exhaustively, how did you come to an understanding that only those that have done so are able to correctly interpret the Scriptures? Are you 100% certain that those who made the decision in the Catholic Church about what is binding and what is not have met your criteria? Do all of the Popes past and present live up to your criteria? I ask this because it seems that you are looking for a certainty that no one possesses.
    About James 1:5, the point is that God CAN reveal wisdom to peasant illiterate, non-office holding, non-educated, lame, blind, deaf, poor, oppressed people. Peter promises this. It isn’t about our prayer, but about the ability of God.
    Lastly, this has sparked another question that maybe anyone else here can help me with: why has there never been a Pope who was poor, or came from a lower strata of class? Why have they always came from wealth?
    Thank you for thinking about and helping me through these things!

  454. Dear Chad,

    My comment is only in reference to your question as to why there has never been a Pope who was poor? I am sure countless examples could be produced in history of those who became the successor of Peter who were poor, not least of which was St. Pius X, Giuseppe Sarto (Pope from 1903-1914) and of very recent memory, Blessed Pope John Paul II, who grew up in the midst of great turmoil in Poland, and by the time he was 20 years of age was alone, having buried his sister, mother, brother, and then father. And the current Pope, Benedict XVI, who grew up the son of police officer also in a time of terrible circumstances in Germany.

    That will be the last word on that, Chad, for the simple reason that we want to keep the comments on the topic at hand. If you are inclined to learn more, you can research your question or send an email, and we could have a conversation about your question.

  455. Brent @ 447 writes

    Lastly, I, too, began to examine the veracity of the claimed “inconsistencies in Roman Catholicism”. I found those claims wanting. At the least, I found the Catholic responses to each particular claim at the least as intellectually convincing as the Protestant claim — meaning I would have just as much rational warrant for the Catholic response as the Protestant claim to the contrary.

    Isn’t “I found” a different IP than what is being sold elsewhere on this site?

    Brent writes further,

    The question that gets left unanswered in Kruger’s system (and any Protestant “canon” response) is how a group of Christians, guided by the Spirit, could get the “canonical core” right (not to mention the import of casually dismissing part of the canon as “non-core”), but get everything else so wrong. Why trust that they got the canon right and not doctrine right?

    This is truly amazing. Let’s agree, for the sake of argument, that Rome got the canon right. That means that the RC “doctrinal core” includes the forgiveness of sin by almsgiving (Tobit 12:9) which is part of the canon which must be received de fide, as a matter of the faith. The question which presents itself, then, is how, having gotten the canon right with its requirement for alms-giving-forgiveness, Rome doesn’t include same in it’s “doctrinal core”? Or how did Rome get the canon right and it’s doctrinal core (i.e. the forgiveness of sins) wrong? Hmmmm.

    I don’t believe any of the writers here practicing alms giving to forgive sins. So all this talk of an “Interpretive Paradigm” simply devolves into a personal judgment, made by a fallible individuals.

    It’s a fun conversation, though.

    Peace.

  456. Constantine,

    I can’t speak for the writer’s of this site, but I can tell you that most church going Catholics alms give when they contribute to the Church each Sunday and for charities. Our forgiveness may not be bought with our alms. But then neither was Tobit’s. We are responsible for helping our brother,

    Blessings
    NHU.

  457. Constantine @455,
    In his book Iustitia Dei: A History of the Christian Doctrine of Justification, Alister E. McGrath explained how the word translated as ‘almsgiving’ in Tobit carries the meaning of ‘to set things right’. In order to get a full understanding of McGrath’s explanation I suggest that you read chapter 1.2 of his book, but the following quote can be found on pages 7-8.

    The later meaning of sedaqa in post-biblical Hebrew (‘almsgiving’) can thus be seen as the development of a trend already evident in passages such as Psalm 112:9 and Daniel 4:27 (Aramaic, 4:24: although this section of the book of Daniel is written in Aramaic, rather than Hebrew, the same word is used in each language). The ‘right (or intended) order of affairs’ is violated by the existence of the poor and needy; it is there- fore a requirement of sedaqa that this be remedied by the appropriate means. Thus the sense which sedaqa assumes in the Targums and Talmud (‘benevolence’ in general, or ‘almsgiving’ in particular) can be seen to represent a natural development of the soteriological nuances which had been associated with the term from the earliest of times, rather than the final rupture of the semantic connection between a word and its root.35The etymology of the term on its own is inadequate to explain this development; the soteriological context within which it is deployed, especially when linked with the motif of the covenant between God and Israel, enables this extended meaning to be understood without difficulty.

  458. Constantine (btw, cool name!),

    If all I did was “find” (as I referenced in my comment), then yes. In other words, if I became Catholic simply because I found the Catholic Church’s interpretation and dogmas to be the most personally preferable or most compatible with my personal interpretation of Scripture, then I would be just like a Protestant. But, that is not what happened. My comment only was a motive of credibility for trusting the Catholic Church as the Church Christ founded.

    First, including a book in the canon and deducing a doctrine from that book are not the same thing. See Jehovah’s Witnesses. What is your point about Tobit? Maybe you could make it more clear, and maybe — for example — you could skim through your Old Testament to find a passage or two that might be a troublesome N.T. practice for you. Cherry-picking a Catholic O.T. is all fun and dandy until the shoe fits on the other foot. Nevertheless, I’m sure the authors here believe that almsgiving can be a charitable act when empowered by grace that God rewards unto salvation.

    For a discussion of merit, see The Doctrine of Merit: Feingold, Calvin, and the Church Fathers.

    Warmly in Christ,

    Brent

  459. Constantine,

    Giving alms, along with penances and other works of mercy, is one way of counteracting the effects, and hence the temporal punishment, attached to venial sins – which amounts to forgiveness of venial sins. I practice it. Plain vanilla Catholic doctrine unless I am much mistaken.

    Pax Christi,

    Ray

  460. Constantine, (re: #455)

    Ray is correct. See comment #4 in the “Does the Bible Teach Sola Fide?” thread.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  461. Chad (re: #453):

    Yes, getting together sounds good. I’ll be leaving SoCal next month so let’s try to plan something soon.

    About what you said: can a Protestant ever get a correct interpretation? How much studying of all the different views would I need to do in order to make a correct interpretation? Since you haven’t studied all the various sides of everything exhaustively, how did you come to an understanding that only those that have done so are able to correctly interpret the Scriptures? Are you 100% certain that those who made the decision in the Catholic Church about what is binding and what is not have met your criteria? Do all of the Popes past and present live up to your criteria? I ask this because it seems that you are looking for a certainty that no one possesses.

    I think you misunderstand my point. I am saying that on Protestant principles, it is necessary to study every competing view since it is possible for the Church to be wrong about fundamental doctrines for centuries due to a mistranslation of a single Greek word, for example. If this is the case, then there is no reason to be certain that the Church has anything else correct if new information is uncovered that sheds light on the ‘actual’ meaning of the text. In other words, if it happened before, there’s no reason to think that it won’t happen again. There’s really no way of knowing that a given Protestant interpretation is actually what the Bible teaches since the Church can err in very serious ways… Does this make sense? From this angle, which is undoubtedly a Protestant one, there is no way to have any certainty that one’s interpretation, no matter how clear one might perceive it to be, is actually correct.

    Now, for someone who not only confesses that the Bible is God’s Word, but also that the Holy Spirit works through the teaching authority of the Church to keep her from error, there’s no need to fear some sort of new discovery, or new perspective, that might shift everything we know about St. Paul (or whatever else one might think of). The reason this is the case is because everything that is of fundamental importance has been transmitted through the authoritative interpretation of Scripture as read in and by the Church, particularly by the apostles and their successors. So I don’t need to be an academic scholar in order to know that such-and-such a doctrine is divinely authorized, because God never meant for the Bible to be interpreted apart from the Church.

    Does what I’m saying make sense? The Catholic is not trying to out-Protestantize the Protestant, we’re working off of fundamentally different paradigms. What I’m arguing is that the Protestant paradigm is simply untenable.

    Having said that, I do think that Reformed Protestants do actually believe many things and interpret Scripture in ways that are correct. The problem, again, is that there’s no way for the Protestant to know that what they believe is not simply human opinion that might be subject to change when academia goes a different direction.

    About James 1:5, the point is that God CAN reveal wisdom to peasant illiterate, non-office holding, non-educated, lame, blind, deaf, poor, oppressed people. Peter promises this. It isn’t about our prayer, but about the ability of God.

    Sure, I can agree with this. But it doesn’t follow that a visible Church with the authority to bind and loose is no longer necessary… The gifts of the Spirit are given for the upbuilding of the Church, for the sake of the body.

    Lastly, this has sparked another question that maybe anyone else here can help me with: why has there never been a Pope who was poor, or came from a lower strata of class? Why have they always came from wealth?

    I don’t think this can be substantiated. After all, the first pope was a fisherman.

  462. Constantine (re#455)

    Consider Colossians 1:24. Maybe it’s a stretch. But there seems to be a parallel there between a Catholic view on alms giving and St. Paul’s understanding of his sufferings/afflictions. It seems to me that if one is going to criticize the way a Catholic understands her alms giving, one might criticize St. Paul for saying such a thing, also. Thanks, herbert

  463. John (#445):

    You wrote:

    I take for granted that the Bible is “divinely inspired”, and thanks to Michael Kruger’s work, “Canon Revisited”, I understand that “the narrow question of whether Christians have a rational basis (i.e., intellectually sufficient grounds) for affirming that only these twenty-seven books rightfully belong in the New Testament canon” is “an unqualified yes”. Or put differently, “the Christian belief in the 27-book canon of the New Testament is justified (or warranted)”.

    [No, I have not reproduced his argument here. If you want to contend with it, you should read the book, because he presents it so much better, and in so much more detail, than I could. According to Sean, someone from here is going to write a review of it].

    Well, I myself take for granted that the 27-book NT canon is rationally justified. But assuming we’re right about that, it doesn’t address the real difficulty you face. Why?

    The canon is rationally justified in the sense that the early Church had evidence enough to judge that just these books, among the many circulating, are authentically apostolic. I’ve always thought so because I’ve always thought it obvious that the early Church was in a better position than anybody else, including the later Church, to make such a literary judgment. If Kruger shows why in detail, so much the better. But that is only a judgment of human reason; it does not follow from such a judgment that the canon is divinely inspired. That authentically apostolic books, written for the Church’s instruction and edification, are divinely inspired is a proposition calling for the assent of faith, and thus cannot be demonstrated by reason alone, even on the assumption that it can be shown to be reasonable given an agreed data-set. It started out as a belief handed down from the first-century Church by Tradition and manifested in the Church’s evolving choice of certain books for liturgical and catechetical use. Later, the Magisterium of the Church formalized that tradition in conciliar canons. The divine inspiration of the 27-book NT canon is thus a teaching of the Church’s Tradition and Magisterium; the canon simply does not identify itself as such. Accordingly, if you’re going to offer the doctrine that the biblical canon is such-and-such and divinely inspired as anything more than a provisional human opinion, you have to go beyond the biblical canon, and appeal to an authority fit to elicit the assent of faith, as distinct from that of opinion. You don’t do that, because your IP doesn’t allow for it.

    You wrote:

    Roman Catholicism has written its doctrines in such a way that it’s just plain difficult to find the “defeaters”. One might think, there is just no way to falsify it. There is no way one can check under God’s robes to see if, for example, the Holy Spirit proceeds from the Father only, or from the Father and the Son. No one was there when Mary was conceived, and no one was there (that we know of) who saw Mary “Assumed” into heaven. And on some questions, such as that Mary really had other children (i.e., “James the brother of the Lord”), well, the “interpretive paradigm” says that “οἱ ἀδελφοὶ” really doesn’t mean “brothers”. It would just be a “leap beyond evidence and logic” to suggest that “adelphoi” means “brothers”.

    It should go without saying that most Christian doctrines–including such absolutely central ones as the Incarnation and the Trinity–are empirically unfalsifiable. (The Crucifixion is empirically well-established, and the Resurrection, though not observed directly by anybody, is a reasonable inductive inference from what people are said to have seen afterwards. But none of that is in dispute here.) So it is not a peculiar difficulty of distinctively Catholic doctrines that they are empirically unfalsifiable. That’s yet another reason to believe that orthodoxy is more a matter of which IP one adopts than of how much empirical data one has or lacks.

    You write:

    …this is where I think that theologians like Brown, Sullivan, Meier et. al. are doing a greater service for honesty and “unity” than you are – they are not hiding behind some “IP” that fixes the rules of the game. They are dealing honestly with the historical facts as they are very generally agreed upon these days.

    As I thought I’d made clear before, I have no objection at all to constructing as thorough an empirical history of the early Church as possible. My contention, rather, is that no matter how much work is done to that end, it will never suffice to tell us what calls for the assent of faith as distinct from opinion, or whether the Catholic or the conservative-Protestant IP is better suited to making that distinction, and thus to identifying divine revelation as such in the first place. My argument is that the conservative-Protestant IP, lacking a principled distinction between those two things, is not at all suitable for the purpose.

    A good example of what I’m talking about is what you write next:

    So when Acts tells us that Paul spoke in the synagogue, and then he later ended up forming a church in someone’s house, we know how the leadership structure was set up. We know what an elder was in a synagogue. We know how the Roman and Greek households were structured (from “direct evidence” accumulated inductively, the way all history is understood), and so when Paul says “ἐν οἴκῳ θεοῦ” (“the household of God”, in 1 Tim 3:15 for example), we know what kind of imagery is being pictured here, and it is does not comport with the official explanation given in Lumen Gentium 8.

    When you start pulling on threads like this, they come loose. And when you talk about “divine authority”, it is really God who has the real “divine authority”.

    Lumen Gentium §8 is a beautiful passage which strikes me as perfectly consistent with what’s presented in the New Testament. Of course you will disagree about its consistency, but the question before us is how such a judgment, or its opposite, is to be made as anything more than a matter of opinion. Thus, supposing for argument’s sake that everything you say about the structure of the NT church is true, it simply does not follow that the post-apostolic Church had to go on being structured in exactly that way–any more than it follows, from the fact that Christianity started as a Jewish movement, that it had to remain so. The question, rather, is which understanding of the divine constitution of the Church calls for the assent of faith, and is thus irreformable. Even if one assumes, as an article of faith, that there must be some sort of visible continuity between NT church order and later church order, it’s fair to ask what sort of order would qualify as sufficiently “continuous.” That question cannot be answered just by scholars looking at data and drawing conclusions inductively. It can only be answered with divine authority. Which of course kicks the question back to that of who exercises the God-Man’s teaching authority on earth. If you say “Nobody,” and that all such authority resides only in a book, then all we end up with is provisional opinions about that book–including the opinion that the book is divinely inspired in the first place.

    You write:

    I do not choose to believe that Almighty God empowers (in any way) people who “deduce” “Mary’s Immaculate foot” from the text of Gen 3:15, and then authoritatively make that into dogma.

    Red herring. Nobody says that the dogma of the Immaculate Conception can be derived, simply as a matter of deductive logic, from one verse in Genesis. That verse is just one piece in a much larger ensemble of evidence that includes other biblical passages, Tradition, and the analogia fidei. That ensemble of evidence supports an inductive inference to the DIC, but not even that is decisive in itself. A visible, living, divinely commissioned authority is necessary for not only for this question of faith but also for all others.

    Finally, you wrote:

    I didn’t start off the great quest of my life saying, “Gee, Protestantism looks like it has an ‘interpretive paradigm’ that just is going to set the world on fire”. I began by looking at all the inconsistencies in Roman Catholicism, and the accumulative weight of them all, and saying, “God does not empower an infallible church to authoritatively do this”. This is where the true weight of the “leaps beyond evidence and logic” lie.

    Joshua, Bryan, Brent, and many other converts to Catholicism from the Reformed tradition don’t see these “inconsistencies,” whatever they are, as logical defeaters for Catholicism even when taken collectively. I myself have fielded many such charges of inconsistency, and I’ve shown in every case that the Church has never negated a doctrine that she regards as having been taught with her full authority. If you see inconsistency enough to discredit the Catholic IP, I suggest you are misinterpreting the doctrines in question.

    Best,
    Mike

  464. Much is made of the fact that Protestantism is somehow in a disarray, that it “manifests a deep inconsistency by believing the Church in this one case (the canon) while disbelieving her in other critical cases (doctrine)”. If I have time I’ll get to this point (suffice it to say that “the Church” had very little input on “the canon” and its “other critical cases (doctrine)” are very much malleable.

    Here is a case in point.

    It is stated that only Roman Catholic doctrine has “divine protection from error”. But look at the point to which Rome has now retreated, the only things that it will concede have “divine protection from error”.

    In 1927, Shotwell and Loomis wrote of the link of history and the papacy, “That Peter went to Rome and founded there his See is just as definitely what is termed in Catholic theology a dogmatic fact. This has been defined b an eminent Catholic theologian as “historical fact so intimately connected with some great Catholic truths that it would be believed even if time and accident had destroyed all the original evidence therfor” (“The See of Peter”, New York, NY: Columbia University Press”, © 1927, 1955, 1991, pgs xxiii-xxiv). Adrian Fortescue echoed that sentiment. He allowed for “development” of the papacy, but only in the sense that what was believed by the earliest church was only subsequently believed more emphatically. He says “the Church makes her mind clear by defining more explicitly what she has always held” (35).

    K.Doran noted somewhere that, if “the Church” somehow contradicted itself in some official pronouncements, that would constitute “a defeater”.

    Well, in what follows, while again, written “after the fact” and designed to avoid just such a contradiction, is something which operating on a normal paradigm of normal evidence, seems very much to be such a contradiction.

    Take a look at The Primacy of the Successor of Peter in the Mystery of the Church. Here in this 1996 document signed by Joseph Cardinal Ratzinger, Prefect of the Congregation for the Doctrine of the Faith, are “all the essential points of Catholic doctrine on the primacy”. In identifying these things as “essential”, it means that every other point may safely be explained away.

    Of course, it seems inconceivable to me that an infallible church, which has the ability so authoritatively to propose with infallible certainty, “the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”, especially on so central a doctrine as the papacy. But here it is, allowing that very many historical contingencies, once central to the doctrine of the papacy, are put in a position of being “nonessential”.

    First of all, I will grant that Peter was important, and even unique. And while not accepted by everyone here, I have explained the uniqueness of Peter.

    Too, his uniqueness was unique in himself. That is, there are “no successors”.

    That is contrary to what is said in item 3:

    From the beginning and with increasing clarity, the Church has understood that, just as there is a succession of the Apostles in the ministry of Bishops, so too the ministry of unity entrusted to Peter belongs to the permanent structure of Christ’s Church and that this succession is established in the see of his martyrdom.

    Ask yourself here, when is “the beginning”? How is that defined?

    Notice too that what “the Church has understood” is not “from the beginning there is a succession of ‘successors of Peter’”, but that “just as there is a succession of the Apostles in the ministry of Bishops, so too the ministry of unity entrusted to Peter belongs to the permanent structure of Christ’s Church”.

    Somehow, the concept of individual successors has disappeared, and at this point, there is only a “ministry of unity entrusted to Peter” and that such a thing no longer belongs to “individual successors” (i.e., Irenaeus’s list), but rather to “the permanent structure of Christ’s Church”.

    That is, it was not “foundational” to the church (see my comment above), but only contingent on the “succession in the ministry of Bishops”.

    So it’s not even a “primacy of jurisdiction” that Peter had, but a “ministry of unity”.

    Where, in these “essential” points, then, is the fact that “no one can be in doubt” that “whoever succeeds to the chair of Peter obtains by the institution of Christ himself, the primacy of Peter over the whole church”?

    It is worthwhile here to reproduce the entire section (sans formatting), “Chapter 2. On the permanence of the primacy of blessed Peter in the Roman pontiffs:

    On the permanence of the primacy of blessed Peter in the Roman pontiffs

    That which our lord Jesus Christ, the prince of shepherds and great shepherd of the sheep, established in the blessed apostle Peter, for the continual salvation and permanent benefit of the church, must of necessity remain for ever, by Christ’s authority, in the church which, founded as it is upon a rock, will stand firm until the end of time [45].
    For no one can be in doubt, indeed it was known in every age that the holy and most blessed Peter, prince and head of the apostles, the pillar of faith and the foundation of the catholic church, received the keys of the kingdom from our lord Jesus Christ, the saviour and redeemer of the human race, and that to this day and for ever he lives and presides and exercises judgment in his successors the bishops of the holy Roman see, which he founded and consecrated with his blood [46] .
    Therefore whoever succeeds to the chair of Peter obtains by the institution of Christ himself, the primacy of Peter over the whole church. So what the truth has ordained stands firm, and blessed Peter perseveres in the rock-like strength he was granted, and does not abandon that guidance of the church which he once received [47] .
    For this reason it has always been necessary for every church–that is to say the faithful throughout the world–to be in agreement with the Roman church because of its more effective leadership. In consequence of being joined, as members to head, with that see, from which the rights of sacred communion flow to all, they will grow together into the structure of a single body [48] .
    Therefore, if anyone says that
    * it is not by the institution of Christ the lord himself (that is to say, by divine law) that blessed Peter should have perpetual successors in the primacy over the whole church; or that
    * the Roman pontiff is not the successor of blessed Peter in this primacy:
    let him be anathema.

    Now, here it becomes curious. Item number 48 here of course cites Irenaeus (in a passage which Chad noted just above was “highly contested from the Latin because of the latinized phase for “superior origin” and how it would be such an awkward phrase in Greek. Seems like a later interpolation.”

    I don’t know Chad, but that’s precisely the thing I suggested above, as well.

    Missing from the 1996 document are such things as “the chair of Peter” and also “the primacy of Peter over the whole church”.

    Of course, an omission is not the same thing as a denial, but hey, we are here defining the sharp edges of “what is essential”, the very sharpness to which Protestants cannot define.

    Would these omissions be here because, well, even the Vatican takes seriously the “historical reconstructions” of that period?

    Really, look at the further “essential points of Catholic doctrine on the primacy”, and their justification:

    On the basis of the New Testament witness, the Catholic Church teaches, as a doctrine of faith, that the Bishop of Rome is the Successor of Peter in his primatial service in the universal Church;13 this succession explains the preeminence of the Church of Rome,14 enriched also by the preaching and martyrdom of St Paul.

    In the divine plan for the primacy as “the office that was given individually by the Lord to Peter, the first of the Apostles, and to be handed on to his successors”,15 we already see the purpose of the Petrine charism, i.e., “the unity of faith and communion” 16 of all believers. The Roman Pontiff, as the Successor of Peter [now there is one!], is “the perpetual and visible principle and foundation of unity both of the Bishops and of the multitude of the faithful” 17 and therefore he has a specific ministerial grace for serving that unity of faith and communion which is necessary for the Church to fulfil her saving mission. 18

    The numbers represent the footnotes, and this “on the basis of the New Testament witness” indicates that we have here the earliest and the strongest, “formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”. But look at how late this actually comes:

    Note 13: Cf. for example St Siricius I, Let. Directa ad decessorem, 10 February 385: Denz-Hun, n. 181; Second Council of Lyons, Professio fidei of Michael Palaeologus, 6 July 1274: Denz-Hun, n. 861; Clement VI, Let. Super quibusdam, 29 November 1351: Denz-Hun, n. 1053; Council of Florence, Bull Laetentur caeli, 6 July 1439: Denz-Hun, n. 1307; Pius IX, Encyc. Let. Qui pluribus, 9 November 1846: Denz-Hun, n. 2781; First Vatican Council, Dogm. Const. Pastor aeternus, Chap. 2: Denz-Hun, nn. 3056-3058; Second Vatican Council, Dogm. Const. Lumen gentium, Chap. 111, nn. 21-23; Catechism of the Catholic Church, n. 882; etc.

    Note 14: Cf. St Ignatius of Antioch, Epist. ad Romanos, Introd.: SChr 10, 106-107; St Irenaeus of Lyons, Adversus Haereses, III, 3, 2: SChr 211, 32-33

    Notes 15, 16, 17, and 18 are all statements of the first and second Vatican council and papal encyclicals from the same era.

    Well, in Note 13, “St Siricius” was a pope who followed Damasus, from the years 384 to 399. That is the earliest instance of that to which Rome will defend what a “pope” says on his own behalf as “essential”. Missing are such as Victor and the Quartodecimans, and Stephen vs Cyprian.

    Also present are the statements of Ignatius, about Rome being pretty important, and Irenaeus, — not the “list” (3.3.3), but the “, but the “highly contested … latinized phase for “superior origin” … which would have been such an awkward phrase in [the original] Greek”, which is now missing.

    It is upon these two bare and even questionable statements from Ignatius and Irenaeus that the Vatican stakes the “essential” “Catholic doctrine on the primacy”.

    All else it has may be conceded to the “inductive historical case” that’s being built on, well, bare history – and that not properly interpreted.

    Now, this is a huge step away from Adrian “the Church makes her mind clear by defining more explicitly what she has always held” Fortescue. It is even a huge step away from Vatican I.

    It is on this basis that you make the claim that you have located “the Church that Christ founded”.

    But the Vatican itself is pulling the rug out from under you with regard to the papacy. You don’t need to defend Clement. You don’t need to defend Irenaeus’s “list”. The Vatican Itself has given up on that.

    Indeed, Rome is now standing alone upon its own authority and the strength of the two contested statements from

    It is just as with Francis Sullivan. They are allowing for the correctness of the historical investigations, while claiming that there is a belief that this ‘development’ was “so evidently guided by the Holy Spirit that it must be recognized as corresponding to God’s plan for the structure of his Church”.

    It turns out that Shotwell and Loomis and Fortescue were wrong. The current Magisterium has moved the historical “facts” supporting the papacy out from within hard edge of “that which the Magisterium that can teach infallibly on matters of faith”.

  465. Apropos to what I said in my previous comment (showing “what was essential” then, at various points (in Vatican I and Fortescue, for example), compared with “what was essential” in 1996), I want to ask, of what practical use is this ability to “define the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion” in this particular instance (i.e. “the primacy of the successor of Peter”).

    It made no difference at all to the church of the earliest centuries. It was in fact not a “ministry of unity” all through the second half of the first millennium, and if, in those years, there had been an “essentials” document such as this one, the great schism of 1054 might not have been what it was.

    Too, the Medieval popes, thinking they had more of a “ministry” than was essential, evidently took on more power to themselves than they actually had. Vatican 1 was much ado about not much at all. So practically speaking, in the long history of the church, at this point at which your greatest certainty should lie, there has been just a tremendous amount of confusion.

    At times, the papacy has even defined itself [consciously, one would think] in ways that defy the very unity it professes to bring.

    John Meier was right. A papacy that cannot present a credible account of its origins cannot possibly be “a ministry to unity” to the church.

    No one will ever be able to write a book on papacy that will claim, as Kruger has done on canon, warrant for that belief in an early papacy.

    How, in the light of the movement on those supposedly firm edges of what was to believed about the papacy, is Roman Catholicism any better than the supposed “disarray” of Protestantism?

    P.S., in between the statement “there are no successors” and “that is contrary to what is said in item 3”, I had intended to place something, which didn’t quite make it in there. My apologies. I will try to track it down.

  466. And apropos to my previous comment, in which I asked, “of what practical use is this ability to “define the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion” in this particular instance (i.e. “the primacy of the successor of Peter”), where is the infallible canon of the infallible “formal, proximate object[s] of faith”? Or does it just reside in some noumenal world that really can’t be accessed unless a council meets or something?

  467. John, (re: #464)

    You wrote,

    Here in this 1996 document signed by Joseph Cardinal Ratzinger, Prefect of the Congregation for the Doctrine of the Faith, are “all the essential points of Catholic doctrine on the primacy”.

    That’s not a quotation from the document. The document does not include the word ‘all.’ This document is not, and does not purport to be a document containing an exhaustive and explicit list of all the essential points of doctrine on the primacy, let alone the historical events related to the setting up of the papacy and the transmission of the keys of the Kingdom from St. Peter to his successors.

    In identifying these things as “essential”, it means that every other point may safely be explained away.

    No, it doesn’t mean that every other point “may be safely explained away.” If you truly want to understand the document, you have to be careful not to read into it things it doesn’t say, especially uncharitable or unorthodox assumptions you may be bringing to the text.

    But here it is, allowing that very many historical contingencies, once central to the doctrine of the papacy, are put in a position of being “nonessential”.

    The only “historical contingency” you mention is that Peter went to Rome and founded the See there. And that is implicit in what is explicitly stated in paragraph 3 of the CDF document. This CDF document does not move anything that was “once essential” to a status of “nonessential.”

    Too, his uniqueness was unique in himself. That is, there are “no successors”.

    That is contrary to what is said in item 3

    Your assertion that there are no successors of St. Peter is just an assertion. To support that assertion, you would need evidence showing it to be true.

    Notice too that what “the Church has understood” is not “from the beginning there is a succession of ‘successors of Peter’”, but that “just as there is a succession of the Apostles in the ministry of Bishops, so too the ministry of unity entrusted to Peter belongs to the permanent structure of Christ’s Church”.

    Somehow, the concept of individual successors has disappeared, and at this point, there is only a “ministry of unity entrusted to Peter” and that such a thing no longer belongs to “individual successors” (i.e., Irenaeus’s list), but rather to “the permanent structure of Christ’s Church”.

    This is a rather egregious example of the fallacy of the argument from silence. Not stating x is not the same thing as stating not-x. From what the document says, it does not follow that the Church has not understood from the beginning that there is a succession of individual bishops from St. Peter carrying on St. Peter’s ministry by way of his charism.

    That is, it was not “foundational” to the church (see my comment above), but only contingent on the “succession in the ministry of Bishops”.

    That’s not what the CDF document says, but only what you are (mistakenly) concluding from it, by way of an argument from silence.

    So it’s not even a “primacy of jurisdiction” that Peter had, but a “ministry of unity”.

    Affirming x is not the same thing as denying y. Affirming that Peter had a ministry of unity is not denying that he had a primacy of jurisdiction. Peter exercises his ministry of unity through his primacy of jurisdiction. Again, beware of creating a strawman on the basis of an argument from silence.

    The numbers represent the footnotes, and this “on the basis of the New Testament witness” indicates that we have here the earliest and the strongest, “formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”.

    Just so you know, the phrase “on the basis of the New Testament witness” does not indicate “the earliest and the strongest formal proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion.”

    Well, in Note 13, “St Siricius” was a pope who followed Damasus, from the years 384 to 399. That is the earliest instance of that to which Rome will defend what a “pope” says on his own behalf as “essential”.

    That conclusion does not follow from anything stated in the CDF document. Quoting from St. Siricius does not entail that what he says about the papacy is “the earliest instance of that to which Rome will defend what a pope says on his own behalf as ‘essential.'” So you are creating a strawman on the basis of a non sequitur.

    It is upon these two bare and even questionable statements from Ignatius and Irenaeus that the Vatican stakes the “essential” “Catholic doctrine on the primacy”.

    Again, that conclusion does not follow. Merely listing a few patristic citations does not mean or entail that the doctrine is based only on the patristic citations listed.

    Now, this is a huge step away from Adrian “the Church makes her mind clear by defining more explicitly what she has always held” Fortescue. It is even a huge step away from Vatican I.

    In this CDF document there is no “step away” from what Fortescue said or from Vatican I. Your misconstrual of the CDF document, on the basis of non sequiturs and arguments from silence, would be a step away. But, you are misinterpreting the CDF document, and then criticizing the Catholic Church based on your misinterpretation. So you are criticizing a straw man.

    But the Vatican itself is pulling the rug out from under you with regard to the papacy. You don’t need to defend Clement. You don’t need to defend Irenaeus’s “list”. The Vatican Itself has given up on that.

    No it hasn’t.

    Indeed, Rome is now standing alone upon its own authority and the strength of the two contested statements from [St. Ignatius and St. Irenaeus].

    Again, that’s simply not true. You are inferring from the CDF’s citation of those two patristic statements that the Catholic Church presently recognizes only those two citations as the historical basis for papal authority. And that conclusion does not follow.

    It turns out that Shotwell and Loomis and Fortescue were wrong. The current Magisterium has moved the historical “facts” supporting the papacy out from within hard edge of “that which the Magisterium that can teach infallibly on matters of faith”.

    The Magisterium hasn’t moved any historical facts supporting the papacy. You’ve grossly misconstrued the meaning and implicature of the CDF document, and thus set up a straw man. Genuine Protestant-Catholic dialogue requires a sincere commitment to avoid criticizing straw men of each other’s position. Before you criticize a Catholic document, please first make sure you understand it correctly.

    And I’m still waiting for your reply to #450.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  468. John,

    #464, #465 and #466 –

    Interesting argument. I think Bryan raised all the issues I had with your argument above.

    But, really, for now I think we should put this particular argument aside.

    Instead of raising new objections such as the one you raised on your last three comments, I think it would be more profitable if you answered some of the comments that have been raised on your previous comments.

    Maybe we could start with Bryan’s comment to you in # 450. You have made an accusation of heresy against Clement of Rome several times throughout this thread and you have not as of yet provided any evidence from Clement’s writing that he held to the Pelagian heresy.

    Do you want to concede that Clement did not teach the Pelagian heresy or do you want to answer Bryan’s question in # 450?

    Then we could move onto some of the other issues that have been raised against your position already that remain unanswered.

    I don’t mean to brush aside what you are saying now. We simply find that in a discussion like this its best to focus on one or two arguments at a time rather than just throw up the whole kitchen sink at once and then move onto the bathtub, so to speak. From the perspective of somebody who is trying to follow the conversation, it gets very difficult.

  469. Bryan, much of what you argue in #467 is based on the little word “all”, which I sloppily put inside, rather than outside, of the quotation marks.

    It says “These “Reflections” – appended to the symposium – are meant only to recall the essential points of Catholic doctrine on the primacy”.

    If something is not “essential”, then it is “not essential”. Is there some station in between those two points? I’m sure some things are more or less important, but if it is not included in the “essential” category, then it is correct to say that other things are “not essential” to whatever degree. And maybe that doesn’t mean they “can be explained away”, but on the other hand, in all the years I’ve been doing this, there is certainly quite a bit that has certainly been “reformulated positively” as to most certainly give the appearance that it is saying quite the opposite of something that has long been historically understood (i.e., “no salvation outside the church”. Until Vatican II’s “positive reformulation”, there was very little sense of something called “separated brethren”.) There was, for example, no sense from either Rome or Constantinople that the descendents of the “Nestorians” or “Monophysites” were somehow “separated bretheren”. If you are familiar with such terminology prior to Vatican II, by all means, I will accept correction on that. But still, my question, “of what practical use is the ability to define such things, if no one really has any sense of them (to the point that the Nestorians and the Monophysites were just simply ravaged by Islam, for example). If there is going to be some kind of clear, bright dividing line over what is to be an “object of faith” and what’s not, and nobody practically understands it, what use is it?

    I will respond to #450. But in the meantime, too, as you say, “Genuine Protestant-Catholic dialogue requires a sincere commitment to avoid criticizing straw men of each other’s position”. If this genuinely means something to you, it would be nice if you would be as quick to caution the folks on your side about the straw men arguments that they put up as well.

  470. John.

    Even if the CDF statement said ‘all essential’, there is still the little problem that the CDF document does not ‘step away’ from what Fortescue wrote or Vatican I defined, which is your entire reason for raising the document.

    At any rate, your next comment needs to answer Bryan’s #450.

  471. John, (re: #469)

    You wrote:

    If something is not “essential”, then it is “not essential”. Is there some station in between those two points? I’m sure some things are more or less important, but if it is not included in the “essential” category, then it is correct to say that other things are “not essential” to whatever degree.

    No, that conclusion does not follow, because something can be ‘essential’ or ‘nonessential’ in different respects. It is one thing to be essential as part of dogma as such, and it is another thing to be essential as a dogmatic fact, i.e. an historical fact not itself dogma but intrinsically connected with revealed truth. The quotation from Shotwell and Loomis is about something essential as a dogmatic fact. The CDF document is focusing on what is essential as dogma concerning the primacy.

    If this genuinely means something to you, it would be nice if you would be as quick to caution the folks on your side about the straw men arguments that they put up as well.

    I take your point. I’ll try to do better.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  472. John B.,

    Regarding separated brethren, you wrote:

    There was, for example, no sense from either Rome or Constantinople that the descendents of the “Nestorians” or “Monophysites” were somehow “separated bretheren”. If you are familiar with such terminology prior to Vatican II, by all means, I will accept correction on that.

    Here is a quote from St. Augustine, from today’s Office of Readings in the Liturgy of the Hours:

    We entreat you, brothers, as earnestly as we are able, to have charity, not only for one another, but also for those who are outside the Church. Of these some are still pagans, who have not yet made an act of faith in Christ. Others are separated, insofar as they are joined with us in professing faith in Christ, our head, but are yet divided from the unity of his body. My friends, we must grieve over these as over our brothers; and they will only cease to be so when they no longer say our Father.

    Andrew

  473. John:

    In #464, you wrote:

    Of course, it seems inconceivable to me that an infallible church, which has the ability so authoritatively to propose with infallible certainty, “the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion”, especially on so central a doctrine as the papacy. But here it is, allowing that very many historical contingencies, once central to the doctrine of the papacy, are put in a position of being “nonessential”.

    In #465, you wrote:

    Apropos to what I said in my previous comment (showing “what was essential” then, at various points (in Vatican I and Fortescue, for example), compared with “what was essential” in 1996), I want to ask, of what practical use is this ability to “define the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion” in this particular instance (i.e. “the primacy of the successor of Peter”).

    Your #466 reads:

    And apropos to my previous comment, in which I asked, “of what practical use is this ability to “define the formal, proximate object of faith as distinct from human opinion” in this particular instance (i.e. “the primacy of the successor of Peter”), where is the infallible canon of the infallible “formal, proximate object[s] of faith”? Or does it just reside in some noumenal world that really can’t be accessed unless a council meets or something?

    Finally, in your #469 you ask:

    If there is going to be some kind of clear, bright dividing line over what is to be an “object of faith” and what’s not, and nobody practically understands it, what use is it?

    In each case, the bold emphasis is mine. Given that the bolded phrase is my own, I see a need to clarify it for the benefit of our readers. Once I’ve done that, I shall address the question you’ve posed several times in slightly different ways.

    In a CTC article posted last year, I wrote the following:

    The main difference between Catholicism and conservative Protestantism as a whole is…about the proximate, “formal” object of faith. In other words, the two represent different answers to the question: Just which ensemble of secondary authorities must we trust, and in what relationship with each other, in order to reliably identify all and only what the primary object of faith wants us to believe, namely the deposit of faith?. (Emphasis added.)

    For the Catholic, then, the “formal, proximate object of faith” (‘FPOF’ for short) is the “ensemble of secondary authorities” she trusts “in order to reliably identify all and only what the primary object of faith”–i.e., God–“wants us to believe.” As I explained in the aforesaid article, and again in this thread by quoting Dei Verbum §10, that FPOF is the trio: Scripture-Tradition-Magisterium. And as I noted for Andrew M in my #85, “the first two give the third its rationale, and the last is the authentic interpreter of the first two.”

    With that understood, the first remark of yours that I quoted (from #464) is just misdirected. The papacy is but one part, albeit a vital and indispensable part, of the third element of the FPOF, namely the Magisterium. That is perfectly consistent with the Magisterium’s distinguishing between features of the papacy which are doctrinally “essential” and features which are historically “contingent” and thus non-essential. To imagine that making such a distinction, as both the previous and the present pope have done, makes it unclear how the papacy’s a part of the FPOF is simply to misunderstand what the FPOF is.

    Your real difficulty is that you don’t find the above distinction, as made in Roman documents, clear enough to be of practical use. Frankly, I don’t understand why somebody like you, who immerses himself in scholarship, would have such a difficulty. It is well known that the Catholic doctrine of the papacy has been defined with the Magisterium’s full authority, and you clearly know where those doctrines are to be found. Such magisterial sources present a series of doctrines for the assent of faith as distinct from that of opinion. As Bryan amply demonstrates in #467 and #471, nothing that’s said in the 1996 CDF document you cite is incompatible with those doctrines. If you were to read everything Joseph Ratzinger has said about the papacy, both before and since becoming pope himself, you would readily understand that.

    In #469 you also write:

    I’m sure some things are more or less important, but if it is not included in the “essential” category, then it is correct to say that other things are “not essential” to whatever degree. And maybe that doesn’t mean they “can be explained away”, but on the other hand, in all the years I’ve been doing this, there is certainly quite a bit that has certainly been “reformulated positively” as to most certainly give the appearance that it is saying quite the opposite of something that has long been historically understood (i.e., “no salvation outside the church”. Until Vatican II’s “positive reformulation”, there was very little sense of something called “separated brethren”.) There was, for example, no sense from either Rome or Constantinople that the descendents of the “Nestorians” or “Monophysites” were somehow “separated bretheren”.

    Well, I’ve already dealt with that very issue in my replies to Burton, above in this very thread (#190, #195, and #203). Vatican II’s ecclesiology is compatible with the dogma extra ecclesiam nulla salus (EENS) because it developed and refined the Church’s understanding of what it is to be “in” the Church, and hence of what it is to be “outside” the Church. Specifically, the Church has rejected a binary understanding of ecclesial communion–you’re either all the way “in” or all the way “out”, with nothing in between–to understanding such communion as a matter of degree (thus Vatican II’s phrase “imperfect communion”). As I said to Burton, there just is no logical contradiction here. The development in question has refined EENS, not negated it.

    I do not understand why many people, not just you, have such difficulty understanding this particular point of logic. But then, as a critical-thinking instructor, I have discovered that many people need lessons in logic. I suppose I should thank God that my services are so needed.

    Best,
    Mike

  474. First, let me thank all those who interacted with my previous post.

    Just to recap the findings thereof:

    Nelson @ 456 equates almsgiving with tithing, and he offers his private interpretation of Tobit.

    Craig @ 457 goes outside of the Magisterium to a Protestant scholar to offer a meaning for almsgiving. It’s fascinating that McGrath, in his first sentence, makes clear he is talking about “post-biblical Hebrew”. What does that have to do with the authoritative teaching of Rome? McGrath’s allusion to Psalm 112:9 is a reference to “everlasting righteousness” which rather disproves the Catholic notion of intermittent righteousness which must be restored – or increased – by the Catholic sacraments. Is this an example of the Roman IP?

    Brent @ 458 takes me to the woodshed for “cherry picking” and assures me that his “was a motive of credibility for trusting the Catholic Church as the Church Christ founded.” Of course, it was HIS motive, not the Church’s. And besides, it was the Church of Rome that declared Tobit to be – de fide – without error. Where is the official magisterial interpretation of Tobit 12:9 to which we can refer?

    And then, in an all too predictable fashion, Brent concludes: “Nevertheless, I’m sure the authors here believe that almsgiving can be a charitable act when empowered by grace that God rewards unto salvation.” Well it’s exactly that “I’m sure” hermeneutic that I am questioning. And, as esteemed, educated and well-meaning as “the authors here” may well be, when did they become the IP?

    Ray Stamper @ 459 explains that almsgiving “amounts to forgiveness of venial sins. I practice it.” But the Catechism says that “bishops and priests, by virtue of the sacrament of Holy Orders, have the power to forgive all sins…” (CCC 1461) If priests forgive “all sins” what sins are left for poor Tobit’s practice? So Ray’s private interpretation not only of Scripture but also of church practice is the authority by which we must judge? Is Ray the IP now?

    Bryan @ 460 affirms Ray.

    So it seems to me in just this little exercise, when Roman Catholics are given the opportunity to operate under an “Interpretive Paradigm” which can only be found in Rome, even they are unaware of what that is and how it works. Maybe I’m wrong but in this example we have two men offering their private interpretations of Scripture, another offering a Protestant interpretation of the practice using “post biblical Hebrew”, another giving his assurance relying on the IP “I practice it.”

    I must say, if consistency or assurance or confidence is to be found in any of these, it is yet to be displayed.

    Thanks, all, for your comments.

    Peace.

  475. Oops, I missed one.

    Herbert @ 462 offers yet another private interpretation of a “cherry picked” verse (to use Brent’s phrase) in support of what I guess is a Catholic answer.

    Thanks Herbert and blessings to you.

    Peace.

  476. Constantine,
    Different folks trying to explain a doctrine to you in different ways does not entail that they all disagree or that they have different views of that doctrine. I feel quite comfortable that I understand this doctrine, I agree with and understand all the commentors, and I am not the brightest bulb on the Catholic tree. It really isnt that hard to get. And the nice thing about the Catholic “IP”, is that if you are confused about it, there are 2000 years of clarifying magisterial statements you could look at… if, that is, you are truly interested in understanding the answer. Throwing your hands up in feigned confusion does not convince anyone that almsgiving is a confusing topic.

  477. Constantine

    You wrote:

    But the Catechism says that “bishops and priests, by virtue of the sacrament of Holy Orders, have the power to forgive all sins…” (CCC 1461) If priests forgive “all sins” what sins are left for poor Tobit’s practice?

    From the fact that something may happen in one way, it does not follow that it may not also happen in another. In the sacrament of confession, there is forgiveness of both mortal and venial sins. In the practice of almsgiving, or penances, or works of mercy, justice is restored with regard to sins affecting the temporal order (i.e. venial sins); but such acts can never repair the infinite gap between the soul and God brought about by mortal sin – for that confession is necessary. If you are sincere about learning what Catholics believe, you may want to explore the rest of the catechism wherein the distinction between mortal and venial sin is discussed along with their respective remedies.
    You wrote:

    So Ray’s private interpretation not only of Scripture but also of church practice is the authority by which we must judge? Is Ray the IP now?

    If you hope to gain a hearing for rhetorical flare, it is best to argue for the implied assertions embedded therein.

    Pax Christi,

    Ray

  478. John, Constantine, anyone:

    Ok – one more impassioned plea.

    Let’s assume for the sake of argument that we can prove beyond doubt that Catholic priests really are worshippers of the pagan deity Dagon, that Popes and Councils have contradicted themselves repeatedly, and that perhaps only a few Catholics might be saved in spite of their apostate religion. This proof would have no bearing on a Protestant’s ability or inability to define heresy vs orthodoxy and schism vs unity. I would like to hear a positive argument for the Protestant’s means of defining which doctrines are essential, and then the orthodox interpretation of those essential doctrines. Then, a positive argument that either explains why the concept of schism is unimportant, or, if it is important, how a Protestant can define it and recognize a schismatic.

    For example, is denial of the necessity of infant baptism heretical? Is belief in any role of works in salvation heretical? Is contraception a sin? Is sodomy within marriage a sin? If an elder from my church leaves and starts his own church, is he a schismatic? Why or why not?

    Remember, we have already proved that the RCC is apostate and not even in contention as a viable alternative, so negative arguments against Rome are, in this scenario, completely irrelevant.

    Whenever I ask this question, I get a run-around. If many Protestants wrongly become Catholic because of a felt-need for a certainty that doesn’t exist, then what degree of certainty is necessary and why? How do we arrive at it?

    Burton

  479. Constantine:

    What the men here have been giving you is their opinions about how Tobit 12:9 is to be interpreted. Since the Magisterium has never formally ruled on exactly how that verse is to be interpreted, exegetical opinions are the best Catholics can do for the time being. I happen to concur with the opinion given by Ray and Bryan, as far as they go. A somewhat fuller treatment of the theme of almsgiving and sin is given by Catholic (and ex-Lutheran) theologian Bruce Marshall here; and he refers, helpfully, to Gary Anderson’s book Sin: A History, which I have found illuminating. Both the article and the book present views that are well within the range of acceptable opinion for Catholics.

    You have noticed that the Magisterium has not given a de fide ruling on how each and every assertion in Scripture is to be understood. Indeed, until the first Council of Nicaea, there never was a formal magisterial ruling, addressed to the whole Church, that bound the whole Church. The Magisterium operates by gradually clarifying controversial matters over time, and does so in dialogue with theologians (both orthodox and heretical) and the faithful. That is a defect only if it’s possible to have every such question answered neatly and fully from the start. But it isn’t. That’s why development of doctrine is both necessary and desirable.

    Best,
    Mike

  480. Constantine (#474),

    The Church does not rule on every little verse in Scripture or even every doctrine that a bishop, priest, or theologian may posit unless it causes controversy. There is freedom in this IP for debate, which is why you can get varying answers from the posters here on what exactly is going on here. What is known, as you yourself say, is that the canonical status of Tobit is not up for debate for Catholics due to our IP. I don’t see how this is a problem.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  481. Josh Lim,
    We will have to meet soon then, yes.
    More questions: so, it is more of an epistemological question I see. In other words, one cannot not truly have correct doctrine unless it comes from the church, or agrees with what the church has already said. I understand that you are arguing that they are built on different paradigms. At one time in history they were not, that is my point. Ignatius of Antioch proves this fact without question when he said that Bishops do not have authority over other bishoprics. One day, a man, or a group of men, decided that Rome would be The See. Thoughts? Now onto a couple of questions.
    1) Would it be correct to assume that any gospel besides the one that the Roman Catholic Church teaches is another gospel? If so, is there no salvation outside of the Catholic Church? Would that say that you were never a true believer until you became Catholic?
    2) If we are unable to have the correct interpretation on our own, how did you come up with the correct interpretation? How would anyone come up with it? I say that the Spirit of God gave it, the same as a Catholic would, so the only determining factor is that the Church is the only one with the keys. If this is so, wouldn’t that place the Eastern Orthodox Church (which is the earlier church) in the same camp as the Protestants?
    3) Along these same lines, what do we do with the historical fact that the Church sold bishoprics to non-believers for money, land, and power? Should the Church still do this? Or the fact that half the Church were Arian? Or the Pelagian controversy? Why could that same thing not happen today? In other words, could the Church present be wrong about what she has bound? If not, why was this normal in the early church and not today?

    I would love to be a Roman Catholic. I would. I am just trying to figure out why the present Church is so drastically different from the early one. To say that the Church in the past was forming the present one would say that the Church present has arrived and is without error (sin).

    Thanks. I look forward to meeting with you. I will fb email you.

  482. Constantine,

    You can use Ray’s response as my own (as well as others). However, given Burton’s comment at #478, I might focus on making a positive case for the Protestant IP before the Catholic IP strikes again. : )

  483. Burton,
    I think it ridiculous that people would accuse the Catholic Church as something not their own (i.e. worshipers of pagan gods, etc.). Protestants need to understand that the Catholic Church throughout the centuries would be part of their church if they think that they “reformed” it. Therefore, to make up correlations with Rome and strange dream-like creatures of Revelation or other pagan gods is ridiculously absurd. This kind of stuff always makes me mad! Most of these absurd arguments come from untrained, or unlearned, men who have a bite of fundamentalism in them. ;) And I am a Protestant!
    As to your question, I think it might need to find precedent in the OT. Since the NT is mainly charismatic exegesis of the OT (see Peter’s sermon, and countless other quotes of the OT), the question that arises is: where in the OT do we prophetically find, or narratively find, a magisterium? (besides the heavenly council of course, since it is in heaven).
    What I am getting at is that modern arguments such as Dagon, etc., have no relevance to anything. The OT says that one is judged by office of Prophet (Deut 18), while the NT says that it is the message, not the office, that is judged (1 Cor 14).
    Therefore, the question is posed back towards you, since there has never been in the history of Israel a magisterium, why should NT believers accept one?

    Lastly, this doesn’t mean that a magisterium is bad, or unhelpful. Why would it not be helpful? The point is that the OT clearly portrays the NT church without one.

    Thoughts?

    Lastly, thank you to those who post on this site, and to those who moderate it! This is a great place to see the love of Christ worked out through discussion and debate!

  484. Constantine (@474),

    Many more theologically astute persons than I am have already explained what the verse in Tobit is talking about. Your response to them largely seems to be that, since they’re laymen, their opinions constitute “private interpretations” of the Bible. You seem to want some kind of magisterial statement on that and only that verse of Scripture. I’m no theologian (I’m a philosopher by trade), so I’m not going to try and exegete this verse for you or point you to the appropriate magisterial sources. Instead, I want to look at a philosophical matter lingering behind the question you’re asking.

    I will begin by distinguishing between two related concepts. Then I’ll show their relevance for the matter at hand. These related concepts are called “basic natural capacities” and “immediately exercisable capacities”. Basic natural capacities are capacities which are had in virtue of a thing’s being what it is – but just because a thing possesses a capacity doesn’t necessarily entail that that capacity can be actualized at that exact moment . Immediately exercisable capacities, contrariwise, are capacities which can presently be actualized if desired. I’m using complicated terminology to try and be somewhat precise, but the concept itself is a simple one. Let me throw a stock philosophical example of these at ya: an infant has the basic natural capacity for rationality (reasoning). But in, say, my three month old daughter Joy that capacity is not one she is capable of exercising *now*. When she gets older, though, she will become more and more rational until finally that capacity will be immediately exercisable (and hence usable at-will). I have the basic natural capacity to be a golfer (by virtue of having arms, opposable thumbs, and all the sorts of things one needs to play golf) but I’ve never played golf in my life. If I took some lessons, though, my capacity as a golf player would eventually shift to being immediately exercisable. I’m sure you get the idea.

    Here’s the relevance to the point at issue. You asked for an interpretation of a particular Bible verse from Tobit. Fine and dandy. Maybe there’s some particular canon of some ecumenical council that addresses that verse and only that verse, and maybe there’s not. I don’t know and, for the point I’m trying to make, it doesn’t much matter. There’s going to be any number of particular Bible verses that the Catholic church hasn’t officially exegeted (the Bible is a big book, after all). But, and here’s the big point, the Catholic church possesses the immediately exercisable capacity for authoritatively exegeting Bible verses if she needs to. You might be dying to have a verse in Tobit authoritatively exegeted and I might be dying to have a verse in Numbers or Genesis authoritatively exegeted, and anybody else might want other verses exegeted. But the larger philosophical point I’m trying to make is that because of the kind of thing the Catholic church is she *can* authoritatively exegete the Bible if needed. In short, the Catholic claim isn’t that the Church will (much less has!) exegeted every little verse in the whole Bible – but rather that if a sufficiently great danger to the faith appears, she (the Church) can step in and declare with God’s authority that this verse means X, not Y, and thus that position Z is heretical, etc. That immediately exercisable capacity is what matters, not whether the particular verse that YOU want exegeted has already been exegeted.

    I would also like to point out that Protestant churches, in virtue of being what they are, do not even claim the basic natural capacity to authoritatively exegete the Bible. Read WCF 31.3 (the part about “All synods or councils, since the Apostles’ times, whether general or particular, may err…”). That same sentiment is widely shared throughout the Protestant world – church councils, their documents, Pastor Bob down the street, etc, all may err. As such, neither the Westminster Divines, nor the Westminster Confession itself, nor Pastor Bob down the street can *authoritatively* exegete a verse (such that I must accept their exegesis in virtue of only their authority and not because I antecedently agree with their exegesis). But the Catholic church can in virtue of her being what she claims to be: the Church (that is, the Church founded by Christ and entrusted to Peter and his successors).

    Anyways, you’re more than welcome to ask for Catholic interpretations of specific verses – but I sense you’re asking a more technical question: What has the magisterium explicitly said about one particular verse in Tobit. I don’t know because that’s outside of my area of expertise. I do know, however, that if ANY verse in the Bible has a sufficiently pressing reason to be authoritatively exegeted, it can be by the magisterium. That philosophical answer brings me rather more comfort than knowing whether this or that particular verse has already been authoritatively exegeted by a magisterial source.

    If any followup questions present themselves, let me know.

    Sincerely,
    ~Benjamin

  485. Chad (re:#452),

    Thanks for the (continuing) questions, brother. In all honesty, I had intended to continue our discussion earlier, but a few days ago, I commented on a Reformed blog, which has turned into an extended dialogue between me and multiple people on different comment threads… perhaps I should have just confined my energies to CTC… Anyway, back to your questions! :-)

    I have been trying to find evidence to either explicitly verify *or* refute the claim that St. Irenaeus’s quote about Rome is a Latin interpolation and, at present, I have been unable to find that evidence. For the sake of the conversation though, so that we won’t remain at a perpetual stalemate, based on one or two quotes, I will leave Irenaeus’s words aside, and move on to other testimonies to the importance of apostolic succession in the early Church.

    You write:

    The other quotes allude to the fact that they were keepers of the message of Christ. It does not allude to an office of authority, but an office of stewardship. In fact Turtillian in Demurrer Against the Heretics 20 says that to be an apostolic church (which means that they were not planted by a succession but a group of people maybe??? idk) one must subscribe to the message of the gospel, and that “it is on this account only that they will be able to deem themselves apostolic, as being the offspring of apostolic churches.” Moreover, correct doctrine comes solely from ” its origin in the tradition of the apostles” (ibid. 21) How would this fit into the Roman Catholic structure?
    The succession lists are to verify succession of the correct message, not where the correct authority lies. Thoughts?

    Specifically, about Tertullian, you are understanding him to say that the determination of which churches are “apostolic” is based on the message that they are preaching alone, *as opposed to* the question of whether or not they have apostolic succession. If the particular words which you quoted were all that Tertullian had written on the subject, I might be understanding his words exactly as you are. (I think that that would be a misunderstanding of the passage on my part, but I am certainly fallible!)

    However, in the interest and pursuit of greater clarity on the subject, at the same page for which I provided the link for you earlier (and, actually, as part of the same work, “Demurrer Against the Heretics”), Tertullian writes:

    “But if there be any [heresies] which are bold enough to plant [their origin] in the midst of the apostolic age, that they may thereby seem to have been handed down by the apostles, because they existed in the time of the apostles, we can say: Let them produce the original records of their churches; let them unfold the roll of their bishops, running down in due succession from the beginning in such a manner that [their first] bishop shall be able to show for his ordainer and predecessor some one of the apostles or of apostolic men—a man, moreover, who continued steadfast with the apostles. For this is the manner in which the apostolic churches transmit their registers: as the church of Smyrna, which records that Polycarp was placed therein by John; as also the church of Rome, which makes Clement to have been ordained in like manner by Peter” (ibid., 32).

    (Source: https://www.churchfathers.org/category/the-church-and-the-papacy/apostolic-succession/)

    In this passage, Tertullian explicitly appeals to the succession of bishops for dealing with heretics of his time who would claim to be “apostolic.”

    St. Augustine does the same thing (appealing to “the succession of priests, from the very see of the apostle Peter…. up to the present episcopate,” in this passage on the same page:

    “[T]here are many other things which most properly can keep me in [the Catholic Church’s] bosom. The unanimity of peoples and nations keeps me here. Her authority, inaugurated in miracles, nourished by hope, augmented by love, and confirmed by her age, keeps me here. The succession of priests, from the very see of the apostle Peter, to whom the Lord, after his resurrection, gave the charge of feeding his sheep [John 21:15–17], up to the present episcopate, keeps me here. And last, the very name Catholic, which, not without reason, belongs to this Church alone, in the face of so many heretics, so much so that, although all heretics want to be called ‘Catholic,’ when a stranger inquires where the Catholic Church meets, none of the heretics would dare to point out his own basilica or house” (Against the Letter of Mani Called “The Foundation” 4:5 [A.D. 397]).

    These sorts of passages are found throughout the early Church Fathers. In the face of them, a Protestant could simply claim that from very early on in Christianity, historically speaking, believers became infected with the lie of “apostolic succession,” and that they did not even begin to recover from this lie until the Reformation. I have actually heard this claim, in person, from one old Protestant friend (who, alas, can no longer, in good conscience, consider me to be a brother in Christ, because I have returned to the Catholic Church, but that is another issue).

    As a Catholic revert, I must say that such an assertion of severe, widespread “falling away” in the early Church, and “restoration” at the Reformation, now seems to me to be somewhat Mormon-esque, in terms of its implications for how God works in relation to the Church. It is simply not a credible, tenable proposition to me.

    When I was a Calvinist, quite honestly, I was more given to accepting such Protestant propositions, because largely (without fully realizing it at the time), I took my personal interpretation of Scripture to be the clearest reading of Scripture *itself*– and, therefore, to me, at that time, any Church Father who disagreed with *my* interpretation of Scripture was simply “disagreeing with Scripture.”

    However, as I continued to study both Scripture and the early Church Fathers (who were the earliest Christian Scriptural exegetes, after the first apostles), I had to begin to seriously ask myself if so many men, who were in much, much closer historical proximity to Jesus and His disciples than Martin Luther, John Calvin, and certainly *me*, could all be seriously wrong, in multiple areas, in their understanding of Scripture…! For this reason, even though I am Catholic, I can very much understand Protestants who seriously study both Scripture and the early Church Fathers and finally become Eastern Orthodox. It is harder for me to understand Protestants who seriously study the ECF’s and happily continue as Protestants– unless, of course, they allow their own personal interpretation of Scripture to simply trump all competing evidence (which I did, as a Protestant, admittedly, though again, without fully realizing it at the time, and without looking very deeply *into* the ECF’s).

  486. Chad,

    Thanks for the response. I am also Protestant, and was being a bit facetious with the Dagon comment. My point was that too often Protestant apologists focus on why the RCC can’t be what it says it is, rather than providing positive evidence for Protestantism, and specifically with regard to the heresy and schism question, which is another way of asking how we can know what is Truth regarding God, man, and God’s plan for salvation.
    Your response is another example of a negative argument against the RCC (no magisterium in the OT, therefore no magisterium in the NT, therefore RCC paradigm not valid). This argument may be 100% correct, but it does not address the question I asked.

    Burton

  487. #478

    Burton: Remember, we have already proved that the RCC is apostate and not even in contention as a viable alternative, so negative arguments against Rome are, in this scenario, completely irrelevant.

    I reflected on my first conversion. I found that I could not use the names of God for curses or conversational tools. I found that I was honoring the 10 commandments without being coerced. I honored them because I wanted to honor them as a way of honoring God Who gave them. He saved me. He loved me. He wanted me with Him. He wanted the same for everyone as He wanted for me. He wants to save them. He loves them and wants them to know it. He wants to be with them.

    I thought of that when I reflected on your response above. Who are “we?” I read back to 455 and failed to find “we” anywhere.

    When I was a evangelical, a fair number of my coreligionists were former Catholics. Interestingly enough they were willing to trash the Catholic Church for anything and everything, including things which were opposites. That took me by surprise. How could A be both true and not true? For instance, how could all the women be locked up in convents and be barefoot and pregnant all the time? I was not aware of any barefoot pregnant nuns with scads of children running around them in the convents in which they were locked up. Yet that was what some would have had me believe.

    It was at that point that I embarked on a study. I was and am a disciple of Christ Jesus, Who is the Way, the Truth and the Life. If He is the Truth, and scripture certainly states exactly that, then I, as a disciple, have an obligation to the Truth. If I lie, it is not the Truth I am serving. I am serving someone else, the “father of lies,” should I fail to seek, grasp and promote the Truth. Merely blaming someone or something with any allegation that is handy won’t work.

    There is an additional consideration here. In Hebrews, we are told that “there is One Lawgiver and Judge Who is the Judge of all.” I have always, including my time in evangelicalism, seen that statement as limiting me. I am not that Lawgiver. I am not that Judge. Indeed, that Lawgiver and Judge told me in scripture that the judgment I give is the judgment I will be given.

    If He is the Lawgiver and Judge Who is Judge of all and He is telling me the Truth about how I have to look at everything, then my practice should be (and has been) to forgive anyone who has harmed me, and to ask for the wit to apologize and where necessary to make restitution to anyone I have sinned against. The Lord’s prayer asks Him to forgive us our debts as we forgive those in debt to us.

    So as I worked my way through Father Hardon’s Catholic Catechism, I found the Church being blamed for things the Church had not done and, if my own reading was correct, would not condone. If I was truly a servant of the Truth, then I could not blame the Catholic Church for the things I was hearing since it was not responsible for them. The Catholic Church might justly be condemned for what it was wrong about, but should never be blamed for what it was innocent of.

    An amazing thing occurred. I found sympathy for the Catholic Church. I personally don’t like being blamed for things I haven’t done and I could see no reason to blame the Catholic Church for things it had not done. I thought then, and think now, that blaming the innocent is evil. It is in fact how our Lord was treated. He was innocent yet we blamed Him and then we killed Him.

    However it became worse (or better depending on one’s point of view). I managed to figure out that while God is not limited by His creation, His normative means of giving grace was through the Church He founded. He gave it powers. It could forgive sins in His Name. It could confect the new Passover, feeding us with the Lamb of God Who takes away the sins of the world. It could make binding decisions, such as the decision made at the Jerusalem Council which negated the push to have all Gentiles first submit to Mosaic teaching and practice (re circumcision), and found that decision promulgated to all the Churches. You can get to our Lord without going through Moses.

    Later it defined what was and what was not scripture. Scripture came from the Church which, under the direction of the Holy Spirit, defined the canon.

    So per Matthew 18 and John 20:23 and Acts, the Church, acting for her Lord and Head and under the power and inspiration of the Holy Spirit, was doing exactly what our Lord had told it to do.

    At that point I was no longer a Protestant. I submitted myself to the Church. Does that condemn anyone else? Remember that I am not the Lawgiver and Judge. I would, however, be condemned if I had not submitted to the Church which I see as part of the Truth Who is its Head. It is His Body I joined, and factually, I was outside of that Body when I started this particular search.

    Does everyone get to see this the way I saw it? I don’t know. What will happen to you? No idea. One plants, one waters but it is the Lord Who gives the increase. I won’t convert you, neither am I your judge.

    If someone converts, it is because God said something to that person who heard Him and responded. There are myriads of scriptural, theological and historical reasons for converting, and I found a lot of them, but in the end it is a personal thing, or perhaps better, a Person to person thing. I thought I had found Him and discovered I had merely found the trail which I needed to follow. He left the bread crumbs I needed to continue the effort until I found Him in His household and recognized it as such.

    He loves me. He wants me to be with Him. He loves us all. He wants all of us to be with Him, and He has room for us all. He has provided a normative means for giving us the grace to persevere through this life into the life to come. I was graced to find that and given the mother wit to respond to it.

    Cordially,

    dt

  488. David Meyer @ 476

    Hi David,

    I presume that what you mean by your understanding of “this doctrine” is the Catholic doctrine on forgiveness of sins. Is that right? If so, please enlighten me. Is it the one in Tobit or is it the one in the Catechism? Remember to please give me a Magisterial source, and not your best guess.

    BTW – before I am descended upon for oversimplifying, I fully understand that the Catholic doctrine of forgiveness of sins includes much more than this i.e. baptism, corporal works of mercy, the Mass, etc. I am just being brief to maintain focus.

    Peace.

  489. Mike Liccione @ 479 writes:

    What the men here have been giving you is their opinions about how Tobit 12:9 is to be interpreted.

    Fair enough, Mike. But why would Catholics, who have the supposed advantage of a teaching Magisterium and a formal IP, be reduced to their mere opinions on a matter of such consequence – the forgiveness of sin? Surely on such an important topic there is some place where they can get a definitive answer. Isn’t there?

    You have noticed that the Magisterium has not given a de fide ruling on how each and every assertion in Scripture is to be understood.

    I have in fact.

    What do you suppose they have been doing these past 2000 years if it hasn’t been the learning and teaching of the Bible? I mean, really. We are only talking about 66 books (73 in your case). Why can’t a divinely inspired organization do at least that much with two millennia and the leading of the Holy Spirit at their disposal?
    So what does it mean, Mike, when Rome gives a de fide ruling on the corpus of Scripture but then demures on the particulars? It sounds a lot like buying a warranty for your car where you’re not sure what parts are covered!

    The Magisterium operates by gradually clarifying controversial matters over time, and does so in dialogue with theologians (both orthodox and heretical) and the faithful.

    OK. How much time does Rome need to clarify the controversial matter of the forgiveness of sins? Another 2000 years? When do you think that they might have the doctrine of Scripture done? Right now we’re caught somewhere between “partim-partim” and “material sufficiency”. Is that on the docket? I’m tempted to mention the confusion about the Eucharist, too, but let’s hold off on that.

    That is a defect only if it’s possible to have every such question answered neatly and fully from the start.

    So you mean to tell me, Mike, that on issues so central to the Christian faith as the forgiveness of sin and the doctrine of Scripture you believe God could let His church languish? For 2000 years it cannot resolve Tobit vs. the Catechism. It’s a very troubling IP, Mike, that fails on so many fundamental levels.

    Peace.

  490. Garrison @ 480 writes:

    The Church does not rule on every little verse in Scripture or even every doctrine that a bishop, priest, or theologian may posit unless it causes controversy.

    OK, how about the big ones like those that deal with the forgiveness of sin? Why don’t they at least do those?

    There is freedom in this IP for debate, which is why you can get varying answers from the posters here on what exactly is going on here.

    Cool. So you disagree with Mr. Liccione’s submissive-to-Rome IP. Good to know.

    Peace to you.

  491. Benjamin Keil @ 484

    Hi Benjamin,

    I think you misunderstand me. I am not exegeting a passage of Scripture. I’m simply asking Mike Liccione and others to make good on their claims that the Magisterium is the teaching authority of the church. Surely there are few more important doctrines for the Christian church than the doctrine of the forgiveness of sin. Tobit 12:9 is taken by Catholics as, to use Mr. Liccione’s words, the “innerant Word of God”. Fair enough. I take him at his word. But neither he, nor any of the other interlocutors has been able to show, according to their own epistemological system, where I can either confirm or deny the veracity of Tobit 12:9. All I get is, gee, well, it depends.

    So to your “larger point” that the Church “…*can* authoritatively exegete the Bible if needed” who gets to decide that need? Isn’t the forgiveness of sins of sufficient weight to warrant even a nod from the Magisterium? Or don’t you think that the very nature of Scripture would be something the “divinely protected” teaching authority could take a position on? Apparently, on your paradigm, it’s ok that Rome has taken a pass on a primary issue relating to salvation – the forgiveness of sin and that it let’s you languish about the nature and extent of Scripture.

    And I’m afraid, Benjamin, that you badly misunderstand Christian epistemology. The Christian doctrine is that God enlightens those He will so that they can have the surety of true knowledge. (See Peter’s sermon in Acts 2.) The certainty of God’s knowledge is imparted by Him to those He chooses and it is confirmed by a) the faithful preaching of the Word and b.) the faithful reception by God’s people, the Holy Spirit effectuating both. Because synods and councils have in fact erred, they have proven they are not to be trusted.
    The best example of that is the direct contradiction between Trent and Vatican I on the interpretation of Scripture. I’ll save that for later but suffice it to say, in philosophical language, you as a Roman Catholic are commanded, under threat of excommunication to believe both X and not-X.

    Peace.

  492. Constantine-

    I found this verse listed in the Catechism of the Council of Trent. The section referred to is breaking down the Lord’s prayer, specifically, the verse “and we also forgive our debtors”. I have pasted the section below which is found on page 564 under question XXIII, “What are the chief remedies to heal the wounds of soul?”

    It should next be considered, that the weaker men are, and the more liable to diseases of the mind, the greater the necessity they are under of having recourse to numerous and frequent remedies. The remedies of a sickening soul are penance and the eucharist; and to these, therefore, the faithful people should have frequent recourse. Almsdeeds also, as the sacred Scriptures declare, are an efficacious remedy for healing the wounds of the soul; and those, therefore, who desire to offer up this prayer piously, should act kindly to the poor according to their means; for, of the great efficacy of alms in effacing the stains of sin, we have in Tobit the testimony of holy Raphael, the angel of the Lord, who says: Alms deliver from death, and shall purge away all sin; those that exercise alms and righteousness shall be filled with life.

    Buckley, T. A. (1852). The Catechism of the Council of Trent (564–565). London: George Routledge and Co.

    Seems as though this ties in the Scraments and almsgiving as others have stated.

    God Bless,

    Dave

  493. Chad (re: #481):

    I’ll follow the usual format…

    More questions: so, it is more of an epistemological question I see. In other words, one cannot not truly have correct doctrine unless it comes from the church, or agrees with what the church has already said. I understand that you are arguing that they are built on different paradigms. At one time in history they were not, that is my point. Ignatius of Antioch proves this fact without question when he said that Bishops do not have authority over other bishoprics. One day, a man, or a group of men, decided that Rome would be The See. Thoughts? Now onto a couple of questions.

    I don’t see how the acknowledgement of the authority of bishops proves that the Church at some point in time did not recognize a Magisterial teaching authority of the Church. Moreover what Ignatius describes was reaffirmed at Trent. See the Council of Trent, Session VI, Chapter 5: “No bishop is allowed under pretext of any privilege to exercise pontifical functions in the diocese of another, except with the expressed permission of the ordinary of the place, and for those persons only who are subject to the same ordinary. If the contrary is done, the bishop is ipso jure suspended from the exercise of pontifical functions and those so ordained from the exercise of their orders.”

    Also, the office of Peter and the Apostles as the bedrock of the Catholic Church was decided one day by a man named Jesus Christ. :)

    1) Would it be correct to assume that any gospel besides the one that the Roman Catholic Church teaches is another gospel? If so, is there no salvation outside of the Catholic Church? Would that say that you were never a true believer until you became Catholic?

    Yes, if someone teaches a gospel that is contrary to that taught by the Church, then it is a false gospel. But this does not preclude the fact that some ecclesial communities teach an incomplete or unbalanced gospel (emphasizing certain aspects over others, etc.). There is no salvation outside of the Church, but through baptism those who are not in communion with the Catholic Church can be said to participate in the graces of the sacrament; and in this way, they are saved through the Church. I would not say that I was never a ‘true believer’ until I entered the Catholic Church, rather, I would say that apart from the Sacraments and the Church I was a believer deprived of the fullness of grace.

    2) If we are unable to have the correct interpretation on our own, how did you come up with the correct interpretation? How would anyone come up with it? I say that the Spirit of God gave it, the same as a Catholic would, so the only determining factor is that the Church is the only one with the keys. If this is so, wouldn’t that place the Eastern Orthodox Church (which is the earlier church) in the same camp as the Protestants?

    I never said that it is impossible to have the correct interpretation of Scripture on a given subject outside of the Church, only that it is impossible to know whether a certain interpretation is correct outside of the Church’s authority given to her by God. In other words, apart from the living voice of the Church, there is no way for me to distinguish my private interpretation from human opinion. EO does not represent an older strand of the Christian tradition than does Rome. They represent two geographic areas that both trace back to the apostles. The difference between EO and Protestants is that Eastern Orthodox consider the first seven ecumenical councils to be binding–on this they agree with Rome.

    3) Along these same lines, what do we do with the historical fact that the Church sold bishoprics to non-believers for money, land, and power? Should the Church still do this? Or the fact that half the Church were Arian? Or the Pelagian controversy? Why could that same thing not happen today? In other words, could the Church present be wrong about what she has bound? If not, why was this normal in the early church and not today?

    There’s no denying that there was corruption in the Church and continues to be corruption; this is the result of a Church filled with sinful people. Most of the bishops were Arian at a certain point in time during the Arian controversy, but you don’t see an ecumenical Arian Creed… This is precisely the point, the Church is guided by the Holy Spirit and is kept from error. It’s not a question of majority, but a question of the infallible teaching office established by Christ. The Church never declared Arianism or Pelagianism to be orthodox doctrine so I’m not entirely sure what you’re point is…

    Moreover, even today there are heretics and schismatics who act in the same way that the Pelagians and Arians did. They point to Scripture over the Apostolic Tradition that has been handed down and believe that it is possible for the visible Church to go astray into error.

    I would love to be a Roman Catholic. I would. I am just trying to figure out why the present Church is so drastically different from the early one. To say that the Church in the past was forming the present one would say that the Church present has arrived and is without error (sin).

    That’s great! To be perfectly frank, I think it is your perception of the Catholic Church that is so drastically different from the Early Church, not the Church herself. I’m not entirely sure what you mean by “the Church in the past was forming the present one,” so I will not comment on that. Anyway, let me know when you’re free via Facebook.

    Pax.

  494. Constantine (#490),

    OK, how about the big ones like those that deal with the forgiveness of sin? Why don’t they at least do those?

    I believe you know what the Catechism says (or at least how to find it) about how sins are forgiven and how charitable acts (such as almsgiving) play into all this. Also, Dave’s citation of the Catechism of the Council of Trent in #492 is from a magisterial document citing the very verse you brought up. As for what is essential/what is not and what is a “big” doctrine/what is not, who are you to decide such a thing? Who are you to tell the Church it’s time to infallibly define a dogma? It seems like you want to play the “gotcha” game. I’m not interested, thanks.

    But neither he, nor any of the other interlocutors has been able to show, according to their own epistemological system, where I can either confirm or deny the veracity of Tobit 12:9. All I get is, gee, well, it depends.

    Well, according to our IP, the veracity of Tobit 12:9 is already a given. As you seem to be playing “gotcha”, that last comment is a bit uncharitable, no? Regardless, you’ve gotten a direct answer from the Magisterium itself on this issue. Others can explain it better should you wish it.

    Why yes, I do submit to the One, Holy, Catholic, and Apostolic Church in communion with the Bishop of Rome.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  495. Constantine,

    I think you are looking for a Protestant Magisterium, whereby it views the Bible as a medium for its exegetical “magic”. In other words, since the Catholic Magisterium doesn’t act like a Protestant Magisterium, spending its days exegeting the Bible ad naseum as you would wish (and as Protestant Magisteria do), to you, the Catholic Magisterium seems irrelevant or superfluous. But, you miss the point of the Magisterium of Christ’s Church.

    For one, the Bible is not a textbook for the Church to continuously act upon, but rather a Book that continually acts upon it. The Apostles, themselves, did not treat the O.T. this way nor did they presume to exhaustively and definitively exegete single passages of Scripture (except in rare cases, see Joel 2). Instead, the Apostles themselves, acting on the authority given them by Christ, expounded the teachings of the Church — for which the Scriptures and Tradition give witness. This did not make their authority superfluous, given that they did not give to the first Christians a textbook of exegetical definitions. So, it gives the Catholic great comfort that the Church’s Magisterium, throughout all time (starting with the Apostles), acts with great prudence when approaching the deposit of faith; not as some kind of unwieldy prophet, but as a prudent shepherd under the headship of Christ.

    Peace to you on your journey,

    Brent

  496. Constantine (#479):

    On the matter of interpreting Tobit 12:9, the replies of Garrison (#494) and Brent (#495) are more than adequate. I would add that from the fact, if it were a fact, that there is no official teaching about how to interpret Tobit 12:9, it would not follow that the Church’s general doctrine on the forgiveness of sins is too unclear to be helpful. As Garrison points out, that doctrine is readily accessible, and we know you know it. But in fact, there is a specific teaching: not only in the Tridentine catechism, as indicated by Dave in #492, but also in the CCC (§1434) and in St. Polycarp’s letter to the Philippians. Considered in context, all of those statements have been set forth by the the ordinary and universal magisterium of the Church. So I was just wrong to imply that all we have on this particular matter are “opinions.” I apologize for being careless and misleading you.

    I’d like to believe that you’re truly interested in learning how Catholic theologians expound this issue credibly. If you bother to read Marshall and Anderson as I suggested, you’ll get a good picture of how. But I agree with Garrison that you seem more interested in playing “gotcha.” Further evidence of that is this: “Right now we’re caught somewhere between “partim-partim” and “material sufficiency”. Is that on the docket?”

    As I’m sure you know, the Fathers at Trent did consider using the construction partim…partim (“partly…partly”) to express how Scripture and Tradition respectively transmit divine revelation to us. They dropped that in favor of saying, more broadly, that Scripture “and” (et) unwritten tradition do so. Nor has the Church has never ruled on whether Scripture alone is “materially sufficient” for that same purpose, despite the fact that many fathers and doctors of the Church have held that position. In my view, there’s a very good reason for such a state of affairs: what’s clearly and antecedently true about Scripture and Tradition makes the choice between partim-partim and material sufficiency moot.

    For one thing, partim-partim could mean either (a) Scripture and Tradition each contain aspects of the deposit of faith (DF) that the other does not, or (b) Each contains the entire DF, but in different, mutually irreducible ways. Notice that (b) is actually compatible with material sufficiency, but (a) is not. But if Scripture is materially but not formally sufficient, then something beyond Scripture is needed to make explicit those aspects of the DF which are only implicit in Scripture; and whatever that is, it would have to come from Tradition. So, whether or not the Bible is materially sufficient, Tradition is needed for conveying the DF–unless, of course, Scripture is formally sufficient, a thesis that really is incompatible with Catholicism. Hence Trent’s relatively noncommittal formula.

    Though that result fails to satisfy people who want to nail the matter down more firmly, its wisdom becomes clearer in light of the inherent ambiguity of the term ‘Tradition’ itself. In one sense, the term means whatever has been “handed on” (traditum) from Christ through the Apostles and the Church as belonging to the DF; in another, it means what’s been handed on that isn’t also recorded in Scripture. Tradition includes Scripture in the first sense though not, of course, the second. But given that Scripture does record at least a good deal of what’s been handed on as belonging to the DF, and that Scripture has itself been handed on to us, one could just as well say that Scripture is simply the most normative written medium of “Tradition.” That is why Vatican II was wise to take only a small step beyond Trent with the following: “Sacred tradition and Sacred Scripture form one sacred deposit of the word of God, committed to the Church” (Dei Verbum §10). On the Catholic understanding, there’s really nothing to be gained by trying to be more precise than that.

    That appears as a defect only if you’re the sort of Protestant who believes that the matter can and ought to be more precise than that. But it’s rather idle to imagine that you’ve scored a point by showing yourself to be that sort of Protestant. Criticizing the Magisterium on such grounds just begs the question.

    Best,
    Mike

  497. Dave @ 492

    Hi Dave,

    Thanks very much for the citation and for doing the research. I’m glad to have that knowledge.

    But I hope you don’t mind me pointing out that now we have TWO Magisterial sources that are distinct and yet both claim the ability to forgive “all” sins.

    I don’t have time to write out the entire script, but I’d like you to imagine a conversation between a bishop and a congregant. The bishop asks, “When do you plan to make your next Sacrament of Reconciliation?”. The congregant replies, “I don’t. I give alms.” Would the congregant be wrong to tell his bishop he would never again go to confession because almsgiving – as you point out from your Magisterial source – forgives all sins? If “all sins” are forgiven that way, what’s the point of Confession?

    I hope Joshua Lim is reading this. The poor guy is looking for certainty in all the wrong places.

    Thanks again, Dave, for the citation.

    Peace.

  498. Constatine,

    Of course Joshua Lim is reading this and hopefully many other people. Hopefully many non-Catholics are reading this and as a result moving closer to the truth of the Catholic Church. So, we’re agreed in our hope for people reading this article and the comments.

    I think at this point its obvious that you are looking for contradiction and confusion where none can be found. None of us Catholics are confused about how sins are forgiven. Why not ask you Catholic neighbors if they are terribly confused about Tobit and almsgiving and whether that means that there is no need for the sacrament of reconciliation?

  499. Constantine,

    I don’t know what you are trying to prove, but let’s see what your Protestant Bible has to say about “forgiveness of sins”:

    1. “The priest shall make atonement before the Lord…that he may be forgiven” -Numbers 15:28
    2. “baptism of repentance for the forgiveness of sins.” -Mark 1:4, Luke 3:3, Acts 2:38
    3. forgiveness of sins in lieu of others faith -Mark 2:5
    4. “her sins…have been forgiven for she loved much” -Luke 7:47
    5. Apostles forgiving sins -John 20:23
    6. “Believes in him…receives forgiveness of sins” -Acts 10:43
    7. “prayer of faith” forgives sins -James 5:15
    8. Confession -1 John 1:9

    Alms giving could be included under 4 or 6 (a sign of love and faith), or as a Catholic, I can add it as #8. Moreover, I’m sure you wouldn’t argue that your version of Scripture is ‘all over the place’ or ‘not perspicuous’…or is it???

    Cheers,

    Brent

  500. Brent.

    Exactly.

    Constantine. Your whole line of argument is employing a ‘zero-sum’ approach which if applied to scritpure alone as some popular atheists like to do, leads to some pretty ridiculous conclusions.

  501. Constantine (re#497):

    Perhaps you are not aware of the distinction the Church teaches between the eternal and temporal effects of sin. Confession and absolution remove the eternal punishment due for sin (loss of agape), but the temporal effects remain. These temporal effects might be injury to another, or injury to the self, such as the corruption of the imagination caused by viewing pornography. This distinction between the eternal and temporal effects of sin is found in the quote from Trent:

    It should next be considered, that the weaker men are, and the more liable to diseases of the mind, the greater the necessity they are under of having recourse to numerous and frequent remedies. The remedies of a sickening soul are penance and the eucharist; and to these, therefore, the faithful people should have frequent recourse. Almsdeeds also, as the sacred Scriptures declare, are an efficacious remedy for healing the wounds of the soul

    Note that penance and the Eucharist are listed as the primary remedies for sin – they address the loss of agape. This is followed by almsdeeds, which are recommended for “healing the wounds of the soul.” These “wounds” are the lingering temporal effects of sin, which can be healed by acts of charity (almsdeeds), pious prayer, and other devotional practices. There is no contradiction. Your misunderstanding seems to be rooted in your ignorance of the distinction between the eternal and temporal effects of sin that the Church teaches.

    On a side note, I find your sarcasm unbecoming in a dialogue among Christians and I hope you will not continue down that path.

    Pax Christi,
    Frank

  502. Joshua Lim, Sean Patrick, et al:

    Let’s compare two different paradigms of decision-making:

    i) On one paradigm, you make decisions based on reason and evidence. You inform yourself about alternatives. You compare the advantages and disadvantages of each alternative in reference to the other alternatives. Then you opt for what seems to be the best overall choice.

    ii) On another paradigm, you investigate different cartomancers in your area. You use your reason to decide which one is the most convenient and affordable.

    Having relied on reason to make that initial decision, you then rely on the cartomancer to make all your subsequent decisions for you. Whenever you have important decisions to make, you schedule a session with your personal cartomancer for a Tarot card reading. This is “manifestly superior” to the first method because you can always ask her follow-up questions to clarify ambiguities. She can always lay another card on the table and explain its significance to your situation. You can be certain of what each cards means.

    Of course, there’s just little catch in this decision-making paradigm. It’s only as reliable as cartomancy.

    Catholics like Stamper and Liccione are like clients of a Tarot card reader. Yes, they can always get “answers” from their cartomancer, but if the source is untrustworthy, then they’re moving ever further from the truth.

    The above is an excerpt from this post: Tarot Card Catholicism.. Although it’s rather lengthy, please do read it all.

    If there’s a desire to refute the above analogy and engage the author, then please do so at the link above.

    Pax.

  503. In case anyone missed it, Brent Stubbs has already rebutted the aforementioned argument: see this comment.

  504. Andrew Preslar, #503,

    I suggested to Brent Stubbs that he post his rebuttal on the referenced post to see how it holds up.

    Pax.

  505. TUAD.

    In just about every comment you’ve made here you have attempted to get somebody to visit “Triablogue.” Why is that?

    Instead of trying to get one of us to go to that blog why not just argue your case for the validity of their argument here?

    The magesterium is like a Tarrot Card reader? Is that really the argument?

  506. PS. I was ‘banned’ from ‘Triablogue’ years ago. So, I cannot make a defense against the ‘Tarrot Card’ arugment even if I wanted to do so on ‘Triablogue.’

    For as much as people on that site read ‘Called to Communion’ and post their own brand of commentary, they very rarely step out and make their arguments where they can actually be challenged in any fruitful way.

    So, instead of begging us to go there why not ask your friends to make their arguments here? John Bugay has been posting here a bit lately, and I am glad for it.

  507. TUAD,

    I looked at that post, and found it rather bizarre. It consists of a string of responses to comments made on various posts here at Called to Communion. Wouldn’t it be much more natural, for someone who truly wants to engage these arguments and counter-arguments to see how they hold up, to do so on the forum in which they are being made? Or, we could set up a third blog, (re)copying and (re)pasting all of the comments that have been copied and pasted from this one, together with the responses, and then submit comments asking everyone to please post their responses on the third blog, to see how they hold up. But that would be redundant, right?

    Anyway, that’s all I have to say about that.

    Andrew

  508. TUAD,

    I think Called to “Confusion” works for me. ; )

    Plus, I like to pick my watering holes.

  509. Sean Patrick: “In just about every comment you’ve made here you have attempted to get somebody to visit “Triablogue.” Why is that?”

    Triablogue is an unmoderated blog. I have a distinct preference for unmoderated blogs.

    “I was ‘banned’ from ‘Triablogue’ years ago.”

    Why were you banned Sean Patrick?

    “For as much as people on that site read ‘Called to Communion’ and post their own brand of commentary, they very rarely step out and make their arguments where they can actually be challenged in any fruitful way.”

    Let’s invite folks from this site to step out and to make their arguments (eg. Brent Stubbs’s rebuttal) elsewhere, whereby they can actually be challenged in a fruitful way. Simply taking your statement and mirroring it back upon the CtC bloggers here.

    “John Bugay has been posting here a bit lately, and I am glad for it.”

    Would it be too much to have the CtC bloggers reciprocate and interact with John Bugay on his blog?

    Andrew Preslar: “Or, we could set up a third blog, (re)copying and (re)pasting all of the comments that have been copied and pasted from this one, together with the responses, and then submit comments asking everyone to please post their responses on the third blog, to see how they hold up. But that would be redundant, right?”

    Would you want me to set up a third blog? I’ll also make it unmoderated to boot. If the Called to Communion bloggers will post on a third-party blog, I’ll be happy to set it up for everyone. Just say the word.

    Brent: “I think Called to “Confusion” works for me. ; )

    Plus, I like to pick my watering holes.”

    The Living Water is better for you elsewhere. ;-)

  510. Constantine #497

    Hi Constantine:

    You are welcome for the citation. I would affirm Frank’s thorough explanation of the distinction between the eternal and temporal effects of sin in# 501. You can read more in the Cathechism of the Catholic Church paragraphs 1440-1477 for more information on the Sacrament of Reconciliation and temporal punishment.

    God Bless,

    Dave

  511. Michael Liccione @ 496
    You wrote:

    So I was just wrong to imply that all we have on this particular matter are “opinions.” I apologize for being careless and misleading you.

    No apology necessary but I do appreciate the thought. Because you and I will necessarily disagree and we both have deeply held convictions there is always the danger of misunderstanding. Please know that I do not hold any personal animus toward you as strongly as I may contest your beliefs.

    I’d like to believe that you’re truly interested in learning how Catholic theologians expound this issue credibly. If you bother to read Marshall and Anderson as I suggested, you’ll get a good picture of how.

    I am truly interested. If we were acquainted you might be surprised at my Catholic bona fides. And I assure you that I am a serious student. But my journey has been the reverse of Joshua’s as you might have suspected. And I further promise to read Marshall and Anderson.

    As to your thoughtful explanation of Trent, partim-partim, etc. thank you for that, too. I hope you will pardon me for not regurgitating that which is a disagreement between us on the meaning of Tradition. Perhaps another time.

    You do, however, close with this:

    On the Catholic understanding, there’s really nothing to be gained by trying to be more precise than that. (definition of Scripture).

    I wonder if a simple person like me, sitting in the pew at Mass, would come to that conclusion? How is somebody like me, who genuinely wants to know how I get my sins forgiven (on the Catholic paradigm) to resolve this very real dilemma? It seems, taking Garrison’s approach as you earlier recommended, I would be well within the obligation of my Magisterial submission to give alms profusely and stop going to Confession. Now, I know, that the very thought will cause a good Catholic to shudder. But you surely can’t say that is an errant conclusion. After all, the inerrant Scripture says it and the Magisterium backs it up (according to Garrison). So the path is legitimately open to me to make a private decision based on my good conscience. And I haven’t found any Magisterial resource that would save me from my own devices.

    Lastly, I’d like to thank you for allowing me to participate. I owe a response to a few other friends but after that I may take my leave of this thread. My suspicions have been confirmed and I am grateful to have had your attention.

    Peace to you and yours.

  512. Constantine.

    I approved this comment but noticed you have 4 more submitted on this topic aimed at different people all saying pretty much the same thing.

    Its safe to say that your imagined tension between Tobit and the sacrament of reconciliation has been answered repeatedly in many different ways. We’re obviously at an impasse. If you were reading Tobit one day and became genuinely concerned about the forgiveness of sins then I suggest you look over the material and citations provided already in response to your inquiry.

  513. Constantine (#511):

    Thank you for being gracious.

    Regarding the Magisterium’s treatment of the partim-partim/material sufficiency issue, I had written and you quote:

    On the Catholic understanding, there’s really nothing to be gained by trying to be more precise than that. (definition of Scripture).

    You replied:

    I wonder if a simple person like me, sitting in the pew at Mass, would come to that conclusion? How is somebody like me, who genuinely wants to know how I get my sins forgiven (on the Catholic paradigm) to resolve this very real dilemma? It seems, taking Garrison’s approach as you earlier recommended, I would be well within the obligation of my Magisterial submission to give alms profusely and stop going to Confession. Now, I know, that the very thought will cause a good Catholic to shudder. But you surely can’t say that is an errant conclusion.

    That’s just off topic. It has nothing to do with the issue addressed in the remark I had made and that you quoted. But as has been made clear in this thread, the Magisterium has interpreted Tobit 12:9 officially, so that the tiny minority of Catholics who might concern themselves with the issue have an official resource for resolving it. Moreover, the “dilemma” you pose for such Catholics is no dilemma at all.

    From the fact that, according to the Magisterium, one can obtain forgiveness of sins by means other than sacramental confession, it does not follow that sacramental confession is never necessary for obtaining forgiveness of sins. One could consistently say, on the one hand, that sacramental confession is sometimes necessary for the purpose, but on the other hand that the other means specified would suffice when the latter is impracticable. And that, I believe, is the ordinary situation of the Catholic. But at this stage, explaining the details would be of little use. I’m still getting the sense that you still want to find contradictions, obscurities, and dilemmas that just aren’t there.

    I hope and pray that someday your dispositions improve further.

    Best,
    Mike

  514. Constantine (#511),

    I wonder if a simple person like me, sitting in the pew at Mass, would come to that conclusion? How is somebody like me, who genuinely wants to know how I get my sins forgiven (on the Catholic paradigm) to resolve this very real dilemma? It seems, taking Garrison’s approach as you earlier recommended, I would be well within the obligation of my Magisterial submission to give alms profusely and stop going to Confession. Now, I know, that the very thought will cause a good Catholic to shudder. But you surely can’t say that is an errant conclusion.

    No, that is not what my approach entails. The Church teaches the distinction between temporal and eternal effects of sin. Almsgiving remits the former and confession the latter according to Church doctrine. I defer to the Church’s authority in this matter, therefore my approach does not lead where you say it does.

    So the path is legitimately open to me to make a private decision based on my good conscience. And I haven’t found any Magisterial resource that would save me from my own devices.

    No, that is not a legitimate option given that the Church says it is necessary to go to confession.

    There is no contradiction here in Church teaching.

    IC XC NIKA

    Garrison

  515. Referring to T.F. Torrance’s work, “The Doctrine of Grace in the Apostolic Fathers”, I’ve posted two selections that trace the definitions of the word “grace” (χάρις in Greek, or “charis”) as used in different contexts:

    1. χάρις in Classical and Hellenistic Greek usage, including Philo

    2. χάρις in Old Testament and New Testament usage.

    These are long selections, and they deal exclusively with the definitions of “grace” as used both culturally and Biblically.

    This is the first of what I hope will be several follow-up comments on my comment #322 at Called to Communion, where I quoted T.F. Torrance’s summary of 1 Clement’s use of the word “grace” (χάρις in Greek, or “charis”):

    Clement definitely thinks of charis as referring to a gift of God without which the Christian would not be able to attain to love or salvation. But there is little doubt that this is held along with the idea of merit before God; for grace is given to those who perform the commandments of God, and who are worthy. He may use the language of election and justification, but the essentially Greek idea of the unqualified freedom of choice is a natural axiom in his thoughts, and entails a doctrine of “works” as Paul would have said. In all His dealings with men, God is regarded as merciful; but the ground for the Salvation He gives is double: faith and … [ellipses in original]. And so Wustmann is justified in saying of Clement’s theology: “Whoever does the will of God, him shall God bless…” Like the whole mass of Judaistic writers [following Philo’s usage], Clement thinks of God’s mercy as directed only toward the pious; and if he uses the word χάρις, as in Philo, it carries with it the same principle (pgs. 54-55).

    That’s Torrance’s conclusion about 1 Clement. Following that comment, I added, “That concept of being rewarded for being worthy before God [before God will give you grace] is not a concept Paul used; later writers would call that “Pelagian”. But here is “Pope” Clement, a Pelagian before Pelagius.”

    I’ve been asked (Bryan 450 and other places) to show “where in St. Clement’s writings does he show himself to hold a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation?”

    Now, the “Pelagian before Pelagius” is my comment. Torrance did use the word “Pelagian” in his work, but it was applied to his analysis of the “Shepherd of Hermas”. He says, “As a matter of fact, behind his whole position there are elements which clearly anticipate a Pelagian doctrine of man. Such a sentence is revealing. If you lay it down as certain that the commandments can be kept, you will easily keep them and they will not be hard. But if it comes into your heart that they cannot be kept by man, you will not keep them” (see Torrance pg 121).

    Perhaps Clement does not go so far as being “Pelagian”. But Torrance’s argument deals not with the individual writers (both Clement and Hermas wrote in Rome during the years, roughly 96-130 AD), but with the whole range of “Apostolic Fathers” who lived and wrote during the years between the death of the Apostles and the writings of Irenaeus, who is considered in the Cullmann articles I’ve cited to be much more “orthodox” in his theology. And they all have this same quality, which he says “Perfectly sinless must be the man who wants to find grace with God” (as with Philo, quoted here, pg 7 in Torrance)…

    In our era, we are aware of how the meanings of words can change over time. For example, if you were to see the word “gay” in two different pieces of writing, for example, one in 1890 and one in 1990, you would easily take two different meanings away. The word χάρις, or charis, or “grace”, has a very long history and a number of different shades of meaning.

    Torrance’s analysis of the word is 35 pages long; the TDNT (“Theological Dictionary of the New Testament”, Grand Rapids, MI: Wm. B. Eerdmans Publishing, Company, trans. Geoffrey Bromily, © 1974, vol. IX) article on χάρις runs some 30 pages. While Torrance goes into more detail, the TDNT surveys more sources. To be sure, these are not the only sources providing examples of usage of this word over time and in different sources, but they are two of the more significant ones that I am aware of. These are not complete, and many more could be given. What I’ve provided, I think, is sufficient to show how these usages worked for the sake of this discussion.

    The two broad categories I’ve provided show the divergence in meaning that Torrance illustrates.

    The first, Hellenistic usage (including Hellenistic usage and Philo) shows broadly how the concept was used in Greek thought. Philo of Alexandria was a Jewish philosopher, a contemporary of Christ’s, with a wide acquaintance with the works of Greek philosophy. Josephus (“Antiquities of the Jews”, xviii.8, § 1), called him “a man eminent on all accounts” and “one not unskillful in philosophy”. Just here, briefly, I’ll note that among other things, “grace” may be seen as a form of payment, and in Philo the concept even reaches to the point that (in Torrance’s words), “Perfectly sinless must be the man who wants to find grace with God”. TDNT echoes this notion: “Philo can say that χάρις is only for the righteous … One must be worthy of it, otherwise it vanishes”.

    On the contrary, in the Biblical conception, both Old and New Testaments, the concept of grace involves “unsolicited and unaccountable love”. “God’s ‘lovingkindness’ is the fundamental relationship upon which the whole structure of Israelite society rested. Includes [the concepts of] mercy and forgiveness, but the true significance of the hesed of God, is that it is everlasting, determined, unshakeable”. “Though the mountains depart and the hills remove, God’s mercy remains true”. In the New Testament, grace is purely God’s initiative; it is God’s initiative in Christ; “in Christ the divine will has been perfectly fulfilled on our behalf”; it completely takes man by surprise (that is, no effort on man’s part is required to earn this initiative), and it is “the primary and constitutive act in which out of free love God has intervened to set our life on a wholly new basis”.

    So, these are the two different definitions of grace: in the first, one must be deemed worthy of it before one receives it, and in some cases, one must be perfect before one can receive it; in the second, it is completely God’s initiative in Christ to give it freely, by surprise, and permanent.

    For those who are not inclined to trust my summary here, I’ll refer you to my links above for more thorough treatments, although it would really be beneficial to consult both Torrance and TDNT themselves.

    Pelagianism defined

    It will be worth pointing out here how “Pelagianism” is defined, too, and also to note the resemblance between Pelagianism and the Hellenistics/Philonic definition of “grace”. According to CCC 406, “Pelagius held that man could, by the natural power of free will and without the necessary help of God’s grace, lead a morally good life”. And the Catholic Encyclopedia says “In opposition to Pelagianism, it was maintained at the General Council of Carthage in 418 as a principle of faith that Christian grace is absolutely necessary for the correct knowledge and performance of good, and that perfect sinlessness is impossible on earth even for the justified.”

    In Philo, one must be worthy of God’s “graces” before one can receive them. In Pelagianism, man can and must “lead a morally good life”. The two are close in concept.

    What remains now is to work through 1 Clement to see how he uses the concept of “grace”.

  516. Before getting into 1 Clement, I wanted to show a couple of usages from Titus where the Pauline (New Testament) concept of “grace”, especially the notion of how it relates to the notion of “good works”, is particularly clear:

    Titus 2:11-14: For the grace of God has appeared, bringing salvation for all people, training us to renounce ungodliness and worldly passions, and to live self-controlled, upright, and godly lives in the present age, waiting for our blessed hope, the appearing of the glory of our great God and Savior Jesus Christ, who gave himself for us to redeem us from all lawlessness and to purify for himself a people for his own possession who are zealous for good works.

    See how grace works here? It is the grace itself that “brings salvation”, “trains us”. Christ “gave himself” “to redeem us” and “to purify” us. It is God’s initiative that brings Christ in grace, and with Him, all these good things.

    Later in that same letter:

    Titus 3:3-6: For we ourselves were once foolish, disobedient, led astray, slaves to various passions and pleasures, passing our days in malice and envy, hated by others and hating one another. But when the goodness and loving kindness of God our Savior appeared, he saved us, not because of works done by us in righteousness, but according to his own mercy, by the washing of regeneration and renewal of the Holy Spirit, whom he poured out on us richly through Jesus Christ our Savior…

    Again, we were not worthy at all, at which time the goodness and loving kindness of God our Savior appeared, and he saved us, according to his own mercy.

    1 Clement, as we shall see, while using some Paul-like language, sees grace merely as an “opportunity for repentence”.

    The Letter of First Clement
    Torrance introduces the letter of First Clement with these words:

    There seems little doubt that in the early church huge numbers came over to the Christian faith not because they found in Jesus Christ a Gospel of Salvation but because they found there an authoritative word and a pure and lofty faith, before which their own cults simply crumpled up (44).

    Thus, converts come part way, not all the way to Christianity (44).

    All the evidence we have indicates that such was the case with the second century Christians. The Gospel was so overwhelmingly new that it was rarely grasped. [After the departure of the Apostles], Christianity came to mean primarily a faith in the Eternal God who was good and kind and just to all, and with whom there was no respect of persons. In fact, it was a kind of universalized Judaism, in which “the person of Christ is overshadowed and set into the background by the person of the Divine Ruler” (Torrance is here citing Bousset, Kyrios Christos, pg 292)

    It is perhaps in this light that we may best approach the theological position of First Clement. Christ comes often into the purview of our author, and much more so than in The Shepherd of Hermas or the Didache, and moreover, there is some real warmth about his Christianity, but there is also manifest a real default in the apprehension of Christ as Mediator. Christ is certainly the Way to an immortal knowledge of God, but it is the immortal knowledge that is of ultimate significance (44-45).

    At this point, where some may talk of “the voices of the Apostles ringing in their ears”, consider something that Thomas Robinson writes of Ignatius in 107 AD: “There probably were fourth-generation Christians” in Rome, in 96 AD. “The church was established there in the first decade of the Christian movement”, in the 30’s (see my comments on Andronicus), probably beginning about 65 years before this letter was written. If the Apostles who visited Rome died in the mid 60’s, we are still 30+ years down the road from that. And if this is the same Clement who was mentioned in Philippians 4:3, we are talking about a man who, if he was 20 when he knew Paul in 60 AD, is now in his 50’s. Life was brutally short for a lot of people in those days, and given that “Clement” isn’t even mentioned in this letter, it is definitely “not inconsistent” with these facts to think that we are talking with an entirely different Clement. It is certainly “not inconsistent” to think that there were third- and fourth-generation Christians both in Rome and in Corinth at the time.

    Torrance points to 1 Clement 32:1-2 in a footnote here, and says, “Clement’s own summary of the letter is significant here (citing all of Chapter 62):

    We have now written to you, brethren, sufficiently touching the things which befit our worship, and are most helpful for a virtuous life to those who wish to guide their steps in piety and righteousness. For we have touched on every aspect of faith and repentance and true love and self-control and sobriety and patience, and reminded you that you are bound to please almighty God with holiness in righteousness and truth and long-suffering, and to live in concord, bearing no malice, in love and peace with eager gentleness, even as our Fathers, whose example we quoted, were well-pleasing towards God, the Father an Creator, and towards all men (45).

    Torrance continues, “From this chapter it is clear, in the words of Mackinnon, that ‘this supreme God and Father takes the chief place in his thought.’ It is consequently characteristic of Clement to emphasise the Almightiness and Majesty of God … Over against this background is the God-fearing life in which faith is a combination of knowledge, faithful obedience and humble fear, and in which salvation is coincident with knowledge of God which gives immortality”.

    It may seem as if he is here splitting hairs, but citing commentators like Lightfoot and Moody, he says, “‘when the mind is absorbed in the thought of the true God as Creator and Provider, much that is of importance in the Christian religion is apt to be neglected or misconceived.’ That is what has happened in this epistle.”

    Thus he says, “much use is made of Pauline expressions, and once Clement actually speaks of faith in Christ (22:1), but nevertheless there is no doubt that faith pertains “not so much to the person of Christ as to Christ’s precepts”, and the real object of faith is God alone. Accordingly, it is difficult to see any place for Christ in the Christian salvation beyond that of a preacher of the “grace of repentance”.

    While allowing that 7.4 “reminds us of St. Paul”, Torrance says, “this seems to teach a doctrine of objective atonement, but the statement is very indefinite, and varying constructions have been put upon it with some degree of plausibility.” He continues that in this verse, “What Christ’s death is said to procure is not atonement, but an opportunity for repentance.”

    1 Clement 22:1: “Take care, dear friends, lest his many benefits turn into a judgment upon all of us, as will happen if we fail to live worthily of Him and to do harmoniously those things that are good and pleasing in his sight”.

    1 Clement 7:4: “Let us fix our eyes on the blood of Christ and understand how precious it is to his Father, because, being poured out for our salvation, it won for the whole world the grace of repentance.”

    At the point at which “the grace of repentance” has been won for the whole world, there is something still left to be done, and it is incumbent upon Clement’s “dear friends” to avoid that “judgment” of God. Compare this, again with Titus (quoted above), in which “It is the grace itself that ‘brings salvation’, ‘trains us’. Christ ‘gave himself’ ‘to redeem us’ and ‘to purify’ us. It is God’s initiative that brings Christ in grace, and with Him, all these good things.”

    The “divine initiative” is missing in Clement, and all is dependent upon the initiative of his readers. Clement virtually identifies μετανοίας χάριν [the grace of repentance, which is freely given] with μετανοίας τόπον [the place or opportunity for repentance, something in which “ye must…”]. He says that another writer is “doubtless right in arguing that his interest is no longer attached to the atonement made once for all, the justification in principle…” and further, is suggesting that it gives a ‘subjective and ethical turn to the Cross ‘going direct to the kernel of the matter, to the salutary impression of the death of Christ upon the human heart” (46-47).

    In this usage, see 8.1, 8.5:

    The ministers of the grace of God spoke about repentance through the Holy Spirit; … seeing, then, that he desires all his beloved to participate in repentance, he established it by an act of his almighty will.

    It is a possibility. God wants you to participate; you must go get it.

    Also, 30:3:

    Let us therefore join with those to whom grace is given by God”.

    I.e, it is incumbent upon “us” to take some action in order to get access to the “grace given by God”.

    TDNT says of 1 Clement, “’grace’ is the saving result of conversion”. In other words, you convert, and only then do you get grace. “The Christian state is the ‘yoke of his grace’ (1 Cl. 16.17: “You see, dear friends, the kind of pattern that has been given to us; for if the Lord so humbled himself, what should we do, who through him have come under the yoke of his grace?”). TDNT says, “Instruction is given on how to achieve grace by right conduct, (1 Cl. 30.2)”. In this connection one may refer to the summons to unity on the basis of the one God, the one Christ, the one Spirit of grace, the one calling to Christ (46.6)”.

    Torrance gives a number of examples of where Christ’s death is mentioned, including 12.7, 16.4, 21.6. But in each of these, he says, “the death of Christ is brought in as an example, that having His death before our eyes we may have an insatiable desire to do good, and to be humble before God. But He is more than our example. He is our representative, and stands before God as our Patronus, whose name we are entitled to bear, as a helper of our weakness” (Torrance, 47).

    This is all well and good, but Clement misses the point: “Christ does not only show us the way, he initiates us in the true relation to God… in the last resort therefore Clement is unable to ascribe saving significance to Christ himself. That is further evidenced by the fact that Clement falls back upon the essentially Greek idea that salvation is knowledge. Jesus is thought of as the Teacher who by word as well as example calls men to God, “from darkness to light, from ignorance to the full knowledge of the glory of His name” (59.2). (Torrance 47-48).

    More to follow, Lord willing.

  517. John, (re: #516)

    In response to your claim in #322 that St. Clement was a Pelagian before Pelagius, I asked you to show where in St. Clement’s writings he shows himself to hold a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation. You have pointed (in #516) to five places in St. Clement’s epistle that allegedly support your claim. So let’s consider them one at a time.

    First you cite 1 Clement 62:

    Concerning the things pertaining to our religious observance which are most profitable for a life of goodness to those who would pursue a godly and righteous course, we have written to you, men and brethren, at sufficient length. For concerning faith and repentance and true love and continence and soberness and patience, we have touched upon every passage, putting you in mind that you ought in righteousness and truth and long-suffering to be well-pleasing to Almighty God with holiness, being of one mind— not remembering evil— in love and peace with instant gentleness, even as also our fathers forementioned found favour by the humility of their thoughts towards the Father and God and Creator and all mankind.

    This in no way expresses a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation, because St. Clement is not saying that without grace a person can be well-pleasing to God or find favor with God. He is speaking to believers, i.e. persons who have already received grace, and who by grace are already living and walking in the Spirit through faith. The Pelagian notion is that persons can be well-pleasing to God for salvation simply by human nature alone, without the grace that comes through Christ. But that is not at all what St. Clement is teaching here. Moreover, the Pelagian notion is that faith alone justifies, without any interior sanctification of the soul by grace. That’s precisely what St. Clement is obviously denying. For salvation, the grace of repentance given us to us through Christ transforms the soul interiorly, such that we can be and are pleasing to God, if we continue in faith and love and all the fruits of the Spirit given to us in Christ. So this chapter from St. Clement’s epistle in no way teaches or contains a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation.

    Next you cite 1 Clement 21:

    Take heed, beloved, lest His many kindnesses lead to the condemnation of us all. [For thus it must be] unless we walk worthy of Him, and with one mind do those things which are good and well-pleasing in His sight.

    Again, that’s not Pelagianism. Of course Pelagius believed that choosing that which displeases the Lord leads to condemnation, but so did all the Church Fathers, and so did the Apostles. That’s not a Pelagian belief, but a Christian doctrine. So in no way does it indicate that St. Clement held a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation.

    Next you cite 1 Clement 7:

    Let us look steadfastly to the blood of Christ, and see how precious that blood is to God which, having been shed for our salvation, has set the grace of repentance before the whole world.

    This statement too is not Pelagian. For Pelagius, Christ’s death on the cross is redemptive only in that it teaches us by providing us with an example of obedience to God, an obedience we can attain through our own will power, and more easily attain through greater knowledge of the law and of examples such as that of Christ. But St. Clement isn’t saying anything like that here. For St. Clement, Christ’s blood has procured the grace of repentance for the whole world, and without this grace, no one could be saved. For Pelagius the Mosaic Law was no worse as a way to heaven than was the New Covenant, because for him neither the Mosaic Law nor the New Covenant involved a supernaturally wrought interior sanctification. But that’s not at all St. Clement’s position. For St. Clement the gospel of Christ is precisely the interior transformation wrought by the grace of Christ procured through His death. By this grace we receive into our hearts love for God, and only then walk in true holiness of heart. This interior transformation is the circumcision of the heart by which we can be saved, and without which we cannot be saved.

    Next you cite chapter 8 of his epistle, as though it shows that St. Clement held a Pelagian position. Here’s that chapter.

    The ministers of the grace of God have, by the Holy Spirit, spoken of repentance; and the Lord of all things has himself declared with an oath regarding it, “As I live, says the Lord, I desire not the death of the sinner, but rather his repentance;” (Ezekiel 33:11) adding, moreover, this gracious declaration, “Repent, O house of Israel, of your iniquity.” (Ezekiel 18:30) Say to the children of my people, Though your sins reach from earth to heaven, and though they be redder (Isaiah 1:18) than scarlet, and blacker than sack-cloth, yet if you turn to me with your whole heart, and say, Father! I will listen to you, as to a holy people. And in another place He speaks thus: “Wash you and become clean; put away the wickedness of your souls from before my eyes; cease from your evil ways, and learn to do well; seek out judgment, deliver the oppressed, judge the fatherless, and see that justice is done to the widow; and come, and let us reason together. He declares, Though your sins be like crimson, I will make them white as snow; though they be like scarlet, I will whiten them like wool. And if you be willing and obey me, you shall eat the good of the land; but if you refuse, and will not hearken unto me, the sword shall devour you, for the mouth of the Lord has spoken these things.” (Isaiah 1:16-20) Desiring, therefore, that all His beloved should be partakers of repentance, He has, by His almighty will, established [these declarations].

    You suggest that because St. Clement speaks here of repentance as a choice available to the Corinthian Christians, therefore St. Clement holds a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation. But that conclusion does not follow. If would follow only if St. Clement believed that grace was not necessary for repentance. It is grossly inaccurate to suggest that any notion of the relation of God to human repentance other than the notion that God causes us to repent such that we have no choice in the matter, is Pelagian. Pelagianism is the notion that grace is not necessary for repentance and obedience, not the doctrine that the grace necessary for repentance and obedience preserves human freedom and the capacity to resist that grace successfully and finally.

    Next you refer to 1 Clement c. 30, writing:

    Also, 30:3:

    Let us therefore join with those to whom grace is given by God”.

    I.e, it is incumbent upon “us” to take some action in order to get access to the “grace given by God”.

    You’ve read into St. Clement something he in no way says. Look at the context:

    Seeing, therefore, that we are the portion of the Holy One, let us do all those things which pertain to holiness, avoiding all evil-speaking, all abominable and impure embraces, together with all drunkenness, seeking after change, all abominable lusts, detestable adultery, and execrable pride. “For God,” [says the Scripture], “resists the proud, but gives grace to the humble.” Let us cleave, then, to those to whom grace has been given by God. (c. 30)

    St. Clement is not at all saying that those without grace should take some action to get access to the grace given by God. He is saying that the Corinthian believers (having already received grace when they came to faith) should fellowship with those to whom God has obviously given grace, as shown by the holiness of their lives. They should not fellowship with evil doers, with gossipers and drunkards, adulterers, etc. The very notion that persons living holy lives show themselves to have received grace from God is something a Pelagian would reject. For Pelagius, grace is nature, or knowledge, not something received above and beyond nature, supernaturally effecting holiness of heart by the infusion of agape. So the very statement “to whom grace has been given by God,” seen here to be speaking of something other than act of creation, is anti-Pelagian.

    You wrote:

    In other words, you convert, and only then do you get grace.

    Nowhere in St. Clement does he himself say such a thing; nor does anything he has written entail it or even imply it.

    You suggest that for St. Clement, Christ is only our example. But, although St. Clement does of course view Christ as our perfect example, he in no place claims or teaches that Christ is merely an example. Instead St. Clement teaches that Christ is our “High Priest.” (c. 36) St. Clement says, “On account of the love He bore us, Jesus Christ our Lord gave His blood for us by the will of God; His flesh for our flesh, and His soul for our souls.” (c. 49) That’s substitutionary atonement, not “mere moral example” soteriology.

    It is important not to mistake as Pelagianism the belief that God gives in this life growth in grace, faith, hope, and love as a reward for obedience done in and through grace. That’s not Pelagianism. Pelagianism is the notion that God gives heavenly rewards for grace-less obedience, for obedience done by man according to the strength of his own nature. The doctrine that God gives a growth in grace as a reward for acts done in grace is not Pelagianism.

    You claim:

    The “divine initiative” is missing in Clement, and all is dependent upon the initiative of his readers.

    That statement seems completely wrong to me. St. Clement opens his letter with these words:

    The church of God which sojourns at Rome, to the church of God sojourning at Corinth, to them that are called and sanctified by the will of God, through our Lord Jesus Christ (c. 1)

    Notice that St. Clement attributes the calling and sanctification of the Corinthian believers to the will of God through Jesus Christ. A Pelagian couldn’t make such a claim. A Pelagian would claim that his sanctification is his own work.

    In addition, there is abundant evidence in St. Clement’s epistle that he did not hold a Pelagian conception of grace and salvation. For example, he writes:

    Let us then draw near to Him with holiness of spirit, lifting up pure and undefiled hands unto Him, loving our gracious and merciful Father, who has made us partakers in the blessings of His elect. (c. 29)

    He supplements his exhortation to draw near to God with a clause showing that it was God who made us partakers of the blessings of His elect. A Pelagian couldn’t say that.

    Elsewhere St. Clement writes:

    All these, therefore, were highly honoured, and made great, not for their own sake, or for their own works, or for the righteousness which they wrought, but through the operation of His will. And we, too, being called by His will in Christ Jesus, are not justified by ourselves, nor by our own wisdom, or understanding, or godliness, or works which we have wrought in holiness of heart; but by that faith through which, from the beginning, Almighty God has justified all men; to whom be glory for ever and ever. Amen. (c. 32)

    How much more anti-Pelagian could he get here? All the OT saints, says St. Clement, were made great not by their own righteousness or as a reward for their own works done on their own strength, but by the operation of God’s will. And we too, are justified in the same way, by the divine gift of faith, not by works we have done by our own wisdom or our own godliness, etc. That’s just about as explicit a rejection of Pelagianism as there can be. A Pelagian simply could not write those words.

    Elsewhere in this same epistle he writes:

    This is the way, beloved, in which we find our Saviour, even Jesus Christ, the High Priest of all our offerings, the defender and helper of our infirmity. By Him we look up to the heights of heaven. By Him we behold, as in a glass, His immaculate and most excellent visage. By Him are the eyes of our hearts opened. By Him our foolish and darkened understanding blossoms up anew towards His marvellous light. By Him the Lord has willed that we should taste of immortal knowledge. (c. 36)

    It is “by Him” that we find our Savior Jesus Christ, that we look up to the heights of heaven, that we behold His visage in this life, that the eyes of our hearts are opened, that our darkened understanding blossoms, that we taste of the immortal knowledge which is God’s own Logos. We do all this “by Him.” A Pelagian couldn’t say that. For a Pelagian it is not “by Him” that we find Him, even if knowledge of Him assists us in doing so.

    Chapter 49 of his epistle is a chapter in praise of agape. Then chapter 50 begins:

    “You see, beloved, how great and wonderful a thing is love, and that there is no declaring its perfection. Who is fit to be found in it, except such as God has vouchsafed to render so? … All the generations from Adam even unto this day have passed away; but those who, through the grace of God, have been made perfect in love, now possess a place among the godly,” (c. 50)

    A Pelagian would never say that. A Pelagian would say that those are found in agape who by their own strength and will choose to love God. But St. Clement says that those only are fit to be found in agape whom God has vouchsafed to render so. A Pelagian could never say that. A Pelagian would say that those only are found in agape who put themselves there by their own will power. I’m wondering how many statements that a Pelagian could not say does St. Clement have to make before you would acknowledge that St. Clement did not hold a Pelagian conception of grace and salvation.

    In that same chapter (c. 50) St. Clement says,

    “For it is written, Blessed are they whose transgressions are forgiven, and whose sins are covered. Blessed is the man whose sin the Lord will not impute to him, and in whose mouth there is no guile. This blessedness comes upon those who have been chosen by God through Jesus Christ our Lord; to whom be glory for ever and ever.” (c. 50)

    Again, a Pelagian would not say that. The blessedness of the righteous man comes upon him, according to the Pelagian, from his own choice, not from the grace of God in Jesus Christ.

    St. Clement concludes his epistle by speaking of grace, just as he opened his letter:

    “The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with you, and with all everywhere that are the called of God through Him,” (c. 65)

    The very notion of grace as something procured for us through Christ, is not Pelagian. Even if we consider the Pelagian conception of grace as knowledge of Christ, St. Clement is not saying “The example of our Lord Jesus Christ be with you.”

    So none of the five passages you cite from St. Clement’s epistle indicates that St. Clement held a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation. On the contrary, as I have indicated above, there are many passages in St. Clement’s epistle showing precisely the opposite. In fact, the whole exhortation of the letter is to humility, for the purpose of persuading those Corinthian Christians who had rebelled against legitimate Church authority to submit themselves again to that authority. A Pelagian notion of grace or salvation would be directly contrary to the exhortation to humility; it would thereby undermine the point of the whole letter.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  518. Bryan,

    You state “…Moreover, the Pelagian notion is that faith alone justifies…”

    Is the doctrine of Sola Fide Pelagian?

  519. Bryan 516: In response to your claim in #322 that St. Clement was a Pelagian before Pelagius, I asked you to show where in St. Clement’s writings he shows himself to hold a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation.

    You know, I backed off the notion that Clement was “Pelagian”, in several places. And yet, that is the primary point you seemed to address here. In all, the word is brought up more than 40 times in your comment, even though I was no longer arguing that. Such usage indicates that you really did not take seriously my statements to “take Pelagianism off the table”, and that you really have some other agenda.

    For example, regarding the citation of Clement 62, you say:

    This in no way expresses a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation, because St. Clement is not saying that without grace a person can be well-pleasing to God or find favor with God.

    Of course, I did not ever say, nor did I imply here, that this “expressed a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation”. My actual quote is a bit more nuanced:

    “From this chapter it is clear, in the words of Mackinnon, that ‘this supreme God and Father takes the chief place in his thought.’ It is consequently characteristic of Clement to emphasise the Almightiness and Majesty of God … Over against this background is the God-fearing life in which faith is a combination of knowledge, faithful obedience and humble fear, and in which salvation is coincident with knowledge of God which gives immortality”.

    It may seem as if he is here splitting hairs, but citing commentators like Lightfoot and Moody, he says, “‘when the mind is absorbed in the thought of the true God as Creator and Provider, much that is of importance in the Christian religion is apt to be neglected or misconceived.’ That is what has happened in this epistle.”

    Thus he says, “much use is made of Pauline expressions, and once Clement actually speaks of faith in Christ (22:1), but nevertheless there is no doubt that faith pertains “not so much to the person of Christ as to Christ’s precepts”, and the real object of faith is God alone. Accordingly, it is difficult to see any place for Christ in the Christian salvation beyond that of a preacher of the “grace of repentance”.

    This, of course, is very much in line with your statement:

    For St. Clement, Christ’s blood has procured the grace of repentance for the whole world, and without this grace, no one could be saved.

    But here, you have actually affirmed what Torrance is saying. What Torrance is saying precisely about this notion is that the concept that “Christ’s blood has procured the grace of repentance” comes from Philo and the Hellenistic concept of grace, not the Biblical concept. The biblical conception, per Torrance, rather is the notion that God’s “initiative in the divine love completely takes man by surprise. God is among men with redemptive purpose before they are aware of it”.

    This is a concept (“Hellenistic” vs “Biblical” concept of grace) you fail to address at all. You say a lot about Pelagianism, but you do not actually deal with Torrance’s claim.

    You say:

    You suggest that because St. Clement speaks here of repentance as a choice available to the Corinthian Christians, therefore St. Clement holds a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation. But that conclusion does not follow. If would follow only if St. Clement believed that grace was not necessary for repentance. It is grossly inaccurate to suggest that any notion of the relation of God to human repentance other than the notion that God causes us to repent such that we have no choice in the matter, is Pelagian. Pelagianism is the notion that grace is not necessary for repentance and obedience, not the doctrine that the grace necessary for repentance and obedience preserves human freedom and the capacity to resist that grace successfully and finally.

    Several things about this.

    First, I do not “suggest” with this or any other statement that “Clement holds a Pelagian conception of grace or salvation”. What I actually suggest (with Torrance) is that Clement’s concept of grace, with respect to it being derived from the Hellenistic usage, not the Biblical usage.

    Second, I never said “Clement believed that grace was not necessary for repentance”.

    The Hellenistic notion is that one must somehow show oneself be worthy of the grace before being able to receive it. Perhaps you did not consult my links outlining these definitions. But these definitions are important.

    Third, your sentence here, “It is grossly inaccurate to suggest that any notion of the relation of God to human repentance other than the notion that God causes us to repent such that we have no choice in the matter, is Pelagian”, is so convoluted that it is not possible to understand what you are saying here. And yet your preface, “It is grossly inaccurate to suggest” itself suggests that I have suggested such a thing. I have not.

    And finally, your exposition of what “Pelagianism is” is a non-sequitur, because I’m not espousing that Clement offers a Pelagian doctrine.

    There is more to this, and and I hope to continue this discussion. I have not even gotten into Torrance’s “exegetical” section (which is where I intended to go with the phrase, “More to follow, Lord willing”.

  520. John, (re: #519)

    If you agree that St. Clement’s conception of grace is not Pelagian, but are now claiming instead that St. Clement’s conception of grace is not “biblical,” then which statements by St. Clement do you think are contrary to the Bible, and to which passages of Scripture in particular are these statements contrary?

    You wrote:

    this notion is that the concept that “Christ’s blood has procured the grace of repentance” comes from Philo and the Hellenistic concept of grace, not the Biblical concept.

    How do you know that it didn’t come from the Apostles?

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  521. Bryan — I am not “now claiming instead”. You do understand that when I said, “let’s take Pelagius off the table”, I intended to stop arguing at that point that Clement was Pelagian?

    The fact that you are suggesting this (after my most recent comment) suggests to me that you are not adhering to your own standards, and are trying to misrepresent the actual argument I was making.

    The whole tenor of my two most recent comments here has been to outline Torrance’s argument, which I do agree with. And has not changed since I posted this paragraph, probably in several places up above:

    Clement definitely thinks of charis as referring to a gift of God without which the Christian would not be able to attain to love or salvation. But there is little doubt that this is held along with the idea of merit before God; for grace is given to those who perform the commandments of God, and who are worthy. He may use the language of election and justification, but the essentially Greek idea of the unqualified freedom of choice is a natural axiom in his thoughts, and entails a doctrine of “works” as Paul would have said. In all His dealings with men, God is regarded as merciful; but the ground for the Salvation He gives is double: faith and … [ellipses in original]. And so Wustmann is justified in saying of Clement’s theology: “Whoever does the will of God, him shall God bless…” Like the whole mass of Judaistic writers [following Philo’s usage], Clement thinks of God’s mercy as directed only toward the pious; and if he uses the word χάρις, as in Philo, it carries with it the same principle (pgs. 54-55).

    So please understand, I am not trying to argue anything other than what Torrance said. And I’m trying to adhere as closely as possible, and to summarize as succinctly as possible, what he said.

    Here is another instance of what I consider the disingenuous nature of your response:

    If you … are … claiming … that St. Clement’s conception of grace is not “biblical,” then which statements by St. Clement do you think are contrary to the Bible, and to which passages of Scripture in particular are these statements contrary?

    Here too you misrepresent what Torrance is saying. It is not a matter of being “contrary to the Bible”. It is rather, the concepts are not in complete alignment.

    I know that you understand the concept. There have been instances in which I have summarized your words, and you’d say, “I didn’t say that”. And there have been instances in which I repeated your words exactly to you, and you still say, “I didn’t say that … because I qualified that with what follows in the next paragraph”.

    We can do that all day.

    In a similar way, Clement does not contain the exact words that Paul uses. In that way, Clement is not Biblical.

    But you certainly will not accept that as an explanation.

    Do you want to nibble to death the things I am saying? Or do you want to adhere to your own posting guidelines and “show exactly where [Torrance’s statement] is flawed”.

    Your very long comment to the effect that “Clement is not Pelagian” certainly did not “show exactly” (or for that matter, did not address at all) the things that Torrance was saying.

    Studying what people’s words say is difficult because words have ranges of meanings, which sometimes overlap, and sometimes not.

    That is why I spent so much time outlining definitions in the links I provided. If you want me to post those definitions here, I will be glad to do so, and then we can begin by my asking you, “do you believe Torrance and TDNT have accurately summarized the difference in meaning between the Biblical concept of the word ‘grace’ and the Hellenistic/Philonistic concept of the word ‘grace’?”

    Because that would be a fair question to ask.

  522. John, (re: #521)

    You wrote:

    In a similar way, Clement does not contain the exact words that Paul uses. In that way, Clement is not Biblical.

    If your criticism of St. Clement is that his wording is not “the exact words that Paul uses,” then your own pastor is subject to the same criticism, unless his sermons consist of simply reading from the Bible.

    But if your criticism of St. Clement is that his conception of grace is “not in complete alignment” with that of Scripture, then which statements by St. Clement do you think are “not in complete alignment with” the Bible, and to which passages of Scripture in particular are these statements “not in complete alignment”?

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  523. If your criticism of St. Clement is that his wording is not “the exact words that Paul uses,” then your own pastor is subject to the same criticism, unless his sermons consist of simply reading from the Bible.

    I believe I made it clear that neither of us would accept that as a criticism.

    But if your criticism of St. Clement is that his conception of grace is “not in complete alignment” with that of Scripture, then which statements by St. Clement do you think are “not in complete alignment with” the Bible, and to which passages of Scripture in particular are these statements “not in complete alignment”?

    I gave a number of instances above, which you said “were not Pelagian”, but you did not address them from this point of view. And as I noted, I intend to provide a fuller explanation from Torrance. Such a thing takes time, because I’m sure you wouldn’t want me re-typing all of the several dozen pages of his argument here.

    Again, if you want, I will reproduce all of the definitions here, which I merely linked to earlier (following the parsimony principle), of not putting 3000 words down when 300 will suffice.

    But when you talk about “interpretations”, that assumes that definitions are important.

  524. John.

    Also, on your own blog you said just the other day:

    Just for the sake of clarification, with this series of posts on 1 Clement, I’m attempting to build the type of case that Cullmann talked about: the notion that, for one reason or another, writers in this era of 100-150 “lost something” that was very important for Christianity. In the case of Clement (and indeed, all the “Apostolic Fathers” writings that he discussed), the concept of grace, freely given, was lost.

    Correct me if I am wrong but it is your position that Clement and other apostolic fathers ‘lost’ the concept that grace is freely given. You are trying to make the case that Clement believed that God only gave grace to the pious.

    If that is your position and if you believe that ‘grace being freely given’ is indeed biblical than it is your position that Clement taught something contrary to the bible and Bryan’s question for you is not at all a misrepresentation.

    Do you want to say that ‘grace being freely given’ is not a biblical concept or do you want to say that Clement did not ‘lose’ the concept of grace being freely given? You can’t have both if you want to make the argument that Clement lost the concept of grace being freely given.

  525. John, (re: #523),

    If your claim that St. Clement’s conception of grace is “not in complete alignment” with that of Scripture is based on the five excerpts from 1 Clement I discussed in #517, then with which passages of Scripture do you think those five excerpts are not in complete alignment?

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  526. Bryan (525), do you accept the definitions I posted in 515? If you want to know where I think “alignment” is and where it is not, those are the definitions I will be working with, unless you wish to contest them.

  527. Sean (524):

    The sense in which Clement uses the word “grace” is (as Torrance has analyzed it) more in alignment with the Hellenistic usage — that “grace” is given to those who somehow are worthy for it. Again,

    “Clement thinks of God’s mercy [which, as I’ve indicated in the “Biblical” portion of the definitions I provided, is a component of “grace” in Old Testament usage] as directed only toward the pious; and if he uses the word χάρις, as in Philo, it carries with it the same principle”.

    Another summary quote from Torrance is [on the “Biblical” side]:

    Under the gracious impingement [“divine initiative”] of Christ through the Spirit there is a glad spontaneity about the New Testament believer.

    Thus, as I’ve cited Paul in Titus, for example, “For the grace of God has appeared, bringing salvation for all people, training us to renounce ungodliness and worldly passions, and to live self-controlled, upright, and godly lives in the present age, waiting for our blessed hope, the appearing of the glory of our great God and Savior Jesus Christ, who gave himself for us to redeem us from all lawlessness and to purify for himself a people for his own possession who are zealous for good works”. (Titus 2:11-14).

    These are all things that Christ does, via the divine initiative of his own grace.

    On the other hand, Clement, in a number of places which I’ve already outlined, says things like this (in his summary):

    you are bound to please almighty God with holiness in righteousness and truth and long-suffering, and to live in concord, bearing no malice, in love and peace with eager gentleness, even as our Fathers, whose example we quoted, were well-pleasing towards God, the Father an Creator, and towards all men … (Ch. 62)

    In both cases we are called to a righteous and holy life. But if you believe Paul, these are fruits of the spirit of grace. For Paul, “the grace of God” will “train us” and “redeem us” from all lawlessness and purify [us] for himself as his own possession and make us zealous for good works.

    For Clement, these things are things that “you are bound” to do and if you do them, you will be “well-pleasing towards God”.

    This is the difference I am trying to get at. Clement and Paul are “not in alignment” here. And given this apparent “not in alignment”, I am more inclined to say that Torrance has identified the proper cultural influences of Clement, rather than agree that he said both what he said to Titus and taught Clement the things Clement wrote in his own chapter 62.

  528. John, (re: #526)

    No, I don’t accept the second definition. To accept the methodology behind it is simply to presuppose precisely what is in question between Protestants and the Catholic Church, for reasons I explained in “The Tradition and the Lexicon.” And since you have the burden of proof, for the reason I explained in comment #340 above, if your argument depends on a question-begging methodology, then it fails.

    For now, I’m trying to understand what is your evidence from Scripture and from St. Clement’s epistle, showing that St. Clement’s conception of grace is “not in complete alignment” with Scripture. So far, you’ve provided only the five excerpts from 1 Clement, without providing any passages from Scripture and explaining how and why you think the excerpts from St. Clement do not completely align with these passages of Scripture. So at this point, your accusation against St. Clement is a mere assertion, since you have not provided any evidence from Scripture showing that the teaching of Scripture regarding grace is “not in complete alignment with” any statement in St. Clement’s epistle.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  529. Bryan (528), when you say “the second definition”, I want to be clear what it is you are saying that I “presuppose precisely what is in question”.

    I take “the first definition” in my comment 515 to mean the usage in Hellenistic culture. And the second, in the paragraph beginning “On the contrary”, because it is the Biblical definition (which includes the Old Testament understanding):

    On the contrary, in the Biblical conception, both Old and New Testaments, the concept of grace involves “unsolicited and unaccountable love”. “God’s ‘lovingkindness’ is the fundamental relationship upon which the whole structure of Israelite society rested. Includes [the concepts of] mercy and forgiveness, but the true significance of the hesed of God, is that it is everlasting, determined, unshakeable”. “Though the mountains depart and the hills remove, God’s mercy remains true”. In the New Testament, grace is purely God’s initiative; it is God’s initiative in Christ; “in Christ the divine will has been perfectly fulfilled on our behalf”; it completely takes man by surprise (that is, no effort on man’s part is required to earn this initiative), and it is “the primary and constitutive act in which out of free love God has intervened to set our life on a wholly new basis”.

    So, these are the two different definitions of grace: in the first, one must be deemed worthy of it before one receives it, and in some cases, one must be perfect before one can receive it; in the second, it is completely God’s initiative in Christ to give it freely, by surprise, and permanent.

    The whole purpose for me giving these definitions (which I’ve summarized from both Torrance and TDNT) is to be clear that I’m not presupposing something that you don’t accept.

  530. Bryan, I did read your article “The Tradition and the Lexicon”. Look at this passage:

    In general, Protestants think differently about how to go about interpreting Scripture than do Catholics. When trying to understand the meaning of a passage in Scripture, Catholics have always looked to the Tradition; we seek to determine how the Church has understood and explained the passage over the past two millennia. We look up what the Church Fathers and Church Doctors have said about the passage. By contrast, Protestants typically do not turn first to the Church Fathers when seeking to understand the meaning of a passage or term in Scripture that is unclear. Protestants generally turn to contemporary lexicons and commentaries written by contemporary biblical scholars whom they trust. Only rarely, and perhaps as a final step, do they turn to the Church Fathers. The common form of the Protestant mind is ready to believe that the Fathers often got Scripture wrong, and to use their own interpretation of Scripture to ‘correct’ or critically evaluate the Fathers.

    “Contemporary lexicons” are useful not only in giving a range of definitions of a word, but also the etymology, or “development of meaning” of different words, and further to that, they can and do identify precise documents where such usages occur.

    Torrance is not simply saying “the Fathers got Scripture wrong”. Torrance is doing that, to be sure, but he is also identifying the source of “where they got it wrong”, that is, he is identifying the Hellenistic culture as a source for Clement’s meaning.

    And as I noted to Sean in 527, “I am more inclined to say that Torrance has identified the proper cultural influences of Clement, rather than agree that he said both what he said to Titus and taught Clement the things Clement wrote in his own chapter 62”.

  531. John.

    Who said the following? Clement or Paul?

    Instructing a younger minister of the gospel this man said:

    Command them to do good, to be rich in good deeds, and to be generous and willing to share. In this way they will lay up treasure for themselves as a firm foundation for the coming age, so that they may take hold of the life that is truly life.

    I’ll spare the suspense. Paul said that to Timothy as recorded in 1st Timothy. Now, at face value I suspect that many persons would view such a statement as ‘Pelagian’ or ‘not in alignment with Paul’s teaching on grace.’

    The point is that your whole case (and Torrance’s I guess) is built on taking this statement here or that statement there about charging Christians to strive to live holy lives and since in the same sentence he does not say “…and if you do its of course all the work of grace”, means that Clement does not understand the biblical teaching on grace. That is obviously flawed as anybody could do that with Paul himself or any pastor that ever preached.

    In #517 Bryan laid out many examples demonstrating that Clement did indeed understand grace.

  532. John, (re: #527),

    St. Clement’s statement in 1 Clement 62 is in complete alignment with Titus 2. Here’s the passage from Titus 2:

    For the grace of God has appeared, bringing salvation to all men, instructing us to deny ungodliness and worldly desires and to live sensibly, righteously and godly in the present age, looking for the blessed hope and the appearing of the glory of our great God and Savior, Christ Jesus, who gave Himself for us to redeem us from every lawless deed, and to purify for Himself a people for His own possession, zealous for good deeds. (Titus 2:11-14)

    And here’s chapter 62 from 1 Clement:

    Concerning the things pertaining to our religious observance which are most profitable for a life of goodness to those who would pursue a godly and righteous course, we have written to you, men and brethren, at sufficient length. For concerning faith and repentance and true love and continence and soberness and patience, we have touched upon every passage, putting you in mind that you ought in righteousness and truth and long-suffering to be well-pleasing to Almighty God with holiness, being of one mind— not remembering evil— in love and peace with instant gentleness, even as also our fathers forementioned found favour by the humility of their thoughts towards the Father and God and Creator and all mankind. And of these things we put you in mind with the greater pleasure, since we were well assured that we were writing to men who were faithful and of highest repute and had peered into the oracles of the instruction of God.

    Concerning these two excerpts you write (in #527):

    In both cases we are called to a righteous and holy life. But if you believe Paul, these are fruits of the spirit of grace. For Paul, “the grace of God” will “train us” and “redeem us” from all lawlessness and purify [us] for himself as his own possession and make us zealous for good works.

    For Clement, these things are things that “you are bound” to do and if you do them, you will be “well-pleasing towards God”.

    This is the difference I am trying to get at. Clement and Paul are “not in alignment” here.

    St. Clement also believes that righteousness and holiness are from the Spirit working in us. Nothing he writes here entails otherwise. Your interpretation of St. Clement presupposes that if we are to strive for holiness, then the resulting holiness cannot be the result of God at work in us. But that’s a monergistic notion you are bringing to the text of 1 Clement, one St. Clement himself did not share. When he urges the Corinthian believers to pursue holiness he does so in the same way that the author of the letter to the Hebrews does when he writes, “Pursue peace with all men, and the sanctification without which no one will see the Lord.” (Heb 12:14) And the Apostle John says that we do what is pleasing to the Lord, when he writes, “because we keep His commandments and do the things that are pleasing in His sight.” (1 John 3:22) So you are creating a non-alignment between 1 Clement and St. Paul by bringing your own non-Catholic presupposition to your interpretation of St. Clement (and St. Paul), by assuming either (a) that sanctification is monergistic and/or (b) that our good works done in grace are not pleasing to the Lord. And bringing those assumptions to your argument against St. Clement simply begs the question, i.e. presupposes precisely what is in question between Protestants and the Catholic Church.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  533. John, (re: #529)

    In #528, the “second definition” I was referring to when I said “I don’t accept the second definition,” was “2. χάρις in Old Testament and New Testament usage” at the beginning of comment #515.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  534. Bryan 533, if you don’t accept that definition given in “2. χάρις in Old Testament and New Testament usage” (it is a long selection), what specifically do you object to?

  535. John, (re: #534),

    what specifically do you object to?

    (1) The “solo scriptura” assumption intrinsic to its methodology, namely, that Tradition is not authoritative for determining the meaning of terms and specifying theological concepts, as explained in “The Tradition and the Lexicon,” and (2) the construal [in #516, 517] that grace disallows participation in sanctification or salvation.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  536. Bryan, It’s fascinating that you would identify “the ‘solo scriptura’ assumption intrinsic to the methodology” used by Torrance and TDNT. I would understand if you would think that I would make such an assumption, but the authors of the two works I drew upon simply seemed to be making the effort to identify the words as they were being used in both the Old and the New Testaments. As scholars, that is, they are looking at the words in the various sources (in this case, in the OT and the NT) and identifying how they are used.

    My question, then, is, given that you completely rule out these definitions, based, simply, on a presupposition that these sources innocently hold, where, specifically, would you (or allow “the Tradition”) modify or alter the definitions given. How, specifically, have Torrance and TDNT gotten their definitions wrong?

    I am asking you seriously, given that you want me to show instances of where Clement is not exactly in alignment with Scripture, and yet, these are the definitions I would use. Here is the link for your convenience.

  537. John, (re: #536),

    I explained in “The Tradition and the Lexicon” how the lexical method, when used to determine concepts or positions against which the Church Fathers are then judged to be biblical or unbiblical, presupposes “solo scriptura,” by presupposing that Tradition has no authority to which our interpretation of Scripture is subject. I also explained in that post how the lexical method presupposes that the Church failed to preserve Tradition, and in this way presupposes the falsehood of the Catholic Church. For this reason the lexical method is not a theologically or ecclesiologically neutral methodology. Per Fr. Kimel’s third law, it fails to read Scripture through the Fathers. So instead of allowing St. Clement to inform our understanding of the New Testament conception of grace, it uses our [present paradigm informed] interpretation of Scripture as the standard against which the Fathers (including St. Clement) are measured. And so the question-begging presupposition underlying the methodology is doing all the work. Of course there is nothing wrong with using a lexicon; the theological question-begging arises when we use the lexical definition as the theological norm against which Tradition is judged.

    As for the definition of ‘grace,’ like I said in #535, it needs to allow (or at least not disallow) participation in sanctification or salvation.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  538. John B.,

    Since you’ve held out chapter 62 of 1 Clement as an example of what you consider his discord with St Paul, I thought it might be fitting to point out that it actually echoes 1 Thess 4.1. This is also significant since both letters are written to exhort baptized believers to holiness. Note particularly the verbal agreement on precisely the phrase you took exception to in 1 Clement; it’s straight from Paul.

    1 Clement 62.2: “…you are bound to please almighty God…” (δεῖν ὑμᾶς…τῷ παντοκράτορι θεῷ…εὐαρεστεῖν).

    1 Thessalonians 4.1: “…you received from us how you ought to walk and please God…” (παρελάβετε παρ’ ἡμῶν τὸ πῶς δεῖ ὑμᾶς περιπατεῖν καὶ ἀρέσκειν θεῷ).

    Different verbs for “to please,” but the English phrase that you didn’t like (“you are bound to”) is exactly the same as what’s translated “you ought” in 1 Thess 4.1.

    best,
    John

  539. Well, the latest research probably shows that I Thessalonians is spurious, so….

  540. JJS, you have a link for said research?

  541. Bryan (537), it seems as if we’ve come to an impasse here, as you have retreated (as Mike did above) into an unfalsifiable refuge. You can’t allow Clement to speak for himself. You can’t allow an analysis by Torrance to say what Clement was saying.

    But Paul said, “I am not out of my mind, most excellent Festus, but I utter words of sober truth. For the king knows about these matters, and I speak to him also with confidence, since I am persuaded that none of these things escape his notice; for this has not been done in a corner (Acts 26:26).”

    Paul did not hide behind an unfalsifiable refuge. Paul preached a Christ and a Christianity that the whole world could see.

    It sounds very pretty and even obedient to say that you are “reading Scripture through the Fathers”, but assuming that Torrance is correct in his analysis (and if Torrance is wrong on any specific point, other than his presupposition, I am open to seeing just where his analysis is flawed), here we have one of the “Fathers”, evidently making “Tradition”, in a usage which very much seems to be somewhat different from the New Testament concept of grace.

    [It’s funny, but when David King’s work came out, “Holy Scripture, the Ground and Pillar of our Faith” – that title citing Irenaeus, by the way], no Roman Catholic had any really substantive responses to him. The only thing that all the Catholics were saying around the echo chamber in those days was “it wasn’t peer reviewed” And that was a good enough reason to reject it. Now, here you are, telling me, in a non-peer-reviewed way, what Irenaeus meant (up above), and what Clement means here, and the “peer-reviewed” Torrance is dismissed because he doesn’t hold to the correct paradigm. It’s definitely ironic.]

    For me, as a Roman Catholic who was attending Mass weekly, attending Opus Dei “evenings of recollection”, in fact, wanting to *do* all the right things, it was this type of thing that sorely turned me off. There are just too many places where the unverifiable had become dogma — from the supposed “perpetual virginity” of Mary (contra such words as “adelphoi”) to the Immaculate Conception (sourced from a late second-century gnostic/fictional work) to the [in my opinion simply brazen] “Assumption of Mary” dogma (sourced from fifth century transitus literature) — those were places where I began looking, but there were plenty more, and the weight of the momentum of my investigations on various topics has carried me through to where I am today.

    I know that there is such a thing as “obedience of faith”, that you hold that “the Church that Christ founded” had “authority”, but there are just far, far too many things where one must “exercise obedience” and put aside good and sound analyses like the one done by Torrance. He is not one of those bitterly skeptical “critical scholars”. He was one of the truly helpful theologians.

    At some point I just came to say “the Church” really isn’t wiser than I am. There are too many such incidents where one has to make excuses, to hide behind the “unfalsifiable refuge”, such as your quick rejection of “the assumption of solo scriptura” or “the Catholic Interpretive paradigm” — you all just seem to me to be hiding behind things like that.

    Whether you call it “solo” or “sola Scriptura”, God HAS spoken in the Scriptures. He HAS proposed what must be believed. In Micah 6, and similar verses, he even clarifies: “He has told you, O man, what is good; and what does the Lord require of you but to do justice, and to love kindness, and to walk humbly with your God”, to cite just one example.

    The type of “binding” that the Roman Catholic Church has done is just a travesty when you consider what God himself has said, in many words that are, yes, telegraphed to be perspicuous. “These things were not done in a corner”.

    I’m not saying that no “ministerial teaching” is required. And I allow that the church in earliest times did exercise a “ministerial” teaching function.

    But the whole authority structure that evolved out of that — and yes, I mean “evolved” in the way that’s described by even Roman Catholic scholars such as Francis Sullivan and John Meier and others I’ve mentioned – Catholics in good standing whom you choose to reject – the first and second century church did not have the kind of “divine authority” that you all here attribute to it.

    I very much appreciate what the Apostles went through. They shaped the world around them by preaching the Gospel to them – a Gospel of things that could be verified by independent investigation. And I appreciate the struggles and the persecutions that the church went through in the second and third centuries. But these were just men – guided by the Spirit, yes, but in no way infallible. They erred, too, in some very important things, and over the centuries, Rome just seemingly ossified those errors under the cover of “infallibility” and for the sake of protecting its own perceived authority.

    And on the other side of this, no, I do not believe Roman Catholics are damned. As I continue to think through the implications of my position, I think it’s fair to say that Roman CatholicISM retains many Christian features, which are obscured, first of all, by the supposed (yes, supposed) authority of the present Roman Catholic hierarchy. But what I see is not an infallible body, protected [in some supposed “infallibility”] by Christ, but a very large body of men simply play-acting at authority, who are doing real harm, not only to the cause of Christianity by their posturing at authority, but harm to many thousands of sex-abuse victims.

    Have you all seen just how swiftly the Penn State Board of Trustees has been acting to simply uncover the whole story about the Sandusky sex abuse, and Paterno’s efforts to hide it? They can’t rid themselves of Paterno fast enough. And yet, we are talking about this body of bishops and their motivations to hide the abusers, in a completely opposite response.

    IMO, at best, Roman CatholicISM is one of many denominations — a bad one that has gotten many things wrong. I do appreciate the spirituality of someone like my mother, who remains Roman Catholic. (My sister has since become a Baptist and my brother is one of those who just simply doesn’t go to church, even on Christmas and Easter.)

    I’m glad to have had an opportunity to go through this long exercise here, just to see where you do and don’t draw the lines. And how you draw them.

    If you all honestly want “the Reformation” to “meet Rome”, it seems to me that you need to do a lot better job of genuinely responding to objections, rather than just hiding behind your own presuppositions.

  542. John S, what comes directly before your verse in First Thessalonians?

    Now may our God and Father Himself and Jesus our Lord direct our way to you; and may the Lord cause you to increase and abound in love for one another, and for all people, just as we also do for you; so that He may establish your hearts without blame in holiness before our God and Father at the coming of our Lord Jesus with all His saints.

    In Paul, God does this “causing” and “establishing” first. in 1 Clement, you must first do the things you are bound to do, then God will give you the grace of repentence.

  543. John, (re: 541)

    You wrote:

    Bryan (537), it seems as if we’ve come to an impasse here, as you have retreated (as Mike did above) into an unfalsifiable refuge. You can’t allow Clement to speak for himself. You can’t allow an analysis by Torrance to say what Clement was saying.

    The claim we were considering was your claim that St. Clement’s conception of grace is not in alignment with Scripture. Claims about me, such as the three sentences just quoted (in which I am the subject of each sentence), do not show anything about St. Clement’s conception of grace. If without begging the question you can support your claim that St. Clement’s conception of grace is not in alignment with Scripture, then feel free. If you cannot, then instead of criticizing me, simply admit that you don’t have at hand a non-question-begging way of supporting your claim. When your interlocutor shows that your argument is question-begging, the right response is to examine your argument to see whether it does in fact beg the question. If it does, then you need a different argument. If it doesn’t, then show that it doesn’t. But shooting the messenger doesn’t salvage your argument.

    here we have one of the “Fathers”, evidently making “Tradition”, in a usage which very much seems to be somewhat different from the New Testament concept of grace.

    That’s precisely what has yet to be shown. The passage of Scripture you have cited as evidence is that passage from Titus, and I already explained above why Titus is fully compatible with what St. Clement wrote.

    Also, just because something is peer reviewed doesn’t mean that it must be treated as infallible. So your evidence in support of your charge against St. Clement cannot be merely an argument from authority, in this case the academic authority of Torrance. That too would beg the question against the Catholic, by presupposing that the academic authority of Protestant scholars is greater than ecclesial authority.

    At some point I just came to say “the Church” really isn’t wiser than I am.

    Well, John, you know what I would say in response to this. It is your own indictment, that you think you know better than the Church. This was the stance of Naaman too, that he knew better than Elisha. It was the stance of Eve too, in the Garden. It was the stance of Judas too, that he knew better than Christ. This is the most fundamental choice we face as humans: faith, or autonomy. If Christ founded a Church, and gave her authority, then even though she will look from the outside like a very human and earthy institution, and even though there will be many tares among the wheat, yet, to trust her is to trust Christ. That’s the test. If we could verify everything for ourselves, then faith wouldn’t be necessary, and this present life wouldn’t be necessary. But this present life is a test, just as Adam and Eve’s placement in the Garden was a test. Will we follow God even when we don’t see the evidence for the truth of what He says, or will we make ourselves our own god? That’s the choice that lies before us. Faith in Christ (which involves trusting His Church), or remaining on the road of autonomy. Liberals are just one more step down that road; atheists are two steps down that road.

    There are too many such incidents where one has to make excuses, to hide behind the “unfalsifiable refuge”, such as your quick rejection of “the assumption of solo scriptura” or “the Catholic Interpretive paradigm” — you all just seem to me to be hiding behind things like that.

    None of us is “hiding behind” anything. And this sort of personal criticism is just not helpful. Keep the focus on the positions, i.e. the doctrines, not the persons holding them. My comment about “solo scriptura” was only to point out that the methodology you were using in your argument against St. Clement is a question-begging methodology.

    Whether you call it “solo” or “sola Scriptura”, God HAS spoken in the Scriptures. He HAS proposed what must be believed.

    You know that I agree that God has spoken in the Scriptures. But sola scriptura and “solo scriptura” are much more than the claim that God has spoken in the Scriptures. They declare in essence that every man’s interpretation of Scripture is no less authoritative than that of the Church’s magisterium, and are in this way a denial of Church authority.

    The type of “binding” that the Roman Catholic Church has done is just a travesty when you consider what God himself has said, in many words that are, yes, telegraphed to be perspicuous.

    What do you think the Catholic Church has bound, that is contrary to what God Himself said?

    it seems to me that you need to do a lot better job of genuinely responding to objections,

    Which objections do you think we haven’t genuinely responded to? Or do you think that pointing out that an objection is question-begging is necessarily therefore not a genuine response? It is too easy and quite unhelpful to make general accusations like this, without specifying the objections to which you are referring. It would be much more helpful to state your objections in particular.

    I understand (and share) your frustration over the way the sex abuse problem was handled. It is another sinful blemish in Church history. Mea culpa, mea culpa, mea maxima culpa. It belongs to us to make reparations. I also appreciate that you recognize at least some Catholics to be Christian. And I pray that you’re able to have a close relationship with your mother, in spite of your theological differences. My mother is none too happy about me being Catholic, and we don’t talk much about our differences, but we are still able to have good conversations about our faith, and what we have in common in our love for Christ.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  544. Tap # 40. I think he was kidding.

  545. John B. (#542),

    I agree that St Paul teaches that it is God who increases charity in us and who establishes our hearts in holiness. I think Clement thinks so, too. I even think St Peter thinks so when he’s asked “What shall we do??” and, instead of admonishing them that they can’t “do” anything, he tells them to repent and be baptized, without worrying that this somehow diminishes the priority of God’s grace (Acts 2.37-38). He doesn’t even use the word “grace” in his whole sermon—it doesn’t appear in Acts until chapter 4—and yet I don’t imagine you’d want to argue that the gospel preached by the apostles in Acts is “out of alignment” with Paul’s.

    My only real point regarding 1 Thessalonians was that Paul does not consider the language of being “bound” to do something to be antithetical to the gospel of grace that he preached. Note, too, that the portion of 1 Thess 4.1 that I quoted is not new teaching, but a reminder of Paul’s original message to the Thessalonians: “just as you received from us how you ought [or, as in Lake’s trans. of 1 Clement, “are bound”] to walk and to please God…” If Paul’s “allowed” to remind baptized believers of that without violating the biblical notion of grace, then Clement is, too.

    best,
    John

  546. John (#541):

    You wrote:

    Bryan (537), it seems as if we’ve come to an impasse here, as you have retreated (as Mike did above) into an unfalsifiable refuge. You can’t allow Clement to speak for himself. You can’t allow an analysis by Torrance to say what Clement was saying.

    In addition to all that Bryan just said in #543, I suggest that you simply don’t grasp the significance of the concept of an interpretive paradigm (IP). Everybody brings an IP to the data whether they admit it or not; even Keith Mathison and Michael Horton recognize as much. The foundational question at issue between us at CTC and Protestants of your sort is: “How to determine which IP is rationally preferable”? In other words, which way of giving theological significance to the raw data is best suited to distinguishing divine revelation from human opinion? It is no answer to that question to just continue applying your IP to the data and presenting the results as if they were rationally unassailable. They aren’t, and if they were, then those who disagree with you after due study would be either illiterate or willfully blind. I don’t think even you are prepared to embrace that consequence. Good thing too–because it would be absurd.

    So we aren’t “hiding behind” anything. Rather, instead of proceeding as if your IP were the only one, we insist that you stop begging the question and instead approach the issues at the level I’ve been talking about. To object that IPs are “unfalsifiable” is simply irrelevant. Most Christian doctrines, on either your account or the Catholic, are unfalsifiable, but that doesn’t make them unworthy of belief; it simply leaves open the question how good are the reasons for accepting the Christian claim to have received, transmitted, and interpreted divine revelation. Similarly, no IP–whether yours or ours–is falsifiable by the data it interprets; but that leaves open the question which IP is rationally preferable. To insist that admitting as much, and addressing the basic questions accordingly, is “hiding’ is itself hiding from the basic questions.

    Best,
    Mike

  547. John B,

    Here is how your position regarding grace and the Bible reads: Torrance sees Clement’s position on grace as synergistic, and hence Clement is just like a Hellenist and hence non-biblical. The biblical view of Grace, again according to Torrance, is monergistic. Therefore, if grace is deemed as anything other than monergistic, it is therefore not biblical. This is an assertion, not an argument. If you want to know what your IP looks like, well, here it is. Your IP is not sola/solo Scriptura; it’s monergism vs. synergism.

    Monergism = Biblical
    Synergism = Hellenist

    The game is rigged; the question is begged here. If anyone departs your monergistic paradigm, he or she is no longer biblical. If he or she is no longer biblical, he or she is no longer within the realm of the Holy Spirit or inspired. In fact, I’d be willing to bet that your whole position on the perspicuous nature of Scripture turns on monergism (since the Grace of god reveals only monergism, then anything other than monergism is not the Grace of God). And, man, is that a disastrous epistemic IP.

    You lose and will keep losing to Mike and Bryan, John. You can keep posting to your cheerleaders at Triablogue, but that does little to answer the real epistemic questions at hand. You’re a decent lay apologist, John, but Mike and Bryan are trained philosophers and keep handing your posterior to you. You are not at an impasse, John. You simply have no response to the crucial point at hand. You give Scripture and they respond to it. You make silly claims regarding a Father, they call you on it, you retreat, then you water everything down to monergism vs. synergism. But this only gets back to HOW one reads Scripture. And you have to play on their turf again. Be honest, John; you have no response to their claims. There are responses, by the way, but you have none. In fact, as far as I can tell, your IP leads to Quakerism (I suppose I’ll have to retract this in the same flippant manner you retracted your Pelagian claim). So enjoy that. Shhhhhhhhhhhhhh.

    Again, I’m not Catholic. I just like to see tightly constructed arguments and well wrought claims. You have neither at this point, John. You keep making the same point differently, repeatedly.

  548. John Bugay,

    If you have answered this question already, I apologize. How is your analysis not something that can be marked up to this:

    1. Torrance exegetes Paul
    2. Torrance exegetes Clement
    3. Torrance’s exegesis of Paul disagrees with his exegesis of Clement
    4. Therefore, Clement’s view of _______ is wrong.

    Not only is your argument contingent upon Torrance, it is also contingent upon — in some way — you trusting the academic rigor of Torrance — since you admit to not be an equal scholar of Torrance’s who would be able to make an academic judgement on his work, on par with the heretofore granted academic rigor of Torrance. In other words, you must — because of academic disparity — employ the “obedience of faith” with Torrance’s academic promulgation.

    If this is your argument, then you can obviously see that with regards to Catholic/Protestant dialog (not Protestant/Protestant), it begs the question.

    Bryan and Mike are smart to not get bogged down in #1, because Protestantism proves that will get you nowhere. In other words, I could be a Protestant and reject #1 and you would have no recourse to correct me. Moreover, there is no academic Magisteria anywhere that has ever unified Protestantism — even those prayerful, pious, and academically trained Protestants. You seem almost hopeful (here and at triablog) that scholarship nouveau will somehow produce the silver bullet that will bring all Protestants together on the mothership of Christian unity under the banner of Torrance et. al. And Catholics are blamed for being triumphalists! Here’s what I say to that, 450 years hasn’t worked out so well and I see nothing that portends anything different.

    Let me just add that your personal expose, as well as others here of former Catholics, makes a lot of sense to me now. I say “now”, because I just finished Bad Religion by Ross Douthat, and I found it fascinating to learn more about American Catholicism over the last 80 years. I think all of us Catholics at Called to Communion should remember that there is a very ugly history of deplorable catechesis in the US (and in other places), to the kiddy-pool levels of the times of Luther and Calvin. If Luther is the by-product of Bavarian excess and impiety, many fallen away Catholics in America are the direct by-product of the same. Douthat points out that the abuse scandal was the by-product of the errors of both clericalism and also what he calls “accomodationist” theology (Protestant and Catholic liberal post-war theology). In fact, we might say that the 60’s-80’s represent the tidal wave of clericalism still on the way out, and accomodationist theology competing for the center (and in many American diocese and parishes, it getting it).

    No wonder there are so many ex-Catholics in the US!

    So, John (and others), forgive us for sometimes losing site of that fact. While on our view, Luther made the wrong choice in how to go about reforming the Church, it in no way abnegates the Church’s responsibility for reform (which it did, praise be to God!). You may have been a well-formed Catholic and just apostatized, I don’t know. But, I’m cautious now to be judgmental of anyone who left the Church while living in America over the last 40 years.

    More about the book to come…

  549. Brent,

    Thank you for the book recommendation. I find myself in a strange position in all this. Bryan, Mike, Ray, et. al present the true theology (vs. the caricature’s) of the Catholic faith in a wonderfully clear manner, showing its scriptural foundations. But I live in a heavily Catholic area where multitudes of ex-Catholics and nominal Catholics provide a constant 3d picture of just how bad the pastoral world of the Catholic Church really is. My kids are in a Catholic school and one of the teachers told me “I don’t quote the Bible, I’m Catholic”! Showing me a list of all the Papal encyclical’s where Catholics are encouraged to read the Bible doesn’t help much when you see where the faithful really are.

    I suppose my “protest” as such is not about the theology at this point but about the pastoral care. Eerily, this doesn’t seem to much to have changed a lot since the 1500’s. As someone who gives pastoral care to those I have responsibility for, I am asking myself, “How can I, in good conscience, either desert those I am given care for or bring them into an environment where they will be terribly neglected or worse?” From a theoretical standpoint it looks awesome, from a practical standpoint it looks terrifying. And painting the scene with rosy colored glasses doesn’t help. An actual roadmap, showing the dangers and actual shortcomings, and how to overcome or avoid them would be more helpful to us who are considering leading congregations or groups of people into “full communion”. If this thing is going to get traction, it has to get beyond just answering individual objections and into the meat of such things like the disparancy between levels of pastoral care in the Protestant vs Catholic worlds.

    Some articles addressing, in a very honest transparent, non-salesy manner, would be helpful.

    Thanks,

    Strategizing….

  550. Strategizing…

    When I became Catholic I initially fell into a parish that was plagued by the problems you described. At first I did not know any better but after an RCIA class where the priest, among other things, said that women should be priests – I moved to a different parish.

    As hard for me to understand why such priests bother being Catholic and why people who oppose Catholic teaching insist upon being Catholic I am reminded that in Paul’s day he was confronted with many of the same problems the moment he left Corinth or Ephesus. The problems of the Catholic Church are precisely the problems of the Church. After all, Israel was no less Israel when she was sinning.

    While, in many ways, the past generation has been a dark one for the Catholic Church there are sings of hope and improvement. For one thing Rome is finally taking notice and taking action with the heterodox LCWR. The priest at the aforementioned parish retired and his replacement, I hear, is much more careful to articulate the Catholic faith in a faithful way.

    I have to keep reminding myself that the Church is 2,000 and I’ve been Catholic less than a decade. What should I expect?

    Lets all pray for our priests and catechists.

    FYI – we do have one fairly recent post about this here.

  551. Gentlemen:

    The problem of poor catechesis has always been with the Church Christ founded–even in the NT–and will always be with us. It reflects both the weakness of human nature and, I’m forced to say, the will of God. It reflects the former because many people, in their worldliness, either reject some aspects of the truth or don’t care to learn all of them. That’s the wheat-and-tares thing. God permits that as part of his plan. I think it’s instructive to consider why.

    I can’t count the number of faithful, educated Catholic laity I know who are frustrated by the indifference of so many parishes to authentic, ongoing faith formation. The frustrated of course include myself and the other laymen who write for this site. Too often, the clergy itself is to blame for the indifference. Priests and bishops don’t like to rock the boat; but when you teach the faith in its fullness to everybody, and insist on fidelity to it, you are going to rock boats and some of them will capsize. And then there are the clergy who just don’t believe all that the Church teaches. But that problem too has always been with us. By historical standards, it was particularly bad in the aftermath of Vatican II: the last third of the 20th century. But under the present and the previous pope, the tide has begun to turn. That’s partly due to their fidelity and policies, but it’s also due to the fact that “progressive” Catholicism doesn’t reproduce itself well. The more you try to align the teaching of the Church with the fashionable beliefs and values of the world, the less reason you see for the Church at all. If the world’s beliefs and values are your measure of the Church’s, then either you’ll stick around and try to make the Church conform to them, and you will fail, or you’re going to end up finding the Church irrelevant, and sooner or later you and your progeny will act accordingly. That’s why dioceses led by progressive bishops and chanceries produce few vocations, and why progressive laity produce few children.

    I’m convinced that God permits so many bad or indifferent clergy to remind us that salvation is primarily a divine not a human work, and that his mercy is just as necessary for religious people as for the irreligious. My own faith has never depended on my opinion of the clergy, my fellow Catholics, or the institutional apparatus of the Church generally; if it did, it would have dissipated long ago. I think Protestants need to develop the same attitude. It is significant, to be sure, that the level of engagement among regular Protestant churchgoers, both intellectual and spiritual, tends to be higher than among regular Catholic churchgoers. There are many sociological reasons for that. Theologically, they combine to incline Protestants to believe that the real Church is the church of “the pure,” and either they think they’ve found that or they are always looking for it. They need to realize they’ll never find anything like it. The Church is not a self-selected membership in a club but a body of sinners, most of whom did not enter by choice, and all of whom need to submit their judgment and their will to that body. The Church sanctifies us as much in spite of as because of her membership, including the clergy. That’s the will of God. If we submit to it, then we won’t be so troubled by her failings.

    Best,
    Mike

  552. John Bugay, you write:

    At some point I just came to say “the Church” really isn’t wiser than I am.

    That is exactly what I said when I became an apostate when I was in my early twenties! During the years that I was an apostate from the faith, I was never an atheist. I always believed always in God, but I also believed in the primacy of the individual conscience, and that was the principle that guided my life. Which meant that I decided what was moral and what was immoral, and that has disastrous consequences when one has cut oneself off from God’s grace. The damage I did to myself by living fifteen years of being an apostate has led me to believe that the idea of the primacy of the individual conscience isn’t scriptural, it is diabolical.

    Bryan writes:

    ..the most fundamental choice we face as humans: faith, or autonomy …

    Exactly! To be a Protestant that embraces the idea of the primacy of the individual conscience, is to be an autonomous individual that is deciding for himself or herself what interpretations of scriptures he or she will accept.

    “If I submit (only when I agree), the one to whom I submit is me.”

    Faith in my personal interpretations of the scriptures is no faith at all – it is just me listening to me.

  553. Dear Strategizing,

    I concur with Mike’s assessment and will add, that many priests do all they can to keep up with the demands of Pastoral care. Let me give you the examples of three close friends who are priests in two different locations. One priest I know this week alone had 8 funerals (that is unusually high but he averages about 3-4). This priest, as Pastor, also handles the business of the parish etc… plus offers daily Mass, hears Confessions twice a week on a regular basis, does sick calls etc… Another priest handles a very large parish, is currently building a school, handles the business of the parish as Pastor, besides his Pastoral responsibilities, he makes it his business to go to the prison’s one night a week to say Mass, hear confessions and do catechesis. Another priest friend is the Pastor of a parish, and the administrator of two other parishes. I could go on and on detailing the workload of the average priest that I personally know. Having been a Pastor, I can honestly say that the priests I know burn more of the candle than I ever did. My priest friends struggle with keeping up with reading etc… because they are so busy with the everyday of parish life. What me must do is pray for an increase in vocations to the priesthood and religious life, and may God be pleased to flood our seminaries with godly men, who strive for holiness and seek to serve Christ and His people.

  554. Amen, Tom. Priests have too much work and too few numbers. That’s I why I pray every day for vocations and encourage as many young Catholic men as I can to consider them.

    Best,
    Mike

  555. And let me add, that I am not saying that there are not problematic situations out there, but there are many good and godly priests out there who labor with their lives in the service of the Church.

  556. Mateo (re:#553),

    I write as a fellow Catholic “revert” here. I very much respect your passion for the faith, including as it is expressed in the good work that you do here in the com boxes. At 24 years old, I left the Catholic Church in a storm of (relatively) youthful confusion and disappointment over many issues and questions. For a few years, I was basically a nihilist. Over time, I returned to a form of (Protestant) Christian faith which became more and more pronounced in its anti-Catholicism. I am very familiar with “Sola Scriptura” thinking, as I held to it fiercely for years as what I thought that Christ truly intended for us. Eventually, I painfully realized that I was mistaken in this regard, which is part of why I returned to the Catholic Church. With all of this said, you wrote above:

    Faith in my personal interpretations of the scriptures is no faith at all – it is just me listening to me.

    In all fairness, this is a caricature of how committed, theologically conservative Protestants approach and study the Scriptures. There are such things as serious, thoughtful Protestant faith and exegesis of the Scriptures. Protestants are not all just listening to themselves. Caricatures of each other’s approaches and positions help no one, whether they come from Protestants, Catholics, Orthodox, atheists, etc.

  557. Tom,

    Thank you for the response. I completely appreciate what you are saying. In the business world there is a maxim that “how you treat your employees is how they will treat your customers” It is fairly obvious to us on the outside that you guys have serious problems in regards to taking care of the clergy and the clergy taking care of the faithful. Seeing that clearly, how does a protestant pastor move his congregation that direction knowing the likelihood that he will sacrifice his sheep by bringing them into an environment where they will be poorly cared for? This is a REAL problem and no amount “just trust GOD” is going to solve it. As long as that is the solution I think you are just going to keep getting a few stragglers here and there. There has got to be some sort of mechanism, much like the Anglican Ordinariate, that can allow the “Ecclesial Communities” a way to not sacrifice being cared for. I mean, at the very least it is a huge logistics problem. You guys aren’t even taking care of what you have, what will happen if large groups of protestants come in? (or large groups of anything else for that matter?)

  558. Dear Christopher (re#556):

    If primacy of individual conscience is the bedrock principle of Protestantism (and I think it is), then what Mateo says is correct when you get to the bottom line of Protestant exegesis. Each Protestant individual reserves to himself the ultimate right to judge the truth of any biblical interpretation. This is just a different way of saying that which you have objected to in Mateo’s post.

    As you well know, there is no Protestant Magisterium whose teachings demand the assent of faith – there are only individuals who are not bound by any authority to accept any given doctrine or interpretation of Scripture if it conflicts with their own.

    In Him,
    Frank

  559. The esse of the church is God’s life in Christ, not an institution or prolongation of the incarnation (Roman Catholic ecclesiology). When you read, Barth, Joshua, didn’t you come to see this in his articulation on election in God’s life for us?

    You should have become a Barthian. It is true that Barth took up the themes of a Reformed Protestantism, sola fide, total depravity (but not original sin); but of course he recast them in a way that did not leave humanity blind (as you seem to intimate), but instead recreated and endowed with the visio Dei that only comes through Christ and participation in the vicarious humanity of Christ itself. You seem to have misread, Barth. You should re-read him, and read some of his best commentators like Bruce McCormack, and an up and comer on Barth’s dislike for the analogia entis, Keith Johnson.

    Anyway, Joshua, I am hopeful that you will see that submitting to the Roman Catholic magesterium is not the same as submitting to the Head of the Church, Jesus Christ. The concrete particularity of the Church is found nowhere else but in God’s life itself, in Christ pro nobis. The incarnation was a unique event (sui generis) not reproduced or extended through the Roman Catholic church (that is simply an ad hoc interpretation of the history). The fact that as the Apostle Paul wrote, that we walk by faith and not by sight, is one that you ought to really contemplate (at least further than you have). You seem to want to stability, and some sense of certitude, and yet the life of walking by faith is just the opposite; it is a life of dependence and growth and pain and relationship (which is much more dynamic than what you have been looking for and found in the Roman Catholic Church). It seems to me that you were looking for certainty in something you could “see,” but in fact the scriptures say ‘blessed are those who have not seen and yet believed’. Your philosophical angst and yearnings may have been settled by joining the Roman Catholic church, but this is different than what the kind of rest that Jesus calls us to.

    Anyway, just sharing …

  560. Strategizing,

    Seeing that clearly, how does a protestant pastor move his congregation that direction knowing the likelihood that he will sacrifice his sheep by bringing them into an environment where they will be poorly cared for?

    Let me just say a few things here. Our current priest has been more pastoral, more caring, etc. then any pastor we have ever had. My parents, who have visited with us on occasion for special events, noted that our priest spoke with them more on those occasions than their own pastor. My priest has eaten at my house more times than all of my previous pastors combined. I don’t think our pastor is some strange anomaly. So, I think your view of RC pastoral care is a type of caricature (we’ve experienced good pastors in St. Louis, MO, Irving, TX and in other cities).

    Are there cultural and nominal Catholics? Sure there are. But that is what happens when you are part of the Church Christ founded and not a part of a community where everyone associates based upon their perceived common spiritual maturity or preferences. A club can feel safer than the Church for just the fact that everyone is on the same page. The Church is like Noah’s Ark, full of wheat and tares, so it is the job of the spiritually mature to build up the less mature through our example and witness. Plus, when in the Church, you can work for authentic reform in the actual “Church” that is something more than just some local congregation that is likely tied — in either success or failure — to some personality.

    Moreover, the Sacraments of the Church can more than “care for” your congregation. Without them (I’m sorry to put this bluntly), you would be trading good friendship or mentorship for God’s grace. Plus, nothing is stopping you from being a good mentor/friend to each other after entering the Church. If you would need support, support each other. The priest will, at the least, hear your Confession, offer Absolution, provide the Eucharist, etc. That’s a lot of care if you ask me. After all, we are all priests right? So, we have a job as the laity to build each other up. If I remember right, I thought that was a big deal for Protestants. So, you may not have to give up as much as you thought after all. Plus, one of you might be able to discern the diaconate (if you were a former minister) and still “tend” to the flock — so to speak (I’m speaking off the top of my head right now).

    Peace to you on your journey,

    Brent

  561. Bryan 532:

    St. Clement also believes that righteousness and holiness are from the Spirit working in us. Nothing he writes here entails otherwise. Your interpretation of St. Clement presupposes that if we are to strive for holiness, then the resulting holiness cannot be the result of God at work in us. But that’s a monergistic notion you are bringing to the text of 1 Clement, one St. Clement himself did not share.

    So you say. And yet, look at the order of things in this introductory passage:

    Chapter one is a litany of things that the Corinthians were – “you did everything without partiality, and you lived in accordance with the laws of God, submitting yourselves …. [2.1] Moreover, you were all humble and free from arrogance, submitting rather than demanding submission, more glad to give than to receive, and content with the provisions that God supplies. And giving heed to his words, you stored them up diligently in your hearts, and kept his sufferings before your eyes. [2.2]Thus a profound and rich peace was given to all, together with an insatiable desire to do good, and an abundant outpouring of the Holy Spirit fell upon everyone as well …

    As Torrance has noted, in Titus, it is God’s initiative. Here, for Clement, the “outpouring of the Holy Spirit” was almost an afterthought.

  562. Bryan (#543)

    The claim we were considering was your claim that St. Clement’s conception of grace is not in alignment with Scripture.

    Keep in mind both he and TDNT have produced very thorough documentary evidence on the sources of meanings of the word “grace”, both in the Greek culture and in the Bible. And Torrance’s comparison with Clement, finds far more affinities with the cultural usage than the Biblical usage. (So far I’ve reproduced Torrance’s introductory section on Clement, but not his exegetical work).

    Claims about me, such as the three sentences just quoted (in which I am the subject of each sentence), do not show anything about St. Clement’s conception of grace.

    I have no intention to be insulting, but it is descriptive of what has happened. The three sentences of mine say everything about what I perceive to be your inability to engage the material.

    I know now that you reject these definitions in advance, not because of any flaw in their analyses of the literature, but because of presuppositions you hold. Your presuppositions hold that the definitions are consistent with the concept of “Scripture alone”. It would be nice if you could look at his work (not my own reporting of it) and show his flaws.

    Bear in mind, Torrance is not consulting only Scripture; he is consulting a broad range of literature outside of Scripture. As well, what Torrance is saying at this point is not to make these definitions the “formal proximate object of faith”. He is merely stating things as he finds them.

    But if, when looking for the definition of grace in Scripture, the only thing that one finds, to borrow from Atychi (547), is monergisim, then the synergism that Clement teaches comes from some other source.

    In that case, the source you want is that somehow, somewhere, the Apostles taught this synergism outside of things they taught in the Scriptures. That doesn’t follow though.

    On the other hand, again, Torrance is merely identifying sources, he is not “proposing” the “formal proximate object of faith”. You guys are so quick to pull the trigger on “question-begging”, that you just simply fail to consider important information about sources for your own “Tradition”, for “[your] family’s internally developed cliches and allusions”.

    Aren’t you interested in knowing where these concepts may or may not come from? After all, isn’t the church “assimilating” what it can from the culture? Why would it be such a scandal for you, if that were to be the case?

    When your interlocutor shows that your argument is question-begging, the right response is to examine your argument to see whether it does in fact beg the question. If it does, then you need a different argument.

    Just simply calling a thing “question-begging” is not helpful. There is no authoritative “dictionary of question-begging things”. This too is a fallible judgment on your part. Aside from that, Christianity is just not simply one big exercise in logic, because God clearly does things that lie outside the realm of “logic” – including such things as telling the Israelites to kill all the Canaanites. At that point in Israel’s history, that’s “the formal proximate object of faith”, and yet, it is in no way “rationally unassailable” and in fact is completely “rationally avoidable”. So it is not inconsistent to say that “God sometimes commands things that are not ‘rationally unassailable’”.

    In my previous post, I noted that Paul said, “I am not out of my mind, most excellent Festus, but I utter words of sober truth. For the king knows about these matters, and I speak to him also with confidence, since I am persuaded that none of these things escape his notice; for this has not been done in a corner (Acts 26:26).”

    You have misidentified what’s at issue here. Torrance’s introductory sections on different lexical understandings of grace are not “arguments”. These are clearly marked “the Green conception of grace”, in classical Greek, in Hellenistic Greek, and in Philo. A second section includes grace “in the Old Testament” and “in the New Testament”. These things were not “written in a corner”. You can look them up.

    So when you say that Torrance is “question-begging” here, what you are saying is, “Torrance really didn’t look at all the different usages of grace in his analysis. There are other usages he didn’t consider.” And specifically, you are saying, “I don’t accept Torrance’s definitions here because they are not my definitions.

    But really, I’m sure you would agree, words do “have meaning”, and these meanings can be identified. And what you are accusing Torrance of is (a) purposely not being complete in his finding of these usages, or (b) being inept. Given that this was a PhD dissertation, if either of these were to be the case, he’d have been tossed right out. Unless you want to say that the whole group of those who reviewed his definitions were similarly biased or inept. In this case, you single-handedly have defeated the entire PhD apparatus of Edinburgh University in the 1940’s.

    And, you know, Torrance is the one who has combed through these sources; I am merely reporting on what he has done. If you care to interact with this at all, you are the one who needs to interact with the sources. Saying his work is “question-begging” without looking at what he has done is like saying “nuh-uh”.

    The passage of Scripture you have cited as evidence is that passage from Titus, and I already explained above why Titus is fully compatible with what St. Clement wrote.

    Such is the perspicuity for you. Scripture may be perspicuous for me when you need it to be. Maybe you can show me someone else who looks at the passage from Titus that way. I have addressed this in a previous comment.

    Also, just because something is peer reviewed doesn’t mean that it must be treated as infallible.

    I didn’t say that it would be. But the same thing is going on here. You say Torrance is “question-begging”, so you simply dismiss what he says. Roman Catholics simply dismissed David King’s analysis because it wasn’t “peer reviewed”.

    Why give your readers mere “logic lessons”? Why not actually interact with what these men are presenting, and show where it’s wrong? Protestant scholars, after all, make a living by analyzing each others’ arguments, showing where, actually they are wrong or misinformed, and thereby improve the quality of the entire body of work. By failing to engage (either King or Torrance) just because of a broad, over-reaching reasons (whether you say “they are question-begging” or “they are not peer-reviewed”), and leaving the actual material untouched, is most unhelpful.

    David King, by the way, did “engage your family discussion”. He (and Bill Webster) did thoroughly look at what the early church was saying, and it’s very different from what you would expect “the Fathers said”.

  563. Continuing with Bryan (#543):

    So your evidence in support of your charge against St. Clement cannot be merely an argument from authority, in this case the academic authority of Torrance.

    It is not “my evidence” nor is it “my charge”, and nor is it “my argument”. It is completed work, that many have affirmed, and it should be dealt with for what it is, and not simply dismissed as you have dismissed it. Interesting that you, being so keen to find “arguments from authority,” have latched onto Rome, which is the ultimate argument from authority.

    JB: At some point I just came to say “the Church” really isn’t wiser than I am.

    Well, John, you know what I would say in response to this. It is your own indictment, that you think you know better than the Church.

    Actually, no. The concept of “the Church” as you use it (and as I use it here, in the same way – meaning “the authoritative hierarchy”) has show itself not to have wisdom. I reject what you call and revere as “the Church”. And it’s not just simply my own “knowing better”. It is joining myself with a great stream of Christians through history who reject this conception of “Roman Catholic hierarchy” as “the Church”.

    True obedience lies not in being obedient with some body that claims it can identify and propose “the formal proximate object of faith”. True obedience lies with being actually obedient to what God says, and [in response to your question “What do you think the Catholic Church has bound, that is contrary to what God Himself said?”], it is not simply a matter of being “contrary” to it. What is “contrary to” the directive “to kill all the Canaanite clans who were living in the land”? (Deut. 7.1-2; 20.16-18) Is it just killing most of them? Or not killing any of them at all? Certainly, the second is more “directly contrary to” God’s command, but even “just killing some of them” is disobedience.

    So, it is more than just a matter of “adhering closely to” what God said. If it is in the Scriptures, it is important; if it is speculative [and core Roman Catholic things such as transubstantiation and the Marian dogmas are all speculative], there is absolutely no reason to “bind” these things, other than as a show of supposed authority. God himself did not propose these things, much less bind them.

    What you continually do is not to actually demonstrate the flow of authority from Jesus to from Apostles to Bishops, but you simply assume it is there, you assume those who supposedly have this authority could only tell the truth about it – it is this [questioned] authority to which you claim obedience. Neither you nor anyone else actually shows what “the authority” actually is, or what the “handing on” of it actually looked like.

    Instead, the “proof” for this is all so very convoluted.

    It is your own indictment, that you think you know better than the Church. This was the stance of Naaman too, that he knew better than Elisha. It was the stance of Eve too, in the Garden. It was the stance of Judas too, that he knew better than Christ. This is the most fundamental choice we face as humans: faith, or autonomy.

    In bringing up Eve here, you are equivocating. There is a real disanalogy in questioning what had been a direct word from God to Adam and Eve, vs questioning a word given from God through some supposedly God-given interface. The absolutely correct thing to do is to question the veracity of that interface. (Note the real analogy here is that Satan proposed himself as the “correct interpreter” of God’s word in this instance).

    Consider Elisha. There is a real disanalogy in comparing the Roman Catholic hierarchy, too, to the prophet Elisha. Elisha had two things that Rome didn’t have. He had the mantle of Elijah. And he had a death sentence upon him if he spoke a thing that wasn’t 100% accurate. Rome’s definition of “ex cathedra” is very loose compared with that. Rome is very easy on itself.

    If Christ founded a Church, and gave it authority, then even though she will look from the outside like a very human and earthy institution

    This, again, is all very speculative. First, the concept of “giving it authority” is, as I’ve mentioned, the very thing in question, at several levels.

    Second, God founded Israel – one man and his descendants. That is all very much contrary to “what you’d think God would do”. It’s not at all “a very human and earthly institution”. The called them to stand apart. He called them to be odd. Why should God single out only one family? There is no “rationally unassailable” reason why he would do that.

    Plus, there is plenty of opportunity here for equivocation on those very words “human” and “earthly”. What do you mean by this? That it’s “human” and “earthly” to wear robes and pointy hats and walk around in processions waving incense around? We know now that’s “human” and “earthly” in the sense that it’s the way that the pagan religions of the first century behaved. Is that something to which anyone ought to “bind us”? Or, when we get “bound to” that, by whomever, why shouldn’t we question that?

    I abide by what “the church” says, ministerially in history and ministerially in my own life. I regard Roman Catholicism to be an aberration, an accident of history (though yes, an accident that’s in accord with God’s decree). You see, he sets up a Kingdom in Israel for the purpose of sending it into exile. Where’s the and I respect its teaching — and knowing that none of it is “infallible”, I have the ability to use my own mind, to assess the arguments of the mainstream of Reformers who said “Roman authority is bad, it’s abusive, it’s doctrinally wrong”. Starting with

    Christ did found a church, and he says, “I will build my church”. He does not say, “I will build the Roman Catholic Church [and its hierarchy]. For you to assume that is “question-begging”. You will have to show me the Biblical passage in which Christ says “I will build the Roman Catholic Church” or “I give the Roman Catholic Church my authority”.

    That’s the question in point. The precise kind of authority the Apostles had is in question. The precise kind of authority that the next generations of church leaders had is precisely the point. Following Newman (and others), you just simply assume “it is not a violent assumption” that the Roman church hierarchy of today has the same authority that each of those groups had. Up above, I said precisely in what (exegetical) sense Peter is foundational to the church, it has corroboration from Paul. And I showed in what sense “binding and loosing” occurred. Not only is it “not inconsistent” with an exegetical reading of scripture, it’s far more “actually consistent” with the actual events as they were reported by the Apostles.

    So what really is your “direct evidence” that Rome is the true church? You have no independent evidence. Scripture means whatever Rome says. The church fathers mean whatever Rome says. Church councils mean whatever Rome says. There’s no way of breaking out of the circle, even in principle.

    And if you “go back” to the church of the 30’s, 40,s, 50’s and 60’s, (a) you’ll see that it looks nothing like the Roman Catholic Church, either in form or authority structure, and (b) official Rome has recognized this, and has altered its language to reflect that it’s earlier “teaching” on this was wrong.

    Will we follow God even when we don’t see the evidence for the truth of what He says,

    “Following God” and “following the Roman Catholic Church” are two different things.

    Second, “These things did not happen in a corner”. God’s testimonies are not hidden from you or anyone. “The truth of what He says” is not a mystery. Except within the thickets of Roman dogma.

    Keep the focus on the positions, i.e. the doctrines, not the persons holding them. My comment about “solo scriptura” was only to point out that the methodology you were using in your argument against St. Clement is a question-begging methodology.

    No, it is very insulting and condescending.

    But sola scriptura and “solo scriptura” are much more than the claim that God has spoken in the Scriptures. They declare in essence …

    And what you say is “in essence” is not what it actually is “in truth”. What you say “in essence”, the folks consider to be “the truth”. But the doctrine of Sola Scriptura does not “in truth” say that “every man’s interpretation of Scripture is no less authoritative than that of the Church’s magisterium”.

    What the doctrine of “Sola Scriptura” is “in fact” is something that rarely gets dealt with here.

  564. Bryan (543 again):

    I understand (and share) your frustration over the way the sex abuse problem was handled. It is another sinful blemish in Church history. Mea culpa, mea culpa, mea maxima culpa. It belongs to us to make reparations.

    You are a much bigger man than any of the bishops I am aware of in your church. Would that some pope or bishops would say “Mea culpa, mea culpa, mea maxima culpa”.

    Also, given the recent activities in the Joe Paterno case, much more than reparations are due. Unless you think that the Roman Catholic Church is due special treatment, it would seem that, just as “it belongs to Sandusky” to serve jail time, it belongs to about 98% of the 6115 priests who were accused of abuse. Bishop-accountability.org (who seems to be the only organization that’s performing a “Freeh-investigation” function) reports that “Fewer than 2 percent of sexual abuse allegations against the Catholic church appear to be false”.

  565. Atychi (547) – I’m touched by your concern for my supposedly “poor showing”, and your admiration for the “trained philosophers” here. But I am pleased to find myself in Paul’s position, in effect: “I did not come proclaiming to you the testimony of God with lofty speech or wisdom. For I decided to know nothing among you except Jesus Christ and him crucified. And I was with you in weakness and in fear and much trembling, and my speech and my message were not in plausible words of wisdom…”

    Reporting things that “did not take place in a corner”.

    You said:

    Here is how your position regarding grace and the Bible reads: Torrance sees Clement’s position on grace as synergistic, and hence Clement is just like a Hellenist and hence non-biblical. The biblical view of Grace, again according to Torrance, is monergistic. Therefore, if grace is deemed as anything other than monergistic, it is therefore not biblical.

    There are problems with this. Torrance does not just “see” Clement’s position (and the position of all the Apostolic Fathers he writes about) as “synergistic”. He makes a sustained and specific argument (a 140-page argument which I am not able to reproduce here to your satisfaction, and thus you draw the faulty conclusion that I’m having my butt handed to me).

    Torrance’s argument is an argument (a 140 page argument), which first gives thorough and one would expect unbiased definitions. These are given as the premises of his arguments, and these are what is rejected with a mere assertion (its supposedly “solo/sola Scriptura assumptions”). It was noticed and accepted in the early 1950’s by Oscar Cullmann, who incorporated it into the context of some other early historical settings, and hence Cullmann’s article that I’ve been citing, “The Tradition”. Cullmann’s work coheres very well and is complemented by Kruger’s work on the canon of the New Testament. I am very happy to stand on the shoulders of these men.

    There was a very long thread over at Green Baggins some time ago, the whole tenor of which (if I recall) was to ask Bryan, “where do we have any information or evidence regarding this ‘unwritten Tradition’ that has supposedly been ‘handed down’ through the centuries?”

    Here, now, Torrance has identified the source for one particularly important strain of “Tradition”, and he located it (a) in the writings of someone who was supposed to have been a pope, and (b), it is located within the Hellenistic culture instead of the OT or NT writings.

    So you say:

    The game is rigged; the question is begged here.

    The question is, who is really rigging the game? Is it Torrance? Is it TDNT? No, in the definition portions of what they wrote, these were very deep analyses of the words in actual usage. Torrance did not make up “the writings of Philo”. He actually read them and knew them, and understood how they were used. Did the entire “Theological Dictionary of the New Testament” writer and editorial staff have a “faulty IP?” Did Torrance’s entire “review process” have a “faulty IP”? Did Oscar Cullmann (one of the leading theologians of his day [especially within this area of understanding the early church], with a very ecumenical bent) have a “faulty IP”? The worst these individuals can be accused of doing is being engaged in a search to understand true things about the situation.

    Where the rigging comes in is with Bryan’s quaint story about his family, and how the Roman Catholic Church similarly is a family with a history and a little language all their own, to use his words, “a family extending through time back to Christ and the Apostles, and perpetually vivified by the Holy Spirit”. This is where it is rigged, because this is the very thing that needs to be proved, and it is far from being established.

    What is really happening is that Torrance, especially, identified the different sources in the culture for where this particular “unwritten Tradition” came from, and if Torrance is correct, then it’s not as you say a “disastrous epistemic IP” but it will be something that happens to be true.

  566. Sean (550):

    When I became Catholic I initially fell into a parish that was plagued by the problems you described. At first I did not know any better but after an RCIA class where the priest, among other things, said that women should be priests – I moved to a different parish.

    So you shot your arrow, then painted your target around it.

  567. Strategizing,

    It seems that you have missed my point in my comment about priests. The faithful, on average, are not poorly cared for by priests. Priests, on the whole, are there with their people at the major events of their lives. You have accepted a caricature of the average priest. Sure, there are priests that neglect their work, as there are Protestant ministers who do the same. But, I would propose we no longer discuss this on this thread, which is about Joshua’s conversion to the Church founded by Christ. If you would like to email and discuss this, that would be fine but let’s keep to the topic at hand.

  568. John B,

    Regarding your response (#565) to Atychi:

    Let’s assume that Torrance is correct, and that the Roman “Tradition” is exactly as you say. How does that fact have any bearing on how your interpretive paradigm distinguishes heresy from orthodoxy? The RCC tradition could be total bunk, and your IP could still be disastrous. So, again, without reference to why the RCC in wrong, do you have a positive argument for how a Protestant can define orthodoxy in such a way that it is true for (and binding on) all believers? You have many impressive arguments, but as long as you continue to avoid answering this question, they all take on a certain air of deflection and obfuscation. If anything you are making an excellent argument for agnosticism.

    Burton

  569. Bobby Grow (#559),

    You say to Joshua:

    “You seem to want ….. some sense of certitude”

    This is a concern that I have spent considerable time thinking about. As I consider the claims of the RCC, I have wondered if I also have some felt-need for certainty that draws me to a church that claims magisterial authority.
    But I wonder, in your opinion, what degree of certainty is necessary? I think you would agree that some degree of certainty is necessary. For instance, do we need to be certain about doctrines concerning the Trinity? Do we need certainty regarding the canon of Scripture? How about moral teachings like abortion and the definition of marriage? What is your basis for certainty about these things, or you disagree that even this degree of certainty is necessary?

    Burton

  570. John Bugay (re:#563 and #564),

    First of all, I want to say that I am very happy that you are here at CTC. I hope that, at least in general, you feel that you have been treated respectfully. Not that “feelings” are, in and of themselves, the measure of objective truth, of course, but they are also not altogether unimportant. If you feel that you are being treated disrespectfully here, we want to know. I think I can speak for everyone in saying that. I know, from your previous comments, that, at certain moments here , you have felt that you were addressed and/or answered in ways that objectively *did not* respect your *positions*, as a Reformed Christian. As a semi-regular commenter here, I can only say that I am sorry, and I ask your forgiveness on behalf of anyone here who has been unfair and/or disrespectful to you. I hope that I, personally, do not slip into any sort of caricature of what you believe in my comment(s) to you here.

    In #563, on the question of “Solo Scriptura” (often the effective position at work in many evangelical churches today) vs. “Sola Scriptura,” (the historic Reformation position, which you hold), you write:

    What the doctrine of “Sola Scriptura” is “in fact” is something that rarely gets dealt with here.

    As a “Reformed Baptist,” I definitely did not hold to Solo Scriptura, but I was a vehement adherent to, and defender of, Sola Scriptura. As an R.B., I did *not* take the Bible to be my only ecclesial authority, as a Christian, period. I valued historic church confessions, especially the New Hampshire Confession of Faith (an historic R.B. confession which I affirmed as a member of Capitol Hill Baptist Church) and the Westminster Confession (with which I largely agreed, other than on infant baptism and church polity). I believed in the importance of good Biblical commentaries. More than a few times over the years, I stressed to fellow Christians (and non-Christians) the need for “sound exegesis” of Scripture. I did not believe that Solo Scriptura and Sola Scriptura were *intrinsically* related in any way. Rather, I viewed the former as a serious, dangerous *betrayal* of the latter.

    Again, as a Sola Scriptura adherent, I definitely did not view the Bible as my *only* ecclesial authority. It was, however, my only *infallible* ecclesial authority. I would assume that, as a Reformed Protestant, this is your current position. Please do correct me if I am wrong.

    With all of the above said, I am curious as to what you think of the portrait of “Sola Scriptura” in this article: https://www.calledtocommunion.com/2009/11/solo-scriptura-sola-scriptura-and-the-question-of-interpretive-authority/ Do you believe that the historic Reformation position of Sola Scriptura is articulated fairly in this article? I can surmise that, as a Reformed Protestant, you would not agree with the article’s *conclusions*, but do you believe that Sola is at least articulated fairly, as a *position*, therein? If not, why not? If so, in what way would you disagree with the article’s conclusions? Just curious.

    In #564, replying to Bryan’s words about the sex abuse scandals in the Catholic Church, you write:

    You are a much bigger man than any of the bishops I am aware of in your church. Would that some pope or bishops would say “Mea culpa, mea culpa, mea maxima culpa”.

    In light of these earnest and sincere thoughts from you, which I value and take very seriously, I am curious as to whether you have you read the full text of this (i.e. not as it has been quoted in small excerpts by the media)?: https://www.vatican.va/holy_father/benedict_xvi/letters/2010/documents/hf_ben-xvi_let_20100319_church-ireland_en.html

    If you have read that Papal letter, then this more extensive Vatican page, specifically on the Popes’ (JPII and BXVI) and Bishops’ responses to the sex abuse scandals, might also be helpful: https://www.vatican.va/resources/index_en.htm

    Again, I’m happy that you’re here. God bless.

  571. Christopher Lake (#570)

    You [John Bugay] said:

    In #564, replying to Bryan’s words about the sex abuse scandals in the Catholic Church, you write:

    You are a much bigger man than any of the bishops I am aware of in your church. Would that some pope or bishops would say “Mea culpa, mea culpa, mea maxima culpa”.

    In light of these earnest and sincere thoughts from you, which I value and take very seriously, I am curious as to whether you have you read the full text of this [apology from Pope Benedict] (i.e. not as it has been quoted in small excerpts by the media)?

    Christopher, honestly, yes, I have read this pope’s “apology”, and to the depths of my heart, I am not only unimpressed by it, but the way I am moved by this is far, far worse. Consider where the concern is being focused here:

    1. Dear Brothers and Sisters of the Church in Ireland, it is with great concern that I write to you as Pastor of the universal Church. Like yourselves, I have been deeply disturbed by the information which has come to light regarding the abuse of children and vulnerable young people by members of the Church in Ireland, particularly by priests and religious. I can only share in the dismay and the sense of betrayal that so many of you have experienced on learning of these sinful and criminal acts and the way Church authorities in Ireland dealt with them.

    He is very vague about what the “criminal acts” are, and that the way that the “Church authorities in Ireland dealt with them” is somehow excluded from the “criminal acts”. Keep in mind what they are saying about Paterno now, as an enabler, and the former President of Penn State.

    I recently invited the Irish bishops to a meeting here in Rome to give an account of their handling of these matters … as they offered an analysis of mistakes made and lessons learned,

    No mea culpa here. It’s all so very vague. When you “go to confession”, don’t you have to provide a very detailed accounting of your mortal sins?

    2. For my part, considering the gravity of these offences, and the often inadequate response to them on the part of the ecclesiastical authorities in your country, I have decided to write this Pastoral Letter to express my closeness to you and to propose a path of healing, renewal and reparation.

    No mea culpa here.

    At the same time, I must also express my conviction that, in order to recover from this grievous wound, the Church in Ireland must first acknowledge before the Lord and before others the serious sins committed against defenceless children. Such an acknowledgement, accompanied by sincere sorrow for the damage caused to these victims and their families, must lead to a concerted effort to ensure the protection of children from similar crimes in the future.

    Oh, the poor “Church”, so grievously wounded! What about the poor children? I could point to articles where “the poor Church’s” lawyers have played legal hardball in the US with victim advocacy groups.

    3. Historically, the Catholics of Ireland etc., etc., etc.

    4. In recent decades, however, the Church in your country has had to confront new and serious challenges to the faith …

    Oh, the poor “Church” …

    6. To the victims of abuse and their families … You have suffered grievously and I am truly sorry.

    Look at how magnanimous I am with my own apologies. Compare that apology with this statement from one Penn State trustee said:

    “We are accountable for what’s happened here. Our administrative leadership also failed… People who were in a position to protect children and confront a predator” did not do so, Mr. Frazier said. “We are deeply ashamed.”

    The Penn State trustees backed up this apology with a genuine, in-depth investigation, which they paid for and publicized, in as quick a way as they could possibly do it. This investigation was paid for and made public, in a very quick way, by these Trustees. It all took less than a year. They are showing their accountability in the form of very swift action to make certain that absolutely everybody knows, in the clearest possible way, what went on, and who was accountable for it. It was “a scathing report that excoriated top Pennsylvania State University officials”. It was made very, very public.

    Consider that Pope Benedict is apologizing in 2010 for a situation that had been occurring since the 1980’s, and consider also, the stonewalling by Roman Catholic officials that just one investigation by a Philadelphia Grand Jury has encountered, also in the state of Pennsylvania:

    The behavior of Archdiocese officials was perhaps not as lurid as that of the individual priest sex abusers. But in its callous, calculating manner, the Archdiocese’s “handling” of the abuse scandal was at least as immoral as the abuse itself. The evidence before us established that Archdiocese officials at the highest levels received reports of abuse; that they chose not to conduct any meaningful investigation of those reports; that they left dangerous priests in place or transferred them to different parishes as a means of concealment; that they never alerted parents of the dangers posed by these offenders (who typically went out of their way to be friendly and helpful, especially with children); that they intimidated and retaliated against victims and witnesses who came forward about abuse; that they manipulated “treatment” efforts in order to create a false impression of action; and that they did many of these things in a conscious effort simply to avoid civil liability….

    But the biggest crime of all is this: it worked. The abuser priests, by choosing children as targets and trafficking on their trust, were able to prevent or delay reports of their sexual assaults, to the point where applicable statutes of limitations expired. And Archdiocese officials, by burying those reports they did receive and covering up the conduct, similarly managed to outlast any statutes of limitation. As a result, these priests and officials will necessarily escape criminal prosecution…

    In short, as abuse reports grew, the Archdiocese chose to call in the lawyers rather than confront the abusers. (excerpt from the PHILADELPHIA GRAND JURY I, 2003-2005, Report issued Sept. 15, 2005

    Do you see the contrast between how Penn State handled this, and how the Archdiocese of Philadelphia handled this? Similar crimes, committed over the same time period, in a very close geographic area, and two things occur to me here: First, the absolute difference in the two responses, and second, how simply “out-of-touch” (to give it a charitable “interpretation”) Pope Benedict is with the actual situation with respect to these investigations.

    Do you see what the contrast is here?

    Back to Papa Benedict’s “apology”:

    It is understandable that you find it hard to forgive or be reconciled with the Church. In her name, I openly express the shame and remorse that we all feel.

    But, while I acknowledge “you are victims”, this is all so very vague … “some bad thing has happened to you” … somehow, somewhere, but there is no sense of accountability, just a very vague sense that “we all feel so bad about this”.

    I humbly ask you to consider what I have said. I pray that, by drawing nearer to Christ and by participating in the life of his Church – a Church purified by penance and renewed in pastoral charity …

    Again, consider that Jerry Sandusky is not being “purified by penance” but is actually serving time in jail. Consider that Mgr William Lynn is serving time in jail. But there were hundreds of bishops who did what Lynn did. There were thousands of priests who did what Sandusky did. How many of them have seen actual jail time? Consider what just one grand jury in Philadelphia has had to go through …

    7. To priests and religious who have abused children

    You betrayed the trust that was placed in you by innocent young people and their parents, and you must answer for it before Almighty God and before properly constituted tribunals….

    Yes, we see how they have handled “properly constituted tribunals….”. Thank God for the justice of Almighty God, eh?

    I urge you to examine your conscience, take responsibility for the sins you have committed, and humbly express your sorrow. Sincere repentance opens the door to God’s forgiveness and the grace of true amendment. By offering prayers and penances for those you have wronged, you should seek to atone personally for your actions. Christ’s redeeming sacrifice has the power to forgive even the gravest of sins, and to bring forth good from even the most terrible evil. At the same time, God’s justice summons us to give an account of our actions and to conceal nothing. Openly acknowledge your guilt, submit yourselves to the demands of justice, but do not despair of God’s mercy.

    After the horses are out of the barn, he says this. Where was Papa Benedict when the Philadelphia grand jury was in session?

    11. To my brother bishops

    It cannot be denied that some of you and your predecessors failed, at times grievously, to apply the long-established norms of canon law to the crime of child abuse. Serious mistakes were made in responding to allegations. I recognize how difficult it was to grasp the extent and complexity of the problem, to obtain reliable information and to make the right decisions in the light of conflicting expert advice. Nevertheless, it must be admitted that grave errors of judgement were made and failures of leadership occurred. All this has seriously undermined your credibility and effectiveness.

    You poor, poor bishops, having to go through this. Again, consider what the Freeh report said about Joe Paterno and the Penn State executive leadership.

    in the words of Saint Augustine, you are a bishop; yet with them you are called to be a follower of Christ (cf. Sermon 340, 1). I therefore exhort you to renew your sense of accountability before God, to grow in solidarity with your people and to deepen your pastoral concern for all the members of your flock.

    Really, many of you have escaped jail time, so put on your game faces, get out there, and be infallible some more. Oh, and, think about calling off the lawyers.

    14. I now wish to propose to you some concrete initiatives to address the situation.

    At the conclusion of my meeting with the Irish bishops, I asked that Lent this year be set aside as a time to pray for an outpouring of God’s mercy and the Holy Spirit’s gifts of holiness and strength upon the Church in your country. I now invite all of you to devote your Friday penances, for a period of one year, between now and Easter 2011, to this intention. I ask you to offer up your fasting, your prayer, your reading of Scripture and your works of mercy in order to obtain the grace of healing and renewal for the Church in Ireland. I encourage you to discover anew the sacrament of Reconciliation and to avail yourselves more frequently of the transforming power of its grace.

    Particular attention should also be given to Eucharistic adoration, and in every diocese there should be churches or chapels specifically devoted to this purpose. I ask parishes, seminaries, religious houses and monasteries to organize periods of Eucharistic adoration, so that all have an opportunity to take part. Through intense prayer before the real presence of the Lord, you can make reparation for the sins of abuse that have done so much harm, at the same time imploring the grace of renewed strength and a deeper sense of mission on the part of all bishops, priests, religious and lay faithful.

    I am confident that this programme will lead to a rebirth of the Church in Ireland in the fullness of God’s own truth, for it is the truth that sets us free (cf. Jn 8:32).

    Compare that response with Micah 6:

    “With what shall I come before the Lord,
    and bow myself before God on high?
    Shall I come before him with burnt offerings,
    with calves a year old?
    Will the Lord be pleased with thousands of rams,
    with ten thousands of rivers of oil?
    Shall I give my firstborn for my transgression,
    the fruit of my body for the sin of my soul?”

    He has told you, O man, what is good;
    and what does the Lord require of you
    but to do justice, and to love kindness,
    and to walk humbly with your God?

    Papa Benedict concludes:

    I wish to conclude this Letter with a special Prayer for the Church in Ireland, which I send to you with the care of a father for his children and with the affection of a fellow Christian, scandalized and hurt by what has occurred in our beloved Church. As you make use of this prayer in your families, parishes and communities, may the Blessed Virgin Mary protect and guide each of you

    Imagine with me now, the cumulative weight of all the victims of abuse letting out a collective sigh of relief, they really do have “the care of a father for his children”. Maybe the lawyers will be called off some time soon, and all of the fine, devoted Roman Catholics who feel so bad about this church abuse scandal can now get on with their lives, satisfied that “the Church” has apologized in earnest, and can, well, go on infallibly proposing the “formal proximate object of their faith” because we know, “the gates of Hell shall not prevail” against this holy Church.

    Forgive me, all, for being so cynical, but really, what other “rationally unassailable” response to this can there be?

  572. Brent 548

    you must — because of academic disparity — employ the “obedience of faith” with Torrance’s academic promulgation.

    Another word for this might be “exercising reason”.

    Torrance is not the only scholar making an “academic promulgation”. If Torrance is BS’ing anybody, he’ll be found out. There are checks and balances in this system. It’s not “obedience” I am exercising.

    there is no academic Magisteria anywhere that has ever unified Protestantism

    Frankly, so what? There are seven billion individuals in the world, and each of them will stand individually before the Lord. Aside from that, I feel very unified with very many Protestants, whereas, several of you have quite vocally distanced themselves from individuals like Raymond Brown, and Francis Sullivan, John Meier, and Joseph Fitzmyer (and others), all of whom are supposedly “unified” Roman Catholics.

    Let me just add that your personal expose, as well as others here of former Catholics, makes a lot of sense to me now. I say “now”, because I just finished Bad Religion by Ross Douthat, and I found it fascinating to learn more about American Catholicism over the last 80 years. I think all of us Catholics at Called to Communion should remember that there is a very ugly history of deplorable catechesis in the US (and in other places),

    Yes, we have seen that Sean already has fired his arrow, and then has drawn his target, to borrow a metaphore, around where it landed.

    What good is having an infallible magisterium, to infallibly (and maybe with certitude) propose “the formal proximate object of the faith”, if this very ugly history of deplorable catechesis is going to let you down. And worse, you’re being faithful to this “deplorable catechesis”; it’s all a vicious downward spiral for the church against which “the gates of hell shall not prevail”. Fortunately, the Vatican rests securely behind its huge, expensive walls.

  573. John.

    I am pressed for time. What do you mean by pressing that I fired the arrow and then drew the target around it? Are you making reference to something Bryan wrote a few years ago about authority and solo scriptura and saying that I did the same thing because I moved my family to a parish where the Catholic faith was being taught from one where it wasn’t?

    You said a lot more to Bryan but you continue to duck the real issue.

    But one more thing caught my eye:

    And if you “go back” to the church of the 30′s, 40,s, 50′s and 60′s, (a) you’ll see that it looks nothing like the Roman Catholic Church, either in form or authority structure, and (b) official Rome has recognized this, and has altered its language to reflect that it’s earlier “teaching” on this was wrong.

    John, that is absurd (the bolded part) but you keep on saying it. I have read every attempt you’ve ever made to prove that the Catholic Church has somehow admitted the vast conspiracy of apostolic succession in hidden phrases in various documents and remain completely unimpressed. You simply take some such statement which references apostolic succession and then compare it to an older statement and if the words are not exactly the same you accuse the Catholic Church of some grand admission even though nothing is retracted. It is ridiculous. Its also not a true statement.

    You even tried to show this previously in this very discussion and it didn’t work.

  574. John. # 571

    It seems to me that you went out of your way to find the most uncharitable reading humanly possible from Pope Benedict’s letter to the Catholic Church in Ireland.

    There is no use in arguing with your take on the letter. There is no use in citing all the other examples of Pope Benedict apologizing and taking responsibility.

    We’ll let you have the last word as to whether the Pope’s apology is as good as Penn State’s.

    My goodness.

    I’ll just leave it at that.

  575. Bobby (re: #559):

    It’s good to see a Barthian commenting.

    During most of my time at WSC I considered myself something of a Barthian. I know of Barth’s tenuous relationship to traditional Reformed Protestantism, mainly because I was busy defending him (perhaps wrongfully) against attacks by confessional Reformed folk; I’m sure you are aware of what that is like.

    I have read McCormack’s work on Barth (I even reviewed Karl Barth’s Criticially Realistic Dialectical Theology quite positively for the school) and I have read Johnson’s book on the analogia entis. While I do believe that, historically speaking, McCormack paints a much more accurate picture of Barth than some Barth’s more-than-idealistic followers in the US, I think McCormack’s speculative trinitarianism, based on Barth’s theology, is highly problematic. Moreover, I’m not convinced that Balthasar’s reading of Barth, i.e., the ‘turn’ from dialectic to analogy, is the only way to read Balthasar’s book on the Reformed theologian; in other words, I still think many of Balthasar’s criticisms hold regardless of his reading of Barth’s ‘analogical turn.’ The conference that I mention in the story above was the Princeton, Aquinas and Barth in dialogue conference. There is more that can be said on these issues, but, in a nutshell, I don’t see how the theological solution that you offer, as eloquent as it sounds, actually answers, say, someone like Feuerbach. The problem is held in abeyance, but it is not resolved.

    I do find it highly ironic that you say that I should have become a Barthian. I think Barth would have shuddered at this, as if his own theology were somehow ‘institutional’ enough to be pitted against the allegedly immanentizing theology of Rome. So much for a theology-in-act… It seems to me that most Barthians have recourse to Barth in a way that treats him as an infallible authority. Obviously no Barthian would admit this, but this is how Barthians often seem to behave. But in this they are little different from their fundamentalist and liberal protestant brothers…

    You write:

    The concrete particularity of the Church is found nowhere else but in God’s life itself, in Christ pro nobis. The incarnation was a unique event (sui generis) . . .

    I think any Roman Catholic would agree with this. Yet the idea that the particularity of the Incarnation is an event sui generis does not in anyway counteract a Roman Catholic ecclesiology. I recommend reading Scheeben’s The Church of the Word Incarnate on this matter as you seem to demonstrate some ignorance of how the Church understands herself.

    Further, you write:

    You seem to want to stability, and some sense of certitude, and yet the life of walking by faith is just the opposite; it is a life of dependence and growth and pain and relationship (which is much more dynamic than what you have been looking for and found in the Roman Catholic Church). It seems to me that you were looking for certainty in something you could “see,” but in fact the scriptures say ‘blessed are those who have not seen and yet believed’. Your philosophical angst and yearnings may have been settled by joining the Roman Catholic church, but this is different than what the kind of rest that Jesus calls us to.

    Apart from the psychoanalysis, I don’t think you quite understand that it is not illegitimate certainty that draws one to the Catholic Church. I could just as easily argue that Barth had this sense of illegitimate certainty concerning his own theology–I mean, what sane individual writes his own theology and has the gall to title it, Church dogmatics? But that’s another issue… Surely you’re aware (and as a Protestant, you must be) of all the shortcomings and failings of those who constitute the clergy of the Catholic Church? I think, if anything, to believe in one, holy, catholic, and apostolic Church in light of its obvious humanness demands greater faith than simply declaiming ‘institutions,’ (as every other modern individual does) and settling for a theology where God seems, for all intents and purposes, to be completely elusive (or as Bonhoeffer criticized Barth’s theology, God seems never truly ‘haveable’).

    Having said all that, I still enjoy Barth quite a bit…

  576. Sorry, Bobby, that’s Scheeben’s The Mysteries of Christianity. You should also read Journet’s book that I mentioned above.

    That is all.

  577. John, (re: #561)

    You wrote:

    And yet, look at the order of things in this introductory passage:

    Chapter one is a litany of things that the Corinthians were – “you did everything without partiality, and you lived in accordance with the laws of God, submitting yourselves …. [2.1] Moreover, you were all humble and free from arrogance, submitting rather than demanding submission, more glad to give than to receive, and content with the provisions that God supplies. And giving heed to his words, you stored them up diligently in your hearts, and kept his sufferings before your eyes. [2.2]Thus a profound and rich peace was given to all, together with an insatiable desire to do good, and an abundant outpouring of the Holy Spirit fell upon everyone as well …

    As Torrance has noted, in Titus, it is God’s initiative. Here, for Clement, the “outpouring of the Holy Spirit” was almost an afterthought.

    You seem to be assuming that because the outpouring of the Spirit is mentioned last in that paragraph, therefore it was an “afterthought” for St. Clement. But that conclusion does not follow, and is not only entirely speculative, but contrary to what St. Clement says elsewhere (see #517 above) about God’s primary in the order of salvation. St. Clement is speaking here to Corinthian believers, and referring to a period of time after their baptism, and thus after they were already endowed with the Spirit. So, again, there is no Pelagianism here or Pelagian conception of grace. The outpouring of the Spirit to which St. Clement refers was not the initial receiving of the Spirit by these Corinthian believers at their baptism, but rather a subsequent increase in the presence and operation of the Spirit.

    There is a similarity here, in certain respects, to the way the believers were “filled with the Holy Spirit” in Acts 4:31 after they had already received the Spirit at Pentecost. The first two chapters of 1 Clement are not Pelagian, for the same reason that Acts 4:31 is not Pelagian. The movement or outpouring of the Spirit in response to a graced-activity by believers (in this case prayer — Acts 4:24-31) is perfectly biblical and orthodox. Your criticism of St. Clement’s first two chapters would apply no less to Acts 4:31, and would thus condemn St. Luke of holding a conception of grace “not in complete alignment with Scripture.” The only problem with that accusation, however, is that Acts is Scripture.

    Not only that, but the English translation you are using (“an abundant outpouring of the Holy Spirit fell upon everyone”) may not be the most accurate way of translating “καὶ πλήρης πνεύματος ἁγίου ἔκχυσις ἐπὶ πάντας ἐγίνετο” (1 Clement 2.2). ἐγίνετο is an imperfect, and might very well be translated as “was falling” or “was happening” or “was occurring.” So this activity by the Corinthian believers, described by St. Clement in 1 Clement 1-2 may have been simultaneous with a continuous outpouring of the Spirit, not necessarily even something prior to the outpouring of the Spirit described in 1 Clement 2.2.

    In sum, if the outpouring of the Spirit followed the graced activity of the Corinthian believers, then this is not Pelagian for the same reason Acts 4:31 is not Pelagian. But if the outpouring of the Spirit was simultaneous with the graced-activity of the Corinthian believers, then there is no basis for claiming even that the outpouring was a result of or reward for their graced-activity, and instead of the outpouring of the Spirit being “an afterthought,” it may very well have been that by which and in which they did all these good deeds.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  578. John (re: #562)

    You wrote:

    Keep in mind both he and TDNT have produced very thorough documentary evidence on the sources of meanings of the word “grace”, both in the Greek culture and in the Bible. And Torrance’s comparison with Clement, finds far more affinities with the cultural usage than the Biblical usage.

    I have already explained (in #528, #535, and #537) that the method by which Torrance attempts to determine the meaning of the word ‘grace’ in the Bible is a question-begging method if treated as something more than a conditional exercise, rather than a theologically normative determination of the meaning of biblical terms.

    I have no intention to be insulting, but it is descriptive of what has happened. The three sentences of mine say everything about what I perceive to be your inability to engage the material.

    Which material have I not engaged?

    I know now that you reject these definitions in advance, not because of any flaw in their analyses of the literature, but because of presuppositions you hold.

    And you accept them because of presuppositions you hold. So, to resolve the disagreement, we have to step back and examine those presuppositions. But, for the reason I explained in #340, you have the burden of proof. So, if you want to make your case, it is up to you to demonstrate that my presuppositions are false, that already by St. Clement the Church had fallen away from orthodoxy, and incorporated pagan conceptions of soteriology.

    But if, when looking for the definition of grace in Scripture, the only thing that one finds, to borrow from Atychi (547), is monergisim, then the synergism that Clement teaches comes from some other source. In that case, the source you want is that somehow, somewhere, the Apostles taught this synergism outside of things they taught in the Scriptures. That doesn’t follow though.

    Since you have the burden of proof, you have to prove that St. Clement’s doctrine didn’t come from the Apostles. And you have not yet done that. What you have done is attempt to show similarities between pagan conceptions of ‘grace’ and St. Clement’s, while attempting to show dissimilar conceptions of ‘grace’ between St. Clement and Scripture. But so far, none of your alleged instances of St. Clement deviating from Scripture with respect to his conception of grace has stood up to scrutiny; in each alleged case I have shown that what St. Clement says is fully compatible with Scripture.

    You guys are so quick to pull the trigger on “question-begging”, that you just simply fail to consider important information about sources for your own “Tradition”, for “[your] family’s internally developed cliches and allusions”.

    That statement is just a personal attack. More of this, and your comments won’t get past the moderator. Personal attacks do not show what is right or wrong with your interlocutor’s arguments and positions. They leave your interlocutor’s arguments and positions untouched and unrefuted.

    Aren’t you interested in knowing where these concepts may or may not come from?

    Of course. But you have not provided any evidence showing that St. Clement’s conception of grace came from pagans, rather than from the Apostles.

    Just simply calling a thing “question-begging” is not helpful. There is no authoritative “dictionary of question-begging things”. This too is a fallible judgment on your part.

    Of course my judgment is fallible. So is yours. That gets us nowhere. In “The Tradition and the Lexicon” I provided an argument showing how the lexical method is question-begging with respect to the Catholic paradigm. If you think that the lexical method is not question-begging with respect to the Catholic paradigm, then please show how the lexical method does not beg the question against the Catholic paradigm. (I recommend moving that effort to the “The Tradition and the Lexicon” thread, to keep the discussion as on-topic as possible.)

    So when you say that Torrance is “question-begging” here, what you are saying is, “Torrance really didn’t look at all the different usages of grace in his analysis. There are other usages he didn’t consider.”

    When I say that the lexical method begs the question, I’m pointing out that the method itself depends on theologically loaded (i.e. not neutral) presuppositions, as I explained in #528, #535, #537 above, and in “The Tradition and the Lexicon.” If you disagree, then you’ll need to refute the argument I provide in “The Tradition and the Lexicon.”

    And specifically, you are saying, “I don’t accept Torrance’s definitions here because they are not my definitions.

    That’s not at all what I’m saying.

    But really, I’m sure you would agree, words do “have meaning”, and these meanings can be identified. And what you are accusing Torrance of is (a) purposely not being complete in his finding of these usages, or (b) being inept.

    No, it is has nothing to with the goodness of his intentions, or his skill as researcher. It has to do with the theological presuppositions intrinsic to the methodology.

    Such is the perspicuity for you. Scripture may be perspicuous for me when you need it to be. Maybe you can show me someone else who looks at the passage from Titus that way. I have addressed this in a previous comment.

    No, because you have the burden of proof, all I have to do is show a way of harmonizing Titus and 1 Clement. It is up to you to show that there is no way to harmonize them.

    You say Torrance is “question-begging”, so you simply dismiss what he says.

    I don’t “dismiss” it. I recognize it to be an exercise conducted according to certain presuppositions, and therefore I treat its conclusions under that qualification. That is, if one subtracts the authority of Tradition from the picture, and engages in research as if “solo scriptura” and ecclesial deism were true, Torrance’s conclusion is a conclusion one could reach.

    In the peace of Christ,

    – Bryan

  579. John B. (re:#571),

    I hear your anger about the sex abuse scandals in the Catholic Church. Without going into details, which would not help here, I can tell you that, along with many millions of other people (in America and around the world), my own life has been personally touched by the pain of sexual abuse. I freely acknowledge, with sorrow and anger, that in many cases, the norms of canon law which already existed on the books, so as to prevent potential predators from ever even *becoming* priests, and so as to protect children in other ways in the Church– these norms were simply not applied by more than a few men who were in the position to apply them in the Church. The Pope speaks to this awful reality in his letter to the Catholics of Ireland.

    At no point in the letter did I see him saying, in effect, “Poor, poor bishops.” I saw him saying many things but not that. I agree with Sean, above, that there is no use to argue at with your take on the letter.

    I will say that the Pope does care about the pain of sexual abuse victims. He has met, listened to, and prayed with, victims around the world. After one such meeting, I saw one of the men with whom the Pope personally met on television. The reaction of this victim, who had been abused by a priest, was to say that, in his opinion, the current Pope is “a Saint” (in the Catholic understanding of “Saint,” of course, which also does acknowledge, in the Catechism, that Biblically speaking, all believers are called “saints”).

    This person was abused by a priest, and he also presumably has access to the same data on sexual abuse in the Church which you do, and yet, he views the Pope, and his actions and words, far differently than you do. As I wrote above, I do hear your anger about the scandals and, in many ways, I share it. The abuses have scarred so many people and their families. I know these scars, myself, although again, I will not go into detail here about how and why that is so.

    Again, I’m glad that you’re here. I hope that, as you are able, you will engage with the other, much more lengthy part of my first comment (#570) to you, concerning Sola Scriptura and how it has (or has not, in your view) truly been engaged at CTC, at present, and in previous times/articles. (Perhaps you already have written another reply, and it is still in moderation.) God bless.

  580. Christopher Lake 570:

    Again, as a Sola Scriptura adherent, I definitely did not view the Bible as my *only* ecclesial authority. It was, however, my only *infallible* ecclesial authority. I would assume that, as a Reformed Protestant, this is your current position. Please do correct me if I am wrong.

    Words get bandied around, and often they lose their meaning. Scripture is so much more than an “authority” or an “infallible authority”. Scripture is God’s chosen form of communication, and for you to say that we somehow need an “interpreter” is to say, not just “effectively” but “in reality” that God Almighty is not capable of writing words that his people will understand.

  581. By the way, Christopher Lake, #570, I live in Pittsburgh, and there was quite a bit of discussion yesterday surrounding the NCAA sanctions of Penn State. That was one abuser, and probably a half-dozen guys trying to hide him. The University, in very bad circumstances, from their own funds, hired a high-profile investigator whose sole purpose was to bring the entire story to light as quickly as possible, in the in the clearest possible way. That, in difficult circumstances, was absolutely the right thing for them to do.

    I don’t know if you are aware of this, but do you realize that 6115 priests were accused of sexual abuse. These are the ones reported by the Bishops. The accusations were made by 16,324 different victims. Fewer than 2% of the accusations were found not to be credible. By and large, these individuals who should be prosecuted and in jail, got off scott-free, thanks largely to bishops hiding them and resisting giving out information on a very broad scale, and just absolutely going to the mat to save “their own”, and huge numbers of the stories are still hidden, abusers are God-knows-where, Cardinal Law is living out a comfortable retirement in Rome, and I’m accused of not giving the “most charitable” reading of these events.

    Someone here said that I write things for “cheerleaders” over at Triablogue. I’ve just responded to a commenter who called me a “sociopath”.

    Some of you have some misplaced priorities.

  582. Bryan, I stopped saying “Pelagian” a long time ago, and yet your 577 continues to argue that “Clement is not Pelagian”.

    How is this not a straw man on your part? I’m sure you have a good, well-thought-out reason for attributing something to me that’s just not there.

  583. Michael Liccione (546):

    The foundational question at issue between us at CTC and Protestants of your sort is: “How to determine which IP is rationally preferable”? In other words, which way of giving theological significance to the raw data is best suited to distinguishing divine revelation from human opinion?

    What’s really “foundational”? Some things are, or ought to be, just simply self-evident. And it’s not at all self evident that “the foundational issue” is “how to determine which IP is rationally preferable”.

    Consider these New Testament accounts:

    Men of Israel, hear these words: Jesus of Nazareth, a man attested to you by God with mighty works and wonders and signs that God did through him in your midst, as you yourselves know— this Jesus, delivered up according to the definite plan and foreknowledge of God … This Jesus God raised up, and of that we all are witnesses.

    We are not telling you to believe things that you do not see as a “formal proximate object of faith”. We are confirming things to you that you already know.

    Then Paul stretched out his hand and made his defense … “I am not out of my mind, most excellent Festus, but I am speaking true and rational words. For the king knows about these things, and to him I speak boldly. For I am persuaded that none of these things has escaped his notice, for this has not been done in a corner.

    What’s necessary to be known isn’t hidden, “implicit” in the Scriptures, waiting for some as-yet-unneeded “development”. True and rational words, things that don’t really “escape notice”.

    That which was from the beginning, which we have heard, which we have seen with our eyes, which we looked upon and have touched with our hands, concerning the word of life— the life was made manifest, and we have seen it, and testify to it and proclaim to you the eternal life,

    It’s all clear as a bell to us. We proclaim this eternal life to you, and our testimony is true.

    Inasmuch as many have undertaken to compile a narrative of the things that have been accomplished among us, just as those who from the beginning were eyewitnesses and ministers of the word have delivered them to us, it seemed good to me also, having followed all things closely for some time past, to write an orderly account for you, most excellent Theophilus, that you may have certainty concerning the things you have been taught.

    And you have certainty simply through this orderly account, and there is no hint at all that anything else is required.

    * * *

    You said:

    instead of proceeding as if your IP were the only one, we insist that you stop begging the question and instead approach the issues at the level I’ve been talking about. To object that IPs are “unfalsifiable” is simply irrelevant.

    I’m not proceeding as if [my] IP were the only one. I’ve cited probably dozens of scholars on topics where they are the specialists, proceeding on an “IP” which they expect, if not completely perfect, will be seriously challenged, and their livelihoods depend on it.

    In the same vein, Bryan said this of the “burden of proof”:

    When a party goes out from the Catholic Church, as Protestants did in the sixteenth century on the basis of their own interpretation of Scripture, and that party seeks to justify its actions by making a case against the Catholic Church, that party has the burden of proof, just by the fact that they are the ones who went out from the Church.

    Where, precisely, is it just precisely this “self evident” that the Roman Catholic Church is somehow “The Church” that it says it is? Your own “begging the question” is prior in time to my supposed “begging the question”. You beg the question that “the Roman Catholic Church” is what it says it is.

    You’ll no doubt say that Matthew 16:18 is some kind of “self-evident” proof that Christ founded a visible church, Peter was the first pope, etc.

    But show me where some of these individual steps are quite so “self-evident”:

    a) The promise of Mt 16:18 has reference to “Peter.”
    b) The promise of Mt 16:18 has “exclusive” reference to Peter.
    c) The promise of Mt 16:18 has reference to a Petrine “office.”
    d) This office is “perpetual”
    e) Peter resided in “Rome”
    f) Peter was the “bishop” of Rome
    g) Peter was the “first” bishop of Rome
    h) There was only “one” bishop at a time
    i) Peter was not a bishop “anywhere else.”
    j) Peter “ordained” a successor
    k) This ceremony “transferred” his official prerogatives to a successor.
    l) The succession has remained “unbroken” up to the present day.

    Not one of these little mini-steps is self-evident. In fact, I’ve published a tremendous amount of information that contests (not to being an outright logical proof, but history does not function that way) the Roman Catholic accounting of each of these steps. The cumulative effect of these things is an alternative history which, in the words of Carl Trueman just this month, is “what historians take for granted: the rise, consolidation and definition of papal power is an historically very complex issue; and, indeed, as scholarship advances, the story becomes more, not less, convoluted and subversive of papal claims.”

    The phrase is used here, “through the eyes of the fathers”, as if somehow this “language” too, is self-evident, and that it self-evidently accepts the Roman Catholic story about itself. But Archbishop Roland Minnerath has admitted as much: “The East never shared the Petrine theology as elaborated in the West. It never accepted that the protos in the universal church could claim to be the unique successor or vicar of Peter.

    So, if “the East” never even felt as if they were “going out” from the Roman Catholic Church, where, precisely, is “the burden of proof”?

    You all here just simply “assume” the papacy; you take Newman at his [“incoherent”] word that “it’s not a violent assumption” to hold that this papal authority was somehow in authority from the beginning. I’m saying, (and others are saying), At the very least, “the East” considered it to be a violent assumption.

    Consider the words of John Meier, a Roman Catholic biblical scholar whom you all dismiss, but who the Vatican permits to speak for Roman Catholicism in high-level ecumenical meetings, the papacy does not provide “a credible historical account of its own origins…” (“Petrine Ministry in the New Testament and in the Early Patristic Traditions,” in James F. Puglisi, ed., How Can the Petrine Ministry Be a Service to the Uity of the Universal Church?” Grand Rapids, MI and Cambridge, UK: William Be. Eerdmans Publishing Co., © 2010). Meier is one of those who believes in “God’s providential guidance of the church, leading by a series of steps to the emergence of the bishop of Rome,” but this is a far, far cry from the “divine institution” of the papacy – directly conferring it on Peter who directly conferred it, in “full power” directly to an unbroken chain of “successors.”

    Up above you chided me for only giving Old Testament prophecies. Here I am with some pretty “foundational” New Testament “hermeneutics”.

    The apostles are saying, “you can believe these things” first of all, because “you yourselves are eyewitnesses to some of these things”, and secondly, “our testimony is true”.

    That, in itself, seems pretty foundational to me. Salvation does not depend on some “formally identified” “proximate object of faith” with very sharply-defined edges, defined by someone who us just “assumed” to be in authority.

    The events that the writers of the New Testament were talking about are just as clear and self-evident to them as the noses on their faces.

    In what way are these not “foundational issues”?

    Where is the burden of proof in an environment where “as scholarship advances, the story becomes more, not less, convoluted and subversive of papal claims.”

    Especially given some of the other context that we’ve seen.

  584. John and Everybody Else.

    At this point we’ve gotten quite far from Joshua’s piece. We’re taking a break from the tangents that have developed. Please only comment on Joshua’s piece from here on out on this thread.

    If you want to talk about papal primacy or something unreleated to the topic at hand, I suggest looking into our archive and finding a related thread.

    We’re now turning this thread back to a discussion of Joshua’s article.

  585. Sean, thank you for allowing my comments to go through. I’ll be watching this thread specifically; if anyone has questions for me on the above (thinks I’m missing something obvious, wants me to respond to a comment that hasn’t been been addressed, etc), please also feel free to contact me personally. My email address is easily located at my online profile.

  586. […] of his, which itself was a response to a dia­logue with Michael Lic­cione in the com­box of Joshua Lim’s con­ver­sion story at Called to Com­mu­nion. The dis­cus­sion starts at com­ment 275.  The rea­son I want to […]

  587. A devout evangelical once told me that doctrine doesn’t matter, merely our relationship to Christ. I responded by saying that protestants are forced into one of two positions: either it doesn’t matter, or everyone else is wrong. You discovered the paradox of my statement during your journey. I suspect it was your intellectual curiosity that opened the paradox to you.

    Gratefully in the Catholic Church we see our brethren on faith journeys, missing parts of the whole, as opposed to right or wrong (although it is implied).

    Welcome to Christ’s Church.
    Jerry G

  588. Josh,

    From just going over just this post in one full swoop, although you probably have other reflections in your move to Roman Catholicism from Protestantism, the initial impression that I received from the post was your issue regarding more on the behavior of the Reformed folk in their high-mindedness, and as the Pharisee in Luke 18, yet as you probably heard that the Reformed behaving this way does not negate the truths of the Gospel of free grace.

    In all honesty, your distaste for Protestantism is a bit circular, here by your post, you’re indirectly, in a winsome manner in a sense are condemning the Protestants in confessional and non-confessional churches by stating what Roman Catholicism has that Protestants do not, which is humility or wider ecumenism.

    The issue at stake here is the heart of the Gospel; Justification. Are the Scriptures clear regarding the imputation of Christ’s righteousness to the sinner? Are the Scriptures clear regarding faith in the person and work of Christ? The Gospel is central here.

    Can we know for sure what the Gospel is? Of course we can, there is only one Gospel. When Phillip preached the good news in Acts 8 to the Ethiopian eunuch who was reading the prophet Isaiah, the eunuch understood and believed what Philip was preaching about. He believed on Christ crucified for him. Did the eunuch have a undergirding philosophy, of course as you stated in the post, everyone has a philosophy, yet that’s not the point here in Acts 8, the point is that when the good news was preached through sinful Philip the Holy spirit created faith in the heart of that Ethiopian eunuch.

    Forget for a moment your distaste for the Reformed folk, the intellectual cockiness that sinful Reformed folk demonstrate myself included in that mix, and ask the question—when you read Romans do you not hear the law that we’re sinners in need of a Savior? And when Romans 5 comes, Wow—that’s good news, and then Romans 6 seals the deal presupposing the Gospel in the previous chapter?

    Personally, this is the main reason why I am Protestant it is because of this one and only Gospel summarized in the Heidelberg Catechism question 60,

    How are you righteous before God?

    Only by true faith in Jesus Christ; that is, although my conscience accuses me that I have grievously sinned against all the commandments of God, have never kept any of them, and that I am still inclined always to all evil, yet God, without any merit of my own, out of mere grace, imputes to me the perfect satisfaction, righteousness and holiness of Christ, as if I had never had nor committed any sin, and as if I had myself accomplished all the obedience which Christ has fulfilled for me, if only I accept this gift with a believing heart.
    I’ll take this, as my father did, to my death bed.

  589. For God’s blessings on Joshua Lim, on this, his third anniversary of being received into full communion with the Catholic Church, and Feast of St. Anselm, let us pray to the Lord.

  590. Thank you, Bryan!

    It’s been a happy three years.

  591. Joshua,

    I sat next to you yesterday at Starbucks (I was on a break from work). I thought I recognized you from this website. You were engrossed in conversation with another chap. And I was trying to push through a little Hebrew Bible reading. And so I didn’t take the opportunity to speak with you.

    I have a different story to tell. I myself left Rome in my early twenties. Or, probably better put, was plucked out of Rome almost unawares. And am now a happy Protestant. Firmly rooted, I trust, in the holy traditions of my fathers in the faith.

    I see real problems in modern evangelicalism. They’re there. There’s no doubt about that. But I see far more in modern day Roman Catholocism (chiefly in the the real lives of the literally thousands of RCs among whom I live and move and have my being, but also in the official system).

    For a little bio, I grew up in the Catholic church, went to a Catholic grade school, and have worked for a Catholic institution for quite a while now in healthcare. I recently completed an MA in biblical exegesis at Wheaton College. I’m now doing an MA in systematic theology at TEDS (with a good measure of historical theology/church history mixed in). And I hope to be applying to doctoral programs in theology before long. I just might entertain Norte Dame. But whether she would entertain me—a committed Protestant—that’s another issue.

    I hope to have the opportunity to meet you properly and speak with you. Perhaps I’ll see you again at the coffee shop.

    Pax,

    JW

  592. Dear Jeffrey,

    Thanks for your comment. I sent you an email to the address provided. Please let me know if you don’t get it.

    jhl

  593. […] that Stellman’s defection is part of a larger trend.  Just a few days earlier on 27 May 2012, Joshua Lim, a brand new graduate from Westminster Seminary (Escondido) posted his conversion to Roman […]

Leave Comment